summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--32417-8.txt9095
-rw-r--r--32417-8.zipbin0 -> 155340 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h.zipbin0 -> 1849110 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/32417-h.htm11803
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/cover.jpgbin0 -> 58442 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/emblem.pngbin0 -> 5445 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/frontis.jpgbin0 -> 62560 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-001.jpgbin0 -> 63010 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-002.jpgbin0 -> 65796 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-003.jpgbin0 -> 67580 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-004.jpgbin0 -> 54798 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-005.jpgbin0 -> 58231 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-ad-1-big.jpgbin0 -> 123100 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-ad-1.jpgbin0 -> 27300 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-ad-2-big.pngbin0 -> 354836 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-ad-2.pngbin0 -> 9402 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-ad-3-big.pngbin0 -> 355993 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-ad-3.pngbin0 -> 11797 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-ad-4-big.pngbin0 -> 349785 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417-h/images/i-ad-4.pngbin0 -> 10151 bytes
-rw-r--r--32417.txt9095
-rw-r--r--32417.zipbin0 -> 155335 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
25 files changed, 30009 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/32417-8.txt b/32417-8.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..eafac95
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-8.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,9095 @@
+The Project Gutenberg eBook, The Girl from Arizona, by Nina Rhoades,
+Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington
+
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+
+
+
+Title: The Girl from Arizona
+
+
+Author: Nina Rhoades
+
+
+
+Release Date: May 18, 2010 [eBook #32417]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+
+***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA***
+
+
+E-text prepared by Emmy, Darleen Dove, and the Project Gutenberg Online
+Distributed Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images
+generously made available by Internet Archive (http://www.archive.org)
+
+
+
+Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this
+ file which includes the original illustrations.
+ See 32417-h.htm or 32417-h.zip:
+ (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/32417/32417-h/32417-h.htm)
+ or
+ (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/32417/32417-h.zip)
+
+
+ Images of the original pages are available through
+ Internet Archive. See
+ http://www.archive.org/details/girlfromarizona00rhoarich
+
+
+
+
+
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA
+
+ * * * * *
+
+BOOKS BY NINA RHOADES
+
+ MARION'S VACATION. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth. $1.25
+ DOROTHY BROWN. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth. $1.50
+ VICTORINE'S BOOK. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth. $1.25
+
+FOR YOUNGER READERS
+
+"THE BRICK HOUSE BOOKS"
+
+The sight of the brick house on the cover makes girl readers happy at
+once.--_Indianapolis News._
+
+Illustrated. Large 12mo. Cloth. $1.00 each
+
+ ONLY DOLLIE
+ THE LITTLE GIRL NEXT DOOR
+ WINIFRED'S NEIGHBORS
+ THE CHILDREN ON THE TOP FLOOR
+ HOW BARBARA KEPT HER PROMISE
+ LITTLE MISS ROSAMOND
+ PRISCILLA OF THE DOLL SHOP
+ BRAVE LITTLE PEGGY
+ THE OTHER SYLVIA
+ MAISIE'S MERRY CHRISTMAS
+ LITTLE QUEEN ESTHER
+
+ LOTHROP, LEE & SHEPARD CO.
+ BOSTON
+
+ * * * * *
+
+
+[Illustration: "AREN'T YOU GOING TO BE FRIENDS WITH ME?"--_Page 225._]
+
+
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA
+
+by
+
+NINA RHOADES
+
+Author of The "Brick House Books," "Marion's Vacation,"
+"Dorothy Brown," Etc.
+
+Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+[Illustration]
+
+Boston
+Lothrop, Lee & Shepard Co.
+
+Published, August, 1913
+
+Copyright, 1913, by
+Lothrop, Lee & Shepard Co.
+
+All Rights Reserved
+
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA
+
+Norwood Press
+Berwick & Smith Co.
+Norwood, Mass.
+U. S. A.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+
+ CHAPTER PAGE
+ I MAKING THE BEST OF THINGS 1
+ II THE COMING OF UNDINE 13
+ III TRYING TO REMEMBER 29
+ IV A VISITOR FROM THE EAST 43
+ V UNCLE HENRY'S PROPOSITION 58
+ VI THE LAST EVENING 70
+ VII MARJORIE WRITES LETTERS 81
+ VIII AUNT JULIA AND ELSIE 91
+ IX MARJORIE TAKES A MORNING WALK 110
+ X NEW FRIENDS AND NEW FASHIONS 127
+ XI MARJORIE ENGAGES IN BATTLE 137
+ XII A MOTOR RIDE AND A FOOTBALL GAME 155
+ XIII MARJORIE SURPRISES HER RELATIVES 170
+ XIV THE POETRY CLUB 182
+ XV ELSIE TRIUMPHS 197
+ XVI THE THINGS THAT HURT 216
+ XVII BEVERLY SINGS "MANDALAY" 236
+ XVIII IN THE SUNNY SOUTH 254
+ XIX A VIRGINIA CHRISTMAS 266
+ XX MARJORIE SEES A PHOTOGRAPH 275
+ XXI UNDINE REMEMBERS 290
+ XXII UNDINE TELLS HER STORY 306
+ XXIII BREAKING THE NEWS 317
+ XXIV MARJORIE HAS HER WISH 331
+ XXV ELSIE REDEEMS HERSELF 341
+
+
+
+
+ILLUSTRATIONS
+
+
+ "Aren't you going to be friends with me?" (Page 225) _Frontispiece_
+
+ FACING PAGE
+ "Where in the world did you come from?" 20
+
+ With one quick movement she seized the whip handle 146
+
+ "Oh, Mother dear, I'm so sorry!" 244
+
+ "Land sakes, Missy! What is it?" 284
+
+ "It takes a lot of pluck to get up and say a thing like that" 354
+
+
+
+
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+MAKING THE BEST OF THINGS
+
+
+"MARJORIE."
+
+The clear call rang out, breaking the afternoon stillness of the ranch,
+but there was no response, and after waiting a moment Miss Graham gave
+her wheeled chair a gentle push, which sent it rolling smoothly across
+the porch of the ranch house, down the inclined plane, which served the
+purpose of steps, to the lawn. It was very hot, the sun was blazing down
+as only an Arizona sun can blaze, and not a breath of air was stirring.
+But Miss Graham was accustomed to the heat and the glare. She paused for
+a moment, gazing off over the vast prairie to the California mountains,
+nearly a hundred miles away. She generally paused on that same spot for
+one look, although the landscape was the only one she had seen in twelve
+years. Then she moved on again, across the lawn, now parched and dry
+from the long summer's heat, toward the stables and out-buildings. It
+was before the smallest of these out-buildings, a tiny log cabin, that
+she finally brought the chair to a standstill.
+
+"Marjorie, are you there?"
+
+There was a sound of some one moving inside, and a girl of fourteen,
+with a book in her hand, appeared in the doorway. She was a pretty girl,
+with soft light hair that curled over her temples, and bright, merry
+blue eyes, but just now the eyes were red and swollen, and there were
+unmistakable tear-marks on the girl's cheeks. At sight of the lady in
+the wheeled chair, however, Marjorie's face brightened, and she hurried
+forward, exclaiming remorsefully:
+
+"Oh, Aunt Jessie dear, did you come all this way by yourself? I'm so
+sorry. Do you want me to do something for you?"
+
+"You needn't be sorry," said her aunt, smiling. "The exercise will do me
+good, and I am quite proud of being able to manage this chair so easily.
+I called you from the porch, but you didn't hear. Your mother and
+Juanita are busy in the kitchen making jam, and I wasn't of any use
+there, so I thought I would come and see what you were about. I felt
+pretty sure of finding you in the old playhouse."
+
+"Come in," said Marjorie, eagerly. "You haven't been in the playhouse in
+ages; not since I grew too big to invite you to 'make-believe' tea, but
+the door is just wide enough for the chair; don't you remember? Let me
+help you in?" And springing to Miss Graham's side, Marjorie seized the
+handle of the chair, and carefully guided it through the narrow
+entrance, into the little house her father had built for her own special
+use, and which had always been known as the playhouse. It might still
+have been regarded as a playhouse, although its owner had grown too old
+to play there. A couple of battered dolls reposed upon a toy bedstead in
+one corner, and an array of china dishes, all more or less the worse for
+wear, adorned the shelves. Marjorie loved her few possessions dearly,
+and in a place where one's nearest neighbor lives five miles away, there
+are not many people on whom to bestow things which have ceased to be
+useful to one's self, and they are therefore likely to be preserved.
+
+"Now we're all nice and cosy," remarked Marjorie, seating herself
+comfortably on the floor at her aunt's feet. "There wouldn't be room for
+another person in here, even if there were anybody to come. What good
+times we used to have here when I was little, didn't we, Aunt Jessie?"
+
+Marjorie spoke fast and nervously, but there were pink spots in her
+cheeks, and Miss Graham was not easily deceived.
+
+"What's the matter, Marjorie?" she asked simply. She and her niece had
+no secrets from each other.
+
+Marjorie tried to laugh, but her lip quivered, and the tears started to
+her eyes.
+
+"There isn't anything the matter," she said, frankly. "I've been a
+goose, that's all. It was all the fault of the book I was reading."
+
+"What book was it?" Miss Graham inquired curiously, glancing at the
+volume Marjorie was still holding in her hand.
+
+"It's called 'The Friendship of Anne,' and it's one of those in that box
+Father had sent from Albuquerque. It's all about a big boarding-school
+full of girls, and the good times they had there, but somehow it set me
+thinking, and--and, I don't know why, perhaps because it's been so hot
+and still all day, but I began to feel as if I wanted to cry, and so I
+came out here to have it out." Suddenly Marjorie dropped her head in her
+aunt's lap, with a sob.
+
+For a moment Miss Graham was silent. She stroked the soft, fluffy hair
+with her thin fingers, and a look of comprehension came into her face.
+When she spoke her voice was very gentle.
+
+"I understand, little girl," she said tenderly. "You haven't said much
+about it, but I know it was a big disappointment that Father couldn't
+afford to send you to school at Albuquerque this winter. It was a
+disappointment to all of us, much as we should have missed you, but it
+is one of those things everybody has to bear sometimes."
+
+"I know it," said Marjorie, checking her tears, and making a great
+effort to speak cheerfully. "It wasn't poor Father's fault that so many
+of the cattle died this year, or that the drought spoiled the alfalfa
+crop. I try to think that perhaps it's all for the best, and that if I
+really left you all, and went away to school, I might have died of
+homesickness. But when I read that story, and thought of all the people
+and things there are in the world that I've never seen, it was just a
+little bit hard to feel cheerful. Mother teaches me all she can, and so
+do you and Father, but I'm fourteen and a half, and I hate to think of
+growing up without any real education. If I were well educated, I might
+teach, and be a real help to you all, but there isn't anything I can do
+now but just sit still and make the best of things."
+
+"Making the best of things is what we all have to do," said Miss Graham,
+smiling rather sadly. "You do it very well, too, Marjorie dear. Your
+father and I were talking last evening of how bravely you have borne
+this disappointment. We all realize what it has meant to you, but we are
+not a family who are much given to talking about our troubles."
+
+"I know we're not," said Marjorie, "and I'm glad of it. How
+uncomfortable it would be if you and Mother were always saying you were
+sorry for each other, and if Father looked solemn every time a cow died.
+I should hate to be condoled with, and treated as if I needed pity, but
+still I can't help wishing sometimes that I could do some of the things
+other girls do. Why, just think, Aunt Jessie, I've never had a friend of
+my own age in my life. I've never been on a train, or seen a city since
+I can remember."
+
+Miss Graham continued to stroke the fluffy hair, and a troubled look
+came into her eyes.
+
+"I understand, dear," she said, "and I don't blame you in the least. I
+know the feelings of loneliness and longing too well for that."
+
+"Do you really, Aunt Jessie?" questioned Marjorie, looking up in
+surprise. "I didn't suppose you ever longed for anything; you're such
+an angel of patience. I suppose it's wrong, but I can't help being glad
+you do, though, because it makes it so much easier to explain things to
+you. I can't bear to have Father and Mother think I'm not perfectly
+happy and contented; it makes Father look so sad, and I know Mother
+worries about my education. I never thought of it before, but you were a
+girl, too, when you first came here, weren't you?"
+
+Miss Graham smiled. She was only twenty-eight, and girlhood did not seem
+so much a thing of the past, but Marjorie was fourteen, and to her
+twenty-eight seemed an age quite removed from all youthful aspirations.
+
+"I was just sixteen when we came out here," she said, "and it seemed
+very strange at first to be away from all my friends, but girl-like I
+enjoyed the change, and it was not for a year or two that I began to
+realize what life on an Arizona ranch really meant. Your father and
+mother were very good to me, but they were absorbed in each other, and
+in their work, and you were too little to be any real company to me.
+There was plenty of work to be done, and I tried to do my share, but
+there were many lonely times when I rebelled bitterly against fate. I
+used to think of those times later on, after the accident, and then it
+seemed strange that I should ever have fretted over such foolish
+trifles, but they were very real to me once."
+
+Marjorie took her aunt's hand and kissed it. Demonstrations of affection
+were rather rare in the Graham family, but the girl could never think of
+that accident without a lump rising in her throat. She had heard the
+story dozens of times. She had even a dim recollection of the day it had
+happened--the day on which her pretty, merry young aunt had started for
+a canter over the prairie, on a wild young bronco, and had been carried
+home white and unconscious, never to ride, or even walk again. Just how
+it had all happened nobody ever knew. An Indian boy, coming suddenly out
+of a cabin, had shouted and waved his hands to a companion. The noise
+had frightened the bronco, and he had dashed off at full speed, and
+Jessie Graham, experienced horsewoman though she was, had lost her
+balance, and been thrown violently to the ground, striking her back
+against a sharp stone. That was eight years ago, and during all that
+time her life had been passed, first in bed, and then in a wheeled
+chair.
+
+Marjorie rose suddenly. There were some things it wasn't possible to
+make the best of, and it was wisest not to talk about them.
+
+"It's getting a little cooler," she said irrelevantly; "I think I'll
+saddle Roland, and go for a ride before supper. You're an angel, Aunt
+Jessie, and I'm glad you told me how you used to feel. I'm ashamed of
+myself, but it makes the disappointment easier to bear because you
+understand. Shall I wheel you back to the house, or is there anything
+else I can do for you before I go?"
+
+Fifteen minutes later, Marjorie mounted astride her bay pony, was
+trotting briskly out over the prairie. Her aunt watched her from the
+porch of the ranch house.
+
+"Poor little girl," she said, with a sigh, as horse and rider
+disappeared from view in a cloud of dust, "she bears her disappointment
+bravely, but it's hard--hard for her, and for us all."
+
+A footstep was heard, and her sister-in-law, Marjorie's mother, came out
+on the porch. Mrs. Graham had once been very pretty, but twelve years of
+hard work, and constant anxiety as to ways and means, had brought a
+careworn expression into the eyes that were so like Marjorie's, and the
+hand she laid on the back of Miss Graham's chair was rough and hardened
+from housework.
+
+"It's been a hot day, hasn't it?" she said, "but it's cooler now," and
+she smiled the brave, cheerful smile she had never lost through all
+their troubles and anxieties. "Juanita and I have put up six dozen jars
+of blackberries to-day; not a bad day's record, is it? Have you heard
+the whistle of the East Bound?"
+
+"I am not sure; I thought I heard a whistle about half an hour ago, but
+I have been with Marjorie in the playhouse. We have been having a talk."
+
+"Has she said anything about her disappointment?"
+
+"Yes, a little. She is bearing it splendidly, but it is a real grief to
+her, notwithstanding."
+
+Mrs. Graham sighed.
+
+"I was afraid it would be," she said. "It would almost have broken my
+heart to part from her, but Donald and I had made up our minds to let
+her go. It seemed the only way of giving the child a chance in life, and
+now this disease among the cattle has put an end to everything. Donald
+says we may be able to send her next year, but she will be nearly
+sixteen then, and time is precious. I wish I knew more myself, so that I
+could help my little girl, but, like so many other girls, I wasted my
+time at school. O dear! if children only realized what an education
+might mean to them some day, they wouldn't fritter away their time, as
+half of them do."
+
+"Susie," said Miss Graham, impulsively, "have you ever thought of
+writing to your brother Henry about Marjorie?"
+
+The sensitive color rose in Mrs. Graham's cheeks, and for a moment she
+looked almost as pretty as in the days when Jessie, in the rapturous
+devotion of her teens, had considered her "the loveliest sister-in-law
+in the world."
+
+"Yes, I have thought of it," she said, "but--but somehow I haven't been
+able to make up my mind to do it. You know my family never approved of
+Donald's coming out here. My brother offered him a position in his
+office in New York, but Donald said he had no head for business, and he
+loves this wild life, hard as it has been. I have never let my people
+know of our difficulties; they would have been kind, I daresay, but one
+hates to ask favors."
+
+"I know," said Miss Graham, comprehendingly; "still, for Marjorie's
+sake--"
+
+Mrs. Graham looked troubled.
+
+"Donald and I were talking about it only last night," she said. "It
+isn't right to deprive the child of advantages she might have, but think
+of sending her all the way to New York, even if Henry and his wife were
+willing to take her. Albuquerque would have been different; she could at
+least have come home for the holidays, but New York--why, think of it,
+Jessie, she has never been away from us for a night in her life!"
+
+Mrs. Graham paused abruptly, her face contracted with pain. The tears
+started to Miss Jessie's eyes, but her voice was still quite firm when
+she spoke again.
+
+"It would be very hard," she said, "harder for us perhaps than for
+Marjorie herself, and yet if it were the best thing to do--"
+
+Here the conversation was interrupted by Juanita, the Mexican maid of
+all work, who appeared with the startling announcement that the jam was
+boiling over on the stove, and Mrs. Graham hurried away to the kitchen,
+leaving her sister-in-law to her own reflections.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+THE COMING OF UNDINE
+
+
+IN the meantime, Marjorie, quite unconscious of the anxieties of her
+family regarding her future, was cantering away over the prairie on her
+bay pony. Having passed the last buildings of the ranch, and trotted
+through the Indian village, where more than one woman, and numerous
+copper-colored children smiled a friendly greeting, she turned her
+pony's head in the direction of the railroad. The nearest town was more
+than twenty miles away, but the line of the Santa Fé Railroad ran within
+a comparatively short distance from the ranch, and twice every day the
+stillness was broken by the whistles of the east and west bound trains,
+as they rushed by on their way across the continent, from Los Angeles to
+Chicago. To watch the trains go by had been one of the amusements of
+Marjorie's life, ever since she could remember. When she was a little
+girl, it had been a great treat to be taken by her father, on his big
+chestnut horse, and to have him draw rein in full view of the tracks,
+and wait to see the great iron horse come rushing by. As soon as she was
+old enough to ride out by herself, this spot had become one of her
+favorite afternoon excursions. There was a wonderful fascination in
+watching the long line of sleepers and day coaches, filled with people,
+and to wonder where they could all be going, and speculate as to what
+might be happening on the other side of those moving windows. Sometimes
+of late the longing to know more of the outside world, and to follow
+those ever moving cars, had become almost irresistible.
+
+"If I could only take one real journey I believe I should be happy
+forever," she would say to herself, and the hope of going to school at
+Albuquerque, two hundred miles away, had filled her with a wild kind of
+joy that was not unmixed with fear. But now that hope had been crushed,
+for the present at least, and Marjorie, who was a sensible little soul,
+had decided that it might be wiser to avoid watching the trains go by
+just now. For a week she had kept away from the line, at the hours when
+trains were likely to pass, but this afternoon she felt more cheerful.
+The little talk with her aunt had done her good, and she resolved to
+take Aunt Jessie's advice, and try to make the best of things. So when
+the pony manifested a desire to take the familiar turning, she let him
+have his way, and trotted on quite cheerfully toward the railroad.
+
+"I'm afraid we're too late to-day, Roland," she remarked aloud, as the
+pony plodded on bravely through the dust and heat. "I didn't hear the
+whistle, but I'm sure the East Bound must have passed, and the West
+Bound went through at two o'clock."
+
+Having very few people to talk to, Marjorie had formed the habit of
+talking to her live pets, of which Roland was her favorite. Her father
+had given him to her when he was only a month old, and she had trained
+him herself, as soon as he was old enough to bear the saddle, to say
+nothing of the many romps the two had enjoyed together in the days of
+his colthood. It seemed to her sometimes as if Roland must really
+understand some of the things she told him, and now, at her remark about
+the train, he slackened his pace to a leisurely trot, as if under the
+impression that there was no use in hurrying.
+
+"It is hot, isn't it, Roland?" said Marjorie, sympathetically. "You and
+I will be glad when winter comes, and we can have some fine gallops. I
+thought I might be going away to leave you this winter, but I'm not."
+
+Roland pricked up his ears, and quickened his pace.
+
+"What is it, Roland?" Marjorie inquired in surprise. "Oh, I see, it's
+José on his black bronco."
+
+Her face brightened, and she waved her hand in friendly welcome to the
+approaching figure of a small Mexican boy, mounted on an equally small
+pony.
+
+"Hello, José!" she called, as the two came within speaking distance of
+each other; "Do you know whether the East Bound has passed yet or not?"
+
+"See there," said the boy, pointing in the direction from which he had
+come. "Something wrong with engine. She been there three hours. My
+father tell me, and I go see."
+
+"How exciting!" cried Marjorie, everything else forgotten for the moment
+in the interest of this news. "Do you think she'll stay much longer?"
+
+José shook his head; he could not say. He was a rather dull boy, but
+Marjorie had known him all her life, as she had known every inhabitant,
+Mexican or Indian, who had made a home in that desolate region. She
+could speak Spanish almost as well as English, and could carry on a
+conversation in two Indian dialects. She did not wait for any more
+conversation with José on this occasion, however, but with a chirp to
+Roland to indicate that she wished to go faster, hurried the pony along
+at such a pace that in less than five minutes they came in sight of the
+waiting train.
+
+No, she was not too late. The long transcontinental express was standing
+still, and a number of the passengers had left the cars and were
+sauntering leisurely about. Marjorie's heart beat fast with excitement,
+and she drew the pony in sharply.
+
+"We mustn't go too near, Roland," she whispered. "Oh, look, isn't it
+interesting? See those girls in shirt-waists and straw hats. They look
+just about my age. How I should like to speak to them, but I suppose
+they would think it queer."
+
+The sight of a girl in a striped khaki skirt, with a sombrero on her
+head, sitting astride a bay pony, had quickly attracted the attention of
+some of the passengers, and Marjorie soon realized that she was being
+stared at in a manner that was slightly disconcerting. Not that she was
+in the least shy, but these strangers had a way of looking at her, as
+if they found something amusing in her appearance, and Marjorie did not
+like being stared at any more than any other girl.
+
+"I don't think we'll stay any longer, Roland," she said, conscious of
+the fact that her cheeks were burning uncomfortably. And turning the
+pony's head abruptly, she galloped away in the direction of home.
+
+But it was some minutes before her cheeks had regained their natural
+color.
+
+"I wonder why they stared so," she kept repeating to herself. "Was it
+the sombrero--I don't suppose girls wear sombreros in the East--or was
+it something else? Oh, there's the whistle; thank goodness they're off!"
+And Marjorie gave a sigh of relief, and let Roland drop into a trot.
+
+It was still early when she reached home, and having delivered Roland to
+the Indian boy, whose duty it was to look after him, and finding that
+her mother and aunt were both busy, she betook herself once more to the
+playhouse, intending to spend the hour before supper in learning more of
+the fortunes of Anne and her friends. But her ride in the heat had made
+her sleepy, and after turning a few pages rather listlessly, her eyes
+drooped, and letting the book slip into her lap, she rested her head
+against the wall of the cabin, and dropped off into an afternoon nap.
+
+How long she had been asleep she did not know, but she started up, wide
+awake, aroused by a sound close beside her. Then for a moment she sat
+staring stupidly at the apparition before her; for there, standing in
+the doorway, regarding her with big, hungry, brown eyes, was a girl--not
+a Mexican or an Indian, but a pale-faced, dark-haired girl of about her
+own age, in a faded linen dress, much too short in the skirt, and a
+battered straw hat, decidedly the worse for wear.
+
+"Goodness gracious me!" gasped Marjorie in amazement; "where in the
+world did you come from?"
+
+"I'm hungry," said the stranger, in a remarkably sweet voice; "Won't you
+please give me something to eat?"
+
+"Who are you?" demanded Marjorie, fully convinced that this was a dream.
+
+A frightened expression came into the big brown eyes, and the girl's lip
+began to tremble.
+
+"I don't know," she said; "I can't remember. Won't you please give me
+something to eat?"
+
+[Illustration: "WHERE IN THE WORLD DID YOU COME FROM?"--_Page 19._]
+
+"I know I'm dreaming," said Marjorie, and she pinched her arm, but
+though the pinch hurt considerably, she did not wake up. The strange
+girl continued to stand in the doorway.
+
+"How--how did you get here?" she repeated; "where did you come from?"
+
+"I got off the train. I've walked ever so far, and it was so hot. I
+thought there would be houses, but there weren't any. You won't be cross
+with me, will you? I'm afraid of cross people."
+
+"Why did you get off the train?" inquired Marjorie. If this were not a
+dream, then it was certainly the most extraordinary adventure she had
+ever had.
+
+The brown eyes filled with tears, and the stranger clasped her hands
+nervously.
+
+"Don't scold, ah, please don't," she pleaded; "I'm so tired of being
+scolded. I got off the train because Mrs. Hicks was so cross I couldn't
+stand it any longer. She said I was a lazy, good-for-nothing girl, and
+she wished she had never promised to take me to Kansas. I said I wished
+she hadn't either, and that I didn't want to go to Kansas or anywhere
+else with her, and then she said I was an impudent little wretch, and
+she wished she could get rid of me. She slapped me, too, and that made
+me furious, so when she sent me to the dining-car to get some milk for
+the baby, and the train was standing still, I just got off. I don't
+want to stay with people who don't like me, and I can't stand being
+slapped."
+
+"But think how frightened your friend must have been when the train
+started and you didn't come back," said Marjorie, reproachfully. She did
+not know quite what to make of this singular young person, who appeared
+to think nothing of deserting her friends, and wandering off by herself
+on the prairie.
+
+"Mrs. Hicks isn't my friend, and she won't care, anyway; she'll be glad
+to get rid of me. I heard her telling a woman on the train that I was an
+awful nuisance, and she couldn't think why she had ever promised her
+sister to take me to Kansas with her. She doesn't want me--nobody wants
+me, nobody in the whole world!" And suddenly this extraordinary visitor
+put both hands before her face, and burst into tears.
+
+Marjorie sprang to her feet, wide awake at last. She had not seen many
+people cry, and the sight always affected her deeply.
+
+"Oh, don't, please don't!" she cried, and almost without realizing what
+she was doing she had slipped an arm about the shaking shoulders. "We'll
+take care of you, of course we will, and you can tell us about
+everything. Oh, please do stop crying; you make me so very
+uncomfortable."
+
+But the brown-eyed girl did not stop crying. On the contrary, she cried
+all the harder, and buried her face on Marjorie's shoulder.
+
+"You're kind, oh, you're kind!" sobbed the poor child, clinging
+convulsively to her new friend. "Nobody was ever kind to me before
+except old Mr. Jackson, and now he's dead. I've been so miserable, and
+it's so dreadful not to remember anything, not even my name."
+
+"Your name?" repeated Marjorie stupidly; "do you mean you don't even
+know your own name?"
+
+The stranger shook her head mournfully as she searched for a missing
+pocket-handkerchief. Marjorie supplied the handkerchief from her own
+pocket, and sympathetically wiped her visitor's eyes.
+
+"But I don't understand," she said doubtfully; "I never heard of a
+person's not knowing her own name. Haven't you any relatives?"
+
+"I suppose I had once, but I can't remember them. The first thing I
+remember is waking up in a hospital. It was just after the earthquake in
+San Francisco, and they told me I was found in the street under some
+ruins. They thought a stone or something must have fallen on my head,
+and that was what made me forget everything. Nobody knew whom I belonged
+to, and I had only a nightgown on when I was found, so they couldn't
+trace me by my clothes. At first the doctors thought I would remember
+soon, and they used to ask me questions, but I never could answer any of
+them. They kept me at the hospital a long time, but I was always
+frightened because I couldn't remember anything. At last when I was
+strong again, and nobody came to look for me, they said they couldn't
+keep me there any longer. They sent me to the 'Home For The Friendless
+in Oakland,' but I had only been there a week when Miss Brent came to
+look for a girl to run errands, and carry home parcels. They told her
+about me, and she said she would take me, because I might have rich
+friends, who would come for me, and pay her well for taking care of me.
+So I went to live with her, and she put an advertisement about me in the
+newspapers. For a long time I kept hoping some one would come for me,
+but nobody ever did. Miss Brent was a dressmaker, and she had a lot of
+girls working for her, but I didn't like any of them, they were so
+rough, and they used to laugh at me, and call me 'loony.' Miss Brent
+called me Sally, but I know that isn't my real name. I got so tired
+running errands, and carrying the heavy boxes home made my back ache. I
+don't think I could have stood it if it hadn't been for Mr. Jackson. He
+boarded with Miss Brent, and lived in a little room on the top floor. He
+was very old, and nobody paid much attention to him, but I was sorry for
+him, and I used to carry up his meals, and he talked to me so kindly. He
+never made fun of me, because I couldn't remember, but he lent me books
+to read, and asked me questions like the doctors at the hospital. It's
+very queer, but I could always remember how to read. I can write, too,
+and I can even remember things in history, but I can't remember a single
+thing about myself. Mr. Jackson said he was sure my memory would come
+back some day, and then I would be able to find my friends. He died last
+winter, and after that it was dreadful. Miss Brent was always busy and
+cross, and the girls were worse than ever. A month ago Miss Brent told
+us she was going to be married, and give up the business, and that all
+the girls would have to leave. Most of them didn't mind, because they
+had homes, but Miss Brent said she didn't know what in the world to do
+with me. She didn't think any one would take me, because I wasn't
+strong enough to do hard work, and she was afraid I was too old to go
+back to the 'Home For The Friendless.'
+
+"The wedding was last week, and Mrs. Hicks came on from Kansas. She is
+Miss Brent's sister, and her husband has a big cattle farm. Mrs. Hicks
+brought her baby with her, and they got me to help take care of it, and
+then Miss Brent persuaded her sister to take me home with her. I didn't
+want to go, for I knew I shouldn't like Mrs. Hicks, but Miss Brent said
+I must. We started yesterday, and it was awful. Mrs. Hicks kept saying
+she knew I would never be any use to her, and the baby was so heavy, and
+cried all the time. I had just about made up my mind to run away when
+Mrs. Hicks slapped me, and that settled it. I never was slapped before,
+and I couldn't stand it."
+
+The brown eyes flashed indignantly, and there was a crimson spot in both
+the girl's cheeks. Marjorie had been listening to this strange story in
+breathless astonishment. It did not occur to her for a moment to doubt
+its truth. Before she could ask any more questions, however, she was
+brought back to a recollection of every-day life once more by the sound
+of her father's voice calling from the porch:
+
+"Supper's ready, Marjorie."
+
+Marjorie came down to earth with a rush, and hastily explaining to her
+new friend that she would be back in a minute, dashed away to the house,
+there to electrify her family with the astounding news that there was a
+strange girl in the playhouse, who had walked all the way from the
+railroad, and didn't know her own name.
+
+When Marjorie returned five minutes later, she was accompanied by an
+excited group, consisting of Mr. and Mrs. Graham, Miss Jessie, and the
+Mexican servant, Juanita. At sight of so many strangers the visitor
+shrank into a corner, and her eyes seemed to grow bigger and more
+frightened than ever, but when Mrs. Graham spoke to her in her kind,
+motherly voice, the pale face lighted up, and holding out both hands to
+Marjorie's mother, she exclaimed joyfully:
+
+"You're kind, too; I can see it in your face. Oh, please don't send me
+away; I'm so tired and hungry, and I don't know where else I can
+possibly go."
+
+"And what are we to call you, my dear?" Mrs. Graham inquired, late that
+evening, when the uninvited guest had been refreshed by a bath and a
+hearty supper, and was lying back comfortably in the big rocker in the
+living-room. "Did I understand Marjorie to say that you had been called
+Sally?"
+
+The stranger pouted. Now that her face was washed she was really very
+pretty.
+
+"I hate 'Sally,'" she said, impatiently; "it's not my name, and I don't
+see why I need be called by it. I wish you'd call me something pretty."
+
+Mrs. Graham looked a little doubtful, but Marjorie, who was regarding
+this singular young person in a kind of fascinated awe--half expecting
+to see her vanish at any moment as mysteriously as she had
+come--hastened to the rescue.
+
+"I've thought of a beautiful name for her, Mother," she said, eagerly.
+"Why can't we call her Undine--at least till she remembers what her name
+really is? She didn't come out of a fountain, but she really did come
+almost as mysteriously as Undine came to the fisherman's hut, in the
+story. Would you like to be called Undine, Sally?"
+
+"I should love it," declared the visitor in a tone of satisfaction and
+as Marjorie generally had her way, and Undine really seemed as good a
+name as any other, the matter was settled, and the new Undine fell
+asleep that night, happier than she had ever been since that strange
+waking in the California hospital, more than two years before.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+TRYING TO REMEMBER
+
+
+"AND so Undine went back into the fountain, carrying the knight,
+Hildebrand, with her, and nobody ever saw either of them again. I always
+wished it hadn't ended there, but had gone on to tell what became of the
+fisherman and his wife, and all the other people. That's the great
+trouble with stories; they are so apt to end just where you want to hear
+more. If I ever wrote a book I should put a chapter at the end, telling
+what became of all the characters afterward."
+
+The two girls were sitting together on the porch; Marjorie busily
+engaged in darning stockings; the new Undine patiently hemming a towel.
+It was a week since the arrival of "the mysterious stranger," as
+Marjorie called her, and she had already become an established member of
+the household. Marjorie accepted the mystery of a girl who didn't know
+her own name, and who apparently belonged to nobody, just as she would
+have accepted any other girl friend who might have come into her rather
+uneventful life. It had never even occurred to her to doubt the truth of
+Undine's strange story. The rest of the family had not been quite so
+easily satisfied, and for several days Mr. and Mrs. Graham had been
+inclined to regard the stranger with some doubt, even suspicion; but
+there was something very winning about this new Undine--she seemed such
+a simple, innocent child--so grateful for every kindness, and so eager
+to be of use in the household--that they gradually found themselves
+coming to believe in her, in spite of appearances.
+
+"I am sure the child is telling the truth as far as she knows it," Aunt
+Jessie had said to her sister-in-law that morning. "It all sounds very
+strange and incredible, I know, but I can't doubt the truth in those
+honest eyes of hers. I am really growing quite fond of her already." To
+which Mrs. Graham had replied, with a smile:
+
+"We shall know when Donald receives the answers to the letters he sent
+to the Home in Oakland and to the dressmaker."
+
+As Marjorie concluded her remarks on the story of Undine, she glanced
+critically at her friend's work.
+
+"You are hemming much better to-day," she said in a tone of
+satisfaction; "I am sure Mother will say you have improved."
+
+Undine's face brightened.
+
+"I hope she will--oh, I do hope so!" she said eagerly. "She is so dear,
+and I want to please her so much, but I'm afraid I'm very stupid."
+
+"You are not stupid at all," declared Marjorie loyally. "You are much
+cleverer than I am about lots of things. It isn't your fault if you've
+never been taught to sew."
+
+"There wasn't any time to learn at Miss Brent's," said Undine; "there
+were always such a lot of errands, and so many parcels to be carried
+home. I suppose if I had learned before the earthquake I shouldn't
+remember now."
+
+"I don't know," said Marjorie thoughtfully; "you must have learned to
+read, and you haven't forgotten that."
+
+"No, nor to write either. It's very queer about the things I remember
+and those I don't. Mr. Jackson used to asked me a great many questions,
+and he wrote down some of the things I told him, to show to a society he
+belonged to. Once a very funny thing happened. I had taken a dress home
+to a lady, and was waiting in the hall while she tried it on, to see if
+it had to go back for any alterations. There were some people in the
+parlor talking French. I don't know how I knew it was French, but I did,
+and I understood almost everything they said. I told Mr. Jackson, and he
+was so interested. He made me tell Miss Brent, too, and he wanted her to
+put another advertisement in the newspapers, but she said she hadn't any
+money to waste in advertising, and that if I had any relatives they
+would have come for me long ago."
+
+"It's the most interesting thing I ever heard of in my life," declared
+Marjorie. "Aunt Jessie says she is sure your friends must have been
+educated people, because you never make mistakes in grammar."
+
+Undine looked pleased.
+
+"I'm glad your aunt thinks that," she said. "I should hate to talk in
+the way some of the girls at Miss Brent's did. They used to laugh at me
+and call me stuck up, but I didn't want to be like them. I hate rough
+girls. I dream about my mother sometimes, and I know she would be sorry
+to have me grow up rough and coarse."
+
+"It seems so strange that you can't even remember your mother," said
+Marjorie, reflectively. "I can't imagine that anything could possibly
+happen to me that would make me forget Mother."
+
+A shadow crept into Undine's face, and the troubled, frightened look
+came back into her eyes.
+
+"I don't know," she said, wearily; "I don't know anything. Oh, Marjorie,
+it frightens me so sometimes."
+
+There was a quiver in the girl's voice, and kind-hearted Marjorie laid a
+protecting hand on hers.
+
+"Never mind," she said, soothingly; "don't think any more about it than
+you can help. Perhaps it will all come back some time; Father thinks it
+will. He thinks the stone, or whatever it was, that fell on you, must
+have given your brain a terrible shock. He says he heard of a man once
+who was very badly hurt in a railroad accident, and couldn't remember
+anything for a long time. His family thought he must be dead, but
+suddenly his memory all came back to him, and he went home, and gave
+them a great surprise. Perhaps it will be like that with you some day."
+
+"Miss Brent thinks all my people must have been killed in the
+earthquake," said Undine, with a sigh. "That might be the reason why
+nobody ever came to look for me. They say more people were killed than
+any one knew about. If I could only remember the very least thing that
+happened before, but I can't; it's just as if I came alive for the first
+time that day in the hospital. Oh, here comes your aunt; I'll go and
+help her with her chair." And dropping her towel on the floor of the
+porch, Undine darted into the house, whence she returned in a moment,
+carefully guiding Miss Graham's wheeled chair over the door-sill.
+
+"Thank you, dear," Miss Graham said, kindly. "You are a very helpful
+little girl, but when you are as accustomed to me and my chair as
+Marjorie is, you will realize that I can manage very well. I heard your
+voices, and thought I would come out here for a little while; it's so
+much cooler than in the house."
+
+"Won't you let me get your sewing, or your book, or something?" inquired
+Undine, hovering solicitously over the invalid.
+
+"No, thank you. I have been sewing all the afternoon; helping Mrs.
+Graham with the new parlor curtains, and I'm going to be lazy for a
+little while. I am afraid you dropped your own sewing, in your anxiety
+to help me."
+
+Undine blushed as she stooped to pick up the discarded towel.
+
+"I'm afraid I'm very careless," she said apologetically; "Miss Brent
+said I was, but I love to wait on people."
+
+Miss Graham laughed, and she had such a merry, contagious laugh that she
+was speedily joined by Marjorie, and even Undine herself.
+
+"It is very pleasant to be waited on," she said, "and I am sure you
+would make a capital nurse, Undine."
+
+Undine looked pleased.
+
+"I should like to be a nurse," she said. "I used to do lots of things
+for Mr. Jackson, and he liked to have me. I wish I could wait on you,
+because then I should feel that I was of some use, and that you weren't
+just keeping me because you were sorry for me."
+
+There was an unmistakable wistfulness in Undine's tone, and Miss Graham
+was touched.
+
+"My dear little girl," she said, "I am sure there are many ways in which
+you can make yourself useful if you stay with us. You will soon learn to
+be a great help to Mrs. Graham, and there will be many little things you
+can do for me as well."
+
+Marjorie gave her aunt a grateful glance, and Undine looked relieved.
+At that moment the afternoon stillness was broken by a sound of distant
+hoof-beats, and a clear tenor voice singing:
+
+ "'On the road to Mandalay,
+ Where the old flotilla lay.'"
+
+"It's Jim coming with the mail," cried Marjorie joyfully; "I should know
+his voice anywhere, and that's his favorite song. Oh, I wonder if there
+will be an answer to Father's letter to Miss Brent. What's the matter,
+Undine?"
+
+For Undine, who was still standing by Miss Graham's chair, had suddenly
+grown pale, and a strange, startled expression had come into her face.
+
+"Who's Jim?" she demanded sharply.
+
+"Only one of Father's men. He used to be a cow-puncher in Texas. I think
+you must have seen him; he's about the ranch a good deal."
+
+The hoof-beats were drawing nearer, and the rider had begun another
+verse of his song.
+
+ "'Er petticoat was yaller,
+ An' 'er little cap was green,
+ An' 'er name was Supy Yawler,
+ Jes' the same as Thebaw's queen.'"
+
+"I know that song," cried Undine excitedly, clasping and unclasping her
+hands, and she began reciting in a dreamy, far-away voice:
+
+ "'An' I see 'er first a smokin'
+ Of a whackin' big sheroot,
+ An' wastin' Christian kisses
+ On a 'eathen idol's foot.'
+
+"Somebody used to sing it. Who was it? Oh, tell me quick; I must
+remember, I must, I must!"
+
+She turned imploringly to Miss Graham and Marjorie, but the two blank,
+puzzled faces gave her no help, and with a low cry, the poor child
+covered her face with her hands, and began to sob. Marjorie's kind arms
+were round her friend in a moment, but it was no easy task to stem the
+torrent of Undine's grief.
+
+"Oh, help me to remember, please, please do help me!" she wailed,
+between hysterical sobs and gasps. "I almost remembered, and now it's
+all gone again. Oh, what shall I do--what shall I do?"
+
+"You'll remember it all some time, dear, I know you will," soothed
+Marjorie, crying herself from pure sympathy. "Do try not to mind quite
+so much, Undine. I know it must be terrible, but we're all so sorry for
+you, and we'll try to make you happy, indeed we will."
+
+By this time horse and rider had reached the ranch house, and Jim
+Hathaway, a freckled, red-haired youth, had sprung to the ground, and
+was regarding the scene in undisguised astonishment.
+
+"Have you brought us any letters to-day, Jim?" Miss Graham asked, by way
+of relieving the situation.
+
+"Yes'm; there's two for Mr. Graham, and some newspapers, and a
+magazine."
+
+"Ask him where he learned that song," whispered Undine to Marjorie. She
+was still trembling, and seemed very much agitated.
+
+"Where did you learn that song you were singing just now, Jim?" Marjorie
+inquired, eagerly; "the one about the 'Road to Mandalay,' you know?"
+
+Jim looked rather vague.
+
+"Blessed if I remember," he said. "I picked it up somewhere, but I
+couldn't rightly say where it was."
+
+"Won't you please try to remember?" said Undine, lifting her
+tear-stained face from Marjorie's shoulder. "I want very much to know. I
+am trying to remember something about it, and if you could tell me where
+you learned it it might help me."
+
+Jim stared at her rather stupidly; then his face brightened.
+
+"I guess I do remember, now I come to think of it," he said slowly. "It
+was in Texas. There was an English chap there, who was forever singing
+it. I picked it up from him. There were a lot of verses to it but I
+don't know 'em all."
+
+Undine shook her head hopelessly.
+
+"Thank you," she said; "I don't believe I was ever in Texas." And
+without another word, she turned and went into the house.
+
+It was more than an hour later when Mrs. Graham knocked softly at the
+door of the little room which had been given to the strange guest. She
+waited a moment, and then, receiving no answer, turned the handle and
+went in. Undine was lying on the bed, her face buried in the pillow. She
+was so still that Mrs. Graham thought she must be asleep, and was
+turning away again when there was a slight movement on the bed, and with
+a long sigh, the girl lifted her head.
+
+At sight of her hostess, Undine sprang to her feet, and began pushing
+the tumbled hair back from her eyes. She was very white, and there was a
+drawn, suffering look on her face, which went to Mrs. Graham's motherly
+heart.
+
+"I beg your pardon," said Undine, humbly. "I'm afraid you must all think
+me very silly and troublesome. I didn't mean to make a fuss, but when I
+heard that boy singing 'Mandalay' it seemed for just a minute as if I
+were going to remember something, and then it was all gone again. I
+thought that perhaps if I lay very still with my eyes shut tight, and
+thought as hard as I could, it might come again, but it didn't."
+
+"Sit down, dear," said Mrs. Graham, kindly, and seating herself on the
+edge of the bed, she drew Undine down beside her. "Does your head ache?"
+
+"It aches dreadfully," confessed Undine, pressing her hand to her
+forehead. "It always does when I try very hard to remember."
+
+"I was afraid so. It isn't good for you to try to remember in this way;
+it won't help things at all, and may make them much worse. You must
+promise me not to try to think so hard again. When your memory comes
+back it will come naturally, and without any forcing. Now I want to talk
+to you about something quite different. Mr. Graham has had a letter from
+the 'Home For The Friendless' at Oakland, and another from your friend
+Miss Brent, or Mrs. Rogers, as I believe she is now."
+
+"What did they say?" inquired Undine, languidly. She seemed too much
+exhausted to take much interest in letters.
+
+"Mrs. Rogers spoke kindly of you, and seemed pleased to know where you
+are. Her sister had telegraphed her of your disappearance. She said she
+hoped you would find a good home, for she was afraid nothing would
+induce Mrs. Hicks to take you back. They remembered you at the 'Home,'
+too, and are willing to have you there again if we will pay your
+expenses back to California."
+
+"But I don't want to go back there," protested Undine, lifting her head,
+and speaking more like her old self. "Oh, Mrs. Graham, must I go? Can't
+I stay here? I'll do anything you want me to, and I can work hard, just
+wait and see if I can't."
+
+Mrs. Graham smiled as she glanced at the soft little hands, which did
+not look as though their owner were capable of much hard work.
+
+"That is just what we have been talking about," she said. "I should be
+glad of a little extra help in the house; Juanita isn't as young as she
+once was, and I want to give Marjorie a little more time for study. So
+if you think you would really care to stay with us, and are willing to
+work for small wages--"
+
+"Wages!" cried Undine indignantly; "I don't want any money; I only want
+to stay with you, and work for my board. You're all so kind, and ... and
+I think you must be more like the people I used to live with than Miss
+Brent and Mrs. Hicks were. Oh, if I could only remember!"
+
+"There, there, we won't talk any more about remembering just now,"
+interrupted Mrs. Graham cheerfully. "You shall stay with us, at least
+for the present, and who knows what may happen in the future. Now lie
+down again, and try to take a nap before supper. You look very tired,
+and a good sleep will do your head more good than anything else." And
+yielding to a sudden impulse, Mrs. Graham stooped and kissed the flushed
+face on the pillow, almost as tenderly as if this strange, friendless
+little waif had been her own Marjorie.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+A VISITOR FROM THE EAST
+
+
+"OF all the different kinds of housework, I think pickling is the most
+disagreeable!"
+
+Marjorie made this remark as she came into her aunt's room one glorious
+October afternoon. Miss Graham's room was the prettiest and most
+luxurious in the ranch house. Every comfort which limited income and
+inaccessible surroundings could afford had been procured for the
+invalid, and to Marjorie, after a hard day's work of helping her mother
+and Juanita in the yearly pickling, it seemed a very haven of rest and
+comfort. Miss Graham herself, in a pretty pink wrapper, was lying on the
+sofa, while Undine read aloud to her. She was a very different Undine
+from the pale, timid girl of two months before. The thin cheeks had
+filled out wonderfully, and the big brown eyes had almost entirely lost
+their expression of frightened bewilderment, for Undine had found her
+place in the household and was happy. I have my doubts as to whether
+Undine would have proved of great use in the kitchen, her knowledge of
+any kind of housework being decidedly limited, but before she had been
+in her new home a fortnight Miss Graham was taken ill. It was not a
+serious illness, though a tedious and painful one, and almost from the
+first moment Undine had established herself as nurse. Her devotion was
+touching; it was with difficulty that she could be persuaded to leave
+the invalid's bedside even for the necessary rest and exercise, and she
+would gladly have worked night and day in the service of gentle Miss
+Graham, who almost unconsciously grew to love the girl, and to depend
+upon her more than she would have believed possible in so short a time.
+
+Now Miss Graham was better, and the task of nursing was almost at an
+end, but she was still weak, and Mr. and Mrs. Graham were thankful for
+the willing service of the girl whom they had taken into their home on
+account of her friendless condition and her big honest brown eyes.
+
+"You don't know what you two people have been spared to-day," continued
+Marjorie, throwing herself wearily into the rocking-chair. "Thank
+goodness, they're all done, and we shall have pickles enough to last
+another year."
+
+"We haven't been spared the smell," said Miss Graham, laughing. "I
+really felt at one time to-day that I would gladly forego pickles for
+the rest of my life."
+
+"What have you been reading?" Marjorie inquired, with a glance at the
+book Undine had put down on her entrance.
+
+"'Lorna Doone.' We have had a delightful afternoon. It is such a
+charming story, and Undine reads aloud remarkably well."
+
+Marjorie glanced out of the window, at the brilliant autumn sunshine.
+
+"I think I'll go for a ride, to get the smell of the pickles out of my
+nostrils," she said. "Mother says she won't need me any more to-day."
+
+"That's a good idea," said Miss Graham approvingly, "and suppose you
+take Undine with you? She has been indoors all day; the fresh air will
+do her good."
+
+"All right," assented Marjorie, well pleased. "Come along, Undine," she
+added, rising; "we'll have time for a good gallop before supper."
+
+Undine hesitated.
+
+"Are you sure you can spare me?" she asked, with an anxious glance at
+the pale face on the pillow.
+
+"Quite sure, dear. I shall not need anything, and even if I should Mrs.
+Graham and Juanita are both within call. So run along, you conscientious
+little nurse, and enjoy yourself for the rest of the afternoon."
+
+Undine blushed with pleasure at the compliment, and five minutes later
+she and Marjorie were on their way to the stables.
+
+It was one of those glorious autumn days, when the air is like a tonic,
+and every object stands out with almost startling clearness.
+
+"The mountains look so near to-day, it seems almost as if we might ride
+to them, doesn't it?" remarked Undine, as the two girls trotted out of
+the ranch gates on their ponies; Undine sitting as straight, and riding
+with almost as much ease as Marjorie herself.
+
+"They are nearly a hundred miles away," said Marjorie, with a glance in
+the direction of the great snow-tipped mountains, which certainly did
+look very near in that wonderful atmosphere. "We could go there, though,
+if we had an automobile. What wonderful things automobiles must be."
+
+"I suppose they are--there were plenty of them in California--but
+nothing could be half as nice as a gallop in this wonderful air. A pony
+like this is worth all the automobiles in San Francisco." And Undine
+bestowed an affectionate pat on the neck of the pretty brown horse she
+was riding.
+
+"I believe you love riding as much as I do," said Marjorie,
+sympathetically. "I wonder where you learned to ride. I shall never
+forget how astonished Father and I were that first day, when we made you
+get on a pony just for fun, and you took the reins, and started off as
+if you had been accustomed to riding every day of your life."
+
+There was a trace of the old shadow in Undine's face as she answered:
+
+"It's all very strange, and I can't explain it, but it seemed quite
+natural, and as if I had done it often before. Even when the pony
+jumped, and your father thought I would be frightened, I wasn't. I
+seemed to know just what to do, though I couldn't tell how I knew."
+
+"Perhaps you lived on a ranch once," Marjorie suggested. "That would
+explain it."
+
+Undine shook her head.
+
+"I don't think so," she said, "for when I first came here it was all
+quite strange, and though I'm not a bit afraid of horses, I'm horribly
+afraid of cows. A girl who had lived long on a ranch couldn't be afraid
+of cows, could she?"
+
+Marjorie assented, and the two girls rode on in silence for several
+minutes. Then Undine spoke again.
+
+"There's another curious thing that I haven't told you. That book I'm
+reading to your aunt--'Lorna Doone,' you know--I'm sure I've read it
+before. I know what is going to happen in every chapter."
+
+Marjorie looked much interested.
+
+"Have you told Aunt Jessie about it?" she asked.
+
+"No, I was afraid it might bother her. I don't think she or your mother
+like to have me talk about the things I remember."
+
+"That's only because they're afraid you will worry and make yourself
+ill," Marjorie explained. "You remember what a dreadful headache you had
+the day you heard Jim singing 'Mandalay.' They're really tremendously
+interested."
+
+"Are they?" said Undine, looking pleased. "I was afraid they thought me
+silly. At first I know they thought I was a fraud, and I'm sure I don't
+blame them. How could any one believe such a queer story? And yet it's
+all true, every word."
+
+"They believe it now, at any rate," said Marjorie, "and they're just as
+much interested as I am. Mother says she can't help worrying when she
+thinks of your friends, and how they may be grieving for you."
+
+"Miss Brent said she didn't believe I had any friends or they would have
+come to look for me," said Undine sadly.
+
+"But you must have belonged to somebody," persisted Marjorie, "and it
+isn't likely all your family were killed in the earthquake, even if some
+of them were. Then you do remember some things--there was the person who
+sang 'Mandalay.'"
+
+"But I can't remember who it was; I only know there was somebody who
+used to sing it. I almost remembered for a minute that day, but it was
+gone in a flash, and it has never come back since."
+
+"Well, don't let's talk any more about worrying things this glorious
+afternoon," broke in Marjorie, noticing the troubled sound in her
+friend's voice. "Let's have a good gallop, and forget everything else.
+Come along, Roland."
+
+Away flew Roland, admonished by a gentle tap from his mistress, and he
+was followed closely by Undine's pony. The next half hour was one of
+unalloyed enjoyment to both girls. The quick motion, the bright
+sunshine, the keen air, all conspired to banish thoughts of care or
+perplexity from Undine's mind, and to bring the bright color into her
+cheeks. Marjorie, glancing over her shoulder at her friend, suddenly
+realized what a very pretty girl Undine was. Even the khaki skirt and
+the sombrero, counterparts of Marjorie's own, could not detract from her
+beauty, and she sat on her pony with as much grace as any lady in the
+land.
+
+"There! wasn't that great?" exclaimed Marjorie, drawing Roland in at
+last, and turning to her friend, with sparkling eyes. "I don't believe
+you ever had a finer gallop than that in your life."
+
+"I don't believe I ever did," agreed Undine, straightening her sombrero,
+and pushing back the tumbled hair from her eyes. "Must we go back now?"
+
+"I'm afraid so. Father and Mother don't like to have me stay out after
+sunset. Look at the mountains; they seem just as near as ever, don't
+they? And yet we've been riding straight away from them all the time."
+
+"Isn't it still?" whispered Undine, with a deep breath. "I feel as if I
+ought to whisper, though I don't know why. I don't suppose there's
+another living soul within miles of us, and yet I'm not the least bit
+afraid."
+
+"There is, though," exclaimed Marjorie, in sudden astonishment. "Look at
+that man. Where can he be going?" And she pointed with her whip-handle
+to a solitary figure, carrying a suit-case, which was slowly advancing
+in their direction. "He isn't an Indian or a Mexican, either," she added
+eagerly; "he's a white man, and he must be on his way to the ranch.
+Nobody who isn't coming to the ranch ever takes this road."
+
+"Perhaps he's a tramp," suggested Undine nervously. "We'd better hurry
+home."
+
+But Marjorie scorned the suggestion.
+
+"Nonsense," she said indignantly. "The idea of wanting to run away!
+Besides, we can't; he's making signs to us to wait for him. He wants to
+speak to us."
+
+Undine did not feel at all sure of the wisdom of this proceeding, but
+there seemed nothing else to do, and in a few moments the stranger, who
+had quickened his pace at sight of the two girls, was within speaking
+distance. He was plentifully besprinkled with dust, and was looking
+decidedly warm and tired, but his appearance and manner were those of a
+gentleman.
+
+"Excuse me for detaining you," he said, apologetically, "but can you
+tell me how far I am from Mr. Donald Graham's ranch?"
+
+"I thought you must be coming to the ranch," said Marjorie, with a
+friendly smile; "it's about five miles from here."
+
+"Five miles," repeated the stranger in a tone of dismay, and he set down
+the heavy suit-case he was carrying, and wiped his forehead with his
+handkerchief.
+
+"Have you been walking far?" Marjorie inquired sympathetically.
+
+"Yes, I think I must have walked at least five miles already. My team
+broke down, one of the wheels came off, and the man who was driving me
+out to the ranch seemed to think the only thing to be done was to leave
+the wagon with my trunk on it by the roadside while he returned to town
+on horseback, to get another trap. He advised me to walk on, but I had
+no idea of the distance. Will you please tell me if this is the shortest
+way to the ranch?"
+
+"It's the only way," said Marjorie, smiling, and thinking that this
+tall, broad-shouldered man must certainly be "a tenderfoot." Her own
+father thought nothing of a ten-mile tramp over the prairie.
+
+"Then I suppose there is no help for it, but five miles--are you sure
+it's as much as five miles?"
+
+Marjorie nodded; she was trying to think of some way of helping the
+stranger out of his difficulty. But it was finally he himself who put
+into words the very suggestion she was going to make.
+
+"I wonder if by any chance you young ladies happen to be going as far as
+the ranch," he said, with a rather curious glance at the two figures,
+sitting astride their ponies.
+
+"We're going straight there now," said Marjorie, eagerly, "and if you
+don't mind waiting, I'll ask Father to send a horse for you."
+
+"You are very kind, but do you think he could possibly send a wagon as
+well? I am not much of a horseman."
+
+This certainly was a "tenderfoot," and no mistake, but Marjorie was too
+polite to laugh.
+
+"All right," she said, "I'll see about it, but it will take longer to
+wait for a team to be hitched up."
+
+"That can't be helped. I'm afraid I'm not equal to another five miles on
+foot. Do you know Mr. Graham?"
+
+Marjorie laughed.
+
+"Of course I do," she said in her frank, friendly way; "he's my father."
+
+"Your father!" repeated the gentleman, his face lighting up; "why, you
+don't mean to tell me you are little Marjorie?"
+
+"I'm Marjorie Graham, but I'm not very little. I'm five feet, three, and
+I was fourteen last March."
+
+"Well, you were about two feet, three when I last saw you," said the
+gentleman, smiling; "so you must forgive me for not recognizing you at
+once. Have you ever heard of your uncle Henry Carleton?"
+
+With a joyous exclamation, impulsive Marjorie sprang from her pony and
+leaving the faithful Roland to his own devices, rushed to her uncle's
+side, holding out both hands.
+
+"Of course I have!" she cried, lifting her radiant face for the expected
+kiss. "Oh, Uncle Henry, I'm so glad you've come to see us at last;
+Mother will be so happy."
+
+Although somewhat surprised by the warmth of this greeting, Mr. Carleton
+was not at all displeased. Indeed, he was smiling very pleasantly by the
+time he had given his niece the kiss she was evidently expecting, and
+his face softened as he regarded her more attentively.
+
+"I ought to have known you, Marjorie," he said, "for you are very like
+your mother."
+
+Marjorie flushed with pleasure.
+
+"I'm glad," she said; "I'd rather look like Mother than any one else. Is
+Elsie with you?"
+
+"Elsie? You know about my little girl, too, then?"
+
+"Oh, yes, indeed; I know she is just about my age. Mother has a
+photograph of her, taken when she was a baby, and I've always wished I
+could see her. Having a cousin of one's own age must be almost as good
+as having a sister. Oh, I do hope she's coming to the ranch!"
+
+Mr. Carleton shook his head.
+
+"Elsie and her mother were with me, but they have gone back to New York.
+We have been through the Canadian Rockies and the Yosemite together, and
+yesterday we stopped at the Grand Canyon. Your aunt and cousin have gone
+on in the train, but I thought I would like a few days with your mother,
+so I got off at the nearest station to the ranch, and was driving out. I
+suppose I should have written, but I thought I would rather enjoy giving
+your mother a surprise. I hope I sha'n't be in the way."
+
+"No, indeed, you won't," declared Marjorie heartily. "Mother and Father
+will be delighted, and so will Aunt Jessie. We so seldom have visitors,
+and it's such a treat, but I'm dreadfully sorry Aunt Julia and Elsie
+aren't coming, too. What a lucky girl Elsie is to have seen all those
+wonderful places! Father is going to take Mother and me to the Canyon
+some day when he can afford it. But I was so glad to see you that I
+forgot to introduce my friend. Undine, this is my uncle, Mr. Carleton.
+
+"Uncle Henry, this is my friend, Miss Undine--we don't know her other
+name."
+
+Undine--who had been watching proceedings with interest--smiled shyly,
+and held out her hand. She had also dismounted from her pony, and was
+holding him by the bridle.
+
+"Undine," repeated Mr. Carleton, looking amused, as he took the girl's
+hand, and regarded her curiously; "that is a rather unusual name, isn't
+it?"
+
+Undine blushed, and looked embarrassed, and Marjorie hastened to
+explain.
+
+"It isn't her real name, but she didn't like being called Sally, so we
+thought we would call her Undine until she remembers what her name is.
+It's a very interesting story, Uncle Henry, but I won't stop to tell it
+now, for it's getting late, and I must hurry home as fast as I can, and
+have Father send a team for you. I wish you could ride my pony; I
+wouldn't mind walking the five miles a bit."
+
+"That's a nice little girl of Susie's," Mr. Carleton remarked to
+himself, as the ponies and their riders disappeared in a cloud of dust.
+"She has her mother's eyes and friendly ways, but--well, perhaps it was
+just as well I couldn't persuade Julia to stop over at the ranch. I
+doubt if Marjorie and Elsie would hit it off very well together."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+UNCLE HENRY'S PROPOSITION
+
+
+MR. CARLETON received a hearty welcome at the ranch. Mr. and Mrs. Graham
+were not the sort of people to remember old grievances; Mrs. Graham was
+honestly glad to see her brother, and they were both quite willing to
+let bygones be bygones. So the visitor found the meeting with his sister
+and her husband a much less embarrassing one than he had expected, and
+the days at the ranch passed so pleasantly that he was easily persuaded
+to prolong his stay from a day or two to a week, and then to a
+fortnight. He and his sister had more than one long confidential talk,
+and although no word of complaint was uttered, Mr. Carleton was clever
+enough to read between the lines, and it was after one of these talks
+that he wrote a letter to his wife in New York, for an answer to which
+he was anxiously waiting.
+
+It was on an afternoon in the second week of his visit that Mr. Carleton
+sauntered out on to the porch, to find Marjorie alone, and busily
+engaged in trimming a hat.
+
+"Where are all the others?" he inquired, throwing himself rather wearily
+into the rocker by her side. "I've been writing letters all the
+afternoon, and haven't heard a sound in the house."
+
+"They are all out," said Marjorie. "Father wanted Mother to see some
+colts he is thinking of buying, and Aunt Jessie has gone with them, for
+the sake of the drive. Undine has gone, too."
+
+"And how does it happen that you were left behind, like Cinderella.
+Wasn't there room in the wagon?"
+
+"Oh, I could have squeezed in, or else ridden Roland, but I was too
+busy. I'm making a new hat, and that's always a very absorbing
+occupation. Don't you think it's going to be pretty?" And Marjorie held
+up the plain straw hat, trimmed with blue ribbon, for her uncle's
+inspection.
+
+"I have no doubt it will be most becoming," said Mr. Carleton, smiling,
+"but have you done it all yourself?"
+
+"Of course I have. I've trimmed all my hats since I was twelve. I make
+my shirt-waists, too, all but the cutting out; Mother does that. Doesn't
+Elsie make her own things?"
+
+"No, I'm afraid she doesn't; sewing isn't exactly in Elsie's line."
+
+"Perhaps she likes other kinds of work better," said Marjorie,
+cheerfully. "I suppose Aunt Julia is disappointed, though. Mother says
+she would be very sorry if I didn't like to sew; she thinks every girl
+should learn to make her own clothes."
+
+"I'm afraid your aunt isn't any more fond of sewing than Elsie is," said
+Mr. Carleton, with a rather peculiar smile.
+
+Marjorie secretly wondered who made Elsie's dresses, and who attended to
+the household mending, but fearing it might be impolite to ask, changed
+the subject by saying:
+
+"Undine could scarcely sew at all when she came, but Aunt Jessie has
+been teaching her, and she has improved very much. Don't you think it's
+tremendously interesting about Undine, Uncle Henry?"
+
+"It is certainly a most unusual case," admitted Mr. Carleton. "I was at
+first inclined to believe that Miss Undine was gifted with a vivid
+imagination, and was imposing on you all, but your father and mother
+believe her story."
+
+"Oh, yes, indeed, we all believe it," cried Marjorie, eagerly. "We know
+it's true, because Father wrote to the dressmaker where Undine worked
+for two years, and she said everything was just as Undine had told us."
+
+"Well, it is certainly a case for a brain specialist," said Mr.
+Carleton, "but unfortunately there are no specialists of any kind in
+this part of the world. I wish there were, for your aunt Jessie's sake."
+
+Marjorie's bright face was suddenly clouded.
+
+"You don't think Aunt Jessie ill, do you?" she asked, anxiously. "She
+seems so much better than she was two weeks ago."
+
+"I don't know that she is worse than usual, but she is a very different
+creature from the strong, active girl I remember. Poor child, she has
+had a terrible experience; I wish some good surgeon could see her."
+
+"You mean--oh, Uncle Henry, you mean you think a surgeon might possibly
+be able to help her!" Marjorie's hat had fallen into her lap, and she
+was regarding her uncle with eager, troubled eyes.
+
+"I don't know whether a surgeon could help her or not, but he could at
+least make an examination. I don't suppose there is even an ordinary
+physician in this neighborhood."
+
+"There is one at Lorton, but that's twenty miles away, and I've heard
+people say he wasn't very good. Father sent for a surgeon from
+Albuquerque when Aunt Jessie was hurt, and he said it was her spine that
+had been injured, and that she could never be cured. Do you think a
+doctor from the East might say something different?"
+
+"My dear child, don't get so excited. I really have not the slightest
+idea; I was only speculating on my own account. It seems such a pity
+that one so young--well, well, it can't be helped, I suppose, and there
+is no use in talking about it."
+
+Marjorie sighed as she took up her work again, and they were both silent
+for several minutes. Then Marjorie spoke again, and her voice was not
+quite steady.
+
+"If I thought there was any surgeon in the world who could cure Aunt
+Jessie, I believe I would go and find him myself, and bring him here, if
+it took me years to earn the money, and I had to work day and night to
+do it. She's the dearest, bravest--oh, Uncle Henry, you haven't any idea
+what Aunt Jessie is!"
+
+Marjorie broke off, with a half-suppressed sob, and dashed away some
+tears, which would come in spite of a brave effort to keep them back.
+Mr. Carleton's face softened as he watched her; he had grown to have a
+high opinion of this niece of his. He could not help wondering rather
+sadly whether there were any one in the world of whom his own little
+daughter would have spoken in such glowing terms.
+
+"You're a loyal little soul, Marjorie," he said kindly. "I wish Elsie
+had you for a friend."
+
+Marjorie smiled through her tears.
+
+"I wish I had her for my friend," she said. "Don't you think she would
+like to come out here and make us a visit some time? She might find it
+rather hot in summer, if she wasn't accustomed to it, but the winters
+are beautiful."
+
+"Elsie has her school in winter," Mr. Carleton said, "but perhaps she
+may come some day. Hark, who is that singing?"
+
+"Only Jim coming with the mail. He always sings when he rides. It's
+generally 'Mandalay,' but it's 'Loch Lomond' to-day."
+
+ "'Oh, you'll tak' the high road, and I'll tak' the
+ low road,'"
+
+sang the clear tenor voice, and Jim Hathaway, on his big brown horse,
+came galloping up to the door.
+
+"There's only one letter for you to-day, Uncle Henry," announced
+Marjorie, taking the handful of letters and papers from the boy. "It's a
+big fat one, though. Perhaps it's from Elsie; you haven't had one letter
+from Elsie since you came."
+
+"It is from your Aunt Julia," said Mr. Carleton, and immediately
+proceeded to make himself acquainted with its contents, while Jim
+galloped away to the stables, and Marjorie went on with her hat
+trimming.
+
+It was, as Marjorie had said, a "fat letter," and it took Mr. Carleton
+some time to read it. Indeed, he read some parts over more than once,
+before he finally put it in his pocket, and prepared to light a cigar.
+"Are Aunt Julia and Elsie well?" Marjorie inquired, politely. She could
+not help wondering why this aunt and cousin never sent any messages to
+her.
+
+"Oh, yes, they are very well, thank you. Your aunt says it has been
+rather warm for the season, and there hasn't been much going on."
+
+Mr. Carleton relapsed into silence, and Marjorie said no more. Her
+thoughts were filled by a new idea. What if a surgeon could really be
+found who would be able to cure Aunt Jessie? Such a possibility seemed
+almost too wonderful to be contemplated, and yet,--and yet--
+
+The whistle of a distant train broke the stillness, and Marjorie came
+down from her air castle to remark--
+
+"There goes the East Bound; two hours late to-day."
+
+"You seem as much interested in the hours of trains as if you were in
+the habit of traveling on one at least once a week," said Mr. Carleton,
+smiling. "How would you like to take a journey--to go to New York, for
+instance?"
+
+"I should love it better than anything in the world," said Marjorie
+frankly.
+
+"Well, perhaps it can be managed. What would you say to going East with
+me next week, and spending the winter in New York?"
+
+For the second time the hat Marjorie was trimming rolled unheeded into
+her lap, while she sat staring at her uncle with startled, wondering
+eyes. The proposal was so sudden--so undreamed of--that for the first
+moment she was speechless, and when words did come at last, they were
+only:
+
+"You mean to spend the winter with you and Aunt Julia?"
+
+"Yes, and to go to school with Elsie. I think your father and mother are
+rather anxious about your education."
+
+"I know they are," said Marjorie, eagerly. "They wanted to send me to
+school at Albuquerque this autumn, but the drought spoiled the alfalfa
+crop, and there was disease among the cattle, so Father didn't feel he
+could afford it. I should love to see New York more than anything I can
+think of, but to go so far away from them all for a whole winter--oh,
+Uncle Henry, you're very kind to suggest it, but I really don't believe
+I could."
+
+"Not if you knew your father and mother wished it very much, and that it
+would be a great relief to their minds?" Mr. Carleton spoke rather
+gravely, and Marjorie felt suddenly embarrassed.
+
+"Of course I would try to do what they wanted me to," she said meekly,
+"but I don't believe they would be willing to have me go as far away
+from them. Albuquerque was different; I could have come home for the
+vacations from there. It's awfully good of you, Uncle Henry, and I would
+love to see Aunt Julia and Elsie, but New York is so far away."
+
+"Only three days by train," said Mr. Carleton, smiling; "that ought not
+to seem much to you Westerners. You would find the life very different
+from that to which you have been accustomed, but I think you would
+enjoy it, and you must have an education, you know."
+
+Marjorie blushed, and her eyes drooped.
+
+"I want it very much," she said humbly. "If I were well educated, I
+might be able to teach, and to help Father and Mother in other ways.
+Uncle Henry, do you think it is my duty to go to New York?"
+
+"Yes, Marjorie, I do," said her uncle, with unusual gravity. "I think it
+is an opportunity that you should not miss. I have written your Aunt
+Julia about it, and her answer has just come. She agrees with me that it
+will be the best thing for you. Your home will be with us, of course,
+and you will go to school with Elsie. It is not a large school, only a
+class of a dozen girls, and the teacher is a charming woman. You will
+soon make friends, and I think you would be happy."
+
+"And I would be with Elsie," said Marjorie, beginning to look on the
+bright side, as she generally did. "It would be lovely to know my own
+cousin. Have you spoken to Mother about it, Uncle Henry?"
+
+"Not yet, but I intend doing so this evening. I have been waiting for
+your aunt's reply to my letter. I feel quite sure your mother will
+consent; she is too sensible a woman to do anything else. But it will
+be hard for her to let you go so far away, and I want you to be a brave,
+sensible girl, and not make it any harder than you can help."
+
+For a moment Marjorie was silent, and her uncle could see by her face
+something of the struggling that was going on within. Then she spoke,
+and her voice was clear and brave.
+
+"All right, Uncle Henry, I promise. If Father and Mother want me to go I
+will, and I'll try not to let them see how hard it is. After all, it
+won't be like going to stay with strangers, for I shall be with my own
+relations all the time, and it will be so nice to have a cousin of my
+own age. Here comes the wagon, so we can't talk any more now. Oh, Uncle
+Henry, there's just one question I want to ask. Are there many good
+surgeons in New York?"
+
+"Plenty of them," said her uncle, smiling. "Don't say anything of what
+we have been talking about, Marjorie, until I have a chance to explain
+to your mother."
+
+"No, I won't, and, Uncle Henry, please don't think me ungrateful because
+I couldn't be so glad just at first. It's beautiful of you and Aunt
+Julia to want me, and if I go I'll try not to give any more trouble
+than I can possibly help. Now I am going to my room for a few minutes. I
+don't want Aunt Jessie to see me till I've got my face straightened out.
+She knows me so well she says she can tell the moment there is anything
+the matter."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+THE LAST EVENING
+
+
+IT was settled. Marjorie was to go East with her uncle, and spend the
+winter in New York. Mr. Carleton felt that he could not leave his
+business much longer, and was anxious to start as soon as Marjorie could
+be ready. For a week Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie had sewed as they had
+never sewed before, and Marjorie and even Undine had worked so hard that
+there had been little time to think of anything else. Now it was the
+last evening, and the small leather trunk containing all Marjorie's
+simple possessions, stood packed, and ready to be taken early next
+morning, to the railway station twenty miles away.
+
+Mr. Carleton had been somewhat puzzled by all these elaborate
+preparations, and had ventured a gentle remonstrance to his sister.
+
+"Why take so much trouble, Susie? Julia will get the child everything
+she needs, and I'll attend to the bills. You needn't worry about
+Marjorie's being well-dressed; you know Julia has excellent taste."
+
+But Mrs. Graham was resolute. She knew well that her own ideas of dress
+and those of her New York sister-in-law were very different, but she was
+not without her share of family pride, and was not willing that Marjorie
+should appear before her Eastern relatives in clothes unfit for her
+position. But alas! It was twelve years since Mrs. Graham had left her
+New York home, and styles change a good deal in twelve years.
+
+Every one had kept up bravely during that busy week, and they had all
+been extremely cheerful. Marjorie never knew of the bitter tears shed by
+mother and aunt in the solitude of their own rooms, and Mrs. Graham's
+heart would have ached even more than it did had she known of the hours
+Marjorie lay awake, her head buried deep in the pillow, so that Aunt
+Jessie in the next room, should not hear her crying. Every one knew it
+was for the best. Even Marjorie, miserable as she was sometimes at the
+thought of the two thousand miles which must soon lie between herself
+and the people she loved best, would have been keenly disappointed if
+Uncle Henry had suddenly changed his mind, or Aunt Julia written that it
+would not be convenient to have her. All through that last day she had
+worked hard, trying not to think about to-morrow, but now everything was
+done and everybody was resting after their labors. Marjorie had sat on
+the porch for an hour with her mother and aunt, and they had all tried
+to talk cheerfully as usual, but it was of no use. There was a dreadful
+inclination on all their parts to drop into long silences, which nobody
+seemed able to break. They were alone, for Mr. Carleton and his
+brother-in-law had gone for a walk, and Undine was helping Juanita in
+the kitchen.
+
+At last, at the end of a longer silence than usual, Marjorie, feeling
+sure she shouldn't be able to hold out much longer, suddenly sprang up,
+explaining hurriedly:
+
+"I'll be right back; I'm just going to the stables for a moment to say
+good-by to Roland." And she was off across the lawn, biting her lip to
+keep back the sobs that must not come until she was out of sight and
+hearing of her dear ones.
+
+The bidding good-by to her pony was a rather lengthy proceeding. She was
+alone, for the men had all gone off to their suppers, so she had her cry
+out on Roland's neck, and whispered her last loving instructions into
+his faithful ears.
+
+"You are to be a good pony, Roland, and do just as you are told till I
+come home. Undine is to ride you whenever she likes, and Aunt Jessie
+thinks riding is so good for her that she's going to try to let her go
+out for an hour every day. You will miss me, I know, Roland dear, and I
+shall miss you terribly, but I've got to have an education, and after
+all one winter isn't so very long to be away."
+
+Whether Roland understood or not I cannot pretend to say, but he rubbed
+his soft nose against Marjorie's cheek, and snuggled up close to her as
+if he loved her, and she left the stable feeling somehow cheered and
+comforted.
+
+On the way back she passed the old playhouse, and could not resist the
+temptation of going in for one more last good-bye, although she knew it
+would mean another fit of crying. The sight of the old toys and picture
+books--relics of the childhood that would never come back--affected her
+even more than the parting with Roland had done, and sinking down on the
+bench where she had dozed on the afternoon of Undine's arrival, she gave
+herself up to a few minutes of quiet, undisturbed grief.
+
+She had just dried her eyes, and was wondering if she could manage to
+reach her own room, and wash her face, without being seen by any of her
+family, when the door, which had been partly closed, was pushed gently
+open, and Undine came in.
+
+At sight of her friend, Undine drew back, blushing.
+
+"I didn't know you were here," she said, apologetically; "I'll go away
+if you want to be alone."
+
+"Come in," said Marjorie, making room for her on the bench. "Were you
+looking for me?"
+
+Undine's eyes drooped, and the color deepened in her cheeks.
+
+"I came to cry," she said simply.
+
+"To cry?" repeated Marjorie in surprise; "what did you want to cry for?"
+
+"Because you're going away," Undine confessed, nestling closer to her
+friend.
+
+Marjorie slipped an arm round her. "I didn't know you cared so much,"
+she said. "You'll have Aunt Jessie, and you're so fond of her."
+
+"I shall miss you dreadfully," whispered Undine tremulously. "You've
+been so good to me, and--and you were the first one to believe in me.
+All the rest thought I was telling stories, even Miss Jessie."
+
+"I couldn't help believing you," said Marjorie, laughing. "When you
+looked at me with those big eyes of yours, and told me all those strange
+things, I felt sure they were true, though it was the queerest story I
+had ever heard. I think I should have to believe every word you ever
+told me."
+
+Undine smiled.
+
+"I don't think your uncle believes it all even yet," she said. "He looks
+at me so queerly sometimes that it makes me uncomfortable. I wish you
+were not going away with him."
+
+"Oh, he is very kind," said Marjorie, loyally. "It's so good of him to
+be willing to take me to New York, and send me to school for the whole
+winter. I'm sorry you don't like him, Undine."
+
+"Well, he may be kind, but he isn't nearly as nice as your father and
+mother. How do you know you are going to like New York?"
+
+"Oh, I am sure I shall like it, as soon as I get used to things there."
+Marjorie spoke with forced cheerfulness and choked down a rising lump in
+her throat. "You see, it isn't like going to live among strangers," she
+went on, as much for the sake of reassuring herself as her friend. "I
+shall be with my own uncle and aunt, and then there will be Elsie."
+
+"Perhaps you won't like Elsie; you've never seen her."
+
+"Why, of course I shall like her. She's my own cousin, and only three
+months older than I am. I have always thought that having a cousin was
+the next best thing to having a sister."
+
+"I wonder if I ever had a sister," Undine remarked irrelevantly.
+"Somehow I don't believe I had, for when I say the word 'sister' it
+never makes my heart beat the way it does when I say 'Mother.' I know I
+had a mother, and I think I must have loved her very much."
+
+"Perhaps that's because you've grown to love my mother," Marjorie
+suggested; "she may remind you of yours."
+
+Undine pressed her hand to her forehead, and the old bewildered look
+came back into her eyes.
+
+"I don't know," she said, with a sigh; "I don't know anything. Oh,
+Marjorie, do you think I shall ever remember?"
+
+"I'm sure you will," said Marjorie confidently, "and so is Aunt Jessie.
+She says she's sure when you get well and strong it will make a great
+difference, and that's why she wants you to be out in the air as much
+as possible. You are ever so much better now than when you came, and
+when you are better still, and have left off worrying, you'll wake up
+some morning remembering everything; just wait and see if you don't."
+
+Undine smiled, but the smile was rather sad.
+
+"I try not to worry," she said, "and I'm happier here than I ever was
+before, but I'm so frightened even now when I stop to think about it
+all." Undine's sentence ended with an involuntary shudder.
+
+"Look here, Undine," said Marjorie, with a sudden determination, "I'm
+going to let you in to a great secret. You must promise not to speak to
+any one about it, even Mother, for if it should never come to anything
+it would be such a dreadful disappointment to everybody."
+
+"I won't tell," promised Undine, beginning to look interested.
+
+"It's about Aunt Jessie. Uncle Henry was speaking of Aunt Jessie one
+day, and he thinks it such a pity a good surgeon couldn't see her. He
+says she might be helped a great deal. There are no good surgeons here,
+but Uncle Henry says there are a great many in New York, and I've been
+thinking--oh, Undine, I'm almost afraid to say it, it seems so
+presumptuous--but just suppose I should meet a surgeon in New York, and
+be able to persuade him to come here to see Aunt Jessie, and suppose he
+should cure her! It's the one hope that keeps me up every time I feel
+like breaking down at the idea of going so far away from everybody."
+
+"It would be perfectly beautiful," Undine agreed warmly, "but do you
+suppose any surgeon would be willing to come so far to see some one he
+didn't know?"
+
+Marjorie's face, which had brightened for a moment, grew very serious
+again.
+
+"I don't know," she said. "If he knew her I'm sure he would come--any
+one would--but if he had never even heard of her existence it would be
+different, of course. I don't know how I'm going to manage it; I only
+know it's the thing I want most in the whole world, and I'm going to try
+for it with all my might."
+
+There was a ring in Marjorie's voice, and a light in her eyes, which
+impressed her friend, and with a quick, affectionate impulse, Undine
+caught her hand and squeezed it.
+
+"I wish I could help," she said, "but there isn't anything I can do
+except pray about it. I will pray every night, just as hard as I do to
+remember, and if it really should happen I think I should be almost as
+happy as you."
+
+Just then the conversation was interrupted by the sound of approaching
+footsteps and voices, and with a whispered caution to Undine not to
+breathe a word to any one, Marjorie hurried away to join her father and
+uncle, who were returning from their walk.
+
+Everybody made a great effort to be cheerful at supper that evening.
+Even Mr. Carleton, who was usually rather quiet, threw himself manfully
+into the breach, and told funny stories that made them all laugh. After
+all, the evening wasn't as dreadful as Marjorie had feared it was going
+to be, but when bedtime came, and she had to say good-night to her
+family for the last time for eight whole months, she felt herself in
+immediate danger of breaking down.
+
+Mrs. Graham sat for a long time by her daughter's bedside that night,
+and they had what Marjorie called "a perfectly Heavenly talk." It was a
+serious talk, but not a sad one, and when it was over, and Marjorie
+flung her arms round her mother's neck, and did break down just a
+little, things did not seem nearly as hopeless as she had expected.
+
+"I don't believe any other girl in the world has such a perfect mother
+as I have," was Marjorie's last waking thought. "I don't deserve her,
+and never can, but I'm going to try not to disappoint her any more than
+I can possibly help. One winter can't last for ever, and when June
+comes, and I am at home again, how gloriously happy we shall all be!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+MARJORIE WRITES LETTERS
+
+
+
+ "October 28th, 19--
+
+ "MY OWN PRECIOUS MOTHER:
+
+ "The first letter must be to you, of course, and
+ the next to Aunt Jessie. Uncle Henry says if I
+ write now I can post my letter when we stop at
+ Albuquerque this afternoon. Oh, Mother darling,
+ was it only this morning that I said good-bye to
+ you all? It seems as if I had been away a month
+ already.
+
+ "I am writing this at the desk in the library car,
+ and the train shakes so I am afraid my writing
+ will be worse than ever. Uncle Henry says I shall
+ soon get accustomed to the motion, but just now it
+ makes my head ache, and the car feels very hot and
+ stuffy. I opened the window, but a great many
+ cinders came in, and a lady in the section next to
+ mine asked me to close it again, so I had to.
+
+ "I hope Father didn't tell you what a goose I was
+ at the station. I didn't mean to cry so much, but
+ when I thought of you and Aunt Jessie waving
+ good-bye to me from the porch, with such a
+ sorrowful look on both your dear faces, I just
+ couldn't help it. I am going to cheer up right
+ away, though, so please don't worry about me.
+
+ "It really was very exciting when the train
+ stopped at Lorton, and Uncle Henry and I got in.
+ When it began to move, and I realized that I was
+ actually on board, I gave a kind of gasp, and
+ would have liked to scream, if I hadn't been
+ afraid of shocking Uncle Henry. There are not many
+ people on the train, the colored porter says, and
+ Uncle Henry and I both have sections to ourselves.
+ I thought there would be regular beds to sleep in,
+ but there are not. The porter says they turn the
+ seats into beds at night, and there are curtains
+ to let down. I should think it would be very
+ uncomfortable sleeping so close to other people,
+ but I suppose one gets used to it when one has
+ traveled a good deal. Uncle Henry says Aunt Julia
+ won't travel unless she has a stateroom, but he
+ doesn't object to the sections. I looked into the
+ stateroom in this car, but it didn't look very
+ different from the sections, except that it was
+ larger and there was a place to wash.
+
+ "We had lunch at a little table in the dining-car.
+ It was delicious but my head ached a little, and I
+ wasn't very hungry. Uncle Henry talked politics
+ with a gentleman who sat at the same table with
+ us, but they didn't say much to me, so I looked
+ out of the window, and it was all very
+ interesting. We are in Mexico now, and to-morrow
+ we shall be in Kansas. Kansas makes me think of
+ Undine and Mrs. Hicks. Oh, how I do wonder if
+ Undine will ever remember!
+
+ "Uncle Henry says we shall be in Albuquerque in a
+ few minutes, so I must stop writing if I want to
+ post my letter there. Good-night, Mother darling;
+ I will write again to-morrow, and indeed, indeed,
+ I will try to remember all the things you said to
+ me last night, and to be always
+
+ "Your own loving
+ "MARJORIE."
+
+
+ "October 28th.
+
+ "DARLING AUNT JESSIE:
+
+ "I have been a whole night on the train, and when
+ I think of how far away from home we are, I can't
+ help being just a little frightened, though it is
+ all very interesting. I posted Mother's letter at
+ Albuquerque, where the train stopped half an hour.
+ Uncle Henry and I got out and walked up and down
+ the platform, and, oh, it was good to get a breath
+ of fresh air! I really didn't know that any place
+ could be quite so stuffy as this train. Everybody
+ seems afraid to have the windows open on account
+ of the cinders, but I think I should prefer even
+ cinders to stuffiness. There were some Indians
+ selling blankets and baskets, and a good many
+ people bought things. They crowded round us, and
+ made a good deal of fuss, and I heard one lady say
+ she was afraid of them. Just think of being afraid
+ of poor harmless Indians! I would have liked to
+ tell her how foolish she was, but was afraid Uncle
+ Henry might be displeased. I don't think he is a
+ very friendly person, for he hardly speaks to any
+ of the passengers on the train, and last night he
+ told me I talked too much to the black porter, who
+ was making up the sections. Oh, Aunt Jessie, it
+ was so curious to see him turning all the seats
+ into beds, but you have been on a sleeping car,
+ and know all about it.
+
+ "We had a very good dinner, which I enjoyed more
+ than lunch, because my head was better, and in the
+ evening we sat on the platform of the observation
+ car, and it was very pleasant. Uncle Henry was
+ kind, and talked to me a good deal--at least it
+ was a good deal for him. I asked him if he wasn't
+ very anxious to get home to see Aunt Julia and
+ Elsie, and he said of course he should be glad to
+ see them, but didn't seem nearly as excited as I
+ am sure Father would be about seeing us if he had
+ been away from us for three whole weeks. I think
+ Elsie must be very busy, for besides going to
+ school, she has music and German lessons in the
+ afternoons, and goes to a dancing class. Uncle
+ Henry said he hoped she and I would be good
+ friends, and I told him I was quite sure we
+ should. Imagine a girl not being good friends with
+ her own first cousin! Did you know we are to live
+ in a hotel all winter? Uncle Henry has a house on
+ Madison Avenue, but Aunt Julia is tired of
+ housekeeping, so he has rented it, and taken rooms
+ in a hotel instead. Uncle Henry calls the rooms an
+ apartment, and the name of the hotel is the
+ 'Plaza.' It is on Fifth Avenue, and right opposite
+ the park, which must be very pretty. I should
+ think it would seem very queer to live in a house
+ with a lot of other people, but then the people
+ who live in hotels must have a great many friends.
+
+ "At about nine o'clock Uncle Henry said he was
+ sleepy, so we went back to our car, and that was
+ when I talked to the porter while he made up the
+ beds. I thought at first that I should never be
+ able to sleep; the train shook so, and we were
+ going so fast. It was hard work undressing behind
+ the curtain, but I managed somehow, and even had a
+ wash, though I had to hold on to the side of the
+ car with one hand while I washed my face with the
+ other. I did cry a little after I was in bed, but
+ I don't think any one heard. It was my very first
+ night away from home, you know, Aunt Jessie dear,
+ but I tried to remember all the lovely, comforting
+ things you and Mother said to me, and I think I
+ must have been pretty tired, for before I realized
+ I was getting sleepy I was sound asleep, and I
+ never opened my eyes till it was broad daylight.
+
+ "To-day we are in Kansas, and it is very flat, and
+ not at all pretty. Uncle Henry says we won't have
+ any more fine scenery till we get to the Hudson.
+ The train seems stuffier than ever, and I am just
+ pining for fresh air and exercise. We sat on the
+ observation platform for a while this morning, but
+ Uncle Henry didn't like the cinders, and wouldn't
+ let me stay there by myself, so we came back to
+ our car. I don't think traveling on a train is
+ quite as pleasant as I thought it was going to be.
+ I am sure I should like an automobile better. We
+ saw automobiles at Topeka, where we stopped for
+ ten minutes this morning, and they looked very
+ queer, going all by themselves, without any
+ horses, but I think I should like a ride in one.
+ Uncle Henry says Aunt Julia is afraid of
+ automobiles, so she still uses a carriage.
+
+ "I talked to some people in the observation car--a
+ lady and a little boy, who are going to
+ Chicago--but I think most of the passengers on
+ this train are rather unsociable. They don't talk
+ much to each other but just read magazines and
+ newspapers when they are awake, and take naps
+ about every hour. I have watched the two ladies in
+ the section opposite mine, and they have been
+ asleep at least four times to-day. I heard one of
+ them say she never could sleep on a train; wasn't
+ that funny?
+
+ "We can post letters from Kansas City, where we
+ are due at half past eight to-night, so I can send
+ this on from there. We get to Chicago to-morrow
+ morning, and have three hours there; won't that be
+ exciting? Oh, I do hope Uncle Henry will take me
+ for a good long walk! I feel as if I could tramp
+ ten miles.
+
+ "Good-bye, you precious Auntie! I send a thousand
+ hugs and kisses to everybody. Tell Undine not to
+ forget Roland's sugar--he always has three
+ lumps--and to be sure the kittens in the barn have
+ their milk every night and morning. I am afraid I
+ forgot to tell her about the kittens; there were
+ so many other things to think of. I am so glad you
+ and Mother have Undine; she is such a dear, and I
+ know will try to take my place. I will write to
+ Father and Mother after I have been in Chicago.
+
+ "From your own little niece,
+ "MARJORIE."
+
+
+ "October 30th.
+
+ "MY OWN PRECIOUS FATHER AND MOTHER:
+
+ "This letter is for you both, and Aunt Jessie must
+ have a share in it, too, because it is the last I
+ shall be able to write on the train.
+
+ "I didn't write at all yesterday, it was such an
+ exciting day! We got to Chicago at about noon,
+ and, oh, what a big, noisy, wonderful place it is!
+ I know I could never describe it if I tried for a
+ week, so I will just tell you what we did. It was
+ raining, which was a great disappointment to me,
+ but Uncle Henry didn't seem to mind. He said we
+ would take a taxi and go to the 'Blackstone' for
+ lunch. I had no idea what a taxi was, but didn't
+ like to ask and when Uncle Henry called one what
+ do you suppose it was? One of those wonderful
+ automobiles! I was a tiny bit scared when we first
+ got in, but when we started, and went rushing
+ through those crowded, noisy streets, I just loved
+ it.
+
+ "It didn't take us long to get to the
+ 'Blackstone,' which is an enormous hotel, looking
+ out on the lake. The lake is wonderful; I never
+ saw so much water before, and though the fog was
+ thick, and we couldn't see very far, I should have
+ liked to stand and look at it for a long time, but
+ Uncle Henry said we must hurry. I never saw such a
+ wonderful place as the dining-room at the
+ 'Blackstone.' There were quantities of little
+ tables, and men waiters to bring you what you
+ wanted. I thought the bill of fare on the train
+ was long enough to satisfy any one, but the one at
+ the 'Blackstone' was simply endless. Uncle Henry
+ told me to choose what I wanted, but there were so
+ many things I couldn't possibly choose, so he
+ ordered a nice lunch, and all the time we were
+ eating music was playing in a gallery overhead.
+
+ "After lunch Uncle Henry took another taxi, and
+ told the driver to show us the city. It was all
+ very interesting, but so noisy and confusing that
+ I got very tired looking at so many things at
+ once, and I was really rather glad when Uncle
+ Henry said it was time to go back to the station.
+
+ "This train is called the 'Chicago Special,' and
+ is even grander than the one we were on before. It
+ goes very fast, but doesn't swing so much, because
+ the road-bed is smoother, Uncle Henry says. I was
+ so tired last night that I went to bed right after
+ dinner, and never woke once till morning. We are
+ due in New York this afternoon, and Uncle Henry
+ says I had better post my letter in Albany,
+ because after we leave there he wants me to see
+ the Hudson, which I believe is very beautiful. So
+ good-bye, you dear precious people! Oh, how
+ anxious I am for my first letters from home! Don't
+ forget to tell me about every single little thing
+ that happens. I am thinking of you all every
+ minute, and if I were going to any other people
+ but Aunt Julia and Elsie I would be so unhappy.
+ But of course going to one's own aunt and cousin
+ is very different from being with strangers, and
+ Uncle Henry is really very kind. Oh, I do wonder
+ if Elsie is as much excited about meeting me as I
+ am about meeting her!
+
+ "Uncle Henry says we shall be in Albany in ten
+ minutes, so good-bye again, with oceans of love
+ from
+
+ "YOUR OWN MARJORIE."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+AUNT JULIA AND ELSIE
+
+
+"ELSIE, my dear child, do you know what time it is? Nearly half past
+five, and you haven't started to dress. Your father will be so annoyed
+if you are not ready when he arrives."
+
+Mrs. Carleton, a small, fair woman, with a rather worried, fretful
+expression, paused in the doorway of her daughter's room, and regarded
+the delinquent with anxiety not unmixed with dismay. Elsie, arrayed in a
+pink kimono, was lying comfortably on the sofa, deep in the pages of an
+interesting story-book. At her mother's words she threw down her book,
+and rose with a yawn. She was a tall girl with dark eyes and hair, and
+she would have been decidedly pretty if she too had not looked rather
+cross.
+
+"Is it really so late?" she said, indifferently. "Why didn't Hortense
+call me? I had no idea what time it was."
+
+"But you ought to have known, dear," Mrs. Carleton protested gently. "I
+don't suppose Hortense knew you wanted to be called, but I will ring
+for her at once. You will hurry, won't you, darling? What excuse can I
+possibly make to your father if he asks for you and finds you are not
+ready?"
+
+"Oh, don't worry, Mamma. You know papa only scolds because he thinks it
+his duty; he doesn't really care. Besides, the train will probably be
+late; those Western trains always are."
+
+Mrs. Carleton rang the bell for the maid, whose room was in a different
+part of the hotel, and went to the closet in quest of her daughter's
+evening dress.
+
+"I will help you till Hortense comes," she said. "You really must hurry,
+Elsie. It is not as if your father were coming alone; he will expect you
+to be ready to greet Marjorie."
+
+Elsie shrugged her shoulders indifferently.
+
+"As if a girl who has been living on a cattle ranch in Arizona would
+care whether I were dressed or not," she said. "Probably where she comes
+from people wear kimonos all day long, and never even heard of dressing
+for the evening."
+
+Mrs. Carleton sighed, and the worried expression deepened in her blue
+eyes.
+
+"I really wish, darling, that you would try to be a little more gracious
+about this. Of course it is a trial, but your father has made up his
+mind that Marjorie shall spend the winter with us, and it isn't going to
+make things any pleasanter to be constantly finding fault about them."
+
+"I wasn't finding fault," retorted Elsie, who had by this time taken off
+the kimono, and begun brushing out her long hair. "I only said Marjorie
+Graham wouldn't care a fig what I had on, and I don't believe she will.
+I don't intend to be disagreeable to her, but you know what an awful
+nuisance it's going to be, and how I hate it. Think of having to take
+her about everywhere with me, and introduce her to all my friends."
+
+"My dear, she is your own first cousin. Besides, I am sure she is a nice
+child--your father speaks so affectionately of her in his letters--and
+her mother is a lovely woman. I was very fond of her when we were girls
+together."
+
+"Oh, I dare say she is all right," Elsie admitted grudgingly, "but that
+doesn't alter the fact of its being an awful bother to have her here for
+a whole winter. You know how papa fusses. He will be sure to get some
+idea in his head about my not paying Marjorie enough attention, and he
+will expect me to take her everywhere. Oh, I hate it, I just hate it!"
+And Elsie's voice actually trembled with vexation.
+
+Mrs. Carleton sighed again.
+
+"I am very sorry, dear," she began, but the entrance of the maid at this
+moment, put an end to the conversation, and she left the room, with a
+final admonition to her daughter to hurry as much as possible.
+
+But alas! it was too late for hurrying. Mrs. Carleton had only just
+entered the drawing-room, when she heard a key turned in the outer door
+of the apartment, followed by the sound of a familiar voice calling
+cheerfully--
+
+"Julia, Elsie, where are you? Here we are, safe and sound!"
+
+With a rapidly beating heart Mrs. Carleton hurried forward to greet her
+husband and his niece.
+
+"My dear Henry, your train must have been just on time," she exclaimed
+rather nervously. "We had scarcely begun to expect you yet. And so this
+is Marjorie. I am very glad to see you, dear; I hope you are not quite
+worn out after that dreadful journey."
+
+"I am not the very least bit tired," returned a fresh young voice, and
+Marjorie returned her aunt's kiss so heartily that Mrs. Carleton was
+rather startled.
+
+"We were twenty minutes late," Mr. Carleton said, in answer to his
+wife's remark, but he kissed her affectionately before putting the
+question she was dreading.
+
+"And where is Elsie?"
+
+"She will be here in a few moments," Mrs. Carleton explained hurriedly.
+"Now do come in and have some tea, or is it too late for tea? I am so
+glad to have you back, Henry dear; we have missed you terribly. I am
+sure you must be tired even if Marjorie isn't."
+
+"Not so tired as hungry; we had a very poor lunch on the train. It is
+rather late for tea, though; we can have an early dinner instead. Where
+is that little witch, Elsie? Isn't she coming to see us?"
+
+"Oh, certainly, dear; I told you she would be here in a few moments. Now
+I will take Marjorie to her room; she will be glad to wash off some of
+those horrid cinders, I am sure." She glanced as she spoke at Marjorie's
+linen shirt-waist, and the straw hat, which certainly did not look as if
+it had come from a New York milliner.
+
+"Am I not to have the same room with Elsie, Aunt Julia?" Marjorie
+inquired, in a tone of some disappointment, as Mrs. Carleton led the
+way down a long, narrow entry, with doors on both sides.
+
+"Oh, no, dear; you are to have a nice little room all to yourself. It
+was so fortunate that we had this extra room in the apartment. We
+intended using it for guests, but when your uncle wrote that he was
+bringing you home with him, we decided to give it to you."
+
+"Oh, I hope I am not going to be in the way," said Marjorie, blushing.
+"I had no idea I was to have a room to myself, especially when Uncle
+Henry told me you were living in a hotel. I wouldn't in the least mind
+rooming with Elsie."
+
+"But you are not at all in the way," said Mrs. Carleton, kindly. "We
+seldom have guests staying with us, and shall not need the extra room.
+This is Elsie's room; yours is just opposite."
+
+At that moment Elsie's door opened, and that young lady emerged,
+followed by the French maid, who was still fastening her dress. At sight
+of her cousin Marjorie sprang forward, and before Elsie at all realized
+what was happening to her, two eager arms were round her neck, and she
+was being hugged in a manner that fairly took away her breath.
+
+"Oh, Elsie, I am so glad!" cried Marjorie rapturously. "Isn't it too
+wonderful and beautiful that we should really meet at last? Do let me
+look at you; I want to see if you are like what I pictured you." And
+Marjorie held her astonished cousin off at arms' length, and surveyed
+her critically.
+
+"What did you expect me to be like?" Elsie inquired, not without some
+curiosity, as she gently extricated herself from Marjorie's embrace. She
+had taken in every detail of her cousin's appearance in one glance.
+
+"I don't exactly know--at least it is rather hard to describe," said
+Marjorie, with an embarrassed laugh. Something in Elsie's expression was
+making her vaguely uncomfortable. "I didn't think you would be quite so
+grown up as you are."
+
+"I am nearly fifteen," said Elsie, as if that fact alone were quite
+sufficient to account for her "grown up" appearance. "Is Papa in the
+drawing-room, Mamma?"
+
+"Yes, darling; run and speak to him; he is expecting you. This is your
+room, Marjorie; I hope you will find it comfortable."
+
+"It's a beautiful room," declared Marjorie, heartily, "only--only, are
+you quite sure you want me to have it, Aunt Julia?"
+
+"Quite sure," said Mrs. Carleton, smiling. "I suppose your trunk will be
+here before long. Hortense will unpack for you, and help you to dress
+for dinner."
+
+Marjorie's eyes opened wide in surprise, and she glanced at the
+white-capped French maid, who still lingered in the background.
+
+"You are very kind, Aunt Julia," she said politely, "but I don't need
+any help; I always do everything for myself."
+
+Mrs. Carleton looked a little embarrassed.
+
+"You may go, Hortense," she said, turning to the maid; "Miss Marjorie
+will ring if she wants you. You mustn't let her think you don't need
+her, dear," she added in a lower tone, as the maid left the room. "She
+is rather inclined to be lazy, and she will take advantage of you if you
+are too easy with her."
+
+Marjorie said nothing, but she was both puzzled and uncomfortable. Mrs.
+Carleton, however, did not appear to notice that anything was wrong.
+
+"I will leave you for a little while now," she said. "You must make
+yourself at home; your uncle and I want you to be very happy here."
+
+The quick tears started to Marjorie's eyes, and she impulsively held out
+her hand to her aunt. But Mrs. Carleton did not notice the gesture, and
+in another moment she had left the room, closing the door after her. In
+the entry she encountered Elsie returning from the interview with her
+father. Elsie was not in the best of spirits.
+
+"Papa has sent me to stay with Marjorie," she said in a discontented
+whisper. "He says he is afraid she is homesick. Oh, Mamma, did you ever
+see such clothes?"
+
+"Never mind about the clothes, dear," said her mother, with forced
+cheerfulness; "we shall soon fit her out with new ones. I think she will
+really be quite pretty when she is properly dressed."
+
+Elsie shrugged her shoulders, but made no further remarks, and the next
+moment she was tapping at her cousin's door.
+
+"Oh, I'm so glad you've come!" was Marjorie's joyful greeting. "Now we
+can have a nice talk before my trunk comes. Sit down in this comfortable
+chair and I'll take the little one. Isn't this a lovely room, and wasn't
+it sweet of your mother to say she hoped I should be happy here? Oh, I
+wonder if you can possibly be one half as glad to see me as I am to see
+you."
+
+Elsie was puzzled, but she was a little flattered as well. She was not a
+general favorite among her companions, and to find a cousin who had
+evidently been longing to make her acquaintance was rather an agreeable
+experience. So her face brightened considerably, and her voice was quite
+pleasant as she remarked, sinking into the comfortable arm-chair
+Marjorie had indicated--
+
+"It is very interesting to meet you. I have often heard papa speak of
+you and your mother and father."
+
+"Why, of course you have," laughed Marjorie, wondering in her simple way
+whether all New York girls of fifteen were as "grown up" as Elsie. "I
+don't believe though that you have thought half as much about me as I
+have about you. You see, it's different in Arizona. There aren't very
+many people, and they all live a long way from each other. Ever since I
+can remember I have longed for a girl friend. But with you it must be
+very different, going to school and living in a big city. I suppose you
+have lots of friends."
+
+"Oh, yes, I have a good many," said Elsie, with her little society air.
+"I am not very fond of them all, though; some girls are so stupid."
+
+"I hope you will like me," said Marjorie, a little wistfully. "We ought
+to be even more than friends because we are cousins, and I have always
+thought that a cousin must be the next best thing to a sister. Don't you
+often long for a sister?"
+
+"Why no, I don't," Elsie admitted. "Indeed, I am not sure that I should
+care for one at all. I think being an only child is very pleasant,
+though of course having an older brother would have its advantages. He
+would introduce one to his friends and bring them to the house. Are you
+fond of boys?"
+
+"Oh, yes, I like them very well, but I have never known many. In fact, I
+haven't known many people of any kind except Indians and Mexicans."
+
+"Indians and Mexicans!" repeated Elsie in a tone of dismay. "How
+perfectly awful! You don't mean that you make friends of those dreadful
+people we saw on the train coming home from California, do you?"
+
+"They are not all dreadful creatures," said Marjorie, flushing. "They
+are not quite like white people, of course, but some of them are very
+good. I know a Mexican boy who is just as bright and clever as he can
+be. His father is going to send him to college next year. Then there is
+Juanita; she has lived with us for years, and we are all very fond of
+her."
+
+"Oh, I didn't know you were talking about servants," said Elsie. "I
+thought you meant friends. Hadn't you any real friends?"
+
+"Not the kind of friends you mean. I had Father and Mother and Aunt
+Jessie, but until last August when Undine came, I had never spoken to a
+white girl of my own age."
+
+"Undine, what a queer name. Is she a Mexican or an Indian?"
+
+"She isn't either," said Marjorie, laughing, "and Undine isn't her real
+name. We only call her that because we don't know what her name is. It's
+a very interesting story, and I'll tell you all about it, but here comes
+my trunk, and I suppose I had better unpack and change my dress before
+dinner."
+
+In spite of Marjorie's reiterated assurances that she didn't need any
+help, Hortense reappeared, and insisted on making herself useful. She
+was very polite and talked volubly in broken English about
+Mademoiselle's being _fatiguer_ and how glad she, Hortense, would be to
+assist her in every way, but Marjorie could not help feeling
+uncomfortable, and wishing that the well-intentioned maid would go away
+and leave her to unpack by herself. But what made her still more
+uncomfortable was the fact that Elsie also lingered, and regarded every
+article that came out of that modest leather trunk, with a keen,
+critical eye.
+
+"What are you going to wear down to dinner?" she inquired anxiously as
+the last things were being stowed away in the bureau drawers.
+
+"I don't know," said Marjorie; "I hadn't thought about it. I suppose my
+gray flannel suit, or else a clean shirt-waist and duck skirt."
+
+Elsie clasped her hands in horror.
+
+"Oh, you can't, you can't possibly!" she cried in real dismay. "Those
+things will do very well for breakfast and luncheon, but everybody
+dresses here in the evening. Let me see what you can wear. You haven't
+got much, but I suppose that white muslin will do."
+
+"But that is my very best dress," protested Marjorie, her cheeks
+crimsoning from embarrassment and distress. "I don't think Mother would
+like to have me wear it the first evening. I won't have anything left
+for really grand occasions if I do."
+
+"Oh, yes, you will," said Elsie, confidently. "Mamma is going to buy you
+a lot of new clothes; that was all arranged before you came. It would
+never do to have you going about everywhere in these things."
+
+Marjorie glanced at her cousin's stylish, well fitting blue chiffon and
+her heart was filled with dismay. Was it possible that all her mother's
+and aunt's stitches had been taken in vain? It was very kind of Aunt
+Julia to wish to buy her pretty clothes, but she did not like to have
+her present wardrobe spoken of as "those things." Before she had time to
+say any more on the subject, however, Mrs. Carleton appeared, to tell
+them to hurry, as her husband was impatient for his dinner.
+
+That first dinner in the big crowded hotel restaurant was a wonderful
+revelation to Marjorie. The bright lights, the gay music, the ladies in
+their pretty evening dresses, it was all like a vision of fairyland, and
+for the first few minutes she could do nothing but gaze about her and
+wonder if she were awake.
+
+"And do you really know all these people?" she whispered to Elsie, when
+they were seated at one of the small tables, and a waiter had taken
+their order.
+
+"Good gracious, no," laughed Elsie, who was beginning to find this
+unsophisticated Western cousin decidedly amusing. "We don't know one of
+them to speak to."
+
+Marjorie's eyes opened wide in astonishment.
+
+"How very strange," she said. "I supposed people who lived in the same
+house always knew each other. We know everybody at home, even if they
+live ten miles away."
+
+"Well, this isn't Arizona, you know," said Elsie, shrugging her
+shoulders, and Marjorie, feeling as if she had somehow been snubbed,
+relapsed into silence.
+
+Just then a lady and a gentleman and a boy of eighteen or nineteen came
+in, and took their seats at an opposite table. Elsie, who had appeared
+quite indifferent to all the other guests, instantly began to show signs
+of interest.
+
+"There they are," she said eagerly, addressing her mother. "The
+gentleman is with them again to-night, too. I forgot to tell you, Mamma;
+I've found out their name, it's Randolph."
+
+"How did you find out?" Mrs. Carleton asked, beginning to look
+interested in her turn.
+
+"Lulu Bell told me to-day walking home from school. That boy passed us
+on the Avenue, and I asked her if she didn't think he was handsome. She
+said she knew who he was, though she had never met him. His uncle is a
+Dr. Randolph, and a friend of her father's. This boy and his mother are
+from Virginia, and are spending the winter here. He is a freshman at
+Columbia, and his mother doesn't want to be separated from him, because
+she is a widow, and he is her only child. Lulu says Dr. Randolph has
+asked her mother to call on his sister-in-law. He said they had taken an
+apartment at this hotel for the winter. I made Lulu promise to introduce
+me if she ever had the chance, but she may never even meet him. She is
+such a queer girl; she doesn't care the least bit about boys."
+
+"A very sensible young person, I should say," remarked Mr. Carleton,
+dryly. "How old is your friend Lulu?"
+
+"Nearly fourteen; quite old enough to be interested in something besides
+dolls, but she's dreadfully young for her age."
+
+"I wish some other little girls were young for their age," said Mr.
+Carleton; "it doesn't appear to be a common failing in these days."
+
+Elsie flushed and looked annoyed.
+
+"That boy really has a very nice face," put in Mrs. Carleton, anxious to
+change the subject, "and his devotion to his mother is charming. I
+suppose her husband must have died recently; she is in such deep
+mourning."
+
+While the others were talking, Marjorie, whose eyes had been wandering
+rapidly from one group to another, had finally fixed themselves upon the
+party at the opposite table. They certainly looked attractive; the
+gentleman with the strong, clever face, and hair just turning gray; the
+pretty, gentle little mother in her black dress, and the handsome
+college boy, with merry blue eyes. It was quite natural that Elsie
+should want to know them, but why in the world didn't she speak to them
+herself without waiting to be introduced? It seemed so strange and
+inhospitable to live in the same house with people and not speak to
+them. So when her aunt had finished her remarks about the Randolph
+family, she turned to Elsie and inquired innocently:
+
+"If you want to know that boy so much why don't you tell him so?"
+
+There was a moment of astonished silence; then Elsie giggled.
+
+"You are the funniest girl I ever met, Marjorie," she said. "Why don't
+you do it yourself?"
+
+"Elsie," said her mother in a tone of shocked reproof, and turning to
+Marjorie, she added gravely:
+
+"When you have been in New York a little longer, my dear, you will learn
+that it is not the proper thing for young girls to speak to strangers
+to whom they have not been introduced."
+
+There was no doubt about the snub this time, and poor Marjorie was
+horribly embarrassed. She cast an appealing glance at her uncle, but he
+appeared to be absorbed, and finding no help from Elsie either, she
+relapsed into silence, and did not speak again for at least five
+minutes.
+
+After all, that first evening could scarcely be called a success. Mr.
+and Mrs. Carleton were very kind, and Elsie seemed disposed to be
+friendly, but Marjorie was conscious of a sensation of disappointment
+for which she could scarcely account even to herself. She struggled
+bravely against the homesickness which threatened every moment to
+overwhelm her, and tried to take an interest in all her new relatives'
+conversation, but when dinner was over, and they had gone upstairs
+again, she was not sorry to avail herself of Aunt Julia's suggestion
+that she must be "quite worn out," and slip quietly off to bed. It was
+not easy to dispense with the services of Hortense, who showed an
+alarming tendency to linger and offer to assist, but even she was
+finally disposed of, and with a sigh of intense relief, Marjorie closed
+her door, switched off the electric light, and crept into bed. Then
+followed a good hearty cry, which somehow made her feel better, and
+then, being young and very tired as well, she fell into a sound, healthy
+sleep, from which she did not awaken until it was broad daylight.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+MARJORIE TAKES A MORNING WALK
+
+
+WHEN Marjorie opened her eyes the next morning, she lay for some minutes
+thinking over the events of the previous day, and listening to the
+unusual noise in the street. There was so much noise that she began to
+fear it must be very late, and jumping out of bed, she went to look at
+the clock. It was only just half-past six. She had forgotten to ask at
+what hour the family breakfasted, but seven o'clock was the usual
+breakfast time at the ranch, so she decided that it might be well to
+dress as speedily as possible. She felt very wide awake indeed this
+morning, and suddenly remembered that she had not had a walk or ride
+since leaving home.
+
+"I'll get Elsie to come with me for a good long tramp after breakfast,"
+she said to herself. "If she can't go on account of school, I'll ask
+Uncle Henry to let me walk with him to his office, and I can come back
+by myself."
+
+Greatly to Marjorie's relief, no Hortense appeared with offers of
+assistance, and she performed her morning toilet in peace. She put on
+the gray flannel suit, which Elsie had pronounced "good enough for
+breakfast and luncheon," and then once more glancing at the clock,
+discovered that it was still only five minutes past seven.
+
+"If they breakfast at seven I shall be only five minutes late," she
+said, with a feeling of satisfaction; "I should have hated to be late
+the first morning. Perhaps they won't have it till half-past, and then I
+shall have time to write a few lines to Mother first."
+
+She opened her door, and crossed the hall to the drawing-room, where her
+aunt had told her the family usually breakfasted, in preference to going
+downstairs to the restaurant, but somewhat to her surprise, she found
+the room just as she had left it on the previous evening, and the whole
+apartment seemed very quiet. She went to one of the windows and looked
+out.
+
+"What a lot of people there are in the street," she remarked
+reflectively, "and they all seem in such a hurry. I wonder where they
+are going. How pretty the park is. Oh, how I should love a gallop on
+Roland before breakfast."
+
+The door behind her opened, and a woman with a duster in her hand came
+in. She looked very much surprised at finding the room occupied.
+
+"Good morning," said Marjorie, with her friendly smile; "it's a lovely
+day, isn't it?"
+
+"It's very pleasant," returned the chambermaid, still looking surprised.
+"You are up early, Miss," she added politely.
+
+"Am I?" said Marjorie, surprised in her turn. "I didn't know I was. At
+what time do my aunt and uncle generally have breakfast?"
+
+"Never before half-past eight, and sometimes later. Mrs. Carleton
+generally has her breakfast in bed, but Mr. Carleton and the young lady
+have theirs in here."
+
+"Half-past eight," repeated Marjorie in dismay, "and it's only a little
+after seven now. I should say I was early."
+
+The maid smiled, and began dusting the ornaments without making any
+further remarks. She did not appear to be a very communicative person,
+and Marjorie decided that she might as well go back to her room, and
+write the letter to her mother, which could now be a much longer one
+than she had at first intended. But on the way she suddenly changed her
+mind.
+
+"I can write later just as well," she decided, "and it really is much
+too beautiful to stay indoors. I'll go and have a walk in that lovely
+park. I shall feel much more like breakfast when I've had some fresh air
+and exercise."
+
+Marjorie had not the least idea that she was doing anything unusual as
+she ran lightly down the broad marble stairs five minutes later, and
+stepped out through the open street door into the fresh morning air. The
+Carleton's apartment was on the fifth floor, but Marjorie scorned to use
+the lift, which had struck her the evening before, as a very wonderful
+but unnecessary invention.
+
+Several people in the hall looked at her curiously, and a man in brass
+buttons asked her if he should call a cab.
+
+"Oh, no, thank you," said Marjorie, pleasantly; "I'm going for a walk,"
+and she passed out, without another backward glance.
+
+It really was a glorious morning, and Marjorie drew in long deep breaths
+of the keen autumn air, as she crossed the broad avenue and entered the
+park. She was not disappointed in her first impression that the park was
+beautiful, and the further she walked among the trees and broad asphalt
+paths, the more attractive it became. It was the last of October, but
+the autumn had been a warm one, and the grass was almost as green as in
+summer. To Marjorie, accustomed all her life to the arid prairie, where
+trees and flowers were practically unknown, it all seemed very
+wonderful, and she enjoyed every step. She walked rapidly on for some
+distance, paying no particular attention to the direction she was
+taking. The possibility of getting lost never once entered her mind. She
+met very few people, and they all seemed in a hurry, and looked like men
+and women on their way to their day's work. Once she passed a
+forlorn-looking man asleep on a bench, and remembered what Undine had
+once said about a tramp. This must be a tramp, she felt sure, and she
+paused to regard him with interest as a new specimen of humanity.
+
+Suddenly she came to a standstill and looked about here. She was in a
+quiet path, with rocks on both sides, and there was not a soul in sight.
+
+"I must turn back," she said, with an uncomfortable recollection of the
+passing of time. "I was enjoying my walk so much I never realized how
+far I was going, but I'm afraid I shall have to hurry now if I don't
+want to be late for breakfast."
+
+Accordingly she turned her steps in the direction from which she had
+come, and walked on rapidly for several minutes. But alas! she had
+taken more than one turn since entering the park, and going back was no
+such easy matter as she had imagined. The more she tried to remember the
+way she had come, the more bewildered she became.
+
+"I declare, I believe I am lost!" she said at last, with a feeling of
+amused dismay. "I must be more careful to notice where I am going next
+time. Oh, there is one of those men in uniform, that Uncle Henry said
+were policemen. He will be able to tell me if I'm going right."
+
+She quickened her steps, and approaching the officer, inquired politely:
+
+"Will you please tell me if this is the way to the entrance?"
+
+"Which entrance?" inquired the policeman, regarding her curiously.
+
+"I don't know," said Marjorie; "the entrance I came in--are there more
+than one?"
+
+"A good many more; which avenue do you want?"
+
+Marjorie's heart was beginning to beat rather fast. For the moment she
+could not remember; even the name of the hotel--which she had only heard
+once or twice--had escaped her recollection.
+
+"I have forgotten the name of the street," she said helplessly, "but
+it's the entrance opposite the big hotel."
+
+The policeman looked uncertain, but at that moment a young man riding a
+bicycle appeared upon the scene, at sight of whom Marjorie's face
+brightened, and she uttered a little gasp of relief.
+
+"That young gentleman knows," she exclaimed joyfully, and, quite
+forgetful of her aunt's snub of the evening before, she darted forward,
+and hailed the youth on the bicycle quite as if she had been an old
+friend.
+
+"Oh, please excuse me for stopping you," she cried, eagerly, "but you
+know where I want to go, and I have forgotten the name of the hotel."
+
+The young man brought his bicycle to a standstill; sprang to the ground,
+and snatched off his cap. He was evidently very much surprised, but too
+polite to show it.
+
+"I beg your pardon," he said in a very pleasant voice; "can I be of any
+assistance to you?"
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie, frankly. "I saw you in the hotel dining-room last
+night, and I heard my cousin say you lived there. I came out for a walk
+before breakfast, and--it's very stupid I suppose--but I can't find my
+way back to the entrance where I came in."
+
+A look of comprehension came into the young man's pleasant face, and he
+regarded Marjorie with interest not unmixed with amusement.
+
+"I understand," he said; "you are staying at the 'Plaza,' and want to go
+back there."
+
+"Yes, that is the name," said Marjorie, looking much relieved; "will you
+please show me the way to the gate?"
+
+"Certainly," said her new acquaintance, smiling, and he at once began to
+lead the way, pushing his bicycle along beside him.
+
+"Oh, don't you want to get on your wheel again?" Marjorie inquired
+anxiously. "I can easily follow if you don't go too fast."
+
+The young man protested that he had ridden quite long enough, and would
+be glad of a little walk.
+
+"You are very kind," said Marjorie, heartily. "It was very stupid of me
+to lose my way; I never was lost before."
+
+"And do you often walk here in the park?" her new friend inquired,
+politely.
+
+"Oh, no, I was never here before. I only came to New York yesterday; my
+home is in Arizona."
+
+"You have come a long distance," he said. "And how do you like New
+York--that is to say as much as you have seen of it?"
+
+"I think it is very noisy and rather smoky, but the hotel is beautiful,
+and so is this park. I haven't seen much of New York yet, but I am going
+to spend the winter here."
+
+"I quite agree with you as to the noise and smoke," said her companion,
+smiling, "but New York is a pretty jolly place notwithstanding. It isn't
+my home either; I am from Virginia."
+
+"Yes, I know you are," said Marjorie, innocently. "You came here to go
+to college, and your mother is with you. My cousin told us all about it
+last evening at dinner."
+
+The young man laughed outright. It was such a merry laugh that Marjorie
+could not help joining in it, and after that they were excellent
+friends.
+
+"Now I wonder if you would mind telling me how your cousin obtained her
+information," Marjorie's new friend said when he had recovered his
+gravity. "I haven't met her, have I? What is her name?"
+
+"Elsie Carleton. No, she hasn't met you yet, but she wants to very much.
+A friend of hers has promised to introduce you if she has a chance. Your
+name is Randolph, isn't it?"
+
+"Yes, Beverly Randolph, at your service. I shall be very glad to meet
+your cousin, I am sure. Perhaps you will introduce us."
+
+"Of course I will if you like. It seems very queer not to know a person
+who lives in the same house with one, but Elsie says they don't know any
+of the people at the hotel. It was all so different at home."
+
+Then Beverly Randolph asked some questions about Arizona, which set
+Marjorie off on a description of the ranch, and her life there, which
+lasted until they reached the Fifth Avenue entrance.
+
+"That's the gate I came in," exclaimed Marjorie. "I wasn't so far away,
+after all. Would you mind telling me what time it is?"
+
+Beverly Randolph took out his watch.
+
+"Ten minutes past nine," he said, looking somewhat dismayed in his turn;
+"I had no idea it was so late. Luckily it is Saturday, so there are no
+recitations to miss."
+
+"O dear! I am afraid I am terribly late for breakfast," said Marjorie,
+feeling very much ashamed of herself. And without another word, they
+hurried across the avenue, and entered the hotel, where the very first
+person Marjorie saw in the entrance hall was her uncle.
+
+"Oh, Uncle Henry, I am so sorry to be late!" she cried remorsefully,
+springing to Mr. Carleton's side. "I hope you and Aunt Julia aren't
+annoyed with me."
+
+"Where in the world have you been, Marjorie?" her uncle demanded,
+ignoring the latter part of her remark. He was looking decidedly annoyed
+as well as worried.
+
+"Why, I got up early," Marjorie explained, "and the girl who was dusting
+said you never had breakfast before half-past eight, so I thought I
+would go for a walk in the park. I got lost, and couldn't remember the
+name of the hotel, but fortunately, just as I was beginning to be a
+little frightened, I met Mr. Beverly Randolph, and he brought me home."
+
+"And who is Beverly Randolph? I had no idea you had friends in New
+York."
+
+"Oh, he isn't exactly a friend--at least he wasn't till this morning.
+You know who he is, Uncle Henry; that nice-looking boy Elsie was talking
+about at dinner last night. Wasn't it fortunate I recognized him. He is
+just as nice as he can be, and I'm going to introduce him to Elsie."
+
+"Come upstairs at once," said Mr. Carleton, a trifle less sternly. "We
+have been very anxious about you; you must never do such a thing
+again."
+
+Marjorie was dumb with astonishment. Beyond being late for breakfast she
+had no idea that she had done anything wrong. She followed her uncle in
+silence, and did not utter another word until they had reached their own
+apartment, where they found Mrs. Carleton in a condition bordering on
+hysteria, and Elsie trying to look solemn, but secretly rather enjoying
+the situation. "I should really think, Marjorie, that you might have
+known," said Mrs. Carleton in a tone of deep reproach, when she had
+heard her niece's explanation, "your own common sense should have told
+you that to go wandering off by yourself in a strange city at seven
+o'clock in the morning, was a most extraordinary thing to do. You must
+never again go out alone at any hour. Elsie has never been out without a
+maid."
+
+Marjorie's eyes opened wide in amazement.
+
+"Not go out alone?" she repeated stupidly. "Why I've always gone
+everywhere by myself ever since I was a little girl."
+
+"Well, you are not to do it here, whatever you may have done in
+Arizona," said Mrs. Carleton, crossly. "As for speaking to a strange
+young man, and getting him to bring you home, I really never heard of
+anything so outrageous. We have been frightened to death about you."
+
+"There, there, Julia," put in Uncle Henry, "don't you think you have
+said enough? I am sure Marjorie will never do such a thing again; she
+will soon be accustomed to New York ways. Now suppose you let the child
+have some breakfast; she looks about ready to drop."
+
+But it was not want of food that had driven the color from Marjorie's
+cheeks and the light from her eyes. Indeed, she had but small appetite
+for the tempting breakfast that was set before her, and it was only by a
+mighty effort that she was able to keep back the burst of homesick tears
+which threatened every moment to overpower her.
+
+At the same moment that Mrs. Carleton was administering her reproof to
+Marjorie, Beverly Randolph was giving his mother an account of the
+morning's adventure, as they sat together at breakfast in their pleasant
+sitting-room on the floor below.
+
+"I know you would like the little girl, Mother," he ended; "she is such
+a natural, jolly sort, and there isn't one bit of nonsense about her."
+
+Mrs. Randolph smiled as she poured her son's coffee, and regarded him
+with proud, loving eyes.
+
+"You never have admired the 'sort' with nonsense about them, have you,
+dear?" she said rather mischievously.
+
+"I haven't any use for them," said Beverly with decision. "I like girls
+well enough when they behave decently, but the silly giggly ones get on
+my nerves. This one--Marjorie Graham she says her name is--is all right,
+though. I think I know the cousin by sight, and I don't feel so sure
+about her."
+
+"You mustn't be too fastidious, Beverly," said his mother, laughing. "I
+dare say they are both nice little girls. By the way, I have received an
+invitation from that charming Mrs. Bell, who called the other day,
+asking us both to dine with her next Tuesday. Her husband is an old
+friend of Uncle George's, you know. Mrs. Bell told me she had a daughter
+of thirteen or fourteen, so that will be another acquaintance for you."
+
+"Well, if she is like most of the New York girls I've seen I sha'n't
+care much about her," declared Beverly. "I prefer the ones that come
+from Arizona. Honestly, Mother, I want you to meet that little girl. I
+don't know what it was about her, but she reminded me of Babs."
+
+A look of pain crossed Mrs. Randolph's sweet face, but her voice was
+still quite cheerful as she answered--
+
+"Very well, dear, be sure to introduce her to me; I want to know all
+your friends."
+
+As soon as she could escape from her relatives after breakfast, Marjorie
+fled to her own room, there to have her cry out, and pull herself
+together, before starting on a shopping expedition with her aunt. Elsie
+was going to lunch with a schoolmate, but Aunt Julia had ordered the
+carriage and told Marjorie that she intended devoting the day to
+shopping.
+
+"You are to begin school on Monday," she explained, "and I must get you
+some decent clothes as soon as possible."
+
+Marjorie supposed she ought to be grateful, but she could not help
+resisting the fact that her aunt evidently did not consider her present
+wardrobe "decent," and this, added to her other troubles, resulted in a
+very unhappy half-hour. But Marjorie was a plucky girl, and she had
+plenty of common sense.
+
+"I won't write a word about all this to Mother or Aunt Jessie," she
+decided as she dried her eyes. "It wouldn't do any good, and they would
+be so sorry. I am sure Aunt Julia means to be kind, and I suppose I did
+frighten them, but it does seem so silly not to be allowed to go out for
+a walk by one's self."
+
+She had just bathed her red eyes, and was sitting down to write the
+deferred letter to her mother, when the door opened, and Elsie came in.
+
+"Mamma says you are to be ready to go out with her in fifteen minutes,"
+she began, then paused, regarding her cousin curiously. "You look as if
+you'd been crying," she said abruptly. "Mamma did pitch into you pretty
+hard, but it was an awfully queer thing to go out by yourself at seven
+o'clock in the morning."
+
+"I'm very sorry I did what was wrong," said Marjorie, "but I had no idea
+any one would object. I often go for a gallop on my pony before
+breakfast at home."
+
+"Oh, I daresay you do, but that is very different. I think it was too
+funny that you should have met Beverly Randolph. Do tell me what he is
+like."
+
+"He is very nice indeed," said Marjorie, frankly; "I liked him ever so
+much."
+
+"You'll be sure to introduce us, won't you? It will be such fun to tell
+Lulu Bell I've met him first; not that she'll care much, she's such a
+baby. Mamma thinks she may call on Mrs. Randolph to thank her."
+
+"What does she want to thank her for?" inquired Marjorie, innocently.
+
+"Why, for her son's bringing you home, and being so kind to you. You
+might have been lost for hours if he hadn't done it."
+
+"But his mother had nothing to do with that," persisted Marjorie.
+"Besides, he was on his way home, anyway. He was very nice, but I don't
+see what there is to thank his mother for."
+
+Elsie reddened, and looked a little annoyed.
+
+"Oh, well, it doesn't matter," she said carelessly. "Mamma would like to
+call on Mrs. Randolph, and this makes a good excuse, that's all. She
+says the Randolphs of Virginia are a very old family. Now hurry and get
+ready; the carriage will be here in a few minutes."
+
+Marjorie said no more on the subject, but she was puzzled. It was only
+natural that Aunt Julia should wish to make the acquaintance of a lady
+who lived in the same house with her, but why was it necessary to have
+an excuse for doing so? She was beginning to think that there were going
+to be a great many new things to learn in New York.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+NEW FRIENDS AND NEW FASHIONS
+
+
+
+ "November 6th.
+
+ "DEAREST AUNT JESSIE:
+
+ "I am at home alone this evening; Uncle Henry and
+ Aunt Julia have gone out to dinner, and Elsie is
+ at a party. I am going to write you a long, long
+ letter, and try to tell you every single thing
+ that has happened.
+
+ "I have been here just a week, and I think I am
+ beginning to get more accustomed to things. It is
+ all very interesting, but some of it does seem a
+ little queer, and, oh, how I do wish I could have
+ a good talk with Mother or you, and ask you to
+ explain the things I don't understand. Aunt Julia
+ is very kind, but I could never talk to her as I
+ do to you and Mother. The things that puzzle me
+ most are what it is proper to do and what isn't.
+ For one thing, they say it isn't proper to speak
+ to people unless one has been introduced. At home
+ we always speak to every one whether they are in
+ the 'Social Register' or not. The Social Register
+ is a book, and Elsie says the names of all the
+ nice people are in it, and when her mother wants
+ to find out who people are, and whether or not she
+ wants to have Elsie know them she just looks for
+ their names in the Social Register, and if she
+ finds them there she knows they are all right.
+ Then it isn't considered proper for girls to go
+ out by themselves in New York. I have seen some
+ nice-looking girls alone in the streets, but Elsie
+ says they can't be the kind one wants to know.
+ Hortense, the French maid, always goes out with
+ Elsie and me, and even carries our books to school
+ for us. Hortense is very nice, but it is rather a
+ bother having her always about, and she wants to
+ do a great many more things for me than I really
+ need. But the greatest difficulty of all is that
+ Elsie isn't fond of walking, and I do miss my
+ tramps dreadfully. We walk to school and back
+ every day, but it isn't far, and in the afternoon
+ Elsie is always having engagements. So I go
+ driving with Aunt Julia, and, oh, but it does seem
+ slow! Aunt Julia hates to drive fast, and I
+ sometimes feel as if I would give anything to jump
+ out of the carriage and have one good run. I know
+ I could easily keep up with those horses if it
+ were only proper to run behind the carriage, but
+ of course it isn't.
+
+ "I ought not to object to going out with Aunt
+ Julia, for she has been very good to me. She is
+ having some perfectly lovely dresses made for me,
+ and has bought me two simply wonderful hats. I am
+ not sure whether Mother would quite approve of all
+ my new clothes. Some of them do look very
+ grown-up, but then the girls here are all much
+ more grown-up than I had any idea they would be.
+ Elsie puts up her hair, and wanted me to put mine
+ up, too, but I knew Mother wouldn't like it, and
+ Uncle Henry said I was right.
+
+ "I have been at school every day since Monday, and
+ like it very much indeed. It is not a large
+ school, only a class of twelve girls. The
+ teacher's name is Miss Lothrop, and Elsie and
+ several of the other girls have been going to her
+ since they were quite little. Miss Lothrop is
+ lovely, and all the girls have been very kind and
+ polite to me. The two I like best are Lulu Bell
+ and Winifred Hamilton. Elsie says they are both
+ very young for their age, and I think perhaps that
+ is the reason I like them better than some of the
+ others. Winifred is only thirteen, but she is just
+ as sweet as she can be, and Lulu is awfully
+ pretty, and a great favorite. Carol Hastings is
+ another girl in the class, and Elsie's most
+ intimate friend. She is only fourteen, but seems
+ much older. I wonder why New York girls seem to
+ care so much about boys. I like a nice boy ever so
+ much myself, but I can't see the use of giggling
+ and looking silly every time his name is
+ mentioned. Carol Hastings came here to dinner last
+ night, and when Beverly Randolph came over to our
+ table to speak to us, she was so silly I was
+ really ashamed of her. I spoke to Elsie about it
+ afterwards, and she said Carol was a goose, but I
+ think she is a little bit silly herself sometimes.
+ I wrote Mother all about Beverly Randolph, and how
+ much I liked him. I would give anything to have a
+ brother just like him. He adores his mother, and I
+ don't wonder, for she is lovely. He says she is so
+ jolly, and is always interested in everything he
+ is interested in; even the college games. His
+ father died when he was little, and I suppose this
+ is one reason why he and his mother are so much to
+ each other. There is an uncle, who is a doctor,
+ but he only comes to dine with them sometimes, and
+ lives somewhere else. Mrs. Randolph has one of the
+ sweetest faces I have ever seen--yours and Mothers
+ excepted--and she looks very young to be the
+ mother of a big boy of eighteen. She dresses in
+ black, and looks rather sad sometimes, but I
+ suppose that is when she is thinking of her
+ husband.
+
+ "Elsie is very clever, and Aunt Julia admires her
+ tremendously. She says Elsie has always been the
+ brightest girl in her classes and that she recites
+ Shakespeare quite wonderfully. I haven't heard her
+ recite yet, but she plays the piano very well, and
+ takes music lessons twice a week. She speaks
+ French, too, and is beginning to study German. Of
+ course I am not nearly as far advanced as she is,
+ but Miss Lothrop says I am not backward for my
+ age, and that makes me very happy. I was so proud
+ when she asked me if I had a governess at home,
+ and I told her Father and Mother had taught me
+ everything I knew. I don't think Elsie liked my
+ saying that; she says I mustn't talk about our
+ being poor, but I am sure I can't see why she
+ should object. However, I have promised to try not
+ to say anything she doesn't like; they have all
+ been so good to me that I do want to please them
+ if I can.
+
+ "Last Tuesday was Aunt Julia's birthday, and she
+ gave a family dinner party. She has a good many
+ relatives, and they all came. I should think Elsie
+ would love having so many cousins, but she says
+ she doesn't care very much about many of them.
+ Aunt Julia's two sisters were here, and I thought
+ the oldest one--Mrs. Lamont--was lovely. Her
+ daughter, Miss Annie, came with her, and she was
+ awfully nice and jolly. She is quite old--about
+ twenty-five I think--and she works downtown in a
+ settlement. I didn't know what a settlement was,
+ but Elsie explained that it is a place where
+ ladies go to live among very poor ignorant people,
+ and try to help them. She and her mother send some
+ of their old clothes to Miss Lamont, and she gives
+ them to the poor women at the settlement. Aunt
+ Julia's other sister is Mrs. Ward. She is quite
+ stout, and talks a great deal about what is good
+ for her to eat and what isn't. She was nice, but I
+ didn't like her as much as the Lamonts. Her
+ husband is fat, too, and is always saying funny
+ things that make people laugh. They have two
+ little girls, but they were not allowed to come
+ because Tuesday was a school night, and they are
+ never allowed to go out anywhere except on Fridays
+ and Saturdays. Elsie can go out any night she
+ likes, because she is so clever that Aunt Julia
+ says it doesn't matter whether she misses her
+ lessons one day or not. There is a Ward boy, too,
+ but he is at Yale. Elsie likes him best of all her
+ cousins, and she says he is very fond of her,
+ too. Aunt Julia says all the boys admire Elsie
+ very much, but I think she is mistaken about
+ Beverly Randolph. He has such an honest face that
+ he can't hide his feelings, and when Elsie and
+ Carol giggled so much that night, and talked so
+ very grown-up, I am sure he was trying not to
+ laugh.
+
+ "You can't begin to imagine how glad I was to get
+ your and Mother's precious letters. I read them
+ over and over until I almost knew them by heart,
+ and slept with Mother's first one under my pillow
+ all night. Father's letter was splendid too, and I
+ was so interested to hear all about the new colts.
+ I am so glad Undine is proving such a comfort. I
+ knew you couldn't help loving her, she is such a
+ dear, and she promised to try to take my place. I
+ told the girls at school about her, and they
+ thought it the most interesting thing they had
+ ever heard. Lulu Bell says she is going to tell
+ her aunt, who is an authoress, about it, and ask
+ her to put Undine in a book. Won't it be too
+ interesting if she really does?
+
+ "O dear! there is the clock striking ten, and I
+ have been writing ever since half-past eight. I
+ must stop now, and go to bed, or I shall be sleepy
+ to-morrow morning. Ten o'clock at night used to
+ seem very late indeed at home, but it seems quite
+ early here. Elsie doesn't expect to get home from
+ her party before half past eleven. Uncle Henry
+ doesn't approve of late hours for school-girls,
+ but Aunt Julia says everybody in New York keeps
+ them, so it can't be helped. I forgot to say the
+ party is at Bessie Winston's. She is one of the
+ girls at Miss Lothrop's, and one of Elsie's
+ intimate friends. I was invited, too, but Aunt
+ Julia wouldn't let me accept, because my new
+ dresses haven't come home yet. Elsie says I
+ wouldn't have enjoyed it, anyway, because I can't
+ dance. She goes to a dancing class every Saturday
+ morning, and Aunt Julia says she may have me go
+ too after Christmas. I think I should like
+ dancing, for the sake of the exercise if nothing
+ else. Oh, how I do long for exercise! Elsie rides
+ in summer, but her pony is at their country place
+ on Long Island, and they don't think it worth
+ while to bring it in to New York. Aunt Julia says
+ Elsie has so many other things to do in winter she
+ has no time for riding. What wouldn't I give for
+ one good canter on Roland! I can't help envying
+ the girls I see riding in the park, though none of
+ them look as if they were enjoying it as much as I
+ should. They all ride side-saddle, and I don't
+ believe it can be nearly as pleasant as riding
+ astride, but Aunt Julia told me not to say so,
+ because it isn't considered the thing to ride
+ astride here. I saw Beverly Randolph riding in the
+ park this afternoon, and he really did look as if
+ he enjoyed it. His home is in Virginia, and he
+ says the people there are very fond of horses.
+ Lulu says Mrs. Randolph owns a large plantation,
+ and I suppose a plantation is something like a
+ ranch.
+
+ "Now I really must stop writing, for my hand is
+ getting tired, and I have made two big blots on
+ this page. So good night, Auntie darling. If I
+ could send all the love that is in my heart, I am
+ afraid no postman would be able to carry the
+ letter, it would be so heavy. So you must just
+ imagine it is there. I am really very happy,
+ though I can't help feeling homesick sometimes,
+ especially at night. I am going to work hard, and
+ try to learn so much this winter that you will all
+ be proud of me when I come home. I have already
+ begun counting the weeks; there are just
+ twenty-eight and a half till the first of June. A
+ winter does seem a very long time, but this week
+ has gone by faster than I expected. I will write
+ to Mother on Sunday, and your next letters ought
+ to be here by Monday. Letters are the best thing
+ in the world when one is so far away from home, so
+ please all write just as often as you can to
+
+ "Your own loving
+ "MARJORIE."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+MARJORIE ENGAGES IN BATTLE
+
+
+"THE most glorious thing is going to happen, Marjorie," announced Elsie,
+as her cousin came into the drawing-room to breakfast one November
+morning, about two weeks after the writing of that long letter to Aunt
+Jessie.
+
+"What is it?" inquired Marjorie, regarding Elsie's radiant face and
+sparkling eyes, with interest. Elsie was not, as a rule, a very
+enthusiastic young person.
+
+"The most delightful invitation you ever heard of," Elsie explained with
+a glance at the letter her mother was reading. "It's from my cousin
+Percy Ward. You know he's a sophomore at Yale, and he wants Mamma and me
+to come to New Haven for the football game next Saturday. It's the big
+Yale-Harvard game, you know, and I've been simply crazy to go, but it's
+almost impossible to get tickets. It really was angelic of Percy to get
+two for us, and he wants us to come up on Friday afternoon so we can go
+to the dance that evening. He has engaged a room for us at the hotel."
+
+"It must be wonderful to see a great match like that," declared
+Marjorie, with hearty appreciation of her cousin's good fortune. "I have
+seen pictures of the college games, and Father always reads the football
+news in the papers. He is a Harvard man himself, you know, and used to
+be on the team."
+
+"I'm sorry you can't go with us," said Elsie, regretfully, "but of
+course Percy couldn't get more than two tickets. Perhaps you wouldn't
+enjoy it much, though. It can't be much fun unless you know a lot of the
+boys. Percy is such a dear; he is sure to introduce me to all his
+friends."
+
+"I wish your father had not gone to Washington on that tiresome business
+just now," remarked Mrs. Carleton, laying down her nephew's letter, and
+looking a little worried. "I should have liked to consult him before
+answering Percy."
+
+"Why, Mamma, you surely don't think he would object!" cried Elsie in
+dismay. "What possible reason could he have for not wanting us to go?"
+
+"Oh, no reason whatever, of course, dear. I was only thinking of
+Marjorie. I am not sure that he would like the idea of her being left
+here alone while we are away."
+
+"Oh, bother! Marjorie won't mind--will you, Marjorie? Besides, she
+needn't be alone; Hortense can sleep in my room, and it's only for one
+night."
+
+"Please don't worry about me, Aunt Julia," said Marjorie, blushing. "I
+shall get on all right, I am sure, and it would be terrible to have you
+and Elsie miss the game on my account. I can have my meals up here while
+you are away, and go out with Hortense."
+
+But Mrs. Carleton did not look quite satisfied.
+
+"You are very sweet and unselfish, dear," she said, "but I wish Percy
+had bought another ticket; then we could have taken you with us. I
+cannot bear to disappoint Elsie, so I suppose I shall have to accept the
+invitation, though I dislike the idea of leaving you behind, especially
+at a time when your uncle is away, too."
+
+So the matter was settled, and as soon as breakfast was over Mrs.
+Carleton sat down to write her note of acceptance, while the two girls
+started for school, accompanied as usual by Hortense. Elsie was in high
+spirits, and entertained her cousin with a vivid description of the
+delight and excitement of a college football match.
+
+"Not that I have ever seen one myself," she explained. "Papa hates
+crowds, and has always said it was too difficult to get tickets, and
+last year Percy couldn't get any either, being only a freshman. Carol
+Hastings has been, though, and she told me she was never so excited in
+her life. The Bells are going this year, and have invited Winifred
+Hamilton and Gertie Rossiter to go with them. I can't see why they want
+to take Winifred; she is such a baby, and I don't believe a boy will
+notice her; but she and Lulu are such chums, one never seems able to go
+anywhere without the other."
+
+"Beverly Randolph and his mother are going, too," said Marjorie, who was
+making a great effort to keep down the feeling of envious longing, and
+to show a real interest and sympathy in her cousin's anticipations. "He
+told me so yesterday. His uncle, Dr. Randolph, is going to take them in
+his automobile."
+
+"Yes, I know; I heard him talking about it. I must be sure to tell him
+Mamma and I are going, so he will look us up. Oh, here come Bessie and
+Carol; I must tell them the good news."
+
+Percy Ward's letter arrived on Wednesday morning, and on Friday
+afternoon soon after luncheon, Mrs. Carleton and Elsie departed for New
+Haven. Mr. Carleton had been called to Washington on business, and was
+not expected home before Saturday night. Aunt Julia was very kind, and
+kissed Marjorie with more affection than usual.
+
+"I really hate to leave you," she said regretfully. "If it were not for
+the disappointment it would have been to Elsie, I would never have
+accepted. I hope you will not be very lonely."
+
+"Oh, no, I won't," promised Marjorie cheerfully. She was really touched
+by her aunt's solicitude, and had almost, if not quite, succeeded in
+banishing the feelings of envy and disappointment. "I've got some hard
+lessons for Monday, and I want to have them all perfect, so I can write
+Mother that I haven't missed in any of my classes for a week. Then
+Hortense says she likes walking, so we can have some fine long tramps.
+To-morrow night will be here before I've begun to realize that you are
+away."
+
+But despite her cheerful assurances, Marjorie's heart was not very light
+when she accompanied her aunt and cousin to the lift, and saw them
+start, Elsie's face wreathed in smiles, and even Aunt Julia looking as
+if she had not altogether outgrown her interest in a football game. She
+went slowly back to her own room, and taking up her Greek history,
+determined to forget present disappointment, and spend the next hour
+with the Greek heroes. But to make up one's mind to do a thing, and to
+carry out one's good intentions are two very different matters. Marjorie
+conscientiously tried to fix her thoughts on "The Siege of Troy," but
+the recollection of Elsie's radiant face kept obtruding itself between
+her eyes and the printed page, and at the end of half an hour she threw
+down her book in despair.
+
+"There isn't any use," she said to herself, with a sigh; "I can't
+remember a single date. I'll ring for Hortense, and ask her to take me
+for a walk. Perhaps by the time we come back my wits will have left off
+wool-gathering, and I shall have a good long evening for studying and
+writing letters."
+
+Hortense was quite ready for a walk, and really the afternoon was much
+less forlorn than Marjorie had anticipated. The French maid had taken a
+fancy to the little Western girl, who was always kind and friendly in
+her manner, and did not--as she told a friend--treat her as if she were
+"_seulement une machine_." Elsie never talked to Hortense during their
+walks, but this afternoon Marjorie was longing for companionship, and
+she and the maid chatted together like old friends. They were both young
+and far away from home, and perhaps that fact had a good deal to do
+towards drawing them together. Marjorie was always glad to talk of her
+life on the ranch, and Hortense told in her turn of the little French
+village, where she had spent her childhood, and of the widowed mother
+and little brothers and sisters, to whom she sent more than half of her
+earnings. She spoke in broken English, with here and there a French
+expression thrown in, but Marjorie had no difficulty in understanding,
+and her interest and sympathy for the plucky little French girl, who had
+left home and friends to earn her own living, grew rapidly.
+
+They took a long walk, for Hortense was almost as fond of tramping as
+Marjorie herself, and it was almost dusk when they at last came in sight
+of the big hotel. Then Hortense suddenly remembered an errand she had to
+do for Mrs. Carleton, and Marjorie--who was not in the least
+tired--declared her intention of accompanying her.
+
+"It is not far," the maid explained; "only to Sixth Avenue. We shall not
+be more than a quarter of an hour."
+
+The errand accomplished they turned their steps in a homeward direction,
+and were about half way up Fifty-seventh Street, on their way to the
+Plaza, when Marjorie's attention was attracted by a horse and cart,
+which had come to a standstill only a few feet in front of them. The
+cart was loaded with boxes and packages, and the horse, which was a mere
+skeleton, and looked as if his working days had long been over, had
+evidently completely given out. The driver, a boy of sixteen or
+seventeen, had sprung down from his seat, and was endeavoring to
+discover the cause of the trouble.
+
+"Oh, look, Hortense," cried Marjorie, her quick sympathies instantly
+aroused, "look at that poor horse. He isn't strong enough to drag that
+heavy wagon, with all those boxes in it. Oh, what a shame! That boy
+mustn't beat him so--he mustn't!" And before the horrified maid could
+interpose, impulsive Marjorie had sprung forward to remonstrate.
+
+"Stop beating that horse," she commanded, with flashing eyes; "can't you
+see he isn't able to go any farther with that load? You ought to be
+ashamed to load a poor creature like that in such a way!"
+
+The boy stared at her for a moment in stupid amazement; then an ugly
+look came into his face. He gave one quick glance up and down the
+street, to make sure there was no policeman in sight; and turned on
+Marjorie with rough fury.
+
+"You leave me alone, will you? It ain't none of your biz what I do with
+this here horse." And before the indignant Marjorie could protest he had
+again laid the whip lash, sharply across the poor animal's back.
+
+Then for one moment Marjorie forgot everything--forgot that she was in
+the streets of a big city--forgot all Aunt Julia's lectures and Elsie's
+warnings--and with one quick movement she seized the whip handle, trying
+with all her strength to drag it away from the boy. She was strong, but
+her antagonist was stronger, and the end of that momentary struggle was
+a sharp cry of pain from Marjorie, a muttered imprecation from the
+driver, and in another second he had sprung into his seat, and horse and
+wagon were clattering away down the street.
+
+"Oh, Mademoiselle, Mademoiselle," gasped Hortense, seizing Marjorie's
+arm, and fairly trembling with fright and horror; "how could you do such
+a terrible thing? A young lady to fight with a _canaille_! Oh, what will
+Madame say when she hears?"
+
+[Illustration: WITH ONE QUICK MOVEMENT SHE SEIZED THE WHIP
+HANDLE.--_Page 145._]
+
+"He is a wicked, cruel boy," panted Marjorie; "he ought to be arrested.
+He is killing that poor old horse."
+
+"Yes, I know, he is cruel, a beast, but young ladies must not interfere
+with such things. You might have been hurt. Let us go home quickly; I am
+near to faint. Thank Heaven no one saw. Madame would never forgive such
+a disgrace."
+
+"But some one ought to interfere," protested Marjorie, her wrath
+beginning to cool, "and there wasn't anybody else to do it. I would have
+taken that whip away from him if I could, but he was so strong, and he
+has hurt my wrist."
+
+"Hurt your wrist! Let me see. Ah, but it is red. How could you have held
+on so tight? Come home quickly, and we will bathe it with arnica. How
+fortunate that Madame and Mademoiselle Elsie are away! Ah, here comes
+the young gentleman, Mademoiselle Elsie's friend from the hotel; he must
+not know that anything is wrong."
+
+But Marjorie had no intention of keeping her indignation to herself, and
+she turned to greet Beverly Randolph with eyes that flashed and cheeks
+that tingled.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Randolph," she exclaimed, as the young man smilingly took off
+his hat, and paused beside her, "the most dreadful thing has
+happened. A cruel, wicked boy has been ill-treating a poor old horse.
+The poor creature had a terribly heavy load, and when he refused to go
+any further, the boy beat him, and--"
+
+"Where is he?" inquired Beverly, his own eyes beginning to flash. "I'll
+report the case to the Society for the Prevention of Cruelty to
+Animals."
+
+"He has gone," said Marjorie, regretfully. "He gave the horse a dreadful
+cut with the whip, and it was so frightened it started, and then he
+jumped into the wagon and went off. I tried to get the whip away from
+him, but he was terribly strong, and he hurt my wrist so much I had to
+let go."
+
+Beverly Randolph's face was a mixture of astonishment, amusement and
+horror.
+
+"You don't mean that you tackled the fellow yourself?" he demanded
+incredulously.
+
+Marjorie nodded. Now that the excitement was over she was beginning to
+feel a little startled at what she had done.
+
+"I had to," she said humbly; "there wasn't any one else to do it.
+Hortense thinks it was very unladylike, but I don't see what else I
+could have done. I couldn't just stand by and do nothing while that
+poor horse was being ill-treated."
+
+"No, I don't suppose you could," said Beverly, smiling. "I don't think I
+would do it again, though; you might get hurt. Hello! what's the
+matter?--don't you feel well?"
+
+For Marjorie had suddenly grown very pale, and leaned against the
+lamp-post.
+
+"It's--it's my wrist," she faltered; "it hurts dreadfully, and--and I
+think I feel a little faint."
+
+Without a moment's hesitation Beverly drew the girl's arm through his.
+
+"Come along," he said, peremptorily, and without another word he
+conducted the wounded soldier back to the hotel. Marjorie, too, was
+silent; the pain in her wrist was very bad, and she had to bite her lips
+hard to keep back the rising tears. Hortense, still covered with shame
+and confusion, followed close behind. At the door of the lift Beverly
+paused.
+
+"Is your aunt at home?" he inquired.
+
+"No," said Marjorie, unsteadily; "she and Elsie have gone to New Haven
+for the football game."
+
+"To be sure they have; I had forgotten. Your cousin told me they were
+going this afternoon. Well, I think I will take you to our apartment.
+My mother is used to sprains and bruises, and will know what to do for
+your wrist."
+
+Marjorie protested that she could not think of disturbing Mrs. Randolph,
+but Beverly, who appeared to be accustomed to having his own way,
+remained firm, and in the end his companion was forced to yield, much to
+the distress and horror of Hortense, who considered that the story was
+already known to more persons than Mrs. Carleton would approve.
+
+Mrs. Randolph and her brother-in-law were having tea in the former's
+pretty sitting-room, when the door was unceremoniously flung open, and
+Beverly appeared on the threshold, leading in a trembling, white-faced
+girl, who immediately collapsed into the nearest chair, and looked as if
+she were about to faint.
+
+"It's Miss Marjorie Graham, Mother," Beverly explained, "and she has
+hurt her wrist. Her aunt is away, so I brought her in here. Oh, here's
+Uncle George; what luck! This is my uncle Dr. Randolph, Miss Marjorie;
+he is a surgeon, you know, and he'll fix you up in no time."
+
+"To be sure I will if I can," said a pleasant voice, not unlike
+Beverly's. "Let me see what the trouble is. Ah, this is the hand, isn't
+it?" And Marjorie felt her wrist taken in firm, kind fingers. She
+winced at the touch, but the doctor's next words were reassuring.
+
+"I see; only a slight sprain, nothing serious. Have you some arnica,
+Barbara, and some linen that I can use for a bandage?"
+
+"How did it happen, dear?" Mrs. Randolph inquired sympathetically, as
+Marjorie leaned back in her chair, with a sigh of intense relief, and
+the doctor applied a cooling lotion to her aching wrist.
+
+Marjorie's cheeks were crimson again, but not for a moment did she
+hesitate about telling the truth. Beverly had gone off to his own room,
+having left his charge in safe hands.
+
+"I am afraid it was my own fault," she said, honestly. "I saw a boy
+ill-treating a poor old horse, and tried to stop him by getting the whip
+away from him, but he was much stronger than I, and in the struggle I
+suppose he must have twisted my wrist. I am afraid your son and my
+aunt's maid both think I was very unladylike."
+
+Mrs. Randolph and the doctor exchanged amused glances, and the latter
+said kindly:
+
+"I wish more people were moved by the same spirit, though I don't know
+that I should advise young girls to attack rough drivers. I imagine you
+have not been very long in New York or you would be accustomed to such
+sights."
+
+"No," said Marjorie, much relieved. "I have only been in New York three
+weeks. My home is on a ranch in Arizona, but I have been accustomed to
+horses all my life. I think my father would almost kill any boy who
+dared to treat one of ours like that."
+
+"I daresay he would. Your father raises horses, I suppose?"
+
+"Yes, and cattle, too. I have lived on the ranch ever since I was two
+years old, and New York seems very strange in some ways."
+
+"It must," said Dr. Randolph gravely, but his eyes twinkled, and
+Marjorie felt sure he was trying not to laugh. "There, I think the wrist
+will do nicely now. You can wet this bandage again in an hour, and if I
+am not mistaken the pain will be gone by that time. I must be going now,
+Barbara; I have two patients to see before dinner. I'll call for you and
+Beverly in the car at nine to-morrow morning; that will give us plenty
+of time to make New Haven before lunch." And with a hurried leave-taking
+the doctor departed, leaving Mrs. Randolph and Marjorie alone together.
+
+The next half-hour was a very pleasant one. Mrs. Randolph would not
+allow the girl to go back to her own apartment until the pain in her
+wrist had subsided, and she made her lie on the sofa, and petted her in
+a way that recalled Mother and Aunt Jessie so strongly that Marjorie had
+some difficulty in keeping back the homesick tears. Almost before she
+knew it, she was chatting away to this new acquaintance as if they had
+been old friends.
+
+"I hope I shall get accustomed to New York ways soon," she said humbly.
+"I am afraid I make a great many mistakes, and they distress my aunt and
+cousin very much. You see, it is all so different on the ranch. I
+suppose your son told you how I spoke to him that morning in the park,
+and asked him to take me home. It seemed quite a natural thing to do,
+because I knew he lived in this hotel, but Aunt Julia was dreadfully
+shocked."
+
+Mrs. Randolph laughed.
+
+"Beverly was not at all shocked," she said. "He and I have rather
+old-fashioned ideas about some things; we like little girls to be
+natural."
+
+"I am so glad you think me a little girl still," said Marjorie in a
+sudden burst of confidence. "All the girls here seem so grown-up, and I
+don't want to grow up just yet; I am only fourteen."
+
+"My little girl would have been just about your age if she had lived,"
+said Mrs. Randolph, with a rather sad smile. "I am sure I should not
+have begun to think of her as grown-up yet."
+
+Marjorie was interested. She would have liked to ask Mrs. Randolph about
+her little girl, but feared the subject might be a painful one, and just
+that moment Beverly came back, and the conversation turned on other
+matters. In a little while Marjorie rose to go.
+
+"You have been very kind to me," she said to Mrs. Randolph. "My wrist
+feels ever so much better already. I do hope I haven't been a bother."
+
+"Not a bit of it," Mrs. Randolph declared, laughing. "On the contrary, I
+have enjoyed your call very much, and I hope you will come often, for I
+am very fond of little girls. By the way, what are you going to do
+to-morrow?"
+
+"Oh, I don't know," said Marjorie; "walk and read and study, I suppose.
+Aunt Julia said I might drive in the afternoon, but the horses go so
+slowly I always feel as though I should like to get out of the carriage
+and run. Galloping over the prairie is much more fun."
+
+Mrs. Randolph and her son both laughed, and Beverly remarked rather
+indignantly:
+
+"It's a shame you couldn't have gone to the game with the others."
+
+"Oh, that wasn't Aunt Julia's fault," said Marjorie, loyally. "Her
+nephew only sent two tickets, and Elsie says it's almost impossible to
+get extra ones. They were very kind about it, and Aunt Julia hated to
+leave me behind."
+
+Beverly and his mother exchanged a significant glance, and then Beverly
+offered to accompany the visitor as far as her own apartment for the
+purpose of carrying the arnica bottle, which Mrs. Randolph insisted she
+should keep in case of necessity. Marjorie protested, but Beverly was
+firm, and the two young people left the room together, after Mrs.
+Randolph had kissed the girl, and told her she must come again very
+soon.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+A MOTOR RIDE AND A FOOTBALL GAME
+
+
+"I THINK your mother is perfectly lovely," declared Marjorie, the moment
+the door of the Randolph's apartment had closed behind them. "Is she
+always so kind to strangers?"
+
+"Mother's a brick," said Beverly, heartily. "She's kind to everybody,
+and always doing things for people. She's a good sport, too. I really
+believe, she is looking forward to the game to-morrow almost as much as
+I am. It's because she's so unselfish; she never stops to think of
+herself so long as other people are having a good time."
+
+"My aunt is like that," said Marjorie, with shining eyes. "She is a
+great invalid, and suffers very much most of the time, but she never
+complains, and is always interested in everything we do. Is your uncle a
+surgeon?"
+
+"Yes," said Beverly, rather surprised by the abruptness of the question;
+"he is a very fine surgeon, I believe. Why do you want to know? Aren't
+you satisfied with the way your wrist is bandaged?"
+
+"Oh, it isn't that," said Marjorie, blushing; "it was only something I
+was thinking of that made me ask the question. This is our apartment;
+now I can take the bottle, and not bother you any more. Oh, there's a
+letter in the box; perhaps it's for me!" And forgetting everything else
+in her eagerness for home news, Marjorie sprang forward to possess
+herself of the contents of the letter-box.
+
+"It is for me!" she cried joyfully, glancing at the postmark. "It's from
+Undine; the first one I've had from her."
+
+"Undine," repeated Beverly, his eyes beginning to twinkle; "I had no
+idea you counted water sprites among your acquaintances."
+
+"She isn't a water sprite," laughed Marjorie. "She's just a girl like
+anybody else. We call her Undine because nobody knows what her real name
+is. It's a very strange story indeed. She was found under some ruins in
+the streets of San Francisco right after the earthquake, and we think a
+stone or something must have fallen on her head, for she was unconscious
+for a long time, and now she can't remember anything that happened
+before the earthquake, not even her own name. She isn't crazy, or
+anything like that, but she has simply forgotten everything. Did you
+ever hear of a case like that before?"
+
+"I think I have read of such cases, but I imagine they are rather rare.
+It is very interesting, but if you don't mind, Miss Marjorie, please
+don't mention it to my mother. Any mention of the San Francisco
+earthquake is very painful to her. My little sister was killed there."
+
+"No, indeed I won't," promised Marjorie, "but how very sad about your
+sister. Would you mind telling me how it happened? Don't talk about it,
+though, if you would rather not."
+
+"I don't mind in the least," said Beverly, "but it was such a frightful
+shock to my mother that we don't like to have her dwell on it any any
+more than can be helped. My sister Barbara was in San Francisco with my
+aunt at the time of the earthquake. She had been very ill with scarlet
+fever in the winter, and the doctor had ordered a change for her. My
+aunt was going to California for a few weeks, and offered to take
+Barbara with her. Mother couldn't leave home, for she was taking care of
+my grandmother, who was ill at the time, and I was away at school. So it
+ended in my aunt and Barbara going by themselves. My aunt intended
+taking a maid, but the one she had engaged disappointed her at the last
+moment, and as all the railroad accommodations had been secured, she
+decided to start, and trust to finding a suitable maid in San Francisco,
+which was to be their first stopping place. They reached San Francisco,
+and my aunt wrote my mother that she had engaged a very satisfactory
+girl, and two days later came the earthquake."
+
+Beverly paused abruptly, and Marjorie, her face full of sympathy, laid a
+kind little hand on his arm.
+
+"Don't tell me any more," she said, gently; "it must have been very
+terrible."
+
+"It was," said Beverly, sadly. "Part of the wall of the hotel where they
+were staying fell in, and they were both instantly killed. We feared for
+a time that my mother would never recover from the shock."
+
+"And was the maid killed, too?" Marjorie asked. She was longing to hear
+more, but did not like to ask too many questions.
+
+"We never knew; you see, she was a stranger to us. My uncle advertised
+in all the California papers, in the hope of finding her, and perhaps
+learn more particulars, but no answer ever came. She was probably
+killed, poor thing."
+
+"Your mother spoke of her little girl this afternoon," said Marjorie;
+"she said she would have been just about my age."
+
+"Yes, she would have been fifteen this January. It is rather odd, but
+when I saw you that first morning in the park you somehow reminded me of
+Babs. She was such a jolly little girl. She was four years younger than
+I, but there were only we two, and we were always chums."
+
+There was a look of such genuine sorrow on the boy's face that impulsive
+Marjorie held out her hand.
+
+"I'm so sorry," she said and that was all, but Beverly understood, and
+he went back to his mother's apartment with a very kindly feeling for
+the little girl from Arizona.
+
+Once in her own room Marjorie speedily forgot the Randolphs and their
+troubles in the delight of a letter from home. Undine's handwriting was
+rather immature for a girl of her age, but the letter itself was most
+interesting and satisfactory.
+
+
+ "November Fifteenth.
+
+ "DEAR MARJORIE:
+
+ "Your aunt thinks you would like to have a letter
+ from me, and although I can't see how you can
+ possibly care about hearing from such a stupid
+ person, I am very glad to write.
+
+ "You have no idea how much I have missed you. If
+ your mother and aunt had not been so very kind I
+ don't think I could have borne it, but, oh,
+ Marjorie dear they are so good; I do hope I can
+ deserve just a little of all they are doing for
+ me. Your mother is making me a new dress--isn't it
+ sweet of her? She sent to Albuquerque for the
+ material; it is dark blue serge with a little
+ stripe in it, and just as pretty as it can be. I
+ take a sewing lesson every day from Miss Jessie,
+ but I know as well as can be that I shall never
+ learn to make things as you do.
+
+ "Another thing that makes me very happy is that
+ your mother is giving me lessons, and letting me
+ recite to her every evening. Even if I am stupid
+ and can't remember my own name, I don't want to
+ grow up ignorant. We are reading English history
+ together, and it is very strange, but I almost
+ always know what is coming next. Mrs. Graham says
+ she feels sure I must have learned the same things
+ before.
+
+ "A very strange thing happened to me one day last
+ week; I think I almost remembered. It was the day
+ your long letter to Miss Jessie came, and she was
+ reading it aloud to us when it happened. It was
+ just like the day I heard Jim singing 'Mandalay'
+ for the first time. It seemed to me just for one
+ minute that I was going to remember everything,
+ and I was so excited I screamed, and frightened
+ Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie. Then in a flash it
+ was all gone again, and I was so unhappy I
+ couldn't help crying. I am afraid I gave them a
+ good deal of trouble, but they were so kind!
+ Afterward Miss Jessie talked to me for a long
+ time, and made me promise to try not to worry any
+ more about not remembering. She said some lovely
+ comforting things about my being helpful and
+ trying to take your place, and they made me very
+ happy, although I am afraid I didn't really
+ deserve them.
+
+ "I ride almost every afternoon, and I think Roland
+ is beginning to like me. I never forget his sugar,
+ and I am teaching him to put his nose in my pocket
+ for it. I think I must have taught another horse
+ that some time, it seemed so natural, but I am not
+ sure. I have promised your aunt not to talk about
+ the things I think I used to do.
+
+ "I had such a beautiful dream last night. I
+ thought some one came and told me I was very rich,
+ and I was so happy, because I would have the money
+ to pay a surgeon to come and see Miss Jessie. I
+ was just planning out how I was to do it when I
+ woke up. I have thought a great deal about what
+ you told me that last evening, but of course I
+ have never mentioned it to any one. I don't
+ suppose you have had time to meet a surgeon yet.
+
+ "I must stop writing now, and study my history.
+ Everybody is well, and they all send heaps of love
+ and kisses. Your mother says 'don't let Marjorie
+ know how much we miss her,' but I am sure you know
+ that without any telling. I don't want to be
+ selfish, but I should just love a letter all to
+ myself some time. New York must be a very
+ interesting place, and your letters telling about
+ it all are wonderful.
+
+ "With a heart full of love, I am
+ "Your true but nameless friend,
+ "UNDINE."
+
+Marjorie spent a busy evening over her lessons, and went to bed at nine
+o'clock instead of writing the home letters she had intended.
+
+"They would be so sorry to know I was here all by myself while the
+others were off having a good time," she thought, resolutely crushing
+down that troublesome little feeling of envy. "If I wrote to-night I
+should have to mention it, but if I wait till Sunday when Aunt Julia
+and Elsie are back again, I won't have to say anything about their
+having been away. I promised Mother to let her know about all the
+things, but some of them will keep till I get home and can tell her
+myself."
+
+But in spite of the throbbing pain in her wrist, and the disappointment
+in her heart, Marjorie soon feel asleep, and did not wake until it was
+broad daylight, and Hortense, with a note in her hand, was standing by
+her bedside.
+
+"It is only seven," the maid said apologetically, as Marjorie sat up in
+bed, and rubbed her eyes. "I would not have called you so early, but the
+hall boy has brought this note, and waits for an answer."
+
+"What in the world can it be?" exclaimed Marjorie in astonishment, as
+she tore open the envelope, but at the first glance at the contents her
+face brightened, and she uttered a joyful little cry. This is what she
+read.
+
+ "MY DEAR MARJORIE:
+
+ "I know you won't object to my calling you
+ Marjorie, because you say you like being a little
+ girl. I am writing to ask if you will go with us
+ to New Haven to-day. We are going in my
+ brother-in-law's car, and are to be ready to start
+ at nine o'clock. The friend we expected would go
+ with us has been prevented at the last moment,
+ which gives us an extra seat in the car as well as
+ a ticket for the game, and we should be delighted
+ to have you with us. I am sure your aunt would not
+ object, and I will explain everything to her
+ myself. I would have written you last evening, but
+ it was after ten when we learned that the friend
+ we had expected would be unable to go. We have
+ ordered breakfast for eight o'clock, and would be
+ glad to have you take it with us. Be sure to wrap
+ up well, for it may be a cold ride, and we shall
+ not get back till late.
+
+ "Hoping that you will be able to join us, I remain
+
+ "Sincerely your friend,
+ "BARBARA RANDOLPH."
+
+Marjorie was out of bed almost before she had finished the last line.
+Her eyes were dancing, and her heart pounding with excitement.
+
+"Tell the boy to say I shall be delighted to go," she cried. "There
+isn't time to write a note; I shall have to hurry. Oh, Hortense, did you
+ever hear of anything quite so splendid?"
+
+It was a very radiant Marjorie who presented herself at the Randolphs'
+apartment an hour later, and Beverly and his mother felt fully repaid
+for the kindly impulse which had prompted the invitation. The breakfast
+that followed was a very pleasant one, and Marjorie chatted away to her
+new friends as if she had known them all her life, and enjoyed herself
+more than she had done at any time since coming to New York.
+
+"I really didn't know how disappointed I was about not going till your
+mother's note came," she said to Beverly, when breakfast was over, and
+Mrs. Randolph had gone to put on her hat. "I have always longed to see a
+football game. My father was on the team at Harvard."
+
+"You seemed to take your disappointment rather cheerfully," said Beverly
+with characteristic bluntness.
+
+Marjorie blushed.
+
+"It was just one of the things that couldn't be helped," she said
+simply. "My aunt says there are some things every one has to make the
+best of."
+
+"Your aunt must be a sensible woman," remarked Mrs. Randolph, who had
+returned just in time to hear Marjorie's last sentence. Thereupon
+Marjorie launched forth into an account of Aunt Jessie's bravery and
+cheerfulness, in which both her companions seemed interested.
+
+Marjorie was sure she would never forget the delight of that motor ride
+to New Haven. It was her first ride in an open touring car, and the
+bright sunshine, the keen frosty air, and the swift motion, all combined
+to render the trip a truly enjoyable one. She sat in the tonneau,
+between Mrs. Randolph and the doctor, and Beverly occupied the front
+seat with the chauffeur.
+
+"It's the most heavenly motion I ever imagined," murmured Marjorie, as
+they bowled swiftly out of the park and along the grand boulevard. "I
+always thought riding was the most delightful thing in the world, but I
+believe motoring is even better."
+
+The doctor laughed.
+
+"You must be an accomplished horsewoman," he said. "Beverly tells me you
+have spent a good part of your life on a ranch."
+
+"I rode my first pony before I was five, and helped Father train a colt
+when I was nine," said Marjorie. "I suppose that is one reason why I
+love horses so much, and can't bear to see one ill-treated."
+
+"I have no doubt of it, but if I were you I think I would leave the
+punishment of cruel drivers in future to the Society for the Prevention
+of Cruelty to Animals. By the way, how is the wrist this morning?"
+
+"Oh, it's ever so much better," said Marjorie, blushing at the memory of
+her escapade. "I don't believe I have thought of it once since Mrs.
+Randolph's note came. I have been so anxious to see a real college
+football match. My father was on the team at Harvard."
+
+"Indeed!" said the doctor, looking interested. "I am a Harvard man
+myself, and there was a Graham on the team in my time; a splendid
+chap--what is your father's name?"
+
+"Donald, and he was in the class of 1890," said Marjorie, eagerly. "Oh,
+I wonder if you can really have known Father."
+
+"I certainly did. Ninety was my class, too, and I remember Donald Graham
+very well, though we have never met since the old college days."
+
+"How perfectly delightful!" cried Marjorie, with sparkling eyes. "Father
+will be so interested when I write him about it."
+
+Dr. Randolph was really pleased to hear of his old classmate, forgotten
+for nearly twenty years, and he and Marjorie were soon in the midst of
+an animated conversation; she telling of her father's busy life on the
+Arizona cattle ranch, and he relating college stories, and growing young
+again himself in recalling those old merry days.
+
+That was a wonderful ride, and Marjorie enjoyed every moment. Dr.
+Randolph told her the names of all the towns they passed through, and
+Beverly and his mother were so kind and so merry. It was noon when they
+reached New Haven, where they found the streets crowded with people and
+automobiles, and many of the buildings decorated with flags and Yale
+colors.
+
+"Have all these people come to see the game?" Marjorie asked
+breathlessly.
+
+"Yes, and a good many more as well," Dr. Randolph told her. "There is
+always a big crowd for these games; the railroads run special trains on
+purpose. We are going to have lunch now, and then go out to Yale Field."
+
+"I wonder if we shall meet Aunt Julia and Elsie," said Marjorie. "How
+surprised they will be to see me if we do. Aunt Julia will be pleased, I
+know, for she hated to leave me at home."
+
+"We shall meet the Bells and their party at any rate," said Beverly.
+"They came yesterday by train, and are saving a table for us at the
+restaurant. You know Lulu Bell, don't you, Marjorie?"
+
+"Yes, she is in my class, and I like her ever so much. I like Winifred
+Hamilton, too, and she is to be with the Bells, I believe."
+
+At that moment they drew up before the hotel where they were to lunch,
+and Mrs. Randolph and Marjorie hurried away to the dressing-room to
+remove wraps and motor veils, while the doctor and his nephew went to
+order luncheon.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+MARJORIE SURPRISES HER RELATIVES
+
+
+"I REALLY don't know when I've been so pleased about anything!"
+exclaimed Lulu Bell, a pretty, bright-faced girl of fourteen, as she and
+her friends greeted Marjorie in the restaurant. "We were all so glad
+when Beverly Randolph told us you were here. Won't Elsie be surprised?
+She hadn't the least idea you were coming. Come here and sit between
+Winifred and me."
+
+"I don't believe any one can be much more surprised than I am myself,"
+said Marjorie, laughing, as she took the proffered seat, and received
+the kindly greeting of her other schoolmates. "Wasn't it just heavenly
+of the Randolphs to bring me with them?"
+
+"It was nice," Winifred Hamilton agreed heartily. "This is my first
+football game, too, and I'm almost too excited to eat. Did you ever see
+such a crowd in your life?"
+
+"No, never," said Marjorie, with a glance round the packed restaurant.
+"I wonder if they will really have lunch enough for all these people.
+Do you suppose Aunt Julia and Elsie are here?"
+
+"No, I don't think so," said Winifred. "We saw Elsie at the dance last
+night, and she said they were going to lunch with some friends of her
+cousin's. She will be at the game, of course, and perhaps you may see
+her there."
+
+"I think it was real mean of Elsie to come without you," chimed in
+Gertie Rossiter, who was not noted for tact. "I should have hated to go
+off for a good time and leave my cousin at home alone."
+
+"Oh, Elsie couldn't help it," protested Marjorie; "her cousin could only
+get two tickets."
+
+"Nonsense!" retorted Gertie indignantly. "He could have gotten an extra
+one as well as not if he had known in time; he told me so last night. I
+know Percy Ward very well, and he's an awfully nice boy. He felt
+dreadfully sorry when he heard about your being left behind. He said it
+was just like Elsie."
+
+"Isn't Mrs. Randolph pretty?" broke in Winifred, anxious to change the
+subject before Gertie made any more uncomfortable revelations. "She
+looks awfully young to be that big boy's mother."
+
+"She is perfectly lovely," declared Marjorie, and Lulu added, by way of
+keeping the conversation in safe channels:
+
+"Papa knows her brother-in-law, Dr. Randolph, very well, and he says she
+is the bravest woman he has ever met. You've heard about her little
+girl, haven't you?"
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie, "it was very sad; I don't see how poor Mrs.
+Randolph ever got over it."
+
+"She didn't," said Lulu. "Dr. Randolph says it nearly killed her, and
+even now she can't bear to speak of it, but she doesn't think it right
+to sadden her son's life, and so she is always bright and cheerful. If I
+ever write a book I shall make my heroine just that sort of person."
+
+At this moment Beverly, who had gone to speak to some friends at another
+table, joined the party, and the subject of his family was dropped. The
+luncheon was a very merry one. They were a large party, for besides
+Lulu's father and mother and the three girls, there were a couple of
+Yale students, friends of the Bells, and everybody seemed in excellent
+spirits. Marjorie felt a little shy at first, but soon thawed under the
+genial atmosphere, and before the meal was over she was chatting and
+laughing as merrily as any of the others.
+
+"Isn't Marjorie a nice girl?" whispered Winifred to Lulu, as they were
+leaving the restaurant. "I'm so glad she got the chance to come, but I
+do wonder what Elsie will say."
+
+It seemed to Marjorie that the next three hours must be the most
+exciting period of her life. To most girls a college football game is
+looked upon as a rather important event, but to Marjorie, fresh from her
+Arizona home, it was an experience never to be forgotten. It was on the
+whole a peaceful game, and there were no serious accidents to mar the
+general enjoyment and as the sun continued to shine, and the day was
+comfortably warm, there were not even the usual discomforts of weather
+to be endured. Marjorie and her friends were about equally divided in
+their championship; Lulu, Winifred and Gertie being for Yale, while
+Beverly and Marjorie herself favored Harvard, and joined in the cheers
+and rejoicing when the "Crimson" at last carried off the honors of the
+day, although Yale ran so close behind that at one time fears had been
+entertained that the game would be a tie.
+
+"Are you tired, Marjorie?" Beverly asked, as they were making their way
+through the dense throng to the waiting motor-car.
+
+"I don't know whether I am or not," said Marjorie, laughing. "It has
+all been so wonderful, and I don't feel as if I could quite realize it
+yet. Oh, there they are!"
+
+"Who?" demanded Beverly, looking round in surprise. "Oh, I see, your
+aunt and cousin--do you want to speak to them?"
+
+"Yes, of course I do; they'll be so surprised. Why, Elsie is staring at
+me as if she didn't know me."
+
+To say that Mrs. Carleton and her daughter were surprised would be but a
+mild way of expressing their feelings. They were for the moment
+literally speechless with astonishment. Elsie was the first to recover
+her power of articulation.
+
+"Is it really and truly you, Marjorie?" she demanded, regarding her
+smiling cousin with round-eyed amazement.
+
+"Yes, it really and truly is," laughed Marjorie. "I've been trying to
+find you all the afternoon, but there was such a crowd. I knew you'd be
+surprised."
+
+"Surprised!" echoed Elsie, looking from Marjorie to her tall companion,
+"I was never so surprised in my life. But how did it happen--who brought
+you?"
+
+"Mr. Randolph and his mother," said Marjorie, "wasn't it perfectly
+lovely of them?" And she proceeded to give her aunt and cousin an
+account of recent events.
+
+"I am sure it was extremely kind of Mrs. Randolph," Mrs. Carleton said,
+when Marjorie had finished her story. "I only hope this little girl
+hasn't been a trouble to your mother, Mr. Randolph."
+
+"Indeed she hasn't," declared Beverly, not without some indignation in
+his tone. "We've had a splendid time, haven't we, Marjorie?" To which
+Marjorie, who felt suddenly as if a pail of ice water had been dashed
+over her, answered rather meekly:--
+
+"It was beautiful. I never had such a good time in my life."
+
+"I am afraid that we must hurry along, Mrs. Carleton," said Beverly. "My
+mother and uncle have gone ahead, and will be waiting for us at the
+entrance. Don't worry about Marjorie; we'll take good care of her, and
+bring her home safely. We may be a little late, as my uncle doesn't like
+to run his car fast after dark."
+
+"Oh, I shall not worry," said Mrs. Carleton, with her sweetest smile. "I
+know Marjorie is in excellent hands, and between ourselves, I think she
+is a very fortunate little girl."
+
+Marjorie was rather silent during the long ride back to New York that
+evening. Mrs. Randolph and the doctor thought she was tired after all
+the excitement of the day, and kindly left her alone, but Beverly was of
+a different opinion, and his feelings towards Marjorie's aunt and cousin
+were not of the kindest.
+
+"I suppose your aunt was very much surprised to see you," Mrs. Randolph
+said kindly, merely for the sake of conversation.
+
+"Very much indeed," said Marjorie, in a tone that was not altogether
+steady. "Oh, Mrs. Randolph, I do hope I haven't been a trouble to you."
+
+"A trouble! My dear child, what nonsense. It has been perfectly
+delightful to have you with us, and you have added greatly to our
+pleasure. I hope we may have many more little trips together before the
+winter is over. You know I am very fond of little girls."
+
+Marjorie was much relieved, but her heart was not as light as it had
+been all day.
+
+"Be sure to remember me to your father when you write," were Dr.
+Randolph's parting words to Marjorie, as they drew up before the big
+hotel at ten o'clock that night. "Tell him he mustn't forget to look me
+up when he comes to New York."
+
+"Indeed I will," promised Marjorie; "he will be so interested. I don't
+suppose--" with sudden eagerness--"that you ever go to Arizona?"
+
+"I have never been there as yet, but nobody knows what may happen. If I
+ever go to Arizona, though, I shall certainly call on my old college
+friend, Donald Graham."
+
+"Isn't your uncle a dear?" remarked Marjorie to Beverly, as her friend
+was taking her upstairs to the Carletons' apartment.
+
+"He's a brick," was the young man's hearty rejoinder. "I'm glad you like
+him, for I know he likes you. He doesn't take to everybody, but he's
+been awfully good to Mother and me, and he was very fond of my little
+sister. Here's your door, so I'll say good-night. Hasn't it been a jolly
+day?"
+
+"It has been one of the loveliest days I've ever had," said Marjorie
+earnestly. "I'm sorry Aunt Julia thought I might have been troublesome,
+but your mother said I wasn't."
+
+"Troublesome! I should say not. Don't bother about what your aunt says;
+she doesn't know anything about it, and it's all nonsense, you know."
+
+Elsie had already gone to bed, and Mr. Carleton had telegraphed that he
+was taking the midnight train from Washington, and would not reach home
+till the following morning. But Aunt Julia was still up and dressed, and
+awaiting her niece's return.
+
+"My dear child, how late you are," was the rather reproachful greeting.
+"Do you know it is nearly half-past ten? Elsie went to bed more than an
+hour ago; she was quite worn out, poor child, as indeed I am myself, but
+I couldn't make up my mind to undress until I knew you were safely at
+home. I am horribly afraid of those automobiles."
+
+"I'm so sorry you worried about me, Aunt Julia," said Marjorie,
+regretfully. "I think we were quite safe, though; Dr. Randolph's
+chauffeur seems very careful, and they don't like going fast. I wasn't a
+bit frightened."
+
+"No, I don't suppose you were; children seldom realize danger. Sit down,
+Marjorie; I want to have a little talk with you before you go to your
+room."
+
+Marjorie complied, drawing a chair close to the fire, and stretching her
+cold hands out to the welcome blaze. She was longing to tell all about
+the day's pleasures, and was glad of the prospect of a little chat with
+Aunt Julia before going to bed.
+
+"Now my dear," began Mrs. Carleton, speaking fast and rather nervously,
+"I don't want you to let what I am going to say make you unhappy. I am
+not in the least displeased with you, because I am sure you had no
+intention of doing anything wrong; I have told Elsie so. But, Marjorie
+dear, it is not quite the proper thing for a girl of your age to accept
+invitations from strangers without first consulting the people under
+whose care she has been placed."
+
+"Oh, Aunt Julia," cried Marjorie, clasping her hands in dismay, while
+all the brightness died suddenly out of her face, "I am so sorry! I had
+no idea you would object to my going with the Randolphs; I thought you
+would be pleased because you were so sorry about leaving me at home.
+Mrs. Randolph said she was sure you wouldn't mind."
+
+Mrs. Carleton moved uneasily in her chair, and her eyes did not meet
+Marjorie's honest, astonished gaze.
+
+"I am sure it was very kind of Mrs. Randolph to think of giving you so
+much pleasure," she said. "I am not displeased with you either,
+Marjorie; I am only warning you not to make such a mistake another time.
+The Randolphs are merely slight acquaintances of ours, and one doesn't
+like being under obligations to strangers, you know. Elsie feels this
+quite as strongly as I do."
+
+"Elsie," repeated Marjorie, with a start, "why does she care? Didn't she
+want me to go to the game?"
+
+"Nonsense, dear; of course Elsie wanted you to go. She would have been
+delighted if only the circumstances had been a little different. Don't
+look so distressed, Marjorie; there is really nothing tragic in the
+situation. You have done nothing wrong, and I am glad you have had such
+a pleasant day, but don't accept another invitation without consulting
+either your uncle or me. Now kiss me good-night; I am tired to death and
+simply cannot sit up another minute."
+
+Marjorie cried herself to sleep that night for the first time in weeks.
+In spite of the memories of her happy day, she was more homesick than
+she had been at any time since coming to New York. She was so anxious to
+do right; to please her uncle and aunt in every way, and show them how
+grateful she was for all they were doing for her. And now, without
+having the slightest idea of having done anything wrong, she had annoyed
+Aunt Julia. She was thankful Hortense had not mentioned the episode of
+the cruel driver, and that her wrist no longer required a bandage. What
+would her aunt say if she knew of this delinquency as well as the other?
+But Marjorie was a very honest, truthful girl, and she decided to make a
+clean breast of everything to Uncle Henry when he came home. There was
+only one thing she could not understand, and that was why Elsie should
+have objected to her going to New Haven with the Randolphs.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+THE POETRY CLUB
+
+
+THERE was a marked coolness in Elsie's manner to her cousin the next
+morning, which Marjorie found decidedly uncomfortable as well as
+perplexing, but even Elsie was not proof against the weakness of
+curiosity, and after a few veiled hints, which Marjorie quite failed to
+understand, she finally softened, and demanded a full account of
+yesterday's doings, which her cousin was only too glad to give.
+
+"Tell me about Lulu Bell," said Elsie, when Marjorie had reached the
+part of her story where they had arrived at New Haven, and gone to lunch
+at the hotel restaurant. "Did Beverly Randolph pay her a lot of
+attention?"
+
+"Why, no, I don't think so," said Marjorie, innocently, "at least not
+any more than he paid to any of us. He was very polite to everybody, and
+I think he's the nicest boy I've ever met."
+
+"Probably that is because you have never met many people except
+Mexicans and Indians," remarked Elsie sarcastically.
+
+Marjorie, who had a quick temper of her own, flushed angrily, and was
+just going to say something sharp when Mrs. Carleton called them to get
+ready for church. Sunday was always a homesick day with Marjorie; there
+was not so much to do as on week-days, and she generally wrote a long
+home letter in the afternoon. Mr. Carleton had returned in time for
+breakfast, but it was not until after luncheon that Marjorie succeeded
+in getting him to herself. Then he proposed taking a walk, and asked the
+girls to accompany him. Elsie protested that she was too tired after the
+exertions of yesterday, but Marjorie gladly accepted her uncle's
+invitation, and it was during that walk that she told her little story,
+concealing nothing not even the battle royal with the brutal driver. Mr.
+Carleton could not help smiling over his niece's account of that affair,
+although he grew grave again in a moment, and told Marjorie she must
+never interfere in such a case. But he saw nothing wrong in her having
+accepted Mrs. Randolph's invitation.
+
+"I daresay your aunt is right in wishing you to consult her before
+accepting invitations as a rule," he said, "but in this case I really
+don't see how you could have acted differently. The Randolphs are
+charming people, and it was very kind of them to offer to take you with
+them. It would have been scarcely courteous to refuse."
+
+Marjorie returned from her walk with a much lighter heart, and in
+writing a long and detailed account of the game to her father, she quite
+forgot to worry over Elsie's sulks, or Aunt Julia's warnings.
+
+When the two girls arrived the next morning at the building where Miss
+Lothrop held her daily classes, they found several of their classmates
+gathered in an eager group, all talking fast and earnestly.
+
+"The most interesting thing is going to happen," announced Gertie
+Rossiter, pouncing upon the two new arrivals. "Lulu is getting up a
+club, and she wants us all to join."
+
+"What sort of a club?" inquired Elsie, doubtfully.
+
+"Oh, an awfully nice one. It's to meet at our different houses on Friday
+evenings, and we are to sew for the poor for the first hour, and dance
+and play games the rest of the evening."
+
+"I don't believe I should care to join," said Elsie, indifferently, as
+she took off her hat, and smoothed out her crimps; "I hate sewing."
+
+"So do I, but the sewing is only for the first hour, and the rest will
+be such fun. The boys will be invited to come at nine and stay till
+half-past ten."
+
+"Boys!" repeated Elsie her face brightening; "are there to be boys in
+the club, too?"
+
+"Yes, but of course they can't sew, so Lulu is going to put them on the
+amusement committee. My brother Rob is going to be asked, and Bessie's
+two cousins, and any others we can think of. You'll be sorry if you
+don't join, Elsie; it's going to be splendid."
+
+"I never said I wasn't going to join," said Elsie loftily, and
+sauntering over to the window where Lulu Bell and several other girls
+were still in earnest conversation, she inquired with an air of would-be
+indifference:
+
+"What's all this about a club somebody is getting up?"
+
+"It's Lulu," said Winifred Hamilton, proudly; "she thought of it
+yesterday and we all think it's such a good idea."
+
+"The first meeting is to be held at my house next Friday evening," Lulu
+explained, "and every member has got to read an original poem."
+
+"What for?" demanded Elsie, beginning to look rather blank. "I don't
+see what poems have to do with a sewing club."
+
+"Oh, we all have to be initiated," said Lulu, "the way college boys are,
+you know, and the way we are going to initiate is to make everybody
+write a poem. It needn't be more than eight lines, and it doesn't matter
+what it's about, so long as it's poetry. It will be such fun reading the
+poems and deciding which is the best. The one who writes the best poem
+is to be president of the club. It will be decided by vote."
+
+"I think the club sounds very interesting," said Elsie, with a little
+air of condescension, "but if I were you I would give up the initiation;
+it's so silly."
+
+"Oh, the initiation is half the fun!" cried Lulu and Bessie both
+together, and Lulu, who was not very fond of Elsie, added with decision:
+
+"Any one who isn't willing to take the trouble to write a poem can't
+join the club."
+
+"I am sure I have no objection to writing a poem," said Elsie, shrugging
+her shoulders. "It's perfectly simple; I could write one every week if I
+chose, but it's so foolish."
+
+Bessie and Gertie looked at each other, and Gertie formed the word
+"brag" with her lips, but did not say it aloud. Marjorie saw the look
+that passed between the two girls, and her cheeks grew suddenly hot.
+
+Elsie was certainly very clever, but she could not help feeling that it
+would be better taste on her cousin's part not to talk about it.
+
+"I wish I found it easy to write a poem," said Winifred, mournfully. "I
+never made a rhyme in my life, but Lulu says I've got to try. She made
+me write a story once when we were little girls, and it was the most
+awful nonsense you ever heard. Have you ever written a poem, Marjorie?"
+
+"Only a few silly doggerels. One of my aunt's favorite games is capping
+verses, and we used sometimes to play it on winter evenings."
+
+Just then more girls arrived, and in a few moments Miss Lothrop rang her
+bell, and school began.
+
+"Well, Marjorie, what do you think of the idea of the club?" Elsie
+inquired of her cousin, as the two were walking home from school
+together that day.
+
+"I think it will be splendid," declared Marjorie, heartily. "Lulu must
+be a clever girl to have thought of such a plan, especially of the
+initiation. I am sure the poems will be great fun."
+
+"They won't amount to anything," said Elsie, with her superior smile.
+"Nobody will write a decent poem, and I do hate poetry that isn't really
+good. Papa would never allow me to learn anything but the classics."
+
+"Lulu says we mustn't read our poems to any one until the night of the
+initiation," said Marjorie. "I know yours will be splendid, Elsie; you
+are so clever."
+
+Elsie smiled, well pleased by the compliment, and added rather
+irrelevantly:
+
+"I asked Lulu why she didn't invite Beverly Randolph to join the club.
+He hasn't many friends in New York and might enjoy it. She says he is
+older than any of the other boys, but she would be glad to have him if
+he cares to join, so I am to ask him and let her know to-morrow. The
+boys are not to be initiated, because they are only the amusement
+committee, but they are all to come to the first meeting, and vote on
+the poems."
+
+Nothing more was said on the subject just then, but Elsie was careful to
+deliver the message to Beverly that evening, and the invitation was
+readily accepted.
+
+"The girl who writes the best poem is to be president, you know," Elsie
+explained, with her sweetest smile. "You must be sure to come to the
+first meeting and vote for the one you like best."
+
+"I am afraid I'm not very well up on poetry," said Beverly, laughing.
+"It's a lucky thing the boys aren't expected to write poems as well as
+the girls; I am sure I should disgrace myself hopelessly if I were to
+attempt anything original."
+
+"Oh, no, you wouldn't," Elsie protested. "You have no idea how easy it
+really is. Of course some of the poems will be dreadfully silly, but you
+don't have to vote for them."
+
+It was Thanksgiving week, so school closed on Wednesday, not to open
+again till the following Monday. Elsie had several invitations for the
+holidays, but Marjorie, whose New York acquaintances were still limited
+to the girls at Miss Lothrop's, had only the first meeting of the Club
+on Friday evening to which to look forward. She wrote her poem on
+Wednesday evening, while Elsie was at a theater party, and although far
+from satisfied with it, decided that it would have to do, as she had
+several hard lessons to prepare for Monday, and there was no more time
+for writing poetry.
+
+"Of course it won't be nearly as good as Elsie's," she told herself
+cheerfully. "She is sure to be voted president."
+
+She had asked her cousin that evening if she had written her poem, and
+Elsie had replied carelessly that there was plenty of time, and she
+would probably do it to-morrow.
+
+"It really isn't worth bothering about," she had added, with some scorn;
+"it won't take me half an hour."
+
+The next day was Thanksgiving, and the Carletons and their niece were
+invited to a family dinner at Mrs. Lamont's. Elsie spent a long time in
+her room that afternoon, and came out looking rather cross. Marjorie,
+going into her cousin's room for something later in the day, noticed
+that the waste-paper basket was full of torn papers.
+
+"I wonder if she can be having trouble with her poem," Marjorie thought
+innocently, but when she questioned Elsie on the subject, that young
+lady colored angrily, and replied that of course she wasn't, and she did
+wish people would stop talking about that silly Club; she was sick of
+the subject and had a great mind not to join at all.
+
+The dinner at the Lamonts was very pleasant, and Marjorie could not help
+being conscious of the fact that she looked unusually well in her new
+dress. Every one was kind to the little Western girl, and she liked Mrs.
+Lamont and her daughter better than ever. The Ward family were also of
+the party, and Marjorie was introduced to the Yale boy, Percy, whom she
+found most agreeable, though not, as she wrote her mother afterward,
+quite so nice as Beverly Randolph.
+
+"Why didn't you tell me what a jolly girl Marjorie Graham was?" Percy
+demanded of Elsie, when the cousins were alone together for a moment
+after dinner.
+
+Elsie flushed.
+
+"I didn't know you'd like her," she said, evasively. "She's dreadfully
+young for her age, and not a bit like the New York girls."
+
+"Well, she's all right anyway," maintained Percy. "I only wish I'd known
+about her in time to get another ticket for the game last Saturday. But
+she went with some other friends, didn't she?"
+
+"Oh, yes, she went," said Elsie, with a rather sarcastic smile. "She got
+some people at the hotel to take her in their car. You needn't worry
+about Marjorie; she knows how to take care of herself."
+
+Elsie spent another hour in her room on Friday morning, and was so cross
+and disagreeable at luncheon, that Marjorie wondered more and more what
+the matter could possibly be. But in the afternoon Elsie cheered up, and
+her cousin came to the conclusion that whatever the trouble had been, it
+was evidently over.
+
+The meeting was to begin at eight o'clock, so immediately after an early
+dinner, the two girls, accompanied as usual by Hortense, started in the
+carriage for Lulu's home, which was on Madison Avenue, only a few blocks
+away.
+
+Lulu was a charming little hostess, and gave her friends a cordial
+greeting, explaining that her mother and aunt would come down later, but
+it had been a stipulation with some of the Club members that nobody
+grown up was to hear the poems or take part in the initiation. Several
+of Miss Lothrop's girls had already arrived, and there were also present
+a few more young people, particular friends of Lulu's, who had been
+invited to join the Club.
+
+"I want you to meet my friend, Betty Randall," Lulu said to Marjorie, as
+Elsie turned away to speak to other friends. "She's English, and just as
+nice as can be. She and her mother and brother are visiting us. She
+can't be a member, because they are all going back to England next week,
+but she and Jack are the special guests of the evening, and they are
+both to be allowed to vote on the poems."
+
+Betty Randall was a quiet, sweet-faced girl of fifteen, and Marjorie
+liked her at once.
+
+"Have you been in this country long?" she asked, when Lulu had left them
+together, and gone to greet other arriving guests. She could not help
+feeling a good deal interested in meeting "a real English girl."
+
+"Only since September," Betty answered, "but we used to live in New
+York. My mother is English, but she and my father came to this country
+when they were married, and my brother and I were both born in New York.
+We lived here until four years ago, when my uncle took us back to
+England to live with him."
+
+"I should think it would be wonderfully interesting to live in England,"
+said Marjorie. "I suppose of course you have been in London, and seen
+the Tower and Westminster Abbey?"
+
+"Oh, yes," said Betty, smiling. "One of my uncle's places is quite near
+London, and we often motor into town. I like America, though; it always
+seems more like home. Do you know the names of all these girls?"
+
+"I know most of them; we go to the same school, but I haven't been in
+New York nearly as long as you have. My home is in Arizona, and I have
+only come here to spend the winter, and go to school with my cousin."
+
+Betty looked a little disappointed.
+
+"Then I suppose you can't tell me something I want to know very much,"
+she said. "Lulu told me Dr. Randolph's nephew was to be here, and I do
+want to see him."
+
+"Oh, I can point him out to you," said Marjorie. "He lives at the Plaza,
+where my uncle has an apartment, and Elsie and I know him very well.
+There he is, that tall boy, who has just come in. Isn't he handsome?"
+
+"Yes, very," agreed Betty, regarding the new arrival with considerable
+interest. "I never met him, but his uncle was such a good friend to us
+once."
+
+"I know Dr. Randolph, too," said Marjorie; "he took us to New Haven in
+his car to see the game last Saturday. He is very kind."
+
+"Kind!" repeated Betty, with shining eyes; "he is more than kind, he is
+wonderful. He cured my brother, and made him walk, when he had been a
+cripple all his life."
+
+Marjorie gave a little gasp, and some of the color went out of her face.
+
+"Tell me about it," she said, clasping her hands, and regarding her new
+acquaintance with such an eager expression in her eyes, that Betty was
+quite startled.
+
+"It was before we went back to England," she said. "We were living here
+in New York, and Winifred Hamilton and her father and mother had an
+apartment in the same house. My mother was taken very ill, and Winifred
+went for Lulu Bell's father, whom you know is a doctor. He was very good
+to us, and while attending mother he became very much interested in my
+brother, who was nine years old then, and had never walked a step since
+he was born. He brought Dr. Randolph to see Jack, and he felt sure
+something could be done for him, and persuaded Mother to let him be
+taken to a hospital. Mother consented, and Dr. Randolph performed a
+wonderful operation."
+
+"And does your brother walk now?" Marjorie asked almost breathlessly.
+
+"There he is," said Betty, smiling, and pointing to a tall boy of
+thirteen, who was standing near the door, talking to Winifred Hamilton.
+"You would never believe that he was a helpless cripple only four years
+ago, would you?" she added proudly.
+
+"No, indeed," said Marjorie; "it seems very wonderful. Do you suppose
+Dr. Randolph often performs such operations?"
+
+"I think so. Dr. Bell says he is one of the finest surgeons in the
+country. Why are you so much interested? Do you know some one who is a
+cripple, too?"
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie, with a sigh. "It's my aunt; she had a terrible
+accident eight years ago, and has never walked since. But she is away in
+Arizona; we could never ask Dr. Randolph to go all that distance to see
+her."
+
+"No, I suppose not," Betty admitted regretfully, "but couldn't your aunt
+be brought here to him? I know people come from all parts of the country
+to consult him. There was a little girl at the hospital when Jack was
+there, who had been brought all the way from Texas."
+
+Marjorie thought of the long three-days journey, and of her father's
+desperate struggle to make both ends meet, but before she could answer,
+Lulu, as mistress of ceremonies--rapped sharply on the table, and the
+Club was called to order.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+ELSIE TRIUMPHS
+
+
+"LADIES and gentlemen," began Lulu, speaking in the tone she had heard
+her mother use when conducting a meeting of a charitable board of which
+she was president, "I think every one is now here, and I must request
+you all please to keep quiet during the reading of the poems. After the
+reading, votes will be taken as to the best poem, and the girl who gets
+the most votes will be elected president of this Club. The boys are
+particularly requested not to laugh at any of the poems. The first to be
+read is by Miss Winifred Hamilton, and is called 'Ria and the Bear.'
+Miss Hamilton wishes me to explain that she has never heard the name
+Ria, but chose it because it was the only word she could think of that
+rhymed with fear."
+
+There was a general titter from the audience, followed by a burst of
+applause, as Winifred, very red, and looking as if she were being led to
+execution, rose and announced:
+
+"It's perfectly awful, but it's the first poem I ever wrote in my life,
+and I want to say that I sha'n't be in the least offended if everybody
+laughs." Then, unfolding a small sheet of paper, she began to read very
+fast.
+
+ "RIA AND THE BEAR.
+
+ "The sky was of the darkest hue,
+ The grass beneath was wet with dew,
+ And through the trees the wind did howl,
+ Causing the hungry bears to growl.
+
+ "All were protected from the storm,
+ All but one wee, shivering form,
+ She stood beneath an old elm tree,
+ The boughs of which from leaves were free.
+
+ "A big bear darted through the wood,
+ His instinct told him where she stood.
+ Soon the monster came close to Ria,
+ But the child showed no sign of fear.
+
+ "As the big bear drew very close,
+ She gave a pat to his cold nose,
+ At this touch the bear did cease to growl,
+ And for response a joyful howl.
+
+ "Then these two friends lay down together,
+ Quite heedless of the raging weather,
+ Upon the hard and frozen ground,
+ The two friends slept, both very sound.
+
+ "But one of the two never awoke;
+ Long, long after the wind storm broke,
+ She was discovered lying there,
+ Where she had died beside the bear."
+
+"Bravo! Winifred, that's fine!" shouted Jack Randall, and then followed
+a shout of laughter, in which everybody joined, Winifred herself as
+heartily as any of the others.
+
+"I told you it was awful," she said between gasps, "but Lulu said no one
+could be a member who didn't write a poem, so I had to do my best."
+
+"I should die of mortification if I were laughed at like that,"
+whispered Elsie to Carol, who sat next to her. To which her friend
+replied sympathetically:
+
+"Of course you would, but then everybody isn't a genius like you."
+
+"The next poem," announced Lulu, when order had been restored, "is by
+Miss Marjorie Graham of Arizona. Get up, Marjorie."
+
+Marjorie's heart was beating rather fast as she rose, but there was a
+merry twinkle in her eye, and if her voice shook a little when she began
+to read, it was more from suppressed laughter than from fear.
+
+
+ "THE BORING LIFE OF NEW YORK.
+
+
+ "Some think it delightful to live in New York,
+ But with them I do not agree;
+ 'Tis nothing but hustle and bustle and talk,
+ All very distasteful to me.
+
+ "I love all the pleasures the country can give,
+ The beautiful flowers and the birds;
+ The city produces not one of these things,
+ Only traffic and crowds by the herds.
+
+ "The city is good as a workshop for men,
+ Who in parks idle moments may pass,
+ But the pleasure for children e'en there is quite spoiled,
+ When a sign bids them 'Keep off the Grass.'"
+
+A burst of genuine applause followed this production, and Marjorie sat
+down again quite covered with confusion.
+
+"It's splendid; I couldn't have written anything half so good,"
+whispered Betty encouragingly. "I am rather glad I am not to be a member
+of the Club, for I know I could never have written two lines that
+rhymed."
+
+"The next poem," continued Lulu, in her business-like tone, "is by Miss
+Gertrude Rossiter," and Gertie, looking very much embarrassed, rose, and
+began:
+
+
+ "THE STORM AT SEA.
+
+ "The waves did beat on a rocky shore;
+ The noise resounded more and more;
+ A little craft was tossed on the sea,
+ And all knew that saved she might not be.
+
+ "The crew were gathered on the deck,
+ Awaiting the crash of the awful wreck;
+ Many hearts stopped beating as the time drew near
+ To bid good-bye to their children dear.
+
+ "The babies and children all did shriek,
+ And now their voices grew very weak.
+ The staunch big men grew white with fear,
+ At the thought of death that was so near.
+
+ "But all at once the winds did cease,
+ The waves stopped tossing, and there was peace,
+ The children stopped crying; with joy they all laughed,
+ And gladness prevailed on that safe little craft."
+
+There was more applause, mingled with laughter, and Elsie whispered to
+Carol, quite loud enough to be heard by several others:
+
+"Did you ever hear anything so silly? Even the meter is wrong; there are
+too many words in some lines, and not enough in others."
+
+"Read yours next, Lulu," said Winifred, before her friend could make
+another announcement. "Lulu writes beautiful poetry," she added in a
+lower tone to Jack Randall; "I'm crazy to know what she's written this
+time."
+
+Lulu protested that as hostess her turn should come last, but several
+other girls joined their entreaties to Winifred's, and she was forced to
+yield. Blushing and smiling, she took a sheet of paper from her pocket,
+and began to read:
+
+ "THE FIRE.
+
+ "The forest trees were waving in the wind;
+ The sun was slowly sinking o'er the hill,
+ The clouds in purple, gold and blue outlined,
+ Were mirrored in the still pond by the mill.
+
+ "The birds were twittering their last good-night;
+ The dainty flow'rets closing up their eyes,
+ When all at once a fearful lurid light
+ Shone in the many-colored sunset skies.
+
+ "Quickly that awe-inspiring fire spread,
+ And many a tall and stately tree there fell.
+ The timid animals and birds all fled,
+ And naught but charred remains were left the tale to tell.
+
+ "At morn when in his glory rose the sun,
+ Over the blackened, devastated hill,
+ The scene that there the traveler looked upon
+ Seemed to his inmost heart to send a chill."
+
+"Isn't she wonderful?" whispered Winifred excitedly to Jack. "I told you
+hers would be the best."
+
+"It's very pretty," Jack admitted, "but I think I like the one about Ria
+and the Bear the best of all."
+
+"The next poem," announced Lulu, when the applause had subsided, "is by
+Miss Elsie Carleton."
+
+There was a little flutter of excitement as Elsie rose--as the brightest
+girl in the school, a good deal was expected of her. Some of the girls
+noticed with surprise, that Elsie had grown rather pale, but her voice
+was as calm and superior as ever, when she unfolded her paper, and
+began:
+
+ "GOD KNOWS.
+
+ "Oh, wild and dark was the winter's night
+ When the emigrant ship went down,
+ But just outside the harbor bar,
+ In the sight of the startled town.
+ And the wind howled, and the sea roared,
+ And never a soul could sleep,
+ Save the little ones on their mothers' breasts,
+ Too young to watch and weep.
+
+ "No boat could live in that angry surf,
+ No rope could reach the land--
+ There were bold, brave hearts upon the shore;
+ There was many a helping hand;
+ Men who strove, and women who prayed,
+ Till work and prayer were vain;
+ And the sun rose over that awful void,
+ And the silence of the main.
+
+ "All day the watchers paced the sand;
+ All day they scanned the deep;
+ All night the booming minute guns
+ Echoed from steep to steep.
+ 'Give up thy dead, oh cruel sea!'
+ They cried athwart the space,
+ But only a baby's fragile form
+ Escaped from its stern embrace.
+
+ "Only one little child of all,
+ Who with the ship went down,
+ That night while the happy babies slept
+ All warm in the sheltered town.
+ There in the glow of the morning light
+ It lay on the shifting sand,
+ Pure as a sculptor's marble dream,
+ With a shell in its dimpled hand.
+
+ "There were none to tell of its race or kin--
+ 'God knows,' the pastor said,
+ When the sobbing children crowded to ask
+ The name of the baby dead.
+ And so when they laid it away at last,
+ In the churchyard's hushed repose,
+ They raised a slab at the baby's head,
+ With the carven words 'God knows.'"
+
+There was a general murmur of admiration, as Elsie sat down again, in
+the midst of a burst of applause louder than had greeted any of the
+other productions.
+
+"Wasn't it lovely?" whispered Winifred to Jack, as she wiped her eyes.
+"I do love those sad pieces, don't you?"
+
+"They're all right," said Jack, a little doubtfully, "but don't you like
+the funny ones that make you laugh, better? Ria and the Bear was so
+funny."
+
+"That poem is really beautiful," declared Betty Randall, turning to
+Marjorie, and speaking in a tone of hearty admiration. "She must be an
+awfully clever girl to have written it; it's quite good enough to be
+published."
+
+But Marjorie did not answer. She had given one violent start when Elsie
+began the first line of her poem, and at the same moment she had caught
+the expression on Beverly Randolph's face. After that she had sat quite
+still, with crimson cheeks, and a heart that was beating so loudly she
+was almost afraid people must hear it. In her mind was a mild confusion
+of feelings; astonishment, mortification, and incredulity, and, worst of
+all, the knowledge that at least one other person in the room besides
+herself knew. When the burst of applause came she was conscious of a
+momentary sensation of relief. At least no one was going to speak yet.
+She cast an imploring glance at Beverly, but his face expressed nothing
+beyond amusement and a sort of indifferent contempt.
+
+There were more poems read; some funny, some sentimental; but Marjorie
+scarcely heard them. In her thoughts there was room but for one thing.
+Even the wonderful story Betty had told about her brother and Dr.
+Randolph was swept away in the shock of the discovery she had made.
+Several times she glanced at Elsie, fully expecting to see some
+expression of shame or remorse but that young lady was looking the
+picture of smiling content.
+
+When the poems had all been read, there was a general move, and pencils
+and bits of paper were handed around.
+
+"One of the boys will pass round a hat," Lulu explained, "and you must
+all drop your votes into it." Then, with a sudden generous impulse, she
+went up to Elsie and held out her hand.
+
+"Yours was ever so much the best, Elsie," she said, frankly; "you
+certainly deserve to be president."
+
+Elsie just touched the outstretched hand with the tips of her fingers,
+and for one moment her eyes dropped and her color deepened.
+
+There was a moment of dead silence while the names were being written,
+then Gertie Rossiter's brother passed round the hat, and each girl and
+boy dropped a bit of paper into it.
+
+"I shall vote for Elsie Carleton, sha'n't you?" whispered Betty to
+Marjorie, but Marjorie shook her head.
+
+"I am going to vote for Lulu Bell," she said shortly.
+
+It was an exciting moment when Beverly Randolph and Rob Rossiter--the
+two oldest boys present--counted the votes and announced the results:
+"Elsie Carleton, thirteen. Lulu Bell, nine. Marjorie Graham, five.
+Gertie Rossiter, three, and Winifred Hamilton, one."
+
+The presidency of the Club was unanimously accorded to Elsie.
+
+Then came an hour of games and dancing, followed at half-past nine, by
+light refreshments. But although Marjorie entered into the gayety with
+the rest, her heart was very heavy, and she did not join in the
+congratulations which were being showered upon the new president, in
+which even Lulu's mother and aunt, who had come downstairs as soon as
+the initiation was over, joined heartily. Beverly Randolph was a general
+favorite, and devoted himself in turn to almost every girl in the room,
+but he, too, held aloof from the new president. He and Marjorie had no
+opportunity for private conversation till the refreshments were being
+served, when he approached her corner, with a plate of ice-cream.
+
+"Your 'Boring Life of New York' was fine," he remarked, pleasantly,
+taking the vacant chair by her side. "I quite agree with your sentiment.
+I voted for you."
+
+"You are very kind," said Marjorie, blushing, "but it wasn't nearly as
+good as several of the others. Lulu's was splendid. You--you didn't like
+Elsie's?"
+
+"No, I didn't," said Beverly bluntly, "and you didn't, either."
+
+Marjorie's cheeks were crimson, but she made one desperate effort to
+save her cousin.
+
+"It was a beautiful little poem," she faltered, "only--only I
+thought--but perhaps I was mistaken--I'm sure Elsie wouldn't have done
+such a thing; it must have been a mistake."
+
+Beverly said nothing, but he did not look convinced.
+
+"Where--where did you see it before?" Marjorie went on desperately.
+
+"In an old volume of 'St. Nicholas' at home. My mother used to take the
+magazine when she was a little girl, and has all the volumes bound. I
+used to be very fond of some of the old stories, and so was my sister
+Barbara. I remember she learned that poem once to recite to Mother on
+her birthday."
+
+Marjorie's heart sank like lead. Well did she remember the old worn
+volumes of St. Nicholas--relics of her own mother's childhood--over
+which she had pored on many a rainy day at home. She cast an appealing
+glance at Beverly.
+
+"You won't tell?" she said unsteadily.
+
+"Of course I won't; I'm not a cad. And look here, Marjorie; I wouldn't
+bother my head about it if I were you. Miss Elsie is quite able to fight
+her own battles."
+
+"But she is my cousin," said Marjorie in a very low voice, "and I'm so
+ashamed."
+
+Beverly's face softened, and his voice was very kind when he answered:
+
+"You're a brick, Marjorie; lots of girls wouldn't care. But don't let it
+make you unhappy. If I were you I'd have it out with Elsie; perhaps
+she'll have some excuse to offer."
+
+Before Marjorie could answer Lulu came up to ask Beverly to come and be
+introduced to Betty Randall, who was particularly anxious to meet him,
+and he was obliged to hurry away.
+
+"What were you and that English girl talking about so long?" Elsie
+inquired, as she and Marjorie were driving home together half an hour
+later.
+
+Marjorie roused herself from uncomfortable reflections with a start.
+
+"Oh, nothing in particular," she said, "at least nothing you would be
+interested in. She was telling me about her brother, who used to be a
+cripple till Beverly Randolph's uncle cured him. He is a fine,
+strong-looking boy now--did you notice him?"
+
+"Yes. Did you know their uncle was a lord?"
+
+"Is he?" said Marjorie indifferently, and once more relapsed into
+silence. Elsie regarded her cousin in evident surprise.
+
+"What's the matter, Marjorie?" she inquired curiously. "You seem to be
+in the dumps, and I'm sure I can't see why. You really danced much
+better than I supposed you could. You're not jealous, are you?"
+
+"Jealous," repeated Marjorie, stupidly, "what about?"
+
+"Why, your poem, of course, because you didn't get more votes. It really
+wasn't bad; I heard several of the girls say so."
+
+"Of course I wasn't jealous," said Marjorie, indignantly. "I never
+dreamed of getting many votes. I think people were very kind to vote for
+me at all; it was just silly doggerel."
+
+"Well, you needn't fly into a temper even if you're not jealous,"
+laughed Elsie. "Do you know you never congratulated me on my poem. I
+think people thought it rather queer, when every one was saying how much
+they liked it."
+
+"I couldn't," said Marjorie in a low voice.
+
+"Why not?" demanded Elsie, sharply. She was evidently startled but
+beyond a slightly heightened color, she showed no sign of embarrassment.
+
+"I'll tell you when we get home," whispered Marjorie, with a glance at
+Hortense, who was sitting in the opposite seat.
+
+Not another word was spoken until the carriage drew up before the big
+hotel. Mr. and Mrs. Carleton were out, and the girls went at once to
+their rooms, without exchanging the usual good-nights. Marjorie's heart
+was beating painfully fast, and her cheeks were burning, but she did not
+waver in her determination to "have it out" with Elsie before they went
+to bed. So instead of beginning to undress, she sat down to wait until
+Hortense should have finished waiting on her cousin and gone away. She
+had, with some difficulty, at last succeeded in convincing the maid that
+she did not require assistance herself.
+
+"Elsie will be terribly angry," she told herself mournfully, "and it
+will be very horrid and uncomfortable, but it wouldn't be honest not to
+let her know I recognized that poem. Perhaps she can explain--oh, I do
+hope she can--and then I can tell Beverly, and everything will be all
+right again."
+
+She heard the outer door close behind Hortense, and was just about to go
+to her cousin's room, when her door was pushed unceremoniously open and
+Elsie herself came in. Elsie's cheeks were flushed, and her eyes were
+flashing, but whether with anger or excitement Marjorie could not tell.
+
+"Well," she began in a tone which she evidently intended to be quite
+cheerful and indifferent, "I've gotten rid of Hortense. She seemed to
+think she ought to stay till Papa and Mamma came home, but I told her we
+didn't need her. Now you can tell me what you said you would when we
+got home. Do be quick about it, though, for I'm awfully sleepy, and I
+want to go to bed."
+
+Before answering Marjorie went over to her cousin's side, and laid a
+timid hand on her shoulder.
+
+"Elsie," she said gently, "I'm so sorry; I hate to say it, but I've got
+to. It's--about that poem; I've read it before. You didn't think you
+really made it up, did you?"
+
+With an angry gesture Elsie pushed away her cousin's hand.
+
+"Of course I made it up," she said angrily; "how dare you say I didn't?
+I don't believe you ever saw a poem like it before in your life; you
+only say so because you're jealous."
+
+"Oh, Elsie, how can you say such dreadful things?" cried poor Marjorie,
+clasping her hands in her distress, and on the verge of tears. "How
+could I possibly be jealous of any one so much cleverer than myself?
+I've been so proud of you, Elsie--indeed, indeed I have--but I read that
+poem in an old 'St. Nicholas' at home. I remembered it because it was so
+pretty. Beverly Randolph remembers it, too; he--"
+
+"Beverly Randolph!" cried Elsie, her eyes flashing ominously; "so you
+told him about it, did you? That accounts for his not congratulating me
+when all the others did. Marjorie Graham, you are the meanest, most
+contemptible girl I have ever known. To think of your doing such a thing
+after all Papa and Mamma have done for you! But if you suppose for one
+moment that any one is going to take your word against mine, you'll find
+yourself very much mistaken. I shall write a note to Beverly Randolph
+to-morrow. A nice opinion he must have of you already--boys hate
+sneaks."
+
+"I'm not a sneak," retorted Marjorie, her own eyes beginning to flash.
+"I wouldn't have told Beverly Randolph or any one else such a thing for
+the world; I would have been ashamed to have them know. He recognized
+the poem, too. I saw he did the minute you began to read--and afterwards
+he spoke of it. But he won't tell; he promised not to, and--oh, Elsie I
+thought you might be able to explain it in some way."
+
+"There isn't anything to explain," said Elsie, obstinately. "If you and
+that horrid Randolph boy choose to say wicked things about me you can,
+but you are not everybody, and when my friends hear about it I think
+they'll have something to say." And without another word, Elsie walked
+out of the room, slamming the door behind her, and her cousin was left
+to cry herself to sleep undisturbed.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+THE THINGS THAT HURT
+
+
+MARJORIE awoke the next morning with a very heavy heart. Although
+Elsie's companionship had not proved quite all she had anticipated,
+still they had hitherto been perfectly good friends. Marjorie had looked
+upon her clever cousin with genuine admiration, and if in some things
+Elsie had disappointed her, she had explained the fact to herself by
+remembering how different life in New York was from life in Arizona.
+
+"Elsie has so many friends," she had told herself over and over again;
+"of course I can't expect her to be as fond of me as I am of her."
+
+But last night's discovery had been a cruel disappointment, and her
+cousin's parting words had hurt more than perhaps Elsie herself fully
+realized. She had lain awake a long time, hoping--almost expecting--that
+Elsie would come back to tell her she was sorry. She was so ready to
+forgive, herself, and even to make allowances, but no sound had come
+from the adjoining room, and she had fallen asleep at last, still
+hoping that morning might bring about the longed-for reconciliation.
+
+It was still very early, but accustomed all her life to the early hours
+of the ranch, she had not yet learned to sleep as late as the other
+members of the family. She tossed about in bed for half an hour, vainly
+trying to go to sleep again, and then suddenly determined to get up.
+
+"If I could only have a canter on Roland, or a good long tramp before
+breakfast," she thought, with a regretful sigh, "I know it would clear
+the cobwebs from my brain, and I should feel ever so much better. But
+since that is out of the question, I may as well answer Undine's letter.
+She will like a letter all to herself, and I shall have plenty of time
+to write before the others are up."
+
+Accordingly, as soon as she was dressed, she sat down at her desk, and
+began a letter, which she was determined to make as bright and cheerful
+as possible.
+
+
+ "NEW YORK, November 28th.
+
+ "DEAR UNDINE:
+
+ "I was delighted to get your nice letter last
+ week, but this is the very first spare moment I
+ have had in which to answer it. It is still very
+ early--only a little after six--and nobody else is
+ up, but I can't get accustomed to the queer New
+ York hours. Just think, nobody has breakfast much
+ before half past eight, and instead of dinner at
+ twelve or one, we don't dine till half past seven.
+ I thought I should be dreadfully hungry when I
+ first heard at what hour New York people dined,
+ but really luncheon--which they have in the middle
+ of the day--is almost the same as dinner. I have
+ eaten so much since I came here that I am sure I
+ must have gained pounds already.
+
+ "I wrote Father all about the football game, and
+ what a wonderful day I had. Since then we have had
+ Thanksgiving, and that was very pleasant too,
+ though of course not as exciting as the football
+ match and the motor ride. We all dined with Aunt
+ Julia's sister, Mrs. Lamont. Mrs. Lamont's son,
+ who is an artist, and very clever, drew funny
+ sketches on all the dinner cards, and his sister
+ made up the verses. I think my card was lovely; it
+ had a picture of a girl riding a horse, and the
+ verse underneath was:
+
+ "'Welcome, Western stranger
+ To our Thanksgiving board,
+ May you have a jolly time,
+ And not be very bored.'
+
+ "Miss Annie says she isn't a poet, and I don't
+ suppose any of the verses were really very good,
+ but they made everybody laugh. It was funny to
+ have 'board' and 'bored' in the same verse, but
+ Miss Lamont said she got hopelessly stuck when she
+ had written the first two lines, and had to end up
+ with 'bored,' because it was the only word she
+ could think of to rhyme with 'the Thanksgiving
+ board.' I sat next to Mr. Ward--Aunt Julia's other
+ sister's husband--and he was very kind, and told
+ funny stories all the time. After dinner we had
+ charades, and played old-fashioned games, which
+ were great fun.
+
+ "Lulu Bell, one of the girls at school, has gotten
+ up a Club, which is to meet every Friday evening
+ at the different girls' houses. We had the first
+ meeting last night, and every girl had to write a
+ poem in order to become a member. Some of the
+ poems were very clever, and some very funny. One
+ girl made 'close' rhyme with 'nose.' My poem was
+ silly, but I am going to send it to Aunt Jessie,
+ because she likes to keep all my foolish little
+ things.
+
+ "I am so glad you are happy, and are growing so
+ fond of Mother and Aunt Jessie. The more people I
+ meet, the more convinced I am that they are the
+ two of the very best in the world. I am glad,
+ too, that you are trying not to worry about the
+ things you can't remember. I have told the girls
+ at school about you, and they all think you are
+ the most wonderful person they have ever heard of.
+ The lady who took me to the football game had a
+ little girl who was killed in the San Francisco
+ earthquake. Her brother told me about it, and it
+ is a very sad story. He asked me not to mention
+ you to his mother, because it always distresses
+ her to hear anything about the earthquake. She is
+ perfectly lovely, and so bright and jolly that it
+ seems hard to realize she has had such a great
+ sorrow, but her son says that is because she is so
+ unselfish, and is always thinking of other people.
+ Isn't it wonderful how many brave, unselfish
+ people there are in the world?
+
+ "I have met a surgeon. He is the gentleman in
+ whose car we went to New Haven last Saturday, and
+ he is just as nice and kind as he can be. He is
+ very clever too, and has performed some wonderful
+ operations, but oh, Undine dear, I am afraid I
+ shall never have the courage to speak to him about
+ Aunt Jessie. Arizona is so far away, and it would
+ be so terribly presumptuous to even suggest the
+ possibility of a great surgeon's taking such a
+ journey to see a person he didn't even know.
+ Still, if it could only happen--I pray about it
+ every day.
+
+ "I must stop writing now, and study a little
+ before breakfast. Be sure to write again very
+ soon, and don't forget to give me every scrap of
+ news about every one and everything. Kiss Roland's
+ dear soft nose for me, and tell him not to forget
+ his old mistress. Heaps of love and kisses for
+ everybody, with a good share for yourself thrown
+ in, from
+
+ "Your true friend,
+ "MARJORIE GRAHAM."
+
+When Elsie entered the sitting-room, she found her uncle and cousin
+already at the breakfast table. Mrs. Carleton had a headache, and was
+breakfasting in bed. Mr. Carleton's morning greeting was as pleasant and
+affectionate as usual, but Elsie merely vouchsafed a slight nod, and a
+muttered "good-morning," and then kept her eyes steadily on her plate,
+as though to avoid any friendly overtures on Marjorie's part.
+
+"What are you little girls going to do to-day?" Mr. Carleton inquired
+pleasantly, as he rose from the table.
+
+"I'm going to dancing-school this morning," said Elsie, "and then to
+lunch with Carol."
+
+Mr. Carlton glanced inquiringly at Marjorie.
+
+"And you?" he asked kindly--"are you going to dancing-school, too?"
+
+Marjorie hesitated, and her color rose. It had been suggested that she
+should accompany Elsie to the dancing class that morning, and that Aunt
+Julia should make arrangements about having her admitted as a regular
+pupil, but after what had happened last night she did not feel at all
+sure that Elsie would desire her society.
+
+"I'm--I'm not quite sure," she faltered; "I think Aunt Julia may want me
+to go out with her."
+
+Mr. Carleton looked a little troubled, and when he left the room he
+beckoned his daughter to follow him.
+
+"Elsie dear," he said in a rather low voice, as he put on his overcoat
+in the entry, "I wish you would try to do something to give Marjorie a
+good time to-day. She is looking rather down-hearted this morning, and
+I'm afraid she may be a little homesick. Can't you arrange to take her
+out to luncheon with you?"
+
+Elsie shrugged her shoulders.
+
+"She hasn't been invited," she said, shortly. She did not think it
+necessary to add that Carol Hastings had proposed that Marjorie should
+make one of the party, but that she herself had opposed the plan,
+declaring that they would have a much pleasanter time by themselves.
+
+Mr. Carleton frowned.
+
+"I should think you knew Carol Hastings well enough to ask her if you
+might bring Marjorie with you," he said impatiently. "Remember, Elsie,
+what I have told you several times before; I won't have Marjorie
+neglected."
+
+Now it was rather unfortunate that Mr. Carleton should have chosen just
+this particular time for reminding his daughter of her duty. As a rule,
+his words would have produced the desired effect, for Elsie stood
+considerably in awe of her father, but just at present she was very
+angry with Marjorie, and this admonition only made her angrier still.
+
+"Marjorie is all right," she said, sulkily; "she manages to have a good
+time wherever she goes. If you knew as much about her as I do you
+wouldn't worry for fear she might be neglected."
+
+Mr. Carleton did not look satisfied, but he had an appointment to keep,
+and there was no time for argument, so, after giving his daughter a
+good-bye kiss, and telling her to be an unselfish little girl, he
+hurried away, and had soon forgotten the incident in the interest of
+more important matters.
+
+Elsie did not go back to the parlor, but went at once to her mother's
+room, where she remained for some time with the door closed. Marjorie,
+having finished her breakfast, wandered aimlessly over to the window,
+where she stood looking down at the crowds of people and vehicles in the
+street below. It was a lovely morning and, early as it was, the park
+seemed full of children. Some had already mounted their ponies, and
+others were on roller skates or bicycles. How Marjorie longed to join
+them, but going out alone was strictly forbidden. She was feeling very
+unhappy, and more homesick than at any time since coming to New York.
+
+"I must get something to do or I shall make a goose of myself and begin
+to cry," she said desperately, and picking up the first book she found
+on the table, she plunged into it haphazard, and when Elsie returned she
+found her cousin to all appearances quite absorbed in "The Letters of
+Queen Victoria."
+
+Elsie did not speak, but seating herself at the piano, began practicing
+exercises as if her life depended on it. Marjorie closed her book, and
+sat watching her cousin in silence for several minutes; then she spoke.
+
+"Elsie."
+
+"Well, what is it?" inquired Elsie, wheeling round on the piano stool.
+
+"Aren't you going to be friends with me?"
+
+"I certainly am not unless you intend to apologize for the outrageous
+things you said to me last night. I've been telling Mamma about it, and
+she is very angry."
+
+Marjorie rose.
+
+"I can't apologize, Elsie; you know I can't," she said, steadily, and
+without another word she turned and left the room.
+
+When Mrs. Carleton entered her niece's room an hour later, she found
+Marjorie curled up in a little disconsolate heap on the bed, her face
+buried in the pillows. Aunt Julia was still in her morning wrapper, and
+was looking decidedly worried.
+
+"Marjorie," she began in a rather fretful tone, as she closed the door,
+and sank wearily into the arm-chair, "I am very much distressed by what
+Elsie tells me. I have come to ask you what it all means."
+
+Marjorie raised a swollen, tear-stained face from the pillows.
+
+"What has Elsie told you?" she inquired anxiously.
+
+Mrs. Carleton pressed her hand to her forehead.
+
+"O dear!" she sighed, "my head aches so this morning, and I do dislike
+all these quarrels and arguments. I did hope you and Elsie would get on
+together without quarreling."
+
+"I don't want to quarrel," protested Marjorie; "what does Elsie say
+about me?"
+
+"She says you have been very unkind and unjust to her. She won't tell me
+what it is all about. I tried to make her tell, but Elsie is so
+honorable; she hates tale-bearing. But I know you have hurt her pride,
+and made her very unhappy."
+
+Marjorie was silent; what could she say? And after a moment her aunt
+went on in her fretful, complaining voice.
+
+"I don't believe you have the least idea what a noble, splendid girl
+Elsie is. It was rather hard for her at first when she heard you were
+coming to spend the winter, for of course it couldn't help making some
+difference. She has never had to share anything with any one else
+before. But she was so sweet and unselfish about it, and I did hope
+things might go on as they had begun. But now you have begun to
+quarrel, and I suppose there will be nothing but trouble and
+unpleasantness all winter."
+
+"She was so sweet and unselfish about it!" How those words hurt
+Marjorie, and all the time she had been thinking that Elsie had looked
+forward to meeting her almost, if not quite as much, as she had looked
+forward to knowing the cousin who was "the next best thing to a sister."
+It was only by a mighty effort that she managed to choke back the flood
+of scalding tears, which threatened to overwhelm her.
+
+"I'm very sorry, Aunt Julia," she said tremulously; "I didn't mean to
+quarrel with Elsie. If she had told you what it was about perhaps you
+would have understood."
+
+"Well, she wouldn't tell," said Mrs. Carleton, crossly, "so there is no
+use in talking about that. All I want to say to you is that I am very
+much annoyed, and sincerely hope nothing so unpleasant will happen
+again. Elsie has gone to dancing-school, and Hortense has gone with her,
+as my head was so bad. Now I am going back to my room to lie down for a
+while; perhaps I may be better by luncheon time."
+
+That was the most unhappy day Marjorie had ever spent in her life. It
+seemed to her as if the morning would never end, and when her aunt
+appeared at luncheon she still wore an air of injured dignity, and
+entertained Marjorie during the meal, with a long account of Elsie's
+many accomplishments, a subject of which her niece was becoming heartily
+tired, although she would scarcely have admitted the fact even to
+herself. Soon after luncheon Mr. Carleton telephoned to say that he
+would come uptown in time to drive with his wife, and Aunt Julia
+proposed that Marjorie should go for a walk with Hortense. The girl's
+own head was aching by this time, and she was glad of a brisk walk in
+the keen, frosty air, but she was so unusually silent and preoccupied,
+that the maid asked her anxiously if she "had the homesickness."
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie, with a catch in her voice, "I've got it badly
+to-day."
+
+"Ah, I understand," murmured Hortense, softly, "Mademoiselle is like
+me--I, too, often have the homesickness."
+
+Elsie did not reach home till after five, as Carol's mother had taken
+the two girls to the theater, and even then she took no notice of
+Marjorie, but went at once to her mother's room, where Marjorie heard
+her giving a long and animated account of the play she had seen.
+
+"By the way," remarked Mr. Carleton at dinner that evening, "I forgot to
+ask about the Club--how did the poems turn out?"
+
+There was a moment's embarrassed silence, and Marjorie's heart began to
+beat very fast; then Elsie spoke.
+
+"They were all very silly," she said, indifferently. "I told Lulu it was
+nonsense having all the girls write poems."
+
+"Whose poem was the best?" Mr. Carleton asked.
+
+"They made me president of the Club," said Elsie, her eyes bent on her
+plate; "my poem got the most votes."
+
+"I was sure it would," murmured Mrs. Carleton, with an adoring glance at
+her clever daughter. "Why didn't you tell us about it before,
+darling--you knew how interested we would be?"
+
+"Let me see the poem," said Mr. Carleton, good-naturedly; "I should like
+to judge its merits for myself."
+
+"I can't; I've torn it up." Elsie tried to speak in a tone of complete
+indifference, but her cheeks were crimson, and her father watched her
+curiously.
+
+"My darling child, how very foolish!" remonstrated Mrs. Carleton. "You
+know your father and I always want to see everything you write. Why in
+the world did you tear it up?"
+
+"Oh, it wasn't any good," said Elsie, with an uneasy glance at Marjorie;
+"some of the girls thought Lulu's poem was better."
+
+"I don't believe it was, though," Mrs. Carleton maintained with
+conviction. "Wasn't Elsie's poem much the best, Marjorie?"
+
+It was a dreadful moment for poor Marjorie. She had never told a lie in
+her life, and yet how could she offend her uncle and aunt, who were
+doing so much for her, and who both adored Elsie? She cast an appealing
+glance at her cousin, and remained silent.
+
+"Oh, you needn't ask Marjorie," remarked Elsie, with a disagreeable
+laugh; "she doesn't like my poem. She only got five votes herself, so I
+suppose it's rather hard for her to judge of other people's poetry."
+
+Mr. Carleton frowned, and Mrs. Carleton looked distressed, but no more
+was said on the subject, for which Marjorie felt sincerely thankful.
+
+The next day was Sunday, and the most unhappy, homesick day Marjorie had
+spent in New York. Her uncle was the only member of the family who
+continued to treat her as usual. Elsie scarcely spoke to her, and Aunt
+Julia, though evidently making an effort to be kind, showed so plainly
+by her manner that she was both hurt and displeased, that poor
+Marjorie's heart grew heavier and heavier. They all went to church in
+the morning, and in the afternoon Elsie went for a drive with her
+mother, and Mr. Carleton retired to his own room to read and write
+letters. Marjorie began her usual home letter, but had not written half
+a page when she broke down, and spent the next half hour in having a
+good cry, which was perhaps the most satisfactory thing she could have
+done under the circumstances.
+
+She had just dried her eyes, and having made a brave resolution not to
+be so foolish again, was sitting down with the intention of going on
+with her letter, when she heard her uncle's voice calling her from the
+sitting-room.
+
+"Come here, Marjorie," said Mr. Carleton, kindly, as his niece appeared
+in answer to his summons. "Sit down and let us have a little talk before
+the others come home."
+
+Marjorie complied. She hoped devoutly that her uncle would not notice
+that she had been crying, but perhaps Uncle Henry's eyes were sharper
+than his family always suspected.
+
+"Marjorie," he said abruptly, "I want you to tell me what this trouble
+is between you and Elsie."
+
+Marjorie gave a little gasp, and her cheeks grew pink.
+
+"I--I'm afraid I can't tell you, Uncle Henry," she faltered; "you had
+better ask Elsie."
+
+"I have asked her, and so has your aunt, but she refused to tell us
+anything except that you have quarreled about something, and that you
+have treated her rather unkindly."
+
+Marjorie's eyes flashed indignantly, and she bit her lips to keep back
+the angry words.
+
+"Now I happen to know a good deal about these little quarrels of
+Elsie's," Mr. Carleton went on quietly. "She is a good girl, and a
+clever one, too, but she has her faults and I have no reason to suppose
+that you are any more to blame than she in this case. All I want is a
+clear account of what happened, and then I can settle this tempest in a
+teapot, which I can see has been making you both unhappy for the past
+two days."
+
+By this time Marjorie had succeeded in controlling her temper, and her
+voice was quite clear and steady as she answered--
+
+"I am very sorry, Uncle Henry, but if Elsie hasn't told you what the
+trouble is, I am afraid I can't tell either. Please don't be angry, or
+think me disrespectful, but I can't tell; it wouldn't be fair."
+
+Mr. Carleton was evidently displeased.
+
+"Very well," he said, turning away coldly, and taking up a book, "I have
+no more to say on the matter. I am sorry, for I hoped you would have
+sufficient confidence in your aunt and me to trust us, and confide in
+us. I do not wish to force you to tell us anything against your will,
+but you must remember that your mother has placed you under our care."
+
+The tears rushed to Marjorie's eyes.
+
+"Oh, Uncle Henry!" she began, then checked herself abruptly, and, with a
+half suppressed sob, turned and fled back to her own room.
+
+It was more than an hour later when Elsie presented herself at her
+cousin's door.
+
+"May I come in, Marjorie?" she inquired in a rather conciliatory tone.
+
+Marjorie looked up from the letter she was writing; her face brightening
+with sudden hope.
+
+"Of course you may," she said, heartily.
+
+"Oh, Elsie, do let us make up; I can't stand not being friends with
+people I love."
+
+Elsie advanced slowly into the room and closed the door.
+
+"Papa has been talking to me," she said, "and I have promised him to
+forgive you for what you said to me the other night. You--you didn't
+tell him anything, did you?"
+
+"No," said Marjorie indignantly, "of course I didn't. He asked me, but I
+wouldn't tell. I'm afraid I made him angry."
+
+Elsie looked much relieved.
+
+"That's all right," she said, speaking more pleasantly than she had done
+since the meeting of the Poetry Club. "We won't say any more about it.
+I've torn up that silly poem, and nobody is going to remember it. If
+Beverly Randolph should ever say anything to you, you can tell him it
+was just a joke. Now come into my room, and I'll tell you all about the
+good time Carol and I had yesterday."
+
+But although Marjorie accepted the olive branch, and she and Elsie were
+apparently as good friends as ever that evening, her confidence in her
+cousin had been cruelly shaken, and she told herself sadly that she
+could never feel quite the same towards Elsie again. Still, it was a
+great comfort to be on good terms once more, and to see the worried
+expression disappear from Aunt Julia's face, even though she could not
+help feeling a slight shock on hearing her aunt remark in a low tone to
+her uncle at the dinner table:
+
+"Isn't Elsie sweet? I really think she has the most lovable, forgiving
+disposition I have ever known."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII
+
+BEVERLY SINGS "MANDALAY"
+
+
+IT was a stormy December afternoon, about ten days later, and Marjorie
+was alone in her room preparing her lessons for the next day. Elsie had
+gone shopping with her mother, and Hortense had been sent on an errand.
+Marjorie was aroused from the intricacies of a difficult mathematical
+problem by a ring at the bell, and on going to the door, found Beverly
+Randolph standing on the threshold.
+
+It was the first time the two had been alone together since the evening
+of the Initiation, and in spite of herself, Marjorie felt her cheeks
+growing hot as she asked the visitor to come in. But Beverly had no
+intention of referring to unpleasant bygones.
+
+"I'm so glad to find you at home," he said, with his pleasant smile and
+in the voice that always put people at their ease. "My mother sent me to
+ask if you would come and sit with her for a while this afternoon,
+provided you have nothing more important to do. She is laid up with a
+cold, and is feeling rather blue and forlorn."
+
+"I should love to come," said Marjorie, her face brightening at the
+prospect. "I was afraid your mother might not be well when I didn't see
+her at luncheon. I hope she isn't really ill."
+
+"Oh, no; nothing but a disagreeable cold, that has kept her in the house
+for the past two days. I'm glad you can come, for I'm sure it will cheer
+her up."
+
+"All right," said Marjorie; "I'll come in just a minute. I must leave a
+note for Aunt Julia in case she should get home before I do."
+
+Marjorie found Mrs. Randolph sitting in an arm-chair by the fire,
+looking rather pale and tired, but her greeting to the girl was just as
+kind and cheerful as usual, and Marjorie hoped that it was only in her
+imagination that she saw that sad, wistful expression in her kind
+friend's eyes.
+
+"Now sit down and tell me about all you have been doing," said Mrs.
+Randolph, when the first greetings had been exchanged. "I love to hear
+about the things girls are interested in. My little Barbara used to tell
+me of all her good times as well as her troubles. I am so glad you have
+brought your work--what are you making?"
+
+"A shawl for my aunt's Christmas present; one of the girls at school
+taught me the stitch, and I think it's going to be very pretty. I shall
+have to work hard, though, to finish it in time. Do you like the color?"
+
+"Very much," said Mrs. Randolph. "I suppose this will be your first
+Christmas away from home?"
+
+A shadow crossed Marjorie's bright face. "I try not to think of it," she
+said. "It's going to be pretty hard, but every one has been so kind, and
+Uncle Henry and Aunt Julia are doing so much for me, that it wouldn't be
+right to be unhappy. I think perhaps if I keep very busy I shall manage
+to get on all right. Aunt Jessie says that's a good way of making the
+best of things that can't be helped."
+
+Mrs. Randolph said nothing, but the look she gave Marjorie was such an
+understanding one that the girl's heart warmed towards her more and
+more. The next half-hour slipped away very pleasantly. Mrs. Randolph was
+one of those rare people who have the power of drawing others out, and
+Marjorie chatted away to her of school and school-friends, and all the
+little unimportant happenings of her New York life, with almost as much
+freedom as she would have talked to her mother or aunt. Then Mrs.
+Randolph asked her if she liked reading aloud, and when Marjorie
+assured her that she had read a great deal to Aunt Jessie, she explained
+that, owing to a cold in her eyes, she had not been able to read herself
+for several days. Marjorie was delighted to be of real use, and they
+were soon deep in an interesting story. Marjorie read aloud very well,
+and it was an accomplishment of which she was rather proud.
+
+At five o'clock Beverly, who had gone to his room to "cram," as he
+expressed it, returned, and his mother rang the bell for tea.
+
+"Marjorie and I have had a delightful afternoon," she said; "she seems
+to be almost as fond of reading aloud as I am of listening. I am going
+to be very selfish and ask her to come again to-morrow, provided she can
+spare the time. The doctor doesn't want me to use my eyes much for
+several days."
+
+"I shall just love to come," declared Marjorie eagerly, "and I can
+easily manage it. My lessons aren't very hard, and I always have a good
+deal of time to myself every day."
+
+"Don't you and your cousin ever go off together in the afternoons?"
+Beverly inquired bluntly.
+
+Marjorie blushed.
+
+"Not very often," she admitted reluctantly. "You see, Elsie has so many
+more friends than I have, and they are always doing things together. I
+like the girls at school ever so much, and they are all very nice and
+kind to me, but of course they don't know me very well yet."
+
+"How did the last meeting of the Club come off?" Beverly asked. "I was
+sorry I couldn't go, but I had another engagement."
+
+Marjorie was conscious of a sensation of embarrassment at this mention
+of the Club, for she had not forgotten the secret that she and Beverly
+shared together, but she tried to answer quite naturally.
+
+"Oh, it was very pleasant. The girls have decided to sew for the little
+blind children at the 'Home For Blind Babies.' We sewed for three
+quarters of an hour, and then Carol said we might as well stop, and
+begin to get ready for the boys. They weren't invited till nine, but
+some of the girls seemed to think it would take some time to get ready
+for them, though there really wasn't anything in particular to do. I
+hope they'll sew a little longer next time, for if they don't I'm afraid
+the Club won't accomplish very much."
+
+Mrs. Randolph and Beverly both laughed, and then Beverly sauntered over
+to the piano, and began to drum.
+
+"Sing something, dear," said his mother. "Are you fond of music,
+Marjorie?"
+
+"I think I should be if I had a chance of hearing much," said Marjorie,
+smiling, "but until I came to New York I had scarcely ever heard any
+music except the boys singing on the ranch. Mother used to play a little
+when she was a girl, but we haven't any piano. I love to hear Elsie
+play."
+
+"Well, I think you will like to hear Beverly sing; you know he is on the
+college Glee Club. Sing that pretty Irish ballad, 'She Is Far From the
+Land,' Beverly; I am sure Marjorie will like that."
+
+Beverly laughingly protested that he had no voice whatever, and was sure
+Marjorie would want to run away the moment he began to sing, but
+good-naturedly yielded to his mother's request, and after striking a few
+preliminary chords, began in a clear tenor voice--
+
+ "'She is far from the land where the young hero lies.'"
+
+Marjorie--who had a real love for music--was much impressed, and at the
+close of the ballad, begged so earnestly for more, that Beverly could
+not help being flattered, and his mother beamed with pleasure.
+
+Beverly sang several more ballads, and one or two college songs, and
+then, after strumming idly on the piano for a moment, as if uncertain
+what to sing next, he suddenly broke into an air Marjorie knew.
+
+ "'In the old Mulniam pagoda,
+ Lookin' eastward to the sea;
+ There's a Burma gal a-waitin',
+ And I know she thinks of me;
+ For the wind is in the palm-trees,
+ And the Temple bells they say,
+ Come you back, you British soldier,
+ Come you back to Mandalay.
+
+ "'Come you back to Mandalay,
+ Where the old flotilla lay,
+ Can't you 'ear their paddles chunkin'
+ From Rangoon to Mandalay?
+ On the road to Mandalay,
+ Where the flyin' fishes play,
+ And the sun comes up like thunder,
+ Outer China 'cross the bay.'"
+
+Marjorie turned with a start, arrested by the sound of a low,
+half-suppressed sob. Mrs. Randolph had covered her face with her hands,
+and was crying softly. At the same moment Beverly also turned, and, with
+an exclamation of dismay, hastily sprang to his feet, and hurried to
+his mother's side.
+
+"Oh, Mother dear, I'm so sorry!" cried the boy, dropping on his knees,
+and trying to draw Mrs. Randolph's hands down from her face. "I never
+thought; it was very careless. Oh, Mother darling, please don't
+cry--please forgive me!"
+
+At the sound of her son's voice, Mrs. Randolph looked up, and tried to
+smile through her tears.
+
+"Never mind, dear," she said, gently, "it was very foolish of me, but
+that song--you know how fond she was of it."
+
+"Yes, Mother, I know; I was a brute to have forgotten." And Beverly put
+his strong young arms tenderly round his mother. Mrs. Randolph laid her
+head on his shoulder for a moment, as if she found comfort in the touch,
+and then she roused herself with an effort, dried her eyes, and turned
+to Marjorie.
+
+"You must excuse me for being so foolish, dear," she said, "but that was
+my little Barbara's favorite song; she was always asking Beverly to sing
+it. I don't think I have heard it since--since she went away."
+
+There were tears of sympathy in Marjorie's eyes, and although she said
+nothing, the look she gave her friend touched Mrs. Randolph, and
+perhaps comforted her more than any words would have done.
+
+[Illustration: "OH, MOTHER DEAR, I'M SO SORRY!"--_Page 243._]
+
+Beverly did not sing again, but quietly closed the piano, and for the
+rest of the afternoon his merry boyish face was unusually grave.
+
+"You have given me a great deal of pleasure," Mrs. Randolph said, when
+Marjorie at last rose to go. "I hope you will come again to-morrow. It
+is very tiresome to have to stay in the house all day, especially when
+one hasn't the solace of reading."
+
+Marjorie said she would surely come again, and then she hurried back to
+their own apartment, where she found her aunt and cousin, who had come
+in some time before.
+
+Mrs. Carleton had read Marjorie's note, and had no objection to the
+girl's spending as much time with the invalid as she liked.
+
+"Was Beverly at home?" Elsie inquired, anxiously, following her cousin
+to her room.
+
+"He was there some of the time," said Marjorie; "he had lessons to do at
+first, but he came in for tea. Mrs. Randolph asked him to sing--he has a
+beautiful voice."
+
+"You certainly have a way of getting what you want," remarked Elsie
+in a rather dissatisfied tone; "I wonder how you manage."
+
+"Manage what?" demanded Marjorie in amazement; "what in the world do you
+mean, Elsie?"
+
+Elsie shrugged her shoulders.
+
+"Oh, I guess you know," she said, sarcastically, and walked out of the
+room, leaving Marjorie very much puzzled, and more than a little
+uncomfortable.
+
+Mrs. Randolph did not recover from her cold as quickly as she had hoped,
+and she was confined to the house for nearly a week. Her eyes, too,
+continued troublesome, and reading and sewing were strictly forbidden.
+So it came to be quite a natural thing that Marjorie should spend an
+hour every afternoon in the Randolphs' apartment, and the girl grew to
+look forward to those hours as the pleasantest of the whole day.
+
+"You remind me more of my little Barbara every day," Mrs. Randolph said
+to her once, and Marjorie felt that she had received a great compliment.
+She was growing to feel a deep interest in this Barbara, whose tragic
+death had cast such a shadow of sorrow over her mother's life, but she
+had too much tact, and was too kind-hearted, to show undue curiosity on
+a painful subject, and so, though there were many questions she would
+have liked to ask about this unknown Barbara, she refrained from asking
+one, and was fain to content herself with the stray bits of information
+that Mrs. Randolph or Beverly occasionally let fall.
+
+When Mrs. Randolph was well again Marjorie greatly missed the daily
+chat, and pleasant hour of reading aloud. The drives with Aunt Julia,
+shut up in the brougham, with only one window open, proved a most
+unsatisfactory substitute, but her aunt was very kind, and showed so
+much real interest in the Christmas box she was preparing for her dear
+ones at home that Marjorie reproached herself bitterly for not finding
+Aunt Julia's society as agreeable as Mrs. Randolph's. But Christmas was
+drawing near, and there were times when Marjorie fought desperately
+against the homesickness, which seemed almost greater than she could
+bear.
+
+To add to everything else, she caught a feverish cold, and Mrs.
+Carleton, who was always nervous about illness, insisted on her
+remaining in the house; a state of affairs hitherto unknown to healthy
+Marjorie, who had never in her life spent a day in bed.
+
+It was on the second afternoon of headache and sore throat that Mrs.
+Randolph came to the rescue. Marjorie had come to the end of her
+resources. She had read till her eyes ached, and sewed on Christmas
+presents until she felt that she couldn't take another stitch. The
+longing for fresh air and exercise was almost beyond her endurance, and
+yet she dared not even open a window, for fear of incurring her aunt's
+displeasure. Mrs. Carleton and Elsie were out, but Hortense had been
+left in charge, with strict injunctions to see that Mademoiselle
+Marjorie kept out of draughts, and took her medicine regularly. Marjorie
+was just wondering in her desperation whether a walk up and down the
+steam-heated hotel corridor would be regarded in the light of an
+imprudence, when there was a ring at the bell, and Hortense announced
+Mrs. Randolph.
+
+"I have only just heard you were ill," the visitor said kindly, taking
+Marjorie's hand in hers, and looking with sympathetic interest into the
+pale, woe-begone face. "Your aunt told Beverly at luncheon that you had
+a bad cold. You should have let me know sooner; I can't have my kind
+little friend laid up without trying to return some of her goodness to
+me."
+
+"It wasn't goodness at all," said Marjorie, flushing with pleasure; "it
+was just having a lovely time. I was thinking only yesterday, what a
+very selfish girl I must be, for I couldn't help being sorry you didn't
+need me any more, it's so pleasant to be needed."
+
+Marjorie's voice trembled a little, for she was feeling rather weak and
+forlorn, and Mrs. Randolph drew her down beside her on the sofa.
+
+"I think I always need you, dear," she said. "I have missed your visits
+very much, and reading to myself doesn't seem half as pleasant as having
+a nice little girl read aloud to me. Still, I am glad to have the use of
+my eyes again, especially as we are going away next week."
+
+"Going away!" repeated Marjorie, and her face expressed so much dismay
+that Mrs. Randolph could not help smiling.
+
+"We are not going for good," she explained, "but Beverly's vacation
+begins next Wednesday, and he is anxious to spend Christmas at our
+Virginia home. We shall only be away about ten days."
+
+Marjorie looked much relieved.
+
+"I was afraid you meant you were going to Europe, or somewhere far
+away," she said, "and that I shouldn't see you any more. I don't know
+what I should do without you."
+
+"And I should miss you very much, too," said Mrs. Randolph, "but nothing
+so unpleasant is going to happen, I hope. What are your plans for the
+holidays?"
+
+"Oh, nothing in particular. Elsie and I are invited to several parties,
+and Aunt Julia's sister, Mrs. Ward, is having a tree on Christmas night.
+I can't help wishing the holidays were over. It will be my first
+Christmas away from home, you know."
+
+"I suppose your family will miss you as much as you miss them," Mrs.
+Randolph said, sympathetically.
+
+"Yes, I know they will, and that is one of the hardest things to bear. I
+had a letter from Undine to-day, and she says they are all very sad,
+though they are trying hard to be brave and cheerful."
+
+"Who is Undine?"
+
+"Oh, haven't I told you about her? She's a girl who lives at the ranch,
+and we call her Undine, but it isn't her real name."
+
+Mrs. Randolph looked interested.
+
+"What is her real name?" she asked, anxious to cheer Marjorie by talking
+of home and friends.
+
+Marjorie opened her lips to explain, but suddenly remembered something
+Beverly had told her. It would be scarcely possible to tell Undine's
+story without mentioning the fatal subject of the earthquake, so she
+only said:
+
+"We don't know her real name, but the people she lived with before she
+came to the ranch called her Sally. She didn't like Sally, and asked us
+to call her something else, and I suggested Undine."
+
+Mrs. Randolph laughed. "A rather romantic name for a flesh and blood
+girl," she said; "how old is your Undine?"
+
+"About fifteen, we think, but we are not sure, and she doesn't know
+herself. Lulu Bell says you have a beautiful home in Virginia. I suppose
+you will be glad to go there for the holidays."
+
+"Yes, we all love it very much. It is a dear old place; my husband's
+family have lived there for generations, and my old home, where I lived
+before I married, is only a couple of miles away."
+
+"I have always thought Virginia must be a very interesting place," said
+Marjorie. "I have read ever so many books about the early settlers in
+Jamestown. Have you read 'To Have and to Hold,' and 'White Aprons'?"
+
+"Yes, I have read both. Our home is on the James River, not far from
+Jamestown--would you like to see it?"
+
+"I should love it," said Marjorie, heartily. "I don't suppose I ever
+shall though," she added, with a sigh.
+
+"I don't see why not," said Mrs. Randolph, smiling. "How would you like
+to go home with us for the holidays?"
+
+Marjorie was speechless. For the first moment she could scarcely believe
+that her friend was in earnest.
+
+"I came this afternoon on purpose to propose it," Mrs. Randolph went on,
+convinced by the girl's flushed cheeks and sparkling eyes that there was
+no doubt about her wanting to accept the invitation. "Beverly and I were
+speaking of it last evening. We shall be alone except for Dr. Randolph,
+who is going with us, but we have some pleasant young people in the
+neighborhood, and there is generally a good deal going on at Christmas.
+I think you would have a pleasant time."
+
+"It would be the next best thing to going home," declared Marjorie,
+"but, oh, dear Mrs. Randolph, are you sure you really want me?"
+
+"Quite sure," said Mrs. Randolph, kissing her. "It will make us all
+very happy to have our nice little friend with us."
+
+"If only Aunt Julia will let me go," said Marjorie, with a vivid
+recollection of her aunt's rebuke on the evening after the football
+game.
+
+But, contrary to Marjorie's expectations, Mrs. Carleton made no
+objection to the plan, beyond hoping that the Randolphs would not find
+her niece too much care. Neither did Elsie make any of the unpleasant
+remarks her cousin expected. Since the first meeting of the Poetry Club,
+Beverly and she had not had much to say to each other. Beverly was
+always polite, but Elsie could never feel quite comfortable in his
+society, and the knowledge that he was not to share in any of the
+holiday gayeties was something of a relief. She and Marjorie were
+apparently very good friends, but there was a look in Marjorie's eyes
+sometimes when they rested on her cousin, which Elsie did not like. So
+when Mrs. Carleton consulted her daughter on the subject of Marjorie's
+going to Virginia with the Randolph's, Elsie said good-naturedly:
+
+"Oh, let her go, Mamma; she'll have a much better time than she would
+here. It would be such a bother to have to take her everywhere, and see
+she had partners at the dances, and all that. Papa would be sure to ask
+questions and make a fuss if she didn't have a good time."
+
+So the invitation was accepted, and Marjorie wrote a long, joyful letter
+to her mother, and went to bed that night, feeling happier than she had
+done since coming to New York.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII
+
+IN THE SUNNY SOUTH
+
+
+"IT'S the most beautiful place I've ever even imagined!" Marjorie spoke
+with conviction, and drew in a long, deep breath of the fresh morning
+air.
+
+She and Beverly were standing on the wide veranda at Randolph Place
+gazing off over the wide landscape, of low Virginia hills, with the wide
+river less than half a mile away. It was a glorious morning, and the
+peace and quiet seemed indescribably delightful after the noisy, stuffy
+night on the train. Beverly was very proud of his Southern home, but boy
+like, he tried not to show it.
+
+"It's pretty enough," he admitted, "but this isn't the season to see it
+at its best; you ought to come here in the spring."
+
+"It's perfect just as it is," declared Marjorie. "I've read about such
+places, but never expected to see one myself. Is that river really the
+James, and did your great-grandfather truly live in this very house?"
+
+"He most certainly did," said Beverly, laughing; "my people have lived
+here for over a hundred years. You should have heard some of my father's
+war stories. He was only a boy at the time of the war, but he had some
+exciting experiences. When I was a little chap I used to wish I had been
+alive then, too."
+
+"Oh, I love war stories!" cried Marjorie, rapturously; "are there any
+people here now who can tell them?"
+
+"Yes, indeed, plenty. I'll introduce you to old Uncle Josh. He was my
+grandfather's body servant, and went all through the war with him. He's
+over seventy now, and doesn't work any more, but he and his wife live in
+a cabin down at the quarters."
+
+"It all sounds just like a story-book," said Marjorie, with a little
+sigh of utter content. "I should think you would be tremendously proud
+of your home."
+
+"I like it all right," said Beverly, "but now hadn't you better come in
+and have some breakfast? I hear Mother and Uncle George in the
+dining-room, and I should think you'd be hungry, for it's after nine,
+and you were up before six."
+
+"Of course I was," laughed Marjorie; "I was much too excited to sleep. I
+wasn't going to miss the first sight of Virginia."
+
+The dining-room at Randolph Place was very large, and the walls were
+lined with portraits. Marjorie was so much interested in the portraits
+of great-grandfather and great-grandmother Randolph, that she came near
+forgetting to eat her breakfast, although the fried eggs and bacon, and
+waffles with maple syrup, were certainly the most delicious she had ever
+tasted. Mrs. Randolph and the doctor watched her with kindly amusement.
+Her eyes were sparkling with excitement, and there was a bright color in
+her cheeks; she seemed quite a different creature from the pale, subdued
+girl of a week before.
+
+"I declare, Barbara, I had no idea that little girl was so pretty," Dr.
+Randolph remarked in a low tone to his sister-in-law, when Marjorie and
+Beverly were in the midst of an animated discussion about Captain John
+Smith and Pocahontas.
+
+"She is charming," Mrs. Randolph answered, smiling. "It is strange how
+much environment has to do with appearance."
+
+"And now I am going to take you to your room, Marjorie," said Mrs.
+Randolph as they rose from the breakfast table. "You will want to
+unpack and wash up a little after that dusty journey. I have asked some
+cousins of ours, the Pattersons, to luncheon, and perhaps this afternoon
+you and Beverly will like to go for a ride. I needn't ask if you are
+accustomed to riding; every girl brought up on a ranch must be."
+
+"I have ridden ever since I can remember," said Marjorie, her eyes
+sparkling at the prospect of the coming pleasure. "I would rather ride a
+horse than do anything else in the world."
+
+Mrs. Randolph laughed, and led the way up a broad oak staircase, and
+along a wide hall, to the prettiest little room imaginable, all
+furnished in pink and white; a typical girl's room, as Marjorie saw at
+the first glance.
+
+"I have put you here because this room is next to mine," Mrs. Randolph
+explained. "I thought you would like it better than being away down at
+the other end of the hall. This was my little Barbara's room," she added
+softly; "no one has slept here since she left it, and nothing has been
+changed."
+
+"Oh, Mrs. Randolph," cried Marjorie, gratefully, "how very good you are
+to me, but are you sure you really want me to have this room?"
+
+"Yes, dear, I am quite sure I do. If my Barbara were alive I know she
+would love you, and I like to think I shall have a little girl next to
+me again to-night."
+
+With a sudden impulse, Marjorie flung her arms round Mrs. Randolph's
+neck and hugged her. She did not speak--words did not come easily just
+then--but Barbara's mother understood, and the kiss she gave in return
+was a very tender one.
+
+When Marjorie was left alone, her first occupation was to look about the
+room, and examine all its details. It was very simple, but everything
+was in perfect taste, and the girl admired it all, from the pretty china
+ornaments on the bureau, to the row of books on a shelf over the
+writing-desk. She took down one of the books reverently; it seemed
+almost like sacrilege to touch these things that had belonged to another
+girl, whose death had been so very sad. It was "Lorna Doone," and on the
+fly-leaf Marjorie read, "To Barbara Randolph, from her affectionate
+cousin, Grace Patterson." Then she examined the framed photographs on
+the mantelpiece; Mrs. Randolph and Beverly, and a gentleman whom she
+supposed must have been Barbara's father. There were other photographs
+as well, one in particular of a girl with curly hair, and a very
+friendly expression, and Marjorie wondered if she could be the cousin,
+who had given Barbara "Lorna Doone." It was strange how intimate she was
+beginning to feel with this Barbara, who had died nearly three years
+ago.
+
+Marjorie had just finished her unpacking when there was a tap at her
+door, and in answer to her "Come in," a girl of about her own age
+presented herself. One glance was sufficient to assure Marjorie that she
+was the same curly-haired, friendly-faced girl, whose photograph, in a
+silver frame, stood in a prominent place on the writing-desk.
+
+"I'm Grace Patterson," announced the visitor, in a voice as friendly as
+her face. "Cousin Barbara told me to come right up; my brother and I
+have come over especially to see you."
+
+"I'm very glad to meet you," said Marjorie, shaking hands, and drawing
+forward a chair for her guest. "I've just been looking at your picture,"
+she added, smiling.
+
+Grace Patterson glanced about the room, and a shade of sadness crossed
+her bright face.
+
+"It seems so strange to be in this room again," she said; "I haven't
+been here since poor Babs--you've heard about Babs, of course?"
+
+Marjorie nodded.
+
+"She was my chum," said Grace, with a little catch in her voice, "and
+one of the dearest girls that ever lived. We were almost the same age,
+and as neither of us had any sisters, we were together a great deal.
+Babs had a governess, and my younger brother and I used to come over
+here every day for lessons. Our place is only two miles away, and my
+mother and Cousin Barbara are great friends. It nearly killed poor
+Cousin Barbara."
+
+"I know," said Marjorie. "It was lovely of Mrs. Randolph to let me have
+this room. I have been so interested in Barbara ever since I first heard
+about her, but I don't like to talk to her mother or brother about her."
+
+"You know how it happened, I suppose?"
+
+"Oh, yes; Beverly told me that. It must have been a frightful shock to
+you all."
+
+"Frightful! I should say it was. Even Beverly has never been quite the
+same since. He was devoted to Babs, and they were such chums. I don't
+think it would have been quite so terrible if they could have recognized
+her afterward, but she was so frightfully injured--oh, I can't bear to
+talk about it! They recognized Miss Randolph, Bab's aunt, but poor Babs
+was completely crushed, and--oh, let's come downstairs. I can't stand it
+up here; it gives me the horrors."
+
+There were more questions Marjorie would have liked to ask, but the
+subject was evidently a very painful one to her new acquaintance, for
+Grace had grown rather pale, and there was a look of horror in her eyes.
+So she said no more, and the two girls went downstairs, where they found
+the family assembled, and where Marjorie was introduced to Harry
+Patterson--Grace's brother--a pleasant-faced boy of seventeen.
+
+The Pattersons stayed to luncheon, and Marjorie liked them immensely.
+Grace soon recovered from the momentary depression, caused by recalling
+painful memories, and Marjorie was quite ready to endorse Beverly's
+opinion that "she was one of the jolliest girls going." They had a very
+merry morning, and after luncheon it was proposed that Marjorie and
+Beverly should ride home with the Pattersons, who had come over on their
+ponies.
+
+"Marjorie is pining for a gallop, I know," said Beverly, laughing; "she
+is as wild about horses as you are, Grace, and trained a colt when she
+was nine."
+
+"How jolly!" cried Grace; "you and I can have some fine rides together,
+Marjorie. I haven't had a girl to ride with since--" Grace did not
+finish her sentence, but Marjorie knew by her suddenly heightened
+color, and the glance she gave Beverly, that she was thinking of her
+cousin Barbara.
+
+"I declare they've brought Nelly Gray for you to ride!" whispered Grace
+to Marjorie, as the two girls stood on the veranda, waiting to mount. "I
+didn't know any one rode her now."
+
+"She's a beauty," said Marjorie, with an admiring glance at the handsome
+little chestnut mare, which was being led up to the door by a groom.
+
+"Oh, she's a love! She was Babs's pony, and Babs loved her dearly. I
+remember she taught her to take sugar out of her pocket."
+
+Nelly Gray certainly was "a love" and Marjorie enjoyed that ride as she
+had enjoyed few things since leaving her Western home. It was a
+beautiful afternoon, and Nelly herself appeared to enjoy it almost as
+much as her rider. They took the longest way round to the Patterson
+home, and when they had left their friends, Beverly proposed that they
+should ride a few miles farther, and come home by a different road.
+
+"I think I could ride all night without getting tired," laughed
+Marjorie. "This is an adorable pony."
+
+"She was my sister's pony," said Beverly.
+
+"Yes, I know, your cousin told me. It was awfully good of you and your
+mother to let me ride her."
+
+Beverly said nothing, and they rode on for a few moments in silence,
+both young faces unusually grave. Marjorie was the first to speak.
+
+"I wish I could make your mother understand how much I appreciate all
+she has done for me," she said, impulsively. "Do you know she has given
+me your sister's room?"
+
+"Yes, she told me she was going to. Mother is very fond of you, and she
+says she thinks Babs would have loved you, too."
+
+"I know I should have loved her," said Marjorie, earnestly. "Grace has
+been telling me about her, and I have been looking at all her things."
+
+"She was almost as fond of riding as you are," said Beverly. "She was
+such a plucky little girl; never afraid of anything. She rode better
+than any girl in the neighborhood."
+
+Beverly's voice sounded a little husky, and Marjorie thought it might be
+best to change the subject, so she launched into an account of a "round
+up" she had once seen, and the rest of the ride was a very merry one.
+
+"Will you mind if I stop for a moment to speak to my old mammy?"
+Beverly asked, as they were on their way home. "She lives in one of
+these cabins, and I know she'll be on the lookout for me."
+
+"Of course I won't mind," said Marjorie, promptly; "I shall love it.
+I've never seen a real colored mammy, but I've often read about them in
+stories."
+
+"Well, you shall see one now. Ours was the genuine article, though
+people pretend to say the old-fashioned darky is a thing of the past.
+She was devoted to Babs and me, although she was a firm believer in the
+efficacy of the rod. We loved her dearly, and minded her better than we
+minded Mother. She was put on the pension list several years ago, and
+now has a cabin to herself. Here it is, and there's Mammy on the watch
+for us, as I was sure she would be. Hello, Mammy, here's your bad boy
+back again!"
+
+Beverly sprang to the ground, and the next moment was being rapturously
+hugged by a very stout old negress, with a turban on her head. She was
+so exactly Marjorie's idea of what a mammy ought to be, that the girl
+was delighted, and sat looking on with deep interest, while Beverly and
+his old nurse exchanged greetings. Then Marjorie herself was introduced,
+and Mammy begged them both to tie their horses, and come in for a cup
+of tea. But Beverly declared it was too late, and they finally made
+their escape, having promised to come another day, for a feast of the
+waffles, for which it appeared Mammy was famous.
+
+"It has been one of the loveliest days I've ever had," Marjorie
+declared, as they rode up the avenue at Randolph Place, in the light of
+the setting sun. "I shall never forget it as long as I live, and I shall
+have so much to write home in my next letter, that I believe it will
+fill a volume."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX
+
+A VIRGINIA CHRISTMAS
+
+
+
+ "Randolph Place,
+ "December 26th.
+
+ "DARLING AUNT JESSIE:
+
+ "Christmas is over, and it really wasn't half as
+ bad as I thought it was going to be. But before I
+ begin writing about anything else, I must tell you
+ how happy I was to get all your dear home letters.
+ Uncle Henry was so kind about forwarding them as
+ soon as they reached New York, and I had them all
+ on Christmas Eve. Aunt Julia wrote me the box has
+ come, too, but she will have to keep that until I
+ get back the end of next week. How I shall adore
+ every single thing in it!
+
+ "I sent mother a few lines the morning I got here,
+ but that was before I had found out how beautiful
+ it all is. It is just like the Southern
+ plantations one reads about in stories, and
+ everything is very interesting. There is even a
+ dear old black mammy, who lives in a cabin, and
+ has asked Beverly and me to come and have waffles
+ some afternoon. All the servants are black, and
+ the butler has lived in the family nearly forty
+ years. Then the neighbors are just the kind one
+ reads of, so kind and hospitable, and always
+ having good times. I think I like Southerners
+ better than New Yorkers; they make me feel much
+ more at home. I have met a good many of them, for
+ we went to a Christmas dance at the Pattersons',
+ on Christmas Eve, and I had a perfectly gorgeous
+ time. The Pattersons are cousins of the
+ Randolphs', and Grace, the girl, is just my age,
+ and awfully nice; but then everybody here is nice,
+ and I am having the very best time that it is
+ possible for a girl to have.
+
+ "The riding is the greatest pleasure of all.
+ Beverly and I have been out for a ride every day,
+ and he enjoys it almost as much as I do. They have
+ given me the dearest little chestnut to ride, and
+ it is a great honor, because she belonged to
+ Beverly's sister, who was killed in the San
+ Francisco earthquake, and scarcely any one has
+ ridden her since. She is very gentle, and so
+ friendly that she will take sugar out of my
+ pocket. Beverly says his sister taught her to do
+ that.
+
+ "But if I go on chattering like this, I shall
+ never get to Christmas, which was the most
+ interesting of all. The Virginians seem to think a
+ great deal of Christmas, and nearly all the day
+ before we were busy dressing a tree for the little
+ negroes on the plantation. Mrs. Randolph had
+ brought presents from New York for all of them,
+ and for the fathers and mothers as well. Beverly
+ says she has done the same thing every Christmas
+ since her little girl died; it is a sort of
+ memorial, I suppose. We all hung up our stockings,
+ even Mrs. Randolph and the doctor, who is just as
+ nice and jolly as he can be, though Grace
+ Patterson says some people are afraid of him. It
+ was late when we got back from the Pattersons'
+ party on Christmas Eve, but after I was in bed I
+ heard Mrs. Randolph going about softly, filling
+ the stockings, which were all hung outside our
+ doors.
+
+ "I was so tired after the party, that I didn't
+ wake till after seven, and then the very first
+ thing I did was to run and look at my stocking. It
+ was stuffed full of good things; oranges, candy,
+ figs and dates, and just as I thought I had
+ reached the bottom, I felt something hard away
+ down in the toe. What do you think it was? You
+ will never guess, so I may as well tell you right
+ away; it was a little velvet box, and inside was
+ a ring, a beautiful gold ring, with two adorable
+ little pearls in it! That was Mrs. Randolph's
+ Christmas present, and the loveliest thing I have
+ ever had in my life. I was so happy when I saw it
+ that I cried; I know it was dreadfully silly, but
+ I couldn't help it. Oh, how I wish I could show it
+ to you this minute, but you will see it when I
+ come home next June, and all my other presents,
+ too, for the ring wasn't the only one. When I came
+ down to breakfast there were more parcels beside
+ my plate; two nice books from Beverly, and a gold
+ bracelet from the doctor. Just think of it, two
+ pieces of jewelry in one day! I am sure I didn't
+ deserve such beautiful things, but when I told
+ them so, and tried to thank them, they only
+ laughed.
+
+ "In the morning we went to church, and the
+ Christmas music was lovely. We met the Pattersons
+ at church, and they all came home with us to
+ dinner. Oh, such a dinner! I don't see how any one
+ could possibly ever eat so many things. There were
+ more dishes than I have ever imagined possible for
+ one meal, and every single one was delicious.
+
+ "After dinner came the tree for the children, and
+ that was the best fun of all. I quite lost my
+ heart to some of the piccaninnies, and one little
+ chap, as black as coal, was so adorable that I
+ wanted to hug him. The children all had a
+ beautiful time, and screamed with delight over
+ their presents. How I wished you and Mother could
+ have seen Mrs. Randolph going about among them,
+ speaking so pleasantly to every one, and making
+ them all feel at home. After the tree had been
+ stripped they all had ice cream, and I got hold of
+ my little black boy, and made him sit on my lap
+ while I fed him until I don't believe he could
+ have swallowed another mouthful. Then the old
+ butler, who is just like a negro servant in a
+ book, proposed three cheers for Mrs. Randolph, and
+ you should have heard those darkies yell!
+
+ "The Pattersons left as soon as the fun was over,
+ and we all went upstairs to our rooms to rest. But
+ I wasn't a bit tired, and was afraid that if I sat
+ down to think I might be homesick, so I thought I
+ would go for a walk. I was just starting when I
+ saw Mrs. Randolph come out from the greenhouse,
+ with her hat on, and her hands full of beautiful
+ roses, and I stopped to ask if she were going for
+ a walk, too, and if I might go with her. She
+ hesitated for a minute, and then said I might come
+ if I liked, but she was afraid I would find it
+ sad; she was going to the cemetery to put flowers
+ on her little girl's grave. She said it quite
+ calmly, but there was such a sad look in her eyes,
+ and I was horribly embarrassed, for I was afraid I
+ ought not to have suggested going with her. But
+ she assured me she would really like to have me,
+ if I didn't mind, so of course I went, and, oh,
+ Aunt Jessie, I am so glad I did. It was all
+ beautiful and sacred--almost too sacred to write
+ about, even to you and Mother. The cemetery was
+ such a lovely, peaceful place, and as it was quite
+ warm and pleasant, we sat down by Barbara
+ Randolph's grave, and her mother talked to me
+ about her. It was the first time she has ever told
+ me much about Barbara, and I was so interested in
+ all she said. I don't think I shall ever be afraid
+ of dying again; Mrs. Randolph spoke so beautifully
+ about it. She says she can never feel that her
+ little girl is far away, and she is quite sure
+ they will be together again some day. I think
+ Barbara must have been an awfully nice girl; every
+ one seems so fond of her. Grace Patterson was her
+ chum, and she can hardly speak of her without
+ crying. As for Beverly, he just can't bear to talk
+ about her at all, and I don't dare ask him a
+ single question. Grace says he was devoted to her,
+ and she adored him. I wish I could see a picture
+ of Barbara, but there are no photographs of her
+ about. Mrs. Randolph wears a little gold locket,
+ and I am sure there is a miniature of Barbara
+ inside, but I have never had the courage to ask
+ her to show it to me. I was just making up my mind
+ to do it yesterday, when we heard footsteps, and
+ there was Beverly himself, bringing more flowers.
+ He didn't know we were there, and looked horribly
+ embarrassed when he saw us. Boys always hate to
+ show their feelings, and I think he would have
+ gone away again without speaking to us, if his
+ mother hadn't called him. She was so pleased to
+ see him, and after the first minute I don't think
+ he really minded. I thought they might like to be
+ alone, so I slipped away as quietly as I could,
+ and on the way home I met the doctor, and he asked
+ me to go for a walk with him. I know you would
+ like Dr. Randolph; he is so clever, and has
+ traveled almost all over the world. He told me
+ such an interesting story about a Christmas he
+ once spent in Jerusalem. It is so pleasant that he
+ met Father at Harvard, and remembers all about
+ him. He says Father was a very handsome boy, and a
+ great favorite with the girls. Doesn't it seem
+ queer to think of Father's going to dances and
+ flirting with girls! He looks so much older than
+ Dr. Randolph, and yet I suppose they must be about
+ the same age.
+
+ "Mrs. Randolph and Beverly were quite cheerful
+ when they came home, and I noticed that Beverly
+ was very gentle with his mother all the evening.
+ He is always nice to her, and that is one of the
+ reasons why I like him so much. One of the things
+ that has surprised me most of all in New York, is
+ the way some of the girls and boys speak to their
+ fathers and mothers. I really don't know what
+ Mother would do to me if I were ever to answer her
+ back the way Elsie sometimes answers Aunt Julia,
+ but her mother doesn't seem to mind.
+
+ "We had a quiet evening at home, but it was
+ pleasant, for we were all a little tired. Mrs.
+ Randolph and the doctor played cribbage, and
+ Beverly sang; he has a lovely voice, but he won't
+ often sing. Altogether my Christmas was a very
+ happy one, and if I did 'weep a little weep' after
+ I was in bed, it was only natural, considering it
+ was my first Christmas away from you all. Oh, Aunt
+ Jessie, darling, I am having a beautiful visit,
+ but I never forget you, or Father or Mother, a
+ single minute! I love your letters better than
+ anything else, and I am just longing to get my
+ hands on that precious Christmas box. I hope you
+ will all like the presents I sent. Uncle Henry was
+ so kind; he gave me twenty-five dollars to spend
+ for Christmas presents. I never had so much money
+ in my life, but Aunt Julia helped me select the
+ presents, which was a great relief, for I should
+ never have known what to buy without her. Things
+ seem to cost so much more than one expects them
+ to.
+
+ "I felt sure you and Mother would want something I
+ had made myself, and I hope you will like the
+ color of the shawl; Mrs. Randolph thought it very
+ pretty. I chose the little daisy pin for Undine,
+ because I liked it so much myself. I am so glad
+ you have all grown so fond of her, and that she is
+ happy, and doesn't worry so much about not
+ remembering.
+
+ "Beverly is calling me to go for a ride, so I must
+ stop writing. Heaps of hugs and kisses for
+ everybody from
+
+ "Your own
+ "MARJORIE."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX
+
+MARJORIE SEES A PHOTOGRAPH
+
+
+"DON'T you think there is always something very sad about last days in
+places?"
+
+Beverly laughed, and cast an amused glance at his companion's sober
+face. He and Marjorie were trotting leisurely along a road where the
+trees met overhead in summer, although now the boughs were leafless, and
+there was a light covering of snow on the ground. It was their last
+afternoon in Virginia, and they were making the most of it, despite a
+lowering sky, and a frostiness in the air, which threatened more snow
+before night.
+
+"Just think," Marjorie went on mournfully, "I sha'n't have another ride
+for five whole months. School doesn't close till the first of June."
+
+"Why don't you ride in the park? Lots of girls do, you know. Ask your
+uncle to hire a horse for you from the riding academy."
+
+Marjorie blushed.
+
+"I don't like to," she said, frankly. "Uncle Henry and Aunt Julia are
+doing so much for me already, I don't think I ought to ask for anything
+more. Elsie doesn't ride in New York."
+
+"Well, I have no doubt she could if she wanted to. I imagine Miss Elsie
+generally gets what she wants."
+
+"You don't like Elsie, do you?" The words were out before Marjorie
+realized she had uttered them. The next moment she wished she had not
+asked the question.
+
+"No, I don't," said Beverly, honestly.
+
+"I'm sorry; I wish you did; she's so clever, and--and there are lots of
+nice things about her. You see, she is an only child, and her father and
+mother worship her. I suppose she can't help being a little spoiled."
+
+"Well, you are an only child, too, and I have no doubt your family are
+as fond of you as Elsie's are of her, but you are not spoiled."
+
+Marjorie was silent. She felt that loyalty to her cousin required her to
+say something in Elsie's defence, and yet what could she say? After a
+moment's silence Beverly went on.
+
+"I should like your cousin a lot better if she resigned from being
+president of that Club."
+
+"She--she tore up the poem," faltered Marjorie. "She said it was trash.
+I don't think she meant to do anything mean, but she is so clever, she
+couldn't bear to have any other poem better than hers."
+
+"You're a loyal little soul, Marjorie," said Beverly, approvingly, "but
+all you can say won't alter the fact that your cousin did a mean,
+contemptible thing. She knows I found her out, and she hasn't looked me
+straight in the face since. I don't like sneaks in girls any better than
+in boys."
+
+Marjorie felt the conversation had gone far enough. She did not wish to
+discuss Elsie even with Beverly Randolph, although the two had become
+great friends during the past ten days, so after a little pause, she
+changed the subject by asking her companion if he did not think they had
+better be turning towards home.
+
+Beverly glanced at his watch.
+
+"I suppose we'd better," he said, reluctantly. "I hate to cut our last
+ride short, but Mammy will be heart-broken if we keep her waffles
+waiting."
+
+"I'm so glad we are going to Mammy's cabin," Marjorie said, as they
+turned the horses' heads in a homeward direction. "It makes me think of
+so many things I have read. Don't you remember in 'Uncle Tom's Cabin,'
+how George Selby used to slip away from the big house, and go down to
+Uncle Tom's for waffles and fried chicken? Mammy is such an old dear; I
+do want to hear her talk again."
+
+"She certainly is a character," said Beverly, laughing. "We'll get her
+to tell some anecdotes about Barbara and me. According to Mammy I must
+have been a pickle."
+
+Marjorie was conscious of a feeling of relief at having successfully
+turned the conversation away from Elsie and her affairs, and she and
+Beverly chatted on pleasantly until they reached Mammy's cabin, where
+they dismounted and Beverly tied the horses to the hitching post. Mammy
+was on the watch for them, and gave them a hearty welcome.
+
+"Now you jes lay off yo' tings, and set down by de fiah," she commanded,
+placing chairs for the visitors, "an' I'll have dem waffles done in a
+jiffy. Lor', Mas'r Bev'ly, it jes' does my heart good to see you settin'
+heah in my kitchen, like you used to do when you an' Miss Babs--now
+Mas'r Bev'ly, don't you tease my Josephus; he mighty 'telligent cat, he
+is. He won't stan' no foolin'."
+
+"He's a beauty," said Marjorie, stooping to stroke the big maltese, who
+responded to the caress by springing on the arm of her chair.
+
+Mammy beamed with satisfaction.
+
+"Josephus likes you fust rate, Missy," she said, approvingly. "He don't
+make friends with mos' folks; he's too 'ristocratic. He knows what's
+what, Josephus does."
+
+"Mammy is the most delicious snob," laughed Beverly; "she only allows
+Josephus to associate with aristocratic cats. All the unfortunate
+plebeian cats in the neighborhood are driven away with a stick."
+
+"Cose dey is," declared Mammy, indignantly. "What yo s'pose I want
+common, no-'count cats botherin' round heah for? Ain't I always lived in
+de most 'ristocratic Virginia fam'lies, and wasn't my paw own
+body-servant to ole General Putnam, an' my maw bought by Mas'r
+Randolph's father when she weren't more'n ten years old, an' brought up
+in de house, to be maid to de young ladies? I'se lived in de fust
+fam'lies, I has, and I'm proud of it, too."
+
+"What a perfectly heavenly place!" whispered Marjorie to Beverly, with a
+glance round the neat little kitchen, as the old negress bustled away
+intent on household duties.
+
+"You must get Mammy to show you the family photographs before we go,"
+said Beverly; "she has quite a gallery, and can give you the separate
+history of each picture. Ah, here come the waffles. Nobody can beat you
+on waffles, Mammy."
+
+The old woman grinned.
+
+"Cose dey cyan't," she said, placidly. "Dere cyan't nobody in dese parts
+beat me on waffles and corn-bread. Folks comes askin' for my recipes,
+but it ain't de recipe dat does it, it's de light hand. Now Mas'r
+Bev'ly, don't you take de whole dishful; dere's plenty more comin'. Lor'
+sakes, Missy, you jes' oughter seen de way dat boy would go in for
+waffles an' maple syrup when he was little. Do you 'member de day, Mas'r
+Bev'ly, when yo maw was havin' lot of comp'ny for tea, an' yo' an' Miss
+Babs sneaked into de pantry, and eat up all de lobster salad 'fo' de
+comp'ny got a chance to have it? What a swattin' I did give de two of
+you' for dat!"
+
+"Yes, indeed I remember it," said Beverly, laughing. "I deserved the
+'swatting' more than Babs did, for she was only four and I was eight."
+
+"Dat's true; but yo' bofe deserved it bad enough. Lordie! How dat chile
+Babs could stuff! Notin' ever hurted her, and de wust of it was, she
+didn't mind castor oil no more'n if it was molasses. Have some more
+syrup, Missy; waffles ain't no good without plenty of syrup. You was
+forever gettin' Miss Babs into mischief, Mas'r Bev'ly. I'll never forget
+de day I dressed de two of you in yo' best white suits, cause yo'
+grandmother Randolph was comin' on a visit, an' de minute my back was
+turned you was bofe off to de swamp. My, what sights you was when I
+found you! Miss Babs had tumbled in, an' yo' two faces was as black as
+mine, and you was all over black mud. You bofe got a good whippin', an'
+was put to bed in de middle of de day, but Lordie! What good did it do?
+Miss Babs was sound asleep in ten minutes, and never woke up till nex'
+mornin'. Nottin' ever upset her fo' long; God bless her."
+
+The old woman's voice grew very gentle and Beverly, who had been smiling
+over the childish reminiscences, grew suddenly grave. But Mammy was a
+cheerful soul, and she did not intend to sadden the young people's
+visit.
+
+"Well, de Lord has his reasons, I s'pose," she said, with a sigh, "but
+dey does seem hard to make out sometimes. Jes' 'scuse me one minute; I
+got some hot ones on de fiah."
+
+When Marjorie and Beverly had eaten so many waffles that they felt as
+though they should not require anything more in the way of food for
+days, Mammy reluctantly desisted from her hospitable efforts to force
+another plateful upon her visitors, and the hospitably entertained young
+people rose to go.
+
+"I've had a lovely time," declared Marjorie, heartily. "It was dear of
+you to let me come, Mammy; I shall never forget it."
+
+"Any frien' of de Randolph fam'ly is always welcome to my cabin," said
+Mammy, with the air of a queen dispensing hospitality to her subjects.
+"Would you like to see de fam'ly pictures 'fo' you go?"
+
+Marjorie said she would like nothing better, and while Beverly went out
+to untie the horses, she followed Mammy into her tiny bedroom, the walls
+of which were literally covered with photographs.
+
+"Dis," announced Mammy, pausing in the doorway, and pointing to a
+gentleman in uniform, "is Mas'r Will Randolph, Mas'r Bev'ly's
+gran'father, took in de clothes he wore when he went to de wah. Dis lady
+is his wife, de mis' Randolph dat brought up my maw; a gran' lady she
+was too. Dis is Mas'r Bev'ly's father when he went away to school, jes
+after de wah was over. Dis one is Mas'r Bev'ly's maw in her first ball
+dress. Dat's Mas'r Bev'ly when he was a baby, and here's Miss Babs in
+her fust short clothes. Over on dis side is Mas'r Bev'ly when he was
+seven, and dis is--oh, good Lordie, Missy, whatever is de matter?"
+
+Marjorie--who had been following Mammy from one photograph to another,
+with amused interest--had suddenly uttered a sharp cry of astonishment,
+and was staring blankly at the photograph of a girl of twelve, which was
+occupying the place of honor over Mammy's bed.
+
+"Who--who is that?" she gasped, seizing the old woman's arm, and
+beginning to tremble with excitement.
+
+"Dat Miss Babs, took jes' 'fo' she went away to Californy," said Mammy,
+sadly. "Land sakes, Missy! What is it? You jes' sit right down heah, an'
+I'll go call Mas'r Bev'ly."
+
+When Beverly appeared in answer to Mammy's hasty summons, he found
+Marjorie ghastly white, and shaking from head to foot.
+
+"Good gracious, Marjorie!" exclaimed the boy, springing to her side,
+"what's the matter? Don't you feel well--is it the waffles?"
+
+"It's--it's Undine!" faltered Marjorie, with shaking lips, and she
+pointed to the photograph on which her eyes still rested, in a wild,
+incredulous stare.
+
+[Illustration: "LAND SAKES, MISSY! WHAT IS IT?"--_Page 283._]
+
+"'Undine,'" repeated Beverly, stupidly, "who is Undine? That is the
+picture of my sister Barbara."
+
+"It's Undine," repeated Marjorie, with obstinate persistence; "it's
+exactly like her; I would know her anywhere."
+
+"But who is Undine? I never even heard of her?"
+
+"Yes, you did; I told you about her once, and you said I mustn't mention
+her to your mother, because she was hurt in the earthquake. We called
+her Undine, because she couldn't remember her real name, or anything
+that happened to her before the earthquake. That's her photograph,
+Beverly, I tell you it is--it is!"
+
+Beverly had grown very pale, but he made a great effort at self-control.
+
+"Don't talk nonsense, Marjorie," he said, almost angrily; "I tell you
+that is my sister's photograph. I can show you another just like it at
+home."
+
+"Beverly," cried Marjorie, clasping her hands, and speaking in a tone of
+sudden conviction, "I am not talking nonsense. That is the picture of
+the girl who has been at the ranch since last August. She was found
+in the street just after the earthquake, half buried under some ruins.
+She was unconscious, and they took her to a hospital. She has never been
+able to remember anything about herself since. Your sister was in the
+earthquake, too; you think she was killed, but perhaps--oh, Beverly
+dear, let us go home quick, and tell your uncle all about it."
+
+Mrs. Randolph was in the library reading. Twice she had put down her
+book, and gone to the window to look out. It was growing dark, and had
+begun to snow.
+
+"How late they are," she said to herself, with an anxious glance at the
+clock. "They ought to be back by this time, but I suppose they have
+stayed listening to Mammy's stories, and forgotten the time."
+
+She sat down again by the fire, and took up her book. But she was
+feeling restless and nervous that afternoon, though she could not have
+told why, and after reading a page, she closed the book again.
+
+"I wish they would come," she said, impatiently. "No one knows what may
+have happened; they may never have reached Mammy's cabin. I think I will
+go and speak to George. He will laugh at me for worrying, but that will
+be better than sitting here by myself. There's the clock striking six;
+they should have been in an hour ago."
+
+She rose, and was moving towards the door when she heard an approaching
+footstep, and in another moment her brother-in-law himself came into the
+room.
+
+"I was just coming to look for you, George," she said; "I am getting a
+little anxious about the children."
+
+"The children are all right," said the doctor, quietly, sinking into the
+arm-chair by the fire; "they came in half an hour ago, and have gone to
+their rooms. Marjorie was feeling a little upset, and I advised her to
+go and lie down till dinner-time."
+
+Mrs. Randolph turned towards the door again.
+
+"I think I will go and see if there is anything I can do for her," she
+said. "It isn't like Marjorie to give up; I'm afraid she isn't well."
+
+But Dr. Randolph held out a detaining hand.
+
+"Sit down, Barbara," he said, "I want to talk to you. There is nothing
+the matter with Marjorie or Beverly either. They have had a long ride,
+and stopped at Mammy's for waffles. I want to ask you a favor. I have
+just received some important news, which will necessitate my going West
+at once, and I want you to let Beverly go with me."
+
+Mrs. Randolph was very much surprised.
+
+"But, George dear," she remonstrated gently, "college begins again on
+Monday--do you think it wise to take the boy away just now?"
+
+"I shall not be gone more than a week, and I want Beverly for company.
+He has never seen much of his own country, and this trip to Arizona will
+do him an immense amount of good. As for college, a few days more or
+less won't make any material difference, and he can make up for lost
+time when he gets back."
+
+Mrs. Randolph still looked doubtful, but the doctor was Beverly's
+guardian, and since her husband's death she had been accustomed to
+depend upon his judgment and advice. So instead of arguing the point,
+she only said:
+
+"Of course he may go if you think best, George, only it does seem
+foolish to take him away so soon again after his holidays."
+
+"I do think it best, Barbara," said the doctor, decidedly. "I want the
+boy with me very much. I must start as soon as possible. Do you think
+you could persuade Emma Patterson to go home with you and Marjorie
+to-morrow, and stay till Beverly and I come back?"
+
+"I can try," said Mrs. Randolph, who was still unconvinced of the wisdom
+of this sudden whim of her brother-in-law's, and a little uneasy as
+well. "Emma has promised to visit us later; perhaps she would be willing
+to come now instead. You know, George dear, I never ask you about your
+cases, but this seems so very sudden--are you going to see a patient?"
+
+"Yes," said the doctor, quietly. "I may be able to tell you more about
+the case when I come back, but I cannot now."
+
+Mrs. Randolph regarded him anxiously.
+
+"I am afraid you are not well, George," she said, "you are dreadfully
+pale. Is that why you don't want to take this long journey alone?"
+
+"Not exactly. I am perfectly well, but--well, the fact is, this may
+prove a very trying business, and I want the boy with me."
+
+"Then you shall certainly have him," said Mrs. Randolph, with decision.
+"Have you spoken to Beverly on the subject?"
+
+"Yes, and he is most anxious to go. Now I must make arrangements about
+accommodations on the train, for I want to be off early in the morning,
+if possible. Wouldn't it be a good idea to telephone Emma Patterson at
+once, and see if she can be ready to go with you and Marjorie?"
+
+Mrs. Randolph stood for a moment, looking after her brother-in-law as he
+left the room.
+
+"There is something wrong," she said: "I never saw George so agitated
+before. I wish I knew what it was, but doctors don't like to be
+questioned. I hate to have Beverly lose a whole week of college, but if
+his uncle needs him, I have nothing more to say." And, with a resigned
+sigh, she went away to telephone to her cousin, Mrs. Patterson.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI
+
+UNDINE REMEMBERS
+
+ "'A Highland laddie lives over the lea;
+ A laddie both noble and gallant and free,
+ Who loved a lassie as noble as he--
+ A bonnie sweet lassie; the maid of Dundee.'"
+
+
+MRS. GRAHAM glanced up from her sewing, with a smile.
+
+"What a sweet voice that child has," she said; "with training I believe
+she would sing remarkably well."
+
+"I love to hear her singing about the house," said Miss Jessie, also
+pausing to listen to the clear young voice; "I wonder where she learned
+all those old songs. I remember that ballad, but I haven't heard it
+since I was a child."
+
+"She probably picks them up from Jim," Mrs. Graham suggested; "he is
+always singing about the place."
+
+"I don't think I ever heard Jim sing this one," said Miss Jessie,
+reflectively. "Susie, I do wish we could find out something about the
+child's family. I feel sure she has been brought up among people of
+refinement."
+
+"She is a very attractive girl," Mrs. Graham agreed, "but if she has
+relatives it seems incredible that they should never have made the
+slightest effort to find her. Donald and I were talking about her last
+night. He thinks that any relatives she had must have been killed in the
+earthquake. It seems the only explanation. There is nothing for us to do
+but wait patiently in the hope that Undine may some time be able to tell
+us everything herself. I confess I should be very sorry to part with
+her; she has been a great help and comfort since Marjorie went away."
+
+"She has indeed," said Miss Jessie, heartily. "I have grown very fond of
+her, and I think she cares for us, too. We should have another letter
+from Marjorie by this time."
+
+"Yes, Jim has gone for the mail; he may bring one this afternoon. It
+does my heart good to know the dear child is having such a happy
+holiday. I would like to write and thank Mrs. Randolph for all her
+kindness to Marjorie; she must be a lovely woman."
+
+"I am sure she is, and the son must be a nice boy, too, judging from
+what Marjorie says. Our little girl has made some good friends, as I
+felt sure she would."
+
+Mrs. Graham rose, and began folding up her work.
+
+"I must go to the kitchen to look after Juanita," she said. "It is a
+lovely afternoon. Why don't you get Undine to wheel you out in the sun
+for an hour?"
+
+"I think I will," said Miss Jessie, with a glance out of the windows at
+the cloudless sky and brilliant winter sunshine. "Ah, here comes Undine.
+Undine dear, I think I will go out for a little while."
+
+The bright-faced, rosy-cheeked girl who entered the room at this moment
+was a very different being from the pale, timid, little waif of four
+months earlier. She had grown at least two inches, and the clothes which
+had hung loosely about her in her first days at the ranch had now become
+a tight fit. At Miss Jessie's request she smiled, and came hurrying to
+the side of her kind friend.
+
+"It's a glorious day," she said; "it makes one happy just to be alive.
+I've had such a wonderful ride. I went as far as the railroad, and saw
+the West Bound pass; it was two hours late. I'll get your warm coat and
+some wraps and we'll sit behind the playhouse. You won't feel the wind
+there, and it will be heavenly."
+
+"Undine," said Miss Graham suddenly, when the two were comfortably
+established in one of their favorite nooks; the invalid in her chair,
+and her companion on a rug spread on the ground; "where did you learn
+the song I heard you singing when you came in from your ride just now?"
+
+"I forget which it was," said Undine, looking puzzled. "Oh, yes, I
+remember--'A Highland Laddie Lived over the Lea.' I don't know where I
+learned it--isn't it one of Jim's songs?"
+
+"I don't think so, dear, but we can ask him. I never heard you sing it
+before."
+
+Something of the old, troubled, far-away look crept into Undine's face.
+
+"I don't know how I remember things," she said, slowly; "they just come
+into my head sometimes. Now that I think of it, I don't believe I have
+ever heard Jim sing that song. I must have heard it somewhere, though."
+
+Miss Graham said nothing, and there was a short pause, which Undine
+broke.
+
+"You and Mrs. Graham don't like to have me talk about the things I can't
+remember," she said, a little wistfully.
+
+"Only because we don't want you to distress yourself and try to force
+your brain. I have always told you I was sure the memory would come back
+some day."
+
+"I think it is coming soon," said Undine, softly. "I keep having dreams.
+I dreamt of my mother last night."
+
+There was a quiver in the girl's voice, and Miss Jessie leaned forward
+and laid a kind hand on her shoulder.
+
+"Tell me about it, dear," she said, gently.
+
+Undine drew a deep breath that was almost a sob.
+
+"It was a beautiful dream," she said. "My mother and I were in a dear
+little room, all furnished in pink and white. I don't know where it was,
+but it seemed quite familiar in the dream. I was unhappy about
+something, and my mother kissed me, and put her arms round me. She had
+such a dear, beautiful face. Oh, Miss Jessie, do you suppose my poor
+mother was killed in that dreadful earthquake?"
+
+"My dear little girl, we cannot possibly know that; we must have
+patience. Have you had other dreams?"
+
+"Yes. The other night I dreamt I was playing with a boy in a swamp.
+There was a black woman in the dream, too; she scolded us, but I wasn't
+a bit afraid of her. Do you think perhaps they were people I used to
+know?"
+
+"I don't know, dear; it may be possible, but you mustn't let these
+things worry you. You are happy here with us, are you not?"
+
+"Happy!" cried the girl, with sparkling eyes, "I never expected to be so
+happy anywhere. As long as I live I shall never forget all you and Mr.
+and Mrs. Graham have done for me, but I can't help wanting to remember."
+
+"Of course you can't; that is quite natural. We all want you to
+remember, too, but we must have patience. The more you strain your
+brain, the longer it may take for the memory to come back. You have been
+a great comfort to us since Marjorie went away; I told her so in my last
+letter."
+
+"I am so glad," said Undine, smiling. "I promised Marjorie I would try,
+but of course I knew I could never take her place. Oh, Miss Jessie, you
+said I might read Marjorie's last letter. It came when I was out, you
+know, and I didn't hear you read it to Mrs. Graham."
+
+"So I did, I am glad you reminded me, for I had forgotten all about it.
+It was written from the place in Virginia where she has been spending
+the holidays, and tells all about their Christmas festivities. It is in
+the right-hand drawer of my desk--you may read it whenever you like."
+
+Undine glanced at the book in Miss Graham's lap.
+
+"If you don't want me for anything, and are going to stay here for a
+while, I think I will go and read it now," she said; "I love Marjorie's
+letters."
+
+"Very well, dear; I want to finish this book before we begin the one we
+are going to read together. It won't take me more than fifteen minutes."
+
+Undine scrambled to her feet.
+
+"All right," she said; "I'll be back before that. Oh, Miss Jessie, isn't
+the air glorious to-day? It makes me feel so happy and excited; just as
+if something were going to happen."
+
+Undine tripped away to the house, and Miss Graham, as she opened her
+book, heard the clear young voice singing:
+
+ "'A Highland laddie lives over the lea;
+ A laddie both noble and gallant and free.'"
+
+The song died away in the distance, and Miss Jessie became absorbed in
+her story. It was very still, and not a sound came to disturb her until
+she had turned the last page. Then she closed the book, and looked up in
+surprise.
+
+"How long Undine takes to read that letter!" she said to herself, in
+some surprise.
+
+Another ten minutes slipped away, but Miss Jessie was accustomed to
+waiting patiently--she had done little else for the past eight years.
+
+"Susie must have kept the child for something," she decided, and settled
+comfortably back in her chair to await Undine's return.
+
+But it was not like her sister-in-law to detain Undine without sending
+some explanation; neither was it like the girl to remain away so long.
+At the end of another ten minutes Miss Jessie began to be a little
+curious.
+
+"What can be the matter?" she said uneasily, her thoughts reverting to a
+possible accident to her brother, who had gone to try some new horses
+that afternoon. "I think I'll wheel myself back to the house and find
+out."
+
+But at that moment she caught sight of her sister-in-law coming towards
+her across the lawn. Mrs. Graham was looking cheerful and serene as
+usual, and carried some sewing in her hand.
+
+"I thought I would come and join you," she said, as soon as she was
+within speaking distance. "It's much too lovely to stay in doors.
+Where's Undine?"
+
+"I don't know," said Miss Jessie, "I thought she was with you. She went
+in half an hour ago, to read Marjorie's last letter, which I had
+forgotten to show her, and hasn't come back since."
+
+"I haven't seen her," said Mrs. Graham, looking a little annoyed, "but
+then I have been in the kitchen with Juanita. Undine ought not to go off
+like this, and leave you alone so long."
+
+"She never did such a thing before," said Miss Jessie, anxiously. "I
+wish you would go and see where she is, Susie."
+
+"Oh, she is all right, I am sure," Mrs. Graham maintained, but she
+turned back towards the house, nevertheless, for it had also occurred to
+her that it was unlike Undine to neglect her duty.
+
+There was not a sound to be heard when Mrs. Graham reached the house and
+although she called Undine several times, she received no answer.
+
+"Where can the child be?" she said, beginning to feel a little
+frightened, and she hurried to Undine's room. The door was open, and her
+first impression was that the room was empty. She was turning away
+again, more and more puzzled by the girl's mysterious disappearance,
+when her eye was caught by a heap of something white lying on the floor
+by the window, and in another moment she had hurried forward, with an
+exclamation of dismay, and was bending over Undine, who lay, white and
+unconscious on the floor, with Marjorie's letter clasped convulsively in
+her hand.
+
+When Undine opened her eyes she was lying on her bed, and Mrs. Graham
+was bathing her forehead, while the faithful Juanita plied a palm-leaf
+fan and held a bottle of smelling-salts to her nose. For a moment the
+girl gazed about her in a kind of dull bewilderment; then a look of
+recollection came into her eyes, and she started up, with a sharp cry.
+
+"I'm not dead, I'm not dead! Oh, tell them it isn't true! I'm not; I'm
+not!"
+
+"Lie down, dear," said Mrs. Graham in a tone of gentle authority. "Of
+course you are not dead; you fainted, that is all. You are better now,
+and if you lie still for a few minutes you will be all right."
+
+"But the letter said I was dead," persisted Undine, wildly, and she
+fixed her big, terrified eyes on Mrs. Graham's astonished face. "It
+said Barbara Randolph was dead, and her mother put flowers on her
+grave."
+
+Mrs. Graham was beginning to be seriously alarmed for the girl's reason,
+but she made an effort to appear calm.
+
+"My dear child," she said, soothingly, "you don't know what you are
+saying. Barbara Randolph is the daughter of the lady with whom Marjorie
+has been staying; she died long ago; she had nothing to do with you."
+
+"But she didn't die, I know she didn't!" cried Undine, sitting up,
+despite all Mrs. Graham's efforts to keep her quiet. "I knew it when I
+read the letter. For one minute I remembered something horrible. I don't
+remember it any more now, but I was so frightened, and--oh, Mrs. Graham,
+I was so terribly frightened!" And the poor child burst into a fit of
+wild, hysterical sobbing, and clung passionately to her kind friend's
+neck.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Miss Jessie pushed her wheeled-chair out onto the porch, and strained
+her eyes in the gathering dusk, in the vain hope of seeing some
+approaching figure. Fortunately the January evening was warm, but even
+if it had been cold she would scarcely have been aware of the fact. She
+was very anxious, and this long suspense of waiting was hard to bear.
+It was more than two hours since Undine had regained consciousness, and
+in all that time the girl had scarcely uttered an intelligible word. She
+had passed from one hysterical fit into another, and Mrs. Graham and
+Juanita were at their wits' end. For almost the first time in twelve
+years Miss Jessie realized the awful loneliness of their lives. "Donald
+must surely be back soon," she told herself, trying to be patient, "and
+Jim will be here with the mail before long. Oh, that poor child--what
+can it all mean?"
+
+There was a slight sound behind her, and Mrs. Graham, too, stepped out
+on the porch. She was looking pale and distressed.
+
+"How is she now?" Miss Jessie whispered, anxiously.
+
+"I think she has fallen into a doze; she must be quite exhausted, poor
+child. She has had a terrible shock of some kind."
+
+"Do you think it can have been caused by anything in Marjorie's letter?
+She must have been reading it when she fainted."
+
+"I don't know what to think," said Mrs. Graham, clasping her hands
+nervously. "She spoke of that Randolph girl--the little girl who was
+killed in the earthquake, you know. Oh, Jessie, you don't suppose--"
+Mrs. Graham did not finish her sentence, but the two women looked at
+each other in the dusk, and both their faces were pale and startled.
+
+"I must go back," said Mrs. Graham in a hurried whisper; "I dare not
+leave her long. When she wakes she may remember; I think her memory is
+coming back. I am afraid you will take cold out here."
+
+"I am not cold, but I will come in soon. I am waiting for Donald and
+Jim. I must warn them not to speak loud; it might startle her again."
+
+Mrs. Graham made no further objection, but went back into the house and
+Miss Jessie folded her hands and waited.
+
+Five, ten minutes passed, and then came the sound of distant hoofs. With
+a sigh of intense relief, Miss Jessie sent the wheeled-chair gliding
+smoothly off the porch, and across the lawn. The hoof-beats drew nearer,
+and now she heard voices. Was it her brother or Jim, and who were the
+others, for she distinctly heard more than one voice?
+
+"Is it you, Donald?" she called, and in the still, clear air, her voice
+was audible an eighth of a mile away.
+
+"No, Miss, it ain't Mr. Graham, it's me," came the answer in Jim's
+well-known voice. "I've got some folks with me."
+
+Miss Jessie waited in silence while the hoofs and voices drew nearer. It
+was no uncommon thing for strangers to stop at the ranch, where they
+were always sure of a hospitable reception and a night's lodging. She
+was glad Jim was not alone. Perhaps the visitors, whoever they were,
+might be able to help, but how she could not imagine. It was nearly
+dark, and the first few stars were beginning to glimmer in the evening
+sky.
+
+The horses were very near now, and she could distinguish three figures,
+one was Jim Hathaway, the other two were strangers.
+
+"I beg your pardon, Madame." It was the elder of the two strangers who
+spoke; he had sprung from his horse, and taken off his hat. Even in the
+dim light Miss Jessie could see that he was a gentleman. His companion
+she noticed was much younger, scarcely more than a boy indeed, and he,
+too, was regarding her with eager, questioning eyes.
+
+"I must introduce myself," the gentleman went on, courteously. "I think
+you may have heard Marjorie speak of me. I am Dr. Randolph, and this is
+my nephew Beverly."
+
+Miss Jessie gave a little joyful cry, and held out both hands.
+
+"Is it about Undine?" she whispered breathlessly. "Have you come for
+her, and is it really true that the child is your niece?"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It was some time before Undine awoke from the heavy sleep of exhaustion
+into which she had fallen. She opened her eyes, gazed about her vaguely,
+and murmured, "Mother! I want Mother."
+
+"Yes, dear, I know," said Mrs. Graham, softly kissing the girl's hot
+forehead. "Your mother isn't here, but she is safe and well, and you
+shall go to her very soon."
+
+Undine smiled faintly, and then a troubled look came into her face.
+
+"I forgot her," she said, dreamily, "I forgot my mother for a long time,
+but I remember now, and I want her--oh, I want her." And she stretched
+out her arms in helpless longing.
+
+Then Mrs. Graham moved aside, and some one else bent over her.
+
+"Babs," said a low, tremulous voice, "Babs darling, don't you know me?
+It's Beverly."
+
+With a great cry of joy Undine started up, and in another second she was
+clinging convulsively round her brother's neck.
+
+"Beverly," she sobbed, "oh, Beverly, I remember; I remember everything.
+It's all come back; poor Aunt Helen, that dreadful, dreadful time! You
+thought I was dead, and you and Mother put flowers on my grave; but I
+wasn't dead, I had only forgotten. Hold me, Beverly, hold me tight; I'm
+so afraid I'm going to forget again."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII
+
+UNDINE TELLS HER STORY
+
+
+BUT Undine did not forget again, although it was some time before she
+was able to give any coherent account of what she could remember.
+Indeed, she was in such a feverish, hysterical condition, that Dr.
+Randolph would not allow any attempt at questioning her that night.
+
+"She has had a terrible shock, poor child," he said to Mrs. Graham. "The
+reading of that letter must have brought everything back with a rush and
+the knowledge that she had been mourned as dead for nearly three years
+was almost more than she could bear. But she is young and strong, and a
+good night's sleep will do wonders for her. When I think of what we owe
+to you and your--" The doctor's voice broke suddenly, and he impulsively
+held out his hand.
+
+"I think our obligations are mutual," said Mrs. Graham, smiling, though
+there were tears in her eyes. "According to Marjorie's last letter, you
+and Mrs. Randolph have been making our little girl very happy, while
+your niece has been a great comfort to us. It is all so strange and
+wonderful that I can scarcely realize yet that it isn't a dream."
+
+It was pitiful to see Undine cling to her brother; she could not bear to
+have him out of her sight for a moment, and Beverly himself, almost
+stunned by the great shock of the discovery that Undine and Barbara were
+really one and the same, coming at the end of four days of almost
+unendurable suspense, could do little beyond hovering over his sister,
+in joy and thankfulness too deep for words.
+
+"Does Mother know, Beverly?" Undine whispered, late that evening, when
+the two were alone together.
+
+"No, Babs, she doesn't know yet, but we are going to take you home just
+as soon as we can. We couldn't let Mother even suspect until we were
+sure ourselves. Marjorie was certain she recognized your photograph, but
+Uncle George and I couldn't believe it was true; it seemed so
+impossible."
+
+"Poor, poor Mother," sighed Undine; "oh, Beverly, how unhappy she must
+have been!"
+
+"Don't talk about it, Babs; you know Uncle George doesn't want you to
+talk. You must try to go to sleep, so as to be able to start for home as
+soon as possible."
+
+"I'm afraid to go to sleep," protested Undine, feverishly. "Perhaps when
+I wake I shall have forgotten everything again. Oh, Beverly, don't let
+me forget again."
+
+"Of course we won't let you," said Beverly, putting a strong arm around
+her, protectingly. "You are quite safe now, you know, Babs darling,
+Uncle George and I are here, and we're going to take you home to
+Mother."
+
+Undine breathed a deep sigh of relief, as she nestled in her brother's
+arms, and when she fell asleep at last it was with Beverly's hand
+clasped fast in hers.
+
+But after a long night's sleep, and a joyful waking, to find that she
+had not forgotten again, Undine was quite a different creature, and
+during the morning that followed she was able to give her uncle and
+brother a fairly clear account of her adventures.
+
+"I remember it all quite well now," she said. "Aunt Helen was ill that
+night, and she said she would have the maid sleep in her room, in case
+she might need something. I slept in the maid's room, which was just
+across the hall. I was very tired, and I think I must have gone to
+sleep as soon as I was in bed, for I don't remember anything until I
+woke hearing a terrible noise. The whole hotel seemed to be rocking, and
+I saw some of the things on the bureau fall over, and a picture came
+down off the wall. I think I was too frightened to move, for I lay quite
+still, thinking every minute that Aunt Helen would come and tell me what
+had happened. In a few moments the shaking stopped and then I heard
+people screaming and running about in the halls.
+
+"Aunt Helen didn't come, or the maid either, and at last I got up, and
+went to look for them. I was in my nightgown and bare feet, but I was
+too frightened to stop to put any clothes on. I ran out into the hall,
+intending to go to Aunt Helen's room, but something frightful had
+happened; there wasn't any room, only a great pile of bricks and mortar,
+and I heard people say one of the chimneys had fallen in. Oh, it was
+terrible--I can't talk about it!" And the poor child began to shiver
+convulsively.
+
+"Never mind about that part of the story, dear," Dr. Randolph said,
+soothingly, while Beverly put his arm round her.
+
+"I called and called to Aunt Helen," Undine went on in a voice scarcely
+above a whisper, "but nobody answered, and then the house began to
+shake again and people screamed that the walls were falling.
+
+"The next thing I remember is being out in the street. I don't know how
+I got there, but I was running along in my bare feet, in the midst of a
+great crowd. I don't know how far I ran or where I went. I think I must
+have been crazed with fright. I tried to speak to people, but nobody
+took any notice of me. I heard them saying there had been a terrible
+earthquake, and that the whole city had been destroyed. At last I got
+very tired, and I think I must have been faint too, for everything grew
+black, and I was so cold. I remember going inside a doorway, and
+thinking I would rest there for a few minutes, and then the stone must
+have fallen on my head, for I don't remember anything more till I woke
+up in the hospital, and didn't even know my name."
+
+"Of course it must have been the poor maid who was killed," said
+Beverly. "We never dreamed of that, because we felt so sure you and Aunt
+Helen had roomed together. But Babs dear, did you never remember
+anything at all--not even the least little thing?"
+
+Undine shook her head.
+
+"I used to have little gleams of memory sometimes," she said, "but they
+were gone again in a minute. I had one the first time I heard Jim sing
+'Mandalay,' and for one second I think I almost remembered you, Beverly.
+Another time I almost remembered was when Mrs. Graham was reading a
+letter from Marjorie, in which she mentioned your name for the first
+time. I kept saying 'Randolph, Randolph' over and over to myself for a
+long time, but after the first minute the words didn't seem to mean
+anything to me. It wasn't till yesterday when I read that letter, and
+saw all your names together--Mother's and yours, and Uncle George's and
+then that part about going to Barbara's grave--that it all came back
+with a rush, and I was so frightened that I fainted."
+
+Later in the day Undine--or Barbara, as I suppose we must call her
+now--had a long talk with her uncle. Dr. Randolph had insisted on
+Beverly's going out for a walk. The boy was utterly worn out from
+excitement and suspense, and his uncle feared he would be really ill if
+precautions were not taken. So he was sent off for a long tramp over the
+ranch with Mr. Graham, and the doctor sat down by his little niece's
+bedside, and tried to draw her thoughts away from painful memories, by
+talking of Marjorie, and of her own life on the ranch.
+
+"They have all been so good to me here, Uncle George," Barbara said, the
+grateful tears starting to her eyes. "If you could have seen me when I
+first came! I am sure I looked like a tramp, and I was so miserable I
+didn't care much what became of me. I don't think many people would have
+believed my crazy story, but they took me right in without a word, and
+have treated me just as if I belonged to them ever since. Aren't Mrs.
+Graham and Miss Jessie lovely?"
+
+"They are indeed," said the doctor, heartily. "We owe them a debt of
+gratitude that can never be repaid. Miss Graham has one of the sweetest
+faces I have ever seen. Has she been a cripple all her life?"
+
+Barbara caught her breath as a sudden recollection flashed into her
+mind.
+
+"Uncle George," she cried excitedly, "aren't you a great surgeon?"
+
+"I am a surgeon certainly," said her uncle, smiling, "but I don't know
+just what you would call a great one; why do you want to know?"
+
+"Because," said Barbara, clasping her hands, and regarding the doctor
+with shining eyes, "now Marjorie can have her wish--the thing she wants
+more than anything else in the world, and that she and I have been
+praying for all winter."
+
+And in a few rapid words she told the story of Miss Graham's accident,
+and of Marjorie's hopes.
+
+Dr. Randolph said nothing, but he looked much interested, and when
+Beverly returned from his walk, he left the brother and sister together,
+and went in quest of Mrs. Graham, with whom he had a long talk. Then
+Miss Jessie was taken into their confidence, and all through the long
+afternoon Barbara and Beverly waited in eager anxiety for their uncle's
+return.
+
+Mr. Graham was obliged to ride some distance to another ranch that
+afternoon, in order to see a man on business, and it was late in the
+evening when he returned, and found his old classmate waiting for him on
+the porch.
+
+"Well, and how are things going?" he inquired cheerfully, when Jim had
+taken away his horse. "I trust our little friend is better."
+
+"She is much better, thank you," Dr. Randolph answered. "She is fast
+recovering from the shock, and I hope we may be able to start for home
+by the day after to-morrow. Her mother must be told as soon as possible,
+and Barbara herself can scarcely wait to get home. I am going to make
+arrangements to leave on the first available train for the East
+and--Graham, I want to ask you a favor."
+
+"I am sure I shall be glad to do anything in my power," Mr. Graham said,
+smiling; "what is it?"
+
+"I want you to let me take your wife and sister back to New York with
+us."
+
+"My wife and sister!" repeated Mr. Graham in amazement. "Why, my dear
+boy, my poor sister hasn't left her wheeled-chair for eight years. I am
+sure that she could not stand such a journey."
+
+"I think she could," said the doctor, quietly. "I should take a
+compartment for her, of course, and she could lie down during the whole
+trip. As for the drive to the station, I think that could also be
+managed without much discomfort. She tells me she often takes fairly
+long drives with you and your wife. Barbara is still very much shaken,
+and will need a woman's care on the journey. Your wife can be of great
+assistance to us, and as to your sister--well, the fact is, Graham, I
+made an examination this afternoon, with her and Mrs. Graham's consent,
+and I see no reason why an operation cannot be performed. I can't
+promise an absolute cure, but I have strong hopes."
+
+Mr. Graham did not speak, but he grasped his old friend's hand in
+gratitude too deep for words, and the doctor went away well satisfied,
+to carry the good news to his niece and nephew.
+
+"Oh, how happy Marjorie will be!" cried Barbara, with sparkling eyes.
+"When she wrote me that she had met a great surgeon, but would never
+have the courage to speak to him about her aunt, how little either of us
+dreamed--oh, what a wonderful, beautiful thing it all is! To think that
+in five days I shall be with Mother. You don't think the shock will make
+her ill, do you, Uncle George?"
+
+"I hope not, dear, but we must be very careful how the news is broken to
+her. Now I want Beverly to go to bed, and you must try to sleep, too,
+Barbara, for you will need all your strength for the journey, and the
+meeting with your mother."
+
+But it was a long time before Barbara fell asleep that night. Old
+memories were trooping back thick and fast, and there was so much that
+was happy as well as sad to remember. She breathed more than one little
+prayer of thankfulness to the dear Heavenly Father, who had watched
+over her through all her trials and dangers, and brought her back at
+last to home and friends. And when sleep came at last, it was a
+peaceful, refreshing sleep, untroubled by feverish dreams.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII
+
+BREAKING THE NEWS
+
+
+"DO sit down, Marjorie; you haven't been still for five minutes since
+luncheon." Elsie spoke in a tone of weary exasperation, as she laid down
+the book she had been trying to read, and regarded her cousin's flushed
+cheeks and sparkling eyes, with a half amused, half annoyed expression.
+
+Marjorie laughed nervously.
+
+"I'm sorry I've been so restless," she said, "but how can I help it.
+Just think, they'll be here this very day, and Mrs. Randolph doesn't
+know a single thing yet."
+
+"Of course I know it's the most exciting thing that ever happened,"
+Elsie admitted, with resignation, "but one can't help getting tired even
+of exciting things when one has heard of nothing else for a whole week.
+It will be a week to-morrow since you got that telegram, and I don't
+believe you've thought of another thing since."
+
+"I don't believe I have," agreed Marjorie, "but then how could I? Oh,
+Elsie, I'm so happy when I think it has all come about through my
+recognizing that photograph! Just suppose Beverly and I hadn't gone to
+Mammy's cabin that afternoon. I might never have seen a picture of
+Barbara, and the Randolphs might never have known."
+
+"I wonder how they are going to break the news to Mrs. Randolph,"
+remarked Elsie, without heeding her cousin's last observation. "I should
+think it would be dreadfully dangerous; the shock might kill her."
+
+Marjorie's bright face clouded.
+
+"I can't help worrying about it," she said, "but I am sure Dr. Randolph
+will find a way of doing it. It's wonderful to see her so calm, just
+doing every-day things, and talking as if nothing unusual were
+happening, when we are all so excited and nervous."
+
+"I really don't see how you managed to keep her from suspecting when you
+were on the way home," said Elsie; "I'm afraid I should have let out
+something without intending to."
+
+"I couldn't do that," said Marjorie, gravely. "Think how terrible it
+would have been if Mrs. Randolph had hoped and then been disappointed.
+I was sure myself, but neither Dr. Randolph nor Beverly believed it
+could be true. I shall never forget that last evening in Virginia.
+Beverly and I were both almost ill from excitement, and yet we had to
+act just as if nothing unusual had happened. Fortunately the doctor and
+Beverly were to start the first thing in the morning, so we all went to
+bed early. I don't believe any of us slept a wink; I know I didn't. The
+day on the train wasn't quite so bad, because Mrs. Patterson was with
+us, and she hadn't been told anything, and could be natural without
+trying. I pretended to be very much interested in a book, so as not to
+have to talk much, but I couldn't tell you what it was about. And all
+the time Mrs. Randolph was just as sweet and calm as possible, and
+worried about me because my hands were cold, and I couldn't eat."
+
+"I think you were very plucky," said Elsie.
+
+The bright color rushed into Marjorie's cheeks; this was the first
+compliment Elsie had ever paid her.
+
+"I wasn't at all plucky," she said, modestly; "any one else would have
+done the same thing. I'm glad you think I was, though, for I do want you
+to like me."
+
+"Of course I like you," said Elsie, reddening in her turn. "There's the
+door-bell; I wonder if it's Mamma."
+
+"Perhaps it's a letter," cried Marjorie, springing to her feet; "I ought
+to have a letter from home to-day. I haven't heard a word since that
+little note from Aunt Jessie the morning after Barbara was found."
+
+But it was not a letter. Neither was it Mrs. Carleton, who had gone
+driving with a friend. In a moment the faithful Hortense appeared with a
+message.
+
+"Madame Randolph has sent to inquire if Mademoiselle Marjorie will come
+to her apartment for a short time. Her friend has been obliged to go
+out, and she is alone."
+
+Marjorie clasped her hands in dismay, and turned a little pale.
+
+"Send word you're very busy, and can't possibly come," suggested Elsie.
+But Marjorie shook her head.
+
+"I shall have to go," she said, with a little gasp. "Mrs. Randolph has
+been so good to me; she would think it so strange if I didn't come when
+she sent for me. Say I will be there in a few minutes, Hortense."
+
+"You really are a wonder, Marjorie," remarked Elsie, with involuntary
+admiration, as Hortense left the room with the message. "I'm sure I
+should never be able to do it."
+
+"Yes, you would," said Marjorie, smiling and without another word she
+followed Hortense out of the room.
+
+Marjorie's heart was beating very fast when she rang Mrs. Randolph's
+bell five minutes later, but when that lady herself opened the door, and
+greeted her guest with her usual serene cheerfulness, the girl pulled
+herself together with a mighty effort, and her friend noticed nothing
+unusual in her manner, except that her cheeks were flushed and her eyes
+shining.
+
+"I am so glad you could come this afternoon," Mrs. Randolph said,
+leading the way to the sitting-room. "I haven't seen you for days, and
+was beginning to feel quite neglected." She spoke playfully, but
+Marjorie felt the gentle reproach in her tone, and her heart beat faster
+than ever.
+
+"Indeed I didn't mean to neglect you," she said, eagerly, "but--but you
+see I have had a good deal to do since I came home; school began on
+Monday."
+
+"I understand, dear," said Mrs. Randolph, smiling, "and I am not blaming
+you in the least, but I have missed you very much."
+
+"You have had Mrs. Patterson," said Marjorie, as she took the seat her
+friend indicated beside her on the sofa.
+
+"Oh, yes, and she has been a great comfort, for I have missed Beverly
+terribly. He and the doctor will be at home this afternoon, you know."
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie; "Mrs. Patterson told us at luncheon. She said you
+had a headache; I hope it's better."
+
+"Much better, thank you, dear. I didn't come down to luncheon because I
+wanted to be quite bright and well this evening when Beverly is here.
+This is always a rather sad day for me; it is my little Barbara's
+birthday."
+
+Marjorie's heart gave one big jump, and began throbbing so fast she
+could scarcely breathe. She could not have spoken had her life depended
+on it, but fortunately Mrs. Randolph did not appear to expect an answer.
+
+"My little girl would have been fifteen to-day," she said, sadly. "It
+seems hard to realize; she was such a child when she went away. I have
+missed Beverly so much to-day; he and I always talk of Barbara on her
+birthday."
+
+"Would you like to talk to me about her, Mrs. Randolph?" said Marjorie,
+in a voice that was scarcely above a whisper.
+
+"I should like it very much. Indeed, that is why I sent for you. Mrs.
+Patterson has gone out. I offered to go with her, but she said she had
+some important business to attend to, and would rather go alone. I am
+afraid something is troubling her, and she doesn't want to worry me
+about it."
+
+Marjorie, who knew that Mrs. Patterson had gone to the station to meet
+the travelers, in answer to an urgent telegram from Dr. Randolph, said
+nothing. Mrs. Patterson, being a nervous, excitable little woman, had
+been purposely kept in ignorance of the real reason of her cousins'
+Western trip, and it was in order to break the news to her that the
+doctor had wired her to meet him at the station, and to say nothing on
+the subject of her errand to Mrs. Randolph. Consequently, the poor
+little lady had been filled by apprehensions of something dreadful
+having happened to one or both of the travelers, and had departed in a
+state of perturbation well calculated to arouse Mrs. Randolph's
+suspicions that something was troubling her.
+
+There was a moment's pause, and then Mrs. Randolph went on.
+
+"I never talk of my little girl to strangers--it is all too sacred for
+that--but you are not a stranger any more. I have loved you dearly ever
+since we stood together at my Barbara's grave, and you showed me by your
+silent sympathy how well you understood."
+
+Marjorie could not speak, but she took her friend's hand, and stroked it
+softly, while Mrs. Randolph went on, calmly, though with a quiver in her
+voice:
+
+"I used to try to make the children's birthdays as happy as possible; I
+thought they would be pleasant memories for them when they were older.
+Even the year after my husband died, when my heart was very sad, I
+wanted them to have a merry time. Little children's lives should never
+be saddened. I think you would have loved my little girl, Marjorie; she
+was very sweet."
+
+"I know I should," said Marjorie, with a sob, that was half hysterical.
+
+"I am afraid she was a sad rogue sometimes," said Mrs. Randolph,
+smiling; "Beverly and I often laugh even now over the memory of some of
+her pranks. I want him to remember all the bright, pleasant things, and
+not dwell too much on the sadness."
+
+"Mammy told me about some of Barbara's pranks," said Marjorie, "she
+showed me her photograph, too."
+
+Mrs. Randolph unfastened a small gold locket from a chain she always
+wore about her neck, and opened it. Inside was the miniature of a
+merry-faced girl of twelve--the same face that had looked at Marjorie
+from the photograph in Mammy's cabin.
+
+"That was taken only a few weeks before my little girl went away," she
+said. "She was just twelve then. I suppose she would look older now, but
+I can never think of Babs as growing up."
+
+Then Marjorie had an inspiration. How it came she never knew, but she
+had yielded to it before giving herself time to think.
+
+"That picture reminds me of some one I know," she said, and the moment
+the words were out she would have given everything she possessed to have
+left them unsaid.
+
+"Who is it?" Mrs. Randolph asked, her eyes still resting lovingly on the
+face of the miniature.
+
+"A girl who has been at my home since last summer," said Marjorie, who
+was beginning to feel cold and sick with excitement and apprehension,
+but was determined to go on now that she had begun. "She came to the
+ranch one day all by herself. She had walked all the way from the
+railroad. It was a very strange case; she had had an accident, and
+forgotten everything about herself, even her own name."
+
+"Forgotten her name!" said Mrs. Randolph, incredulously. "What a curious
+thing--are you sure her story was true?"
+
+"Oh, yes, quite sure. She was such a dear girl, we couldn't doubt her.
+Besides Father wrote to the people she had lived with since her
+accident, and they said everything Undine had told us was true. We
+called her Undine because it was pretty, and we didn't know her real
+name."
+
+"Poor child," said Mrs. Randolph, closing the miniature as she spoke.
+"Has she never remembered anything about herself since?"
+
+"She hadn't a week ago," said Marjorie, wondering how her shaking lips
+formed the words, "but perhaps she may some time. Oh, Mrs. Randolph,
+suppose she should remember, and it should turn out that she had
+relatives--brothers and sisters, and--and perhaps a mother, who had been
+mourning her as dead! Can you think how her mother would feel? Can you
+even imagine it, Mrs. Randolph?"
+
+"I think such joy would be more than any mother could bear," said Mrs.
+Randolph, softly. "But such strange, romantic things don't often happen
+in this world, Marjorie dear. The poor child's mother is probably dead,
+or she would have found her long ago. How did the accident happen?"
+
+Marjorie gave a great gasp.
+
+"We--we are not quite sure," she said. "Undine says the people at the
+hospital told her a stone must have fallen on her head. She was found in
+San Francisco under some ruins, after--after the earthquake."
+
+"After the earthquake," repeated Mrs. Randolph in a strange, startled
+tone, and she grew suddenly pale. "Oh, poor, poor child! At least my
+little Barbara was spared those horrors. Why have you never told me
+about this girl before, Marjorie?"
+
+"Because Beverly said it made you sad to have any one speak of the
+earthquake, and I couldn't have told Undine's story without mentioning
+it. It was dreadful, of course, but she was saved. Think of it, Mrs.
+Randolph, she was saved, and perhaps some time--" poor Marjorie's
+over-strained nerves gave way, and she burst into tears.
+
+Mrs. Randolph had grown very white; she was trembling, too, but she
+laid a firm hand on the girl's shoulder.
+
+"Marjorie," she cried sharply, "what does this mean? Why are you telling
+me all this? Something has happened, I know it has--oh, Marjorie, for
+God's sake tell me what it is! My little girl is dead; they brought her
+home to me, though they would not let me see her dear face. Marjorie,
+why do you cry so? You must tell me at once, do you hear? I say at
+once."
+
+"Oh, Mrs. Randolph, darling Mrs. Randolph, it isn't anything sad, indeed
+it isn't," sobbed Marjorie, with her arms about her friend's neck. "It's
+something beautiful; more beautiful and wonderful than you can ever
+imagine. I can't say any more, but Beverly will be here very soon, and
+he will tell you. Try to think of the very greatest joy that could
+possibly come to any one, and perhaps you will begin to have an idea
+what it is."
+
+Marjorie paused, conscious of the fact that some one had entered the
+room. In their excitement neither she nor Mrs. Randolph had noticed the
+opening of the door, or the sound of an approaching footstep. But now as
+she lifted her face from her friend's shoulder, Marjorie saw two figures
+standing on the threshold; they were Dr. Randolph and Beverly. At the
+same moment Mrs. Randolph also recognized them, and held out her arms to
+her son.
+
+"Beverly," she cried, "tell me what it is! You know, I see it in your
+face. Oh, Beverly, my darling, it isn't--it can't be news of Barbara?"
+
+"Yes, Mother, it is!" cried the boy, gathering her in his strong arms.
+"Can you bear a great shock, Mother--a great joyful shock?--because if
+you can, Uncle George and I have something to tell you."
+
+Marjorie waited for no more; such scenes were not for other eyes to see
+or other ears to hear. With a bound, she was out of the room, and flying
+across the corridor. In her flight she darted by two other figures
+without even seeing them; a trembling, white-faced girl clinging
+nervously to an older woman, whose face was scarcely less white than her
+own. She had but one thought: to reach her room before the burst of
+hysterical excitement completely overpowered her. A frantic ring at the
+Carletons' bell, and then the door was thrown open, and she was clinging
+to some one--presumably Hortense--crying and laughing both together.
+
+"Oh, Hortense, Hortense," she wailed, "I've told her, and they've come!
+You don't think the shock will kill her, do you?"
+
+But it was not Hortense who answered, or who held the hysterical child
+in loving, motherly arms.
+
+"Marjorie, my dear little Marjorie, don't tremble so! Everything will be
+all right, my darling, I know it will, and here are Aunt Jessie and I
+come all the way from Arizona to give you a big surprise."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV
+
+MARJORIE HAS HER WISH
+
+
+MARJORIE declared afterwards that she was sure that was the happiest
+moment of her life, but at the time the joyful surprise, coming so soon
+after the nervous strain of the past hour, proved almost too much for
+her, and she could do nothing for some time but hold her mother tight,
+and cry as if her heart would break.
+
+"It's the one thing I've been wishing for every day, and praying for
+every night since I came to New York," Marjorie said to her aunt, late
+that evening, when Miss Graham was in bed, and her niece was sitting
+beside her, holding her hand. "But I never dared hope it would really
+happen, even when I knew Dr. Randolph had gone to Arizona. We were all
+so excited about Barbara; it didn't seem as if he or Beverly would be
+able to think of anything else."
+
+"It was all Undine's doing," said Miss Jessie, smiling. She was looking
+pale and tired, but very happy and Marjorie gazed at her aunt, with
+shining eyes.
+
+"You know it was Undine who told her uncle about my accident," the
+invalid went on. "Dr. Randolph made an examination, and he hopes that I
+may be much helped by an operation. He is going to bring another surgeon
+to see me to-morrow, and if they agree in their opinion, I am to go to a
+hospital."
+
+Miss Graham spoke cheerfully, but there was a slight tremor in her
+voice, and Marjorie grew suddenly grave. They were both silent for a
+moment, and then Marjorie said:
+
+"Isn't Beverly a dear, and don't you like Dr. Randolph ever so much,
+too?"
+
+"I do indeed," said Miss Jessie, heartily. "I shall never forget their
+kindness during that long journey. As for Undine, she could not have
+been more devoted to me if she had been my own little niece. It has been
+a wonderful experience, Marjorie; I never expected to see the East
+again."
+
+Marjorie bent and kissed her.
+
+"Beautiful things do happen in the world as well as sad ones, don't
+they?" she said, softly. "When I think of you and Mother being here, and
+of Mrs. Randolph having found her Barbara, my heart is so full it seems
+as if it must surely burst. Here comes Mother; perhaps she will be able
+to tell us how Mrs. Randolph has borne the shock."
+
+Mrs. Graham's news was most reassuring.
+
+"I have seen Beverly," she said, "and he says his mother is quite calm
+now. At first they were anxious about her, but only for a little while.
+Beverly says his uncle thinks it was a fortunate thing you were able to
+prepare her a little before they came, Marjorie; otherwise it would have
+been more difficult to break the news to her."
+
+Marjorie gave a long sigh of relief.
+
+"I'm so glad it wasn't wrong," she said. "I was horribly frightened
+after I had begun, but when Mrs. Randolph showed me that picture, it
+came to me all at once to tell her about Undine. I thought that if she
+heard of one girl who was saved from the earthquake, she might be able
+to believe that another girl was saved, too."
+
+Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie both smiled, and then Mrs. Graham said she
+must obey the doctor's instructions, and see that her sister-in-law was
+kept quiet, and went to sleep early.
+
+Marjorie and her mother had a long talk that night, after Aunt Jessie
+was asleep, and the girl opened her heart as she had not done since
+leaving home, and Mrs. Graham learned of many things that she had not
+been told in letters.
+
+"I think Elsie really does like me now," finished Marjorie, when she had
+told of the many heartaches caused by the fear that her cousin did not
+like her. "She has been very sweet since I came back from Virginia, and
+just as kind and sympathetic as she could be."
+
+Mrs. Graham looked pleased.
+
+"Elsie has been spoiled," she said, "but I believe she has the right
+stuff in her, after all. I am glad you have told me all these things,
+dear, although I understand your reasons for not writing them. You have
+had a harder time than I suspected, but I don't think it has done you
+any harm. Do you know, Marjorie, I am inclined to be rather proud of my
+little girl?"
+
+Those last words of her mother's filled Marjorie's cup to the brim, and
+I doubt if in all the great city that night, there were two happier
+beings than she and Barbara Randolph.
+
+But it was not all happiness for Marjorie during the next few days.
+There followed hours of keen anxiety about Aunt Jessie, and for a time
+she forgot everything else while she waited in suspense for the verdict
+of the two great surgeons.
+
+It was on an afternoon three days later, that she and Barbara sat
+together in the Randolphs' parlor, waiting for the news, which was to
+tell them whether Jessie Graham was to go through life a helpless
+cripple, or be restored to health and strength once more. The day before
+she had been taken to a private hospital, and the girls knew that an
+operation was to be performed that afternoon. They were alone, for Mrs.
+Graham was with her sister-in-law, and Mrs. Randolph--almost as anxious
+as the others--had gone to the hospital for news, promising to return as
+soon as possible. So Marjorie and Barbara sat together side by side on
+the sofa, holding each other's hands, and waiting in almost breathless
+suspense.
+
+"Mother will be sure to let us know just as soon as there's anything to
+tell," whispered Barbara, anxious to cheer her friend. "She says Uncle
+George told her he was very hopeful."
+
+"I know," said Marjorie, "he told us all so, but I can't help being
+frightened when I think of all it means to Aunt Jessie. She doesn't say
+much, but I know how she must feel. Just think how we would feel if we
+hadn't walked a step for more than eight years."
+
+"Where is your cousin this afternoon?" inquired Barbara, by way of
+changing the subject. She was almost as anxious as Marjorie, but she
+had been living at high pressure for so long, it was a relief to get
+down to commonplaces.
+
+"I don't know," said Marjorie; "she was going out, but it rained so hard
+Aunt Julia wouldn't let her go, on account of her cold. Aunt Julia is
+very fussy about colds."
+
+"Don't you think she would like to come in here with us?" suggested
+Barbara. "She may be lonely all by herself."
+
+"I don't believe she is lonely," said Marjorie, doubtfully, "but if you
+think she might like to come--"
+
+A ring at the door-bell brought Marjorie's sentence to an abrupt end,
+and both girls sprang to their feet.
+
+"I'll see who it is," said Barbara; "it may be a message from Mother."
+And she flew to open the door, while Marjorie sank back in her seat,
+feeling suddenly cold and sick with fear.
+
+But it was not a message from Mrs. Randolph; it was Elsie.
+
+"I just came to ask if you had heard anything yet," she said, looking
+rather embarrassed, as she noticed the expression of disappointment on
+Barbara's face.
+
+"No, we haven't," Barbara answered; "we thought it might be a message
+when we heard the bell. Won't you come in?"
+
+Elsie hesitated.
+
+"Do you really want me?" she asked, doubtfully; "I thought perhaps you
+would rather be by yourselves."
+
+"Of course we want you," declared Barbara, heartily, while Marjorie--in
+the background--gave a little gasp of astonishment. Such humility from
+the proud Elsie was something that had never entered her imagination.
+
+Elsie made no remark, but she came in, and followed Barbara to the
+sitting-room, where Marjorie smiled a welcome which appeared to set her
+cousin more at her ease.
+
+"I am sure you must be almost as anxious as we are," said Barbara,
+"though of course you don't know Miss Jessie as well. No one could help
+loving her."
+
+"No, they couldn't," agreed Elsie, in a rather low voice, and then she
+walked over to the window, and stood with her back to the others,
+looking out at the falling rain.
+
+Nobody talked much during the next half-hour. Marjorie and Barbara both
+had lumps in their throats, and words did not come easily. Elsie, too,
+was unusually silent. There was another little excitement when the bell
+rang again, and Beverly came in. Beverly had been through a great deal
+during the past two weeks, but boys of eighteen cannot live on high
+pressure for very long without a reaction setting in. Beverly was a very
+natural, healthy-minded boy, and the reaction in his case took the form
+of unusually high spirits.
+
+"Don't all have such long faces," he remarked, cheerfully, surveying the
+solemn little group. "Just make up your minds everything is coming out
+all right, and you'll see it will. I've got more faith in Uncle George
+than in any other surgeon in the country. Think of what he did for that
+English boy we met at the Bells'."
+
+"I know Uncle George is wonderful," said Barbara, a trifle more hopeful,
+"but even he may not be able to cure everybody. You would be just as
+anxious as Marjorie and I, Beverly, if you knew dear Miss Jessie as well
+as we do."
+
+"I didn't say I wasn't anxious. I only said I didn't see any use in such
+long faces before you know whether there was anything to be mournful
+about. How do you do, Miss Elsie? I haven't seen you in a week of
+Sundays."
+
+In his present exuberant spirits, Beverly was quite ready to forget past
+unpleasantness, but Elsie had not forgotten, as her heightened color
+and embarrassed manner plainly showed.
+
+Beverly went to the piano, and began playing rag-time, with the cheerful
+desire of raising the drooping spirits of the party. He proposed they
+should sing college songs, but nobody felt inclined for singing and the
+attempt proved a dismal failure.
+
+"What a very uncomfortable thing suspense is," remarked Barbara, as the
+clock struck five.
+
+"You would say so if you had been through the suspense Marjorie and I
+have," her brother said. "We know something of what suspense means,
+don't we, Marjorie?"
+
+"Indeed we do," said Marjorie, rousing herself from present anxieties
+with an effort. "Oh, Beverly, those awful days when you and your uncle
+were on your way to Arizona, and I couldn't be absolutely sure I hadn't
+made a mistake about that photo after all. Suppose I had been mistaken,
+and you had had that terrible disappointment!"
+
+"Well, you were not mistaken, you see," broke in Beverly, who felt that
+the recollection of those days was still too vivid to bear discussion.
+"Come and sit by me, Babs," and he made room for his sister on the piano
+stool.
+
+But all suspense, however long, must come to an end at last, and just as
+the clock was striking half past five, there was another ring at the
+bell, followed by a simultaneous rush to the door. Only Marjorie
+remained behind. Until that moment she had scarcely realized how great
+her anxiety was, and her knees shook so that she could not rise from her
+chair. She heard all the others talking at once, apparently asking some
+question, and then Mrs. Randolph's voice, but she could not hear her
+words.
+
+"Marjorie, Marjorie, where are you?" cried Barbara joyfully; "here's
+Mother!"
+
+"I'm here," said Marjorie, faintly, and the next moment Mrs. Randolph
+was beside her, holding both her cold hands. Marjorie's eyes asked the
+question her lips refused to form, and Mrs. Randolph bent and kissed
+her.
+
+"Marjorie dear," she said in a voice that was not quite steady, though
+she was smiling, "your mother wanted me to tell you that the operation
+is over, and that Dr. Randolph feels almost certain it has been
+successful."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV
+
+ELSIE REDEEMS HERSELF
+
+
+"DO you know, Aunt Jessie, that to-morrow will be the first of May? It's
+nearly four months since you and Mother came to New York."
+
+Miss Graham was leaning back in a comfortable arm-chair by an open
+window, through which the bright spring sunshine was pouring, flooding
+every corner of the pleasant hotel bedroom. She was still looking rather
+frail and delicate, but there was an expression of hope and joy in her
+face, that had never been there in the old days at the ranch. A crutch
+stood at her side, but there was no wheeled-chair to be seen. At
+Marjorie's words she looked round with a smile.
+
+"Time has certainly flown," she said. "Have you had a pleasant ride?"
+
+"It was glorious. Beverly and I had a splendid gallop. I hope you
+enjoyed your drive."
+
+"Yes, it was lovely," said Miss Jessie, secretly thinking that Marjorie
+had grown very pretty lately. She looked so well in her perfectly
+fitting riding habit, with her rosy cheeks and sparkling eyes. "I
+wasn't at all tired when I came home either, which Dr. Randolph
+considers a distinct gain. He says I am one of his star patients. Have
+you finished your lessons for to-morrow?"
+
+"Haven't any; it's Saturday, you know. I shall have plenty of time to
+study between now and Monday. I came to have a little chat with you
+before I dress. I'm going out this evening, you remember. It's the last
+meeting of the Club, and quite an important occasion. The Bells are
+sailing for Europe to-morrow, and Lulu is our president."
+
+"I thought you wrote me that Elsie was elected president," said Miss
+Graham, who seldom forgot anything Marjorie told her.
+
+"She was at first," said Marjorie, hoping her aunt would not notice her
+suddenly heightened color. She drew a low chair to Miss Jessie's side,
+and settled herself for a comfortable chat.
+
+"Why did she give it up?" Miss Graham inquired, with interest.
+
+"I--I don't exactly know. It was after I came back from Virginia and
+Barbara came home. She said she would rather not be president any more,
+and asked Lulu to take her place."
+
+"I like Elsie," said Miss Jessie. "She is very clever, and has been
+rather spoiled in consequence, but there is much that is fine about her.
+She will make a noble woman, I am sure."
+
+Marjorie looked pleased.
+
+"Elsie likes you," she said, "and I don't think she is really fond of
+many people. She hasn't nearly as many friends as most of the girls at
+school have, but I love her dearly, and so does Babs."
+
+"I had a letter from your father this afternoon," Miss Jessie said,
+after a little pause; "I am keeping it for you to read. He says things
+are looking up at the ranch, and he is hoping for a better season than
+last. He thinks he may possibly be able to come East for us himself next
+month. I do hope he can, for it would be such a treat for him."
+
+"I suppose he is thankful to get Mother back," said Marjorie, "but, oh,
+how we do miss her, don't we, Aunt Jessie?"
+
+"Yes, indeed, but it wouldn't have been fair to have kept her any longer
+when she was so anxious to get home to your father. After all, she had a
+good long rest, and your father declares she is looking ten years
+younger in consequence."
+
+"What a wonderful winter it has been," said Marjorie, reflectively,
+resting her knee against her aunt's knee. "When I left home last
+October, how little any of us dreamed of all the strange, beautiful
+things that were going to happen. Those first weeks were pretty hard; I
+was a good deal more homesick than I let any of you know, but I knew
+everybody meant to be kind and I did try hard to make the best of
+things. Then came the Randolphs' invitation to spend the holidays in
+Virginia, and the wonderful discovery about Undine. And then--as if that
+wasn't happiness enough--Dr. Randolph saw you, and brought you and
+Mother back to New York with him. The operation was pretty dreadful, but
+ever since Dr. Randolph told us he was sure it had been a success,
+everything has been simply heavenly."
+
+Miss Jessie said nothing, but softly stroked Marjorie's hair, and there
+was such a look of joy in her eyes, that the girl could not help being
+struck by it.
+
+"Aunt Jessie," she said, laughing, "do you know, I never realized before
+how young you are. I used to think of you as quite a middle-aged lady,
+but I don't know how it is, you look different now somehow--almost like
+a girl."
+
+"I was twenty-nine last week," said Miss Jessie, smiling; "I suppose
+twenty-nine may seem middle-aged to fifteen."
+
+"But it doesn't," protested Marjorie; "not a bit; I think I must have
+been a goose ever to have thought such a thing. Beverly calls you a
+perfect trump, and he wouldn't say that about any one he considered
+middle-aged; it wouldn't be respectful."
+
+"I am very much obliged to Beverly for his good opinion," said Miss
+Jessie, laughing and blushing in such a very girlish manner that her
+niece regarded her in growing astonishment.
+
+"I believe it's the thought of being well and strong again that has made
+all the difference," she said. "Oh, Aunt Jessie darling, think of it,
+you'll never have to sit in that dreadful wheeled-chair again! What
+walks and rides we'll have together. Are you sure Dr. Randolph will let
+you go back to the ranch in June?"
+
+"He says I shall be quite strong enough for the journey by that time,"
+Miss Graham answered, but she did not meet Marjorie's direct gaze as she
+spoke. "I feel that I ought not to trespass on the Randolphs'
+hospitality any longer than is necessary. Think of what they have done
+for me, Marjorie. First all those weeks at the hospital, and then
+insisting on my coming here, and all of it just because we were kind to
+Undine."
+
+"I don't think that is the only reason," said Marjorie, eagerly. "That
+was the beginning of it, of course, but now they all love you for
+yourself. Babs says her mother loves you dearly, and she and Beverly
+were both so pleased because you said they might call you 'Aunt Jessie.'
+As for the doctor, I'm sure he likes you ever so much."
+
+"There's some one at the door; go and see who it is, Marjorie."
+
+Marjorie rose obediently, wondering what could have possibly caused her
+aunt's sudden embarrassment, and when she returned she was followed by
+Barbara, who had also dropped in for a little chat, Miss Jessie's room
+being a favorite rendezvous with all the young people.
+
+"Well, and what have you been doing this afternoon?" Miss Graham asked
+pleasantly, as Barbara settled herself for a comfortable half-hour.
+
+"I went for a walk with Elsie and Hortense. We had a nice time, but I
+don't think Elsie felt very well, she was so quiet. I asked her if her
+head ached, and she said no, but I'm afraid it did."
+
+"I don't think Elsie has seemed quite like herself for several days,"
+said Miss Jessie, a little anxiously. "Perhaps she is studying too hard;
+her mother tells me she is so very ambitious."
+
+Neither of the girls had any explanation to suggest, and they all
+chatted on pleasantly on various subjects until it was time to go away
+and dress for dinner. Barbara was also going to the Club that evening,
+having been admitted as a guest of honor some months before. Indeed, she
+was quite the heroine of the hour, for the romantic story had quickly
+spread from friends and acquaintances to strangers, and she had even
+been written about in several newspapers, a circumstance which had
+filled the breasts of some other girls with envy. For several weeks
+there was not a girl in the city so much talked about as Barbara
+Randolph, the child who had been mourned as dead by her family for
+nearly three years, and then reappeared under conditions sufficiently
+interesting and romantic to fill the pages of a thrilling story-book.
+The Randolphs disliked the publicity, but Barbara was pursued by
+reporters and photographers until Beverly lost his temper, and
+positively refused to allow any member of the family to grant another
+interview.
+
+"How does it feel to know that everybody in New York is talking about
+you, and all the papers asking for your picture?" Elsie had asked one
+day, to which Barbara had answered, with a laugh:
+
+"I don't know that I have any particular feelings about it. I am too
+happy at being at home again with Mother and Beverly to care for
+anything else in the world."
+
+Elsie was nowhere to be seen when Marjorie returned to her uncle's
+apartment, and the cousins did not meet till they were both dressed for
+the evening, and had joined Mr. and Mrs. Carleton in the drawing-room.
+Then Mrs. Carleton's first words were an anxious question.
+
+"Are you sure you are feeling quite well this evening, Elsie darling?
+You are very pale."
+
+"Of course I'm all right," said Elsie, crossly. "I do wish you wouldn't
+fuss so much about me, Mamma."
+
+Mrs. Carleton sighed.
+
+"I am sure I don't intend to fuss," she said, plaintively, "but how can
+I help worrying when I see you looking so badly, especially when you
+will insist on studying so hard?"
+
+"Nonsense," said Mr. Carleton, looking up from his evening paper, with a
+frown. "I have looked over Elsie's lessons, and there is nothing wrong
+there. She isn't studying any harder than a healthy girl of her age
+should. What's the matter, Elsie--don't you feel quite up to the mark?"
+
+He spoke kindly, but his tone was a trifle impatient, and before Elsie
+could reply, her mother began again.
+
+"She won't tell you; she insists there is nothing the matter, but she
+has not looked like herself for days. If she isn't better to-morrow I
+shall have the doctor see her, and give her a tonic."
+
+Mr. Carleton threw down his newspaper.
+
+"My dear Julia," he said, "I believe you consider a tonic a cure for
+every evil in the world. The girls are ready, so let us go down to
+dinner, and see if Elsie doesn't make up for her loss of appetite at
+luncheon."
+
+But Elsie did not make up for her lack of appetite at luncheon. She
+toyed with her food, and her color changed so often, from white to red,
+and back to white again, that by the time dinner was over even her
+father began to look at her curiously. But when Mrs. Carleton suggested
+that she should not go to Gertie Rossiter's, where the Club was to be
+held that evening, she protested that she was perfectly well, and was so
+decided in her determination to go, that, as usual, she had her way.
+
+The meeting was at eight, and Marjorie and Elsie were obliged to hurry
+away from the dinner table to join the two Randolphs, as the four were
+to go together in the Carletons' carriage.
+
+"Uncle George says we might have had his car as well as not," remarked
+Barbara, as they took their seats in the carriage. "He has come to spend
+the evening with Mother and Aunt Jessie, and won't need it."
+
+"Your uncle is very generous with his car," said Marjorie, innocently.
+"He lent it to your mother and Aunt Jessie this afternoon, you know, and
+Aunt Jessie said they had a beautiful ride."
+
+"Oh, Uncle George would do anything in the world for Aunt Jessie,"
+remarked Barbara, at which her brother smiled a rather mischievous
+smile, but said nothing.
+
+There was an unusually large gathering of the Club that evening, in
+honor of the president, who, with her family, was to sail for Europe the
+following day. As it was a gala occasion, no sewing was to be done, and
+the boys were invited to come with the girls, and devote the evening to
+dancing and games.
+
+"I'm afraid our sewing really hasn't amounted to very much," Winifred
+Hamilton remarked ruefully. "Mother says she's afraid the Blind Babies
+would be badly off if they had to depend upon us for clothes, but we've
+had an awfully jolly winter, and I'm sorry it's over, aren't you, Mr.
+Randolph?"
+
+"Well, summer is pretty jolly, too, you know," answered Beverly,
+smiling. "I sha'n't be sorry to have vacation begin. We are going abroad
+as soon as college closes."
+
+"How nice," said Winifred, looking interested; "perhaps you'll meet the
+Bells. They expect to stay over till October. I really don't know how I
+shall manage to get on so long without Lulu."
+
+"Why don't you go, too?" Beverly asked, good-naturedly.
+
+"I should love to, but I couldn't leave Mother. Dr. Bell offered to take
+me, and Father and Mother said I might go if I liked, but I couldn't
+make up my mind to leave them. Perhaps some day we shall go ourselves,"
+finished Winifred, trying to look hopeful.
+
+"I'll let you into a little secret if you'll promise not to tell," said
+Beverly, who had a genuine liking for Winifred, despite the fact that
+she was "young for her age." "My mother is very anxious to have Marjorie
+go with us, provided her parents will consent. Miss Graham thinks they
+will, and Mother has written to ask them before speaking to Marjorie
+herself. Mind you don't tell, for it's a great secret. Even Babs doesn't
+know, for she and Marjorie are such chums she would be sure to let
+something out. Hello! what's up? Lulu is going to make a speech."
+
+There was a sudden hush as Lulu, with Elsie at her side, stepped
+forward, and rapped sharply on the table, to call the club to order.
+
+"Ladies and gentlemen," she began in what the girls called "her
+presidential tone," "I didn't expect to have any regular meeting this
+evening, but Miss Elsie Carleton has an announcement to make, and has
+asked me to tell you she would like to speak. As you all know Miss
+Carleton was your president until she resigned in favor of another, I am
+sure you will all be pleased to hear what she has to say. Go ahead,
+Elsie; everybody's listening."
+
+All eyes were turned in surprise upon Elsie, as she stood before them,
+very pale, but with a look of settled determination on her face. Twice
+she tried to speak, and stopped, and they could all see that she was
+very nervous. Then the words came, very low, but sufficiently audible to
+reach every ear in the room.
+
+"Girls," she began, looking straight before her, and clasping and
+unclasping her hands as she spoke, "girls and boys, too, for I want you
+all to hear. I have a confession to make. It's about something that
+happened at the first meeting of this Club--the night we were all
+initiated. That poem I wrote--some of you thought it was the best, and
+you made me president--it--it wasn't original; I learned it when I was a
+little girl, but I thought nobody would recognize it. I didn't mean to
+cheat at first, but I couldn't make up anything that I thought was good
+enough, and I hated to have the other poems better than mine. I haven't
+anything more to say except that I've been ashamed of myself ever since,
+and I can't have you go on thinking me cleverer than I am, any longer."
+And then, without waiting to note the effect of her startling
+announcement, Elsie turned and fled.
+
+Marjorie and Barbara found her upstairs in the dressing-room, crying as
+if her heart would break. Neither of them said a word, but Marjorie put
+her arms round her cousin's neck and hugged her.
+
+[Illustration: "IT TAKES A LOT OF PLUCK TO GET UP AND SAY A THING LIKE
+THAT."--_Page 355._]
+
+"What are they saying about me?" whispered Elsie, burying her face on
+Marjorie's shoulder. "Do they all despise me?"
+
+"Not a bit of it," declared Marjorie, reassuringly. "They're all saying
+how plucky it was of you to confess. Lulu says she never liked you so
+much before in her life. As for me, I'm so proud of you I don't know
+what to do. Oh, Elsie darling, I'm so glad you did it!"
+
+"It was you who made me do it," sobbed Elsie, clinging to her cousin.
+"You were so splendid about it all. You knew, and yet you never told any
+one, not even Papa when he was provoked with you, because you wouldn't
+explain what the trouble between us was. Your brother knew too, Babs,
+and he has never said a word, but I know how he has despised me. I've
+despised myself too--oh, how I have despised myself! I've been selfish
+and conceited all my life, and I didn't care much, but one can't help
+feeling mean and ashamed beside girls like you, and brave, wonderful
+women like Aunt Jessie. I don't believe I've got one real friend in the
+world."
+
+"You've got lots," protested Marjorie and Barbara both together.
+"Just come downstairs and see if you haven't."
+
+It was a very quiet, subdued Elsie who reëntered the drawing-room,
+escorted by her two staunch friends, but the welcome she received was
+such that, before the evening was over, she found herself able to smile,
+and take a passing interest in life once more. Elsie had many faults,
+but she was not a bad girl, and she had learned a lesson that would last
+her all her life. One of the first to approach her and hold out his
+hand, was Beverly Randolph.
+
+"You're a trump, Elsie," he said, in his blunt, boyish way. "It takes a
+lot of pluck to get up and say a thing like that. Let's shake hands and
+be friends." And at that moment Elsie was happier than she had been in
+months.
+
+"I think I'll just stop a minute to say good-night to Aunt Jessie,"
+remarked Marjorie, as they were going up to their apartment in the lift.
+"I don't believe she has gone to bed yet if Dr. Randolph is spending the
+evening. Tell Aunt Julia I'll be right up, Elsie."
+
+So Marjorie stepped out of the lift with the Randolphs, while Elsie went
+up another floor to her own apartment. Mrs. Randolph had insisted that
+Miss Graham should be her guest on leaving the hospital, and one of the
+most comfortable rooms in the apartment had been assigned to her.
+
+It was Mrs. Randolph herself who opened the door for the young people;
+she was smiling, and looked as if she were pleased about something.
+
+"Has Aunt Jessie gone to bed?" Marjorie asked.
+
+"No, dear, she is in the parlor with Uncle George, and I think she wants
+to see you."
+
+Barbara hurried her mother off to her room, to tell of the events of the
+evening, and Beverly followed, at a mysterious signal from Mrs.
+Randolph, so Marjorie was the only one to enter the cozy little parlor,
+where she found her aunt and the doctor sitting on the sofa side by
+side.
+
+"I just came in for a minute to say good-night," she began. "I've had a
+lovely evening, and--and--" here Marjorie paused abruptly, struck by
+something unusual in the faces of her two listeners.
+
+"Is--is anything the matter?" she inquired anxiously.
+
+"Do we look as if there were?" inquired the doctor, and he smiled such a
+radiant smile that Marjorie's sudden anxiety melted into thin air.
+
+"No, not exactly, but Aunt Jessie looks so--so different. Oh, Aunt
+Jessie darling, I know something has happened--is it good news?"
+
+"The very best news in the world for me," said the doctor, laughing,
+while Aunt Jessie drew her niece into her arms, and hid her smiling,
+blushing face on Marjorie's shoulder. "Your aunt has promised to give me
+something that I want more than anything else. Marjorie, do you think
+you would like to have me for an uncle?"
+
+"And that was just the crowning happiness of all," said Marjorie, when
+she and Elsie were talking things over half an hour later. "I thought I
+was just as happy as any girl could be before, but when I saw that look
+on Aunt Jessie's face, and thought of all she had suffered, and how
+brave she had been, it seemed as if my heart would burst with gladness.
+It's just the most beautiful ending to a beautiful winter."
+
+"I wish I had done more to make the first part of the winter happy,"
+said Elsie, with a remorseful sigh. "I don't see why you didn't hate me,
+Marjorie; I'm sure I deserved it."
+
+"Why, I couldn't," said Marjorie, simply, "you were my own cousin, you
+know."
+
+Elsie went up to her cousin, and put her arms round her. That was such
+an unusual proceeding from cold, undemonstrative Elsie that Marjorie
+was speechless with astonishment.
+
+"I believe you are the best girl in the world, Marjorie," she said,
+unsteadily. "I'm not worthy of your friendship, but if you will really
+love me, and forgive me for all the mean, hateful things I've done, I
+will try to deserve it--I will indeed."
+
+
+THE END
+
+
+
+
+DOROTHY BROWN
+
+By NINA RHOADES
+
+
+ Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington Large 12mo
+ Cloth $1.50
+
+[Illustration]
+
+THIS is considerably longer than the other books by this favorite
+writer, and with a more elaborate plot, but it has the same winsome
+quality throughout. It introduces the heroine in New York as a little
+girl of eight, but soon passes over six years and finds her at a select
+family boarding school in Connecticut. An important part of the story
+also takes place at the Profile House in the White Mountains. The charm
+of school-girl friendship is finely brought out, and the kindness of
+heart, good sense and good taste which find constant expression in the
+books by Miss Rhoades do not lack for characters to show these best of
+qualities by their lives. Other less admirable persons of course appear
+to furnish the alluring mystery, which is not all cleared up until the
+very last.
+
+ "There will be no better book than this to put
+ into the hands of a girl in her teens and none
+ that will be better appreciated by
+ her."--_Kennebec Journal._
+
+
+
+
+
+MARION'S VACATION
+
+By NINA RHOADES
+
+
+ Illustrated by Bertha G. Davidson 12mo Cloth $1.25
+
+[Illustration]
+
+THIS book is for the older girls, Marion being thirteen. She has for ten
+years enjoyed a luxurious home in New York with the kind lady who feels
+that the time has now come for this aristocratic though lovable little
+miss to know her own nearest kindred, who are humble but most excellent
+farming people in a pretty Vermont village. Thither Marion is sent for a
+summer, which proves to be a most important one to her in all its
+lessons.
+
+ "More wholesome reading for half grown girls it
+ would be hard to find; some of the same lessons
+ that proved so helpful in that classic of the last
+ generation 'An Old Fashioned Girl' are brought
+ home to the youthful readers of this sweet and
+ sensible story."--_Milwaukee Free Press._
+
+
+
+
+Only Dollie
+
+ By NINA RHOADES Illustrated by Bertha Davidson
+ Square 12mo Cloth $1.00
+
+[Illustration]
+
+THIS is a brightly written story of a girl of twelve, who, when the
+mystery of her birth is solved, like Cinderella, passes from drudgery to
+better circumstances. There is nothing strained or unnatural at any
+point. All descriptions or portrayals of character are life-like, and
+the book has an indescribable appealing quality which wins sympathy and
+secures success.
+
+ "It is delightful reading at all times."--_Cedar
+ Rapids (Ia.) Republican._
+
+ "It is well written, the story runs smoothly, the
+ idea is good, and it is handled with
+ ability."--_Chicago Journal._
+
+
+
+
+The Little Girl Next Door
+
+ By NINA RHOADES Large 12mo Cloth Illustrated
+ by Bertha Davidson $1.00
+
+[Illustration]
+
+A DELIGHTFUL story of true and genuine friendship between an impulsive
+little girl in a fine New York home and a little blind girl in an
+apartment next door. The little girl's determination to cultivate the
+acquaintance, begun out of the window during a rainy day, triumphs over
+the barriers of caste, and the little blind girl proves to be in every
+way a worthy companion. Later a mystery of birth is cleared up, and the
+little blind girl proves to be of gentle birth as well as of gentle
+manners.
+
+
+
+
+Winifred's Neighbors
+
+
+ By NINA RHOADES Illustrated
+ by Bertha G. Davidson Large
+ 12mo Cloth $1.00
+
+[Illustration]
+
+LITTLE Winifred's efforts to find some children of whom she reads in a
+book lead to the acquaintance of a neighbor of the same name, and this
+acquaintance proves of the greatest importance to Winifred's own family.
+Through it all she is just such a little girl as other girls ought to
+know, and the story will hold the interest of all ages.
+
+ _For sale by all booksellers, or sent postpaid on receipt
+ of price by the publishers_
+
+ LOTHROP, LEE & SHEPARD CO., BOSTON
+
+
+
+
+ * * * * *
+
+
+
+
+Transcriber's note:
+
+Obvious punctuation errors were corrected.
+
+Page 104, "stiches" changed to "stitches" (aunt's stitches had)
+
+Page 200, "Glass" changed to "Grass" (Keep off the Grass)
+
+Page 219, "Luly" changed to "Lulu" (Lulu Bell, one)
+
+
+
+***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA***
+
+
+******* This file should be named 32417-8.txt or 32417-8.zip *******
+
+
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/3/2/4/1/32417
+
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://www.gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://www.gutenberg.org/about/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit:
+http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
diff --git a/32417-8.zip b/32417-8.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..58abd22
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-8.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h.zip b/32417-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..33f80ac
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/32417-h.htm b/32417-h/32417-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..dff921a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/32417-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,11803 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
+ "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
+<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml">
+<head>
+<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=ISO-8859-1" />
+<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Girl from Arizona, by Nina Rhoades</title>
+ <style type="text/css">
+
+ p {margin-top: .75em;
+ text-align: justify;
+ text-indent: 1.25em;
+ margin-bottom: .75em;
+ }
+ img {border: 0;}
+ .tnote {border: dashed 1px; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; padding-bottom: .5em; padding-top: .5em;
+ padding-left: .5em; padding-right: .5em;}
+ ins {text-decoration:none; border-bottom: thin dotted gray;}
+ h1,h2,h3,h4,h5,h6 {
+ text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
+ clear: both;
+ }
+ hr { width: 33%;
+ margin-top: 2em;
+ margin-bottom: 2em;
+ margin-left: auto;
+ margin-right: auto;
+ clear: both;
+ }
+
+ table {margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto;}
+
+ body{margin-left: 10%;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+ }
+
+ .pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
+ /* visibility: hidden; */
+ position: absolute;
+ left: 92%;
+ font-size: smaller;
+ text-align: right;
+ } /* page numbers */
+ .copyright {text-align: center; font-size: 70%;}
+ .blockquot{margin-left: 5%; margin-right: 10%; text-align: justify;}
+
+ .bbox {border: solid 2px; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; padding-bottom: .5em; padding-top: .5em;
+ padding-left: .5em; padding-right: .5em;}
+
+ .center {text-align: center;}
+ .smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
+
+ .caption {font-weight: bold; font-size: 70%;}
+
+ .figcenter {margin: auto; text-align: center;}
+
+ .figleft {float: left; clear: left; margin-left: 0; margin-bottom: 1em; margin-top:
+ 1em; margin-right: 1em; padding: 0; text-align: center;}
+
+ .figright {float: right; clear: right; margin-left: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em;
+ margin-top: 1em; margin-right: 0; padding: 0; text-align: center;}
+ .u {text-decoration: underline;}
+ .unindent {margin-top: .75em;
+ text-align: justify;
+ margin-bottom: .75em;
+ }
+ .right {text-align: right;}
+ .poem {margin-left: 30%; margin-right: 10%; text-align: left;}
+ .poem2 {margin-left: 15%; margin-right: 10%; text-align: left;}
+ .sig {margin-right: 10%; text-align: right;}
+ .hang1 {text-indent: -3em; margin-left: 3em;}
+ .cap:first-letter {float: left; clear: left; margin: -0.2em 0.1em 0; margin-top: 0%;
+ padding: 0; line-height: .75em; font-size: 300%; text-align: justify;}
+ .cap {text-align: justify;}
+
+ hr.full { width: 100%;
+ margin-top: 3em;
+ margin-bottom: 0em;
+ margin-left: auto;
+ margin-right: auto;
+ height: 4px;
+ border-width: 4px 0 0 0; /* remove all borders except the top one */
+ border-style: solid;
+ border-color: #000000;
+ clear: both; }
+ pre {font-size: 85%;}
+ </style>
+</head>
+<body>
+<h1>The Project Gutenberg eBook, The Girl from Arizona, by Nina Rhoades,
+Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington</h1>
+<pre>
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at <a href = "http://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a></pre>
+<p>Title: The Girl from Arizona</p>
+<p>Author: Nina Rhoades</p>
+<p>Release Date: May 18, 2010 [eBook #32417]</p>
+<p>Language: English</p>
+<p>Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1</p>
+<p>***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA***</p>
+<p>&nbsp;</p>
+<h4>E-text prepared by Emmy, Darleen Dove,<br />
+ and the Project Gutenberg Online Distributed Proofreading Team<br />
+ (<a href="http://www.pgdp.net/c/">http://www.pgdp.net</a>)<br />
+ from page images generously made available by<br />
+ Internet Archive<br />
+ (<a href="http://www.archive.org/">http://www.archive.org</a>)</h4>
+<p>&nbsp;</p>
+<table border="0" style="background-color: #ccccff;" cellpadding="10">
+ <tr>
+ <td valign="top">
+ Note:
+ </td>
+ <td>
+ Images of the original pages are available through
+ Internet Archive. See
+ <a href="http://www.archive.org/details/girlfromarizona00rhoarich">
+ http://www.archive.org/details/girlfromarizona00rhoarich</a>
+ </td>
+ </tr>
+</table>
+<p>&nbsp;</p>
+<hr class="full" />
+<p>&nbsp;</p>
+
+<div class="figcenter" style="width: 311px;">
+<img src="images/cover.jpg" width="311" height="500" alt="Cover" title="" />
+</div>
+
+<h1>THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA</h1>
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<div class='bbox'>
+<h2>BOOKS BY NINA RHOADES</h2>
+
+<div class='center'>&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;</div>
+
+<div class='center'>
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="Nina Rhoades books">
+<tr><td align='left'>MARION'S VACATION. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth.</td><td align='left'>$1.25</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>DOROTHY BROWN. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth.</td><td align='left'>$1.50</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>VICTORINE'S BOOK. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth.&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp; &nbsp; &nbsp;</td><td align='left'>$1.25</td></tr>
+</table></div>
+<div class='center'><br />&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;<br /><br /><br />
+FOR YOUNGER READERS<br />
+<br />
+"<span class="smcap">The Brick House Books</span>"</div>
+
+<p>The sight of the brick house on the cover makes girl
+readers happy at once.&mdash;<i>Indianapolis News.</i></p>
+
+<div class='center'>Illustrated. Large 12mo. Cloth. $1.00 each<br /><br /></div>
+
+
+
+<div class='center'>
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="For Younger Readers">
+<tr><td align='left'>ONLY DOLLIE</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>THE LITTLE GIRL NEXT DOOR</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>WINIFRED'S NEIGHBORS</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>THE CHILDREN ON THE TOP FLOOR</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>HOW BARBARA KEPT HER PROMISE</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>LITTLE MISS ROSAMOND</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>PRISCILLA OF THE DOLL SHOP</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>BRAVE LITTLE PEGGY</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>THE OTHER SYLVIA</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>MAISIE'S MERRY CHRISTMAS</td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>LITTLE QUEEN ESTHER</td></tr>
+</table></div>
+
+
+<div class='center'><br /><br />
+LOTHROP, LEE &amp; SHEPARD CO.<br />
+BOSTON<br />
+</div></div>
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<div class="figcenter" style="width: 318px;"><a name="frontis" id="frontis"></a>
+<img src="images/frontis.jpg" width="318" height="500" alt="&quot;Aren&#39;t You Going to be Friends with Me?&quot;" title="" />
+<span class="caption">&quot;<span class='smcap'>Aren&#39;t You Going to be Friends with Me?</span>&quot;&mdash;<a href="#Page_225">Page 225</a>.</span>
+</div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<h1>THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA</h1>
+
+<h3>BY</h3>
+<h2>NINA RHOADES</h2>
+
+<div class='center'>
+<small>AUTHOR OF THE "BRICK HOUSE BOOKS," "MARION'S VACATION,"</small><br />
+<small>"DOROTHY BROWN," ETC.</small><br />
+<br />
+<br />
+<br /><i>ILLUSTRATED BY ELIZABETH WITHINGTON</i><br /><br /><br /></div>
+
+<div class="figcenter" style="width: 150px;">
+<img src="images/emblem.png" width="150" height="181" alt="Emblem: Knowledge No More Shall Be A Fountain Closed" title="" />
+</div>
+
+<div class='center'><br /><br /><br />
+BOSTON<br />
+LOTHROP, LEE &amp; SHEPARD CO.<br />
+</div>
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+
+
+<div class='copyright'>
+Published, August, 1913<br />
+<br />
+Copyright, 1913, by<br />
+<span class="smcap">Lothrop, Lee &amp; Shepard Co.</span><br />
+<br />
+<i>All Rights Reserved</i><br />
+<br />
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA<br />
+<br />
+<br />
+Norwood Press<br />
+Berwick &amp; Smith Co.<br />
+Norwood, Mass.<br />
+U. S. A.<br />
+</div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<h2>CONTENTS</h2>
+
+
+
+
+
+<div class='center'>
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="Contents">
+<tr><td align='left' colspan='2'><small>CHAPTER</small></td><td align='right'><small>PAGE</small></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>I&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Making the Best of Things</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_1">1</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>II&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">The Coming of Undine</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_13">13</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>III&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Trying To Remember</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_29">29</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>IV&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">A Visitor From the East</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_43">43</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>V&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Uncle Henry's Proposition</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_58">58</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>VI&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">The Last Evening</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_70">70</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>VII&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Marjorie Writes Letters</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_81">81</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>VIII&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Aunt Julia and Elsie</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_91">91</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>IX&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Marjorie Takes a Morning Walk</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_110">110</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>X&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">New Friends and New Fashions</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_127">127</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XI&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Marjorie Engages in Battle</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_137">137</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XII&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">A Motor Ride and a Football Game</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_155">155</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XIII&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Marjorie Surprises Her Relatives</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_170">170</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XIV&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">The Poetry Club</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_182">182</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XV&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Elsie Triumphs</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_197">197</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XVI&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">The Things That Hurt</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_216">216</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XVII&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Beverly Sings "Mandalay"</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_236">236</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XVIII&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">In the Sunny South</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_254">254</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XIX&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">A Virginia Christmas</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_266">266</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XX&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Marjorie Sees a Photograph</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_275">275</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XXI&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Undine Remembers</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_290">290</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XXII&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Undine Tells Her Story</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_306">306</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XXIII&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Breaking the News</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_317">317</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XXIV&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Marjorie Has Her Wish</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_331">331</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='right'>XXV&nbsp;</td><td align='left'><span class="smcap">Elsie Redeems Herself</span></td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_341">341</a></td></tr>
+</table></div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<h2>ILLUSTRATIONS</h2>
+
+
+
+
+<div class='center'>
+<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="Illustrations">
+<tr><td align='left'>"Aren't you going to be friends with me?" (<a href="#Page_225">Page 225</a>)</td><td align='right'><i><a href="#frontis">Frontispiece</a></i></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>&nbsp;</td><td align='right'><small>FACING PAGE</small></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>"Where in the world did you come from?"</td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_20">20</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>With one quick movement she seized the whip handle</td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_146">146</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>"Oh, Mother dear, I'm so sorry!"</td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_244">244</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>"Land sakes, Missy! What is it?"</td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_284">284</a></td></tr>
+<tr><td align='left'>"It takes a lot of pluck to get up and say a thing like that"</td><td align='right'><a href="#Page_354">354</a></td></tr>
+</table></div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span></p>
+<h2>THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA</h2>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<h2>CHAPTER I</h2>
+
+<h3>MAKING THE BEST OF THINGS</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">Marjorie.</span>"</p>
+
+<p>The clear call rang out, breaking the afternoon
+stillness of the ranch, but there was no response,
+and after waiting a moment Miss Graham gave
+her wheeled chair a gentle push, which sent it
+rolling smoothly across the porch of the ranch
+house, down the inclined plane, which served the
+purpose of steps, to the lawn. It was very hot,
+the sun was blazing down as only an Arizona sun
+can blaze, and not a breath of air was stirring.
+But Miss Graham was accustomed to the heat and
+the glare. She paused for a moment, gazing off
+over the vast prairie to the California mountains,
+nearly a hundred miles away. She generally
+paused on that same spot for one look, although
+the landscape was the only one she had seen in
+twelve years. Then she moved on again, across
+the lawn, now parched and dry from the long<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_2" id="Page_2">[2]</a></span>
+summer's heat, toward the stables and out-buildings.
+It was before the smallest of these out-buildings,
+a tiny log cabin, that she finally brought
+the chair to a standstill.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie, are you there?"</p>
+
+<p>There was a sound of some one moving inside,
+and a girl of fourteen, with a book in her
+hand, appeared in the doorway. She was a
+pretty girl, with soft light hair that curled over
+her temples, and bright, merry blue eyes, but just
+now the eyes were red and swollen, and there
+were unmistakable tear-marks on the girl's cheeks.
+At sight of the lady in the wheeled chair, however,
+Marjorie's face brightened, and she hurried
+forward, exclaiming remorsefully:</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Aunt Jessie dear, did you come all this
+way by yourself? I'm so sorry. Do you want
+me to do something for you?"</p>
+
+<p>"You needn't be sorry," said her aunt, smiling.
+"The exercise will do me good, and I am
+quite proud of being able to manage this chair so
+easily. I called you from the porch, but you
+didn't hear. Your mother and Juanita are busy
+in the kitchen making jam, and I wasn't of any
+use there, so I thought I would come and see
+what you were about. I felt pretty sure of finding
+you in the old playhouse."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Come in," said Marjorie, eagerly. "You
+haven't been in the playhouse in ages; not since I
+grew too big to invite you to "make-believe"
+tea, but the door is just wide enough for the
+chair; don't you remember? Let me help you
+in?" And springing to Miss Graham's side,
+Marjorie seized the handle of the chair, and carefully
+guided it through the narrow entrance, into
+the little house her father had built for her own
+special use, and which had always been known
+as the playhouse. It might still have been regarded
+as a playhouse, although its owner had
+grown too old to play there. A couple of battered
+dolls reposed upon a toy bedstead in one
+corner, and an array of china dishes, all more or
+less the worse for wear, adorned the shelves.
+Marjorie loved her few possessions dearly, and
+in a place where one's nearest neighbor lives
+five miles away, there are not many people on
+whom to bestow things which have ceased to be
+useful to one's self, and they are therefore likely
+to be preserved.</p>
+
+<p>"Now we're all nice and cosy," remarked
+Marjorie, seating herself comfortably on the
+floor at her aunt's feet. "There wouldn't be
+room for another person in here, even if there
+were anybody to come. What good times we<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span>
+used to have here when I was little, didn't we,
+Aunt Jessie?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie spoke fast and nervously, but there
+were pink spots in her cheeks, and Miss Graham
+was not easily deceived.</p>
+
+<p>"What's the matter, Marjorie?" she asked
+simply. She and her niece had no secrets from
+each other.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie tried to laugh, but her lip quivered,
+and the tears started to her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"There isn't anything the matter," she said,
+frankly. "I've been a goose, that's all. It was
+all the fault of the book I was reading."</p>
+
+<p>"What book was it?" Miss Graham inquired
+curiously, glancing at the volume Marjorie was
+still holding in her hand.</p>
+
+<p>"It's called 'The Friendship of Anne,' and
+it's one of those in that box Father had sent from
+Albuquerque. It's all about a big boarding-school
+full of girls, and the good times they had
+there, but somehow it set me thinking, and&mdash;and,
+I don't know why, perhaps because it's been
+so hot and still all day, but I began to feel as if
+I wanted to cry, and so I came out here to have
+it out." Suddenly Marjorie dropped her head
+in her aunt's lap, with a sob.</p>
+
+<p>For a moment Miss Graham was silent. She<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span>
+stroked the soft, fluffy hair with her thin fingers,
+and a look of comprehension came into her face.
+When she spoke her voice was very gentle.</p>
+
+<p>"I understand, little girl," she said tenderly.
+"You haven't said much about it, but I know it
+was a big disappointment that Father couldn't
+afford to send you to school at Albuquerque this
+winter. It was a disappointment to all of us,
+much as we should have missed you, but it is one
+of those things everybody has to bear sometimes."</p>
+
+<p>"I know it," said Marjorie, checking her tears,
+and making a great effort to speak cheerfully.
+"It wasn't poor Father's fault that so many of
+the cattle died this year, or that the drought
+spoiled the alfalfa crop. I try to think that perhaps
+it's all for the best, and that if I really left
+you all, and went away to school, I might have
+died of homesickness. But when I read that
+story, and thought of all the people and things
+there are in the world that I've never seen, it
+was just a little bit hard to feel cheerful. Mother
+teaches me all she can, and so do you and Father,
+but I'm fourteen and a half, and I hate to think
+of growing up without any real education. If I
+were well educated, I might teach, and be a real
+help to you all, but there isn't anything I can do
+now but just sit still and make the best of things."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Making the best of things is what we all
+have to do," said Miss Graham, smiling rather
+sadly. "You do it very well, too, Marjorie dear.
+Your father and I were talking last evening of
+how bravely you have borne this disappointment.
+We all realize what it has meant to you, but we
+are not a family who are much given to talking
+about our troubles."</p>
+
+<p>"I know we're not," said Marjorie, "and I'm
+glad of it. How uncomfortable it would be if
+you and Mother were always saying you were
+sorry for each other, and if Father looked solemn
+every time a cow died. I should hate to be condoled
+with, and treated as if I needed pity, but
+still I can't help wishing sometimes that I could
+do some of the things other girls do. Why, just
+think, Aunt Jessie, I've never had a friend of my
+own age in my life. I've never been on a train,
+or seen a city since I can remember."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Graham continued to stroke the fluffy
+hair, and a troubled look came into her eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"I understand, dear," she said, "and I don't
+blame you in the least. I know the feelings of
+loneliness and longing too well for that."</p>
+
+<p>"Do you really, Aunt Jessie?" questioned
+Marjorie, looking up in surprise. "I didn't suppose
+you ever longed for anything; you're such<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span>
+an angel of patience. I suppose it's wrong, but
+I can't help being glad you do, though, because
+it makes it so much easier to explain things to
+you. I can't bear to have Father and Mother
+think I'm not perfectly happy and contented; it
+makes Father look so sad, and I know Mother
+worries about my education. I never thought of
+it before, but you were a girl, too, when you first
+came here, weren't you?"</p>
+
+<p>Miss Graham smiled. She was only twenty-eight,
+and girlhood did not seem so much a thing
+of the past, but Marjorie was fourteen, and to
+her twenty-eight seemed an age quite removed
+from all youthful aspirations.</p>
+
+<p>"I was just sixteen when we came out here,"
+she said, "and it seemed very strange at first to
+be away from all my friends, but girl-like I enjoyed
+the change, and it was not for a year or
+two that I began to realize what life on an Arizona
+ranch really meant. Your father and
+mother were very good to me, but they were absorbed
+in each other, and in their work, and you
+were too little to be any real company to me.
+There was plenty of work to be done, and I tried
+to do my share, but there were many lonely times
+when I rebelled bitterly against fate. I used to
+think of those times later on, after the accident,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a></span>
+and then it seemed strange that I should ever
+have fretted over such foolish trifles, but they
+were very real to me once."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie took her aunt's hand and kissed it.
+Demonstrations of affection were rather rare in
+the Graham family, but the girl could never think
+of that accident without a lump rising in her
+throat. She had heard the story dozens of times.
+She had even a dim recollection of the day it had
+happened&mdash;the day on which her pretty, merry
+young aunt had started for a canter over the
+prairie, on a wild young bronco, and had been
+carried home white and unconscious, never to
+ride, or even walk again. Just how it had all
+happened nobody ever knew. An Indian boy,
+coming suddenly out of a cabin, had shouted and
+waved his hands to a companion. The noise had
+frightened the bronco, and he had dashed off at
+full speed, and Jessie Graham, experienced horsewoman
+though she was, had lost her balance, and
+been thrown violently to the ground, striking her
+back against a sharp stone. That was eight years
+ago, and during all that time her life had been
+passed, first in bed, and then in a wheeled chair.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie rose suddenly. There were some
+things it wasn't possible to make the best of, and
+it was wisest not to talk about them.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"It's getting a little cooler," she said irrelevantly;
+"I think I'll saddle Roland, and go for a
+ride before supper. You're an angel, Aunt Jessie,
+and I'm glad you told me how you used to
+feel. I'm ashamed of myself, but it makes the
+disappointment easier to bear because you understand.
+Shall I wheel you back to the house, or
+is there anything else I can do for you before I
+go?"</p>
+
+<p>Fifteen minutes later, Marjorie mounted
+astride her bay pony, was trotting briskly out
+over the prairie. Her aunt watched her from the
+porch of the ranch house.</p>
+
+<p>"Poor little girl," she said, with a sigh, as
+horse and rider disappeared from view in a cloud
+of dust, "she bears her disappointment bravely,
+but it's hard&mdash;hard for her, and for us all."</p>
+
+<p>A footstep was heard, and her sister-in-law,
+Marjorie's mother, came out on the porch. Mrs.
+Graham had once been very pretty, but twelve
+years of hard work, and constant anxiety as to
+ways and means, had brought a careworn expression
+into the eyes that were so like Marjorie's,
+and the hand she laid on the back of Miss Graham's
+chair was rough and hardened from housework.</p>
+
+<p>"It's been a hot day, hasn't it?" she said, "but<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span>
+it's cooler now," and she smiled the brave, cheerful
+smile she had never lost through all their
+troubles and anxieties. "Juanita and I have put
+up six dozen jars of blackberries to-day; not a
+bad day's record, is it? Have you heard the
+whistle of the East Bound?"</p>
+
+<p>"I am not sure; I thought I heard a whistle
+about half an hour ago, but I have been with
+Marjorie in the playhouse. We have been having
+a talk."</p>
+
+<p>"Has she said anything about her disappointment?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, a little. She is bearing it splendidly,
+but it is a real grief to her, notwithstanding."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham sighed.</p>
+
+<p>"I was afraid it would be," she said. "It
+would almost have broken my heart to part from
+her, but Donald and I had made up our minds
+to let her go. It seemed the only way of giving
+the child a chance in life, and now this disease
+among the cattle has put an end to everything.
+Donald says we may be able to send her next
+year, but she will be nearly sixteen then, and time
+is precious. I wish I knew more myself, so that
+I could help my little girl, but, like so many other
+girls, I wasted my time at school. O dear! if
+children only realized what an education might<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span>
+mean to them some day, they wouldn't fritter
+away their time, as half of them do."</p>
+
+<p>"Susie," said Miss Graham, impulsively,
+"have you ever thought of writing to your
+brother Henry about Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>The sensitive color rose in Mrs. Graham's
+cheeks, and for a moment she looked almost as
+pretty as in the days when Jessie, in the rapturous
+devotion of her teens, had considered her "the
+loveliest sister-in-law in the world."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I have thought of it," she said, "but&mdash;but
+somehow I haven't been able to make up my
+mind to do it. You know my family never approved
+of Donald's coming out here. My brother
+offered him a position in his office in New York,
+but Donald said he had no head for business, and
+he loves this wild life, hard as it has been. I
+have never let my people know of our difficulties;
+they would have been kind, I daresay, but one
+hates to ask favors."</p>
+
+<p>"I know," said Miss Graham, comprehendingly;
+"still, for Marjorie's sake&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham looked troubled.</p>
+
+<p>"Donald and I were talking about it only last
+night," she said. "It isn't right to deprive the
+child of advantages she might have, but think of
+sending her all the way to New York, even if<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span>
+Henry and his wife were willing to take her.
+Albuquerque would have been different; she could
+at least have come home for the holidays, but
+New York&mdash;why, think of it, Jessie, she has
+never been away from us for a night in her life!"</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham paused abruptly, her face contracted
+with pain. The tears started to Miss
+Jessie's eyes, but her voice was still quite firm
+when she spoke again.</p>
+
+<p>"It would be very hard," she said, "harder
+for us perhaps than for Marjorie herself, and yet
+if it were the best thing to do&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>Here the conversation was interrupted by Juanita,
+the Mexican maid of all work, who appeared
+with the startling announcement that the jam
+was boiling over on the stove, and Mrs. Graham
+hurried away to the kitchen, leaving her sister-in-law
+to her own reflections.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER II</h2>
+
+<h3>THE COMING OF UNDINE</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">In</span> the meantime, Marjorie, quite unconscious
+of the anxieties of her family regarding her future,
+was cantering away over the prairie on her
+bay pony. Having passed the last buildings of
+the ranch, and trotted through the Indian village,
+where more than one woman, and numerous copper-colored
+children smiled a friendly greeting,
+she turned her pony's head in the direction of the
+railroad. The nearest town was more than
+twenty miles away, but the line of the Santa F&eacute;
+Railroad ran within a comparatively short distance
+from the ranch, and twice every day the
+stillness was broken by the whistles of the east
+and west bound trains, as they rushed by on their
+way across the continent, from Los Angeles to
+Chicago. To watch the trains go by had been
+one of the amusements of Marjorie's life, ever
+since she could remember. When she was a little
+girl, it had been a great treat to be taken by<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span>
+her father, on his big chestnut horse, and to have
+him draw rein in full view of the tracks, and wait
+to see the great iron horse come rushing by. As
+soon as she was old enough to ride out by herself,
+this spot had become one of her favorite afternoon
+excursions. There was a wonderful fascination
+in watching the long line of sleepers and
+day coaches, filled with people, and to wonder
+where they could all be going, and speculate as to
+what might be happening on the other side of
+those moving windows. Sometimes of late the
+longing to know more of the outside world, and
+to follow those ever moving cars, had become almost
+irresistible.</p>
+
+<p>"If I could only take one real journey I believe
+I should be happy forever," she would say
+to herself, and the hope of going to school at Albuquerque,
+two hundred miles away, had filled
+her with a wild kind of joy that was not unmixed
+with fear. But now that hope had been crushed,
+for the present at least, and Marjorie, who was a
+sensible little soul, had decided that it might be
+wiser to avoid watching the trains go by just
+now. For a week she had kept away from the
+line, at the hours when trains were likely to pass,
+but this afternoon she felt more cheerful. The
+little talk with her aunt had done her good, and<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span>
+she resolved to take Aunt Jessie's advice, and try
+to make the best of things. So when the pony
+manifested a desire to take the familiar turning,
+she let him have his way, and trotted on quite
+cheerfully toward the railroad.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid we're too late to-day, Roland," she
+remarked aloud, as the pony plodded on bravely
+through the dust and heat. "I didn't hear the
+whistle, but I'm sure the East Bound must have
+passed, and the West Bound went through at two
+o'clock."</p>
+
+<p>Having very few people to talk to, Marjorie
+had formed the habit of talking to her live pets,
+of which Roland was her favorite. Her father
+had given him to her when he was only a month
+old, and she had trained him herself, as soon as
+he was old enough to bear the saddle, to say
+nothing of the many romps the two had enjoyed
+together in the days of his colthood. It seemed
+to her sometimes as if Roland must really understand
+some of the things she told him, and now,
+at her remark about the train, he slackened his
+pace to a leisurely trot, as if under the impression
+that there was no use in hurrying.</p>
+
+<p>"It is hot, isn't it, Roland?" said Marjorie,
+sympathetically. "You and I will be glad when
+winter comes, and we can have some fine gallops.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span>
+I thought I might be going away to leave you this
+winter, but I'm not."</p>
+
+<p>Roland pricked up his ears, and quickened his
+pace.</p>
+
+<p>"What is it, Roland?" Marjorie inquired in
+surprise. "Oh, I see, it's Jos&eacute; on his black
+bronco."</p>
+
+<p>Her face brightened, and she waved her hand
+in friendly welcome to the approaching figure of
+a small Mexican boy, mounted on an equally
+small pony.</p>
+
+<p>"Hello, Jos&eacute;!" she called, as the two came
+within speaking distance of each other; "Do you
+know whether the East Bound has passed yet or
+not?"</p>
+
+<p>"See there," said the boy, pointing in the direction
+from which he had come. "Something
+wrong with engine. She been there three hours.
+My father tell me, and I go see."</p>
+
+<p>"How exciting!" cried Marjorie, everything
+else forgotten for the moment in the interest of
+this news. "Do you think she'll stay much
+longer?"</p>
+
+<p>Jos&eacute; shook his head; he could not say. He
+was a rather dull boy, but Marjorie had known
+him all her life, as she had known every inhabitant,
+Mexican or Indian, who had made a home<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span>
+in that desolate region. She could speak Spanish
+almost as well as English, and could carry on a
+conversation in two Indian dialects. She did not
+wait for any more conversation with Jos&eacute; on this
+occasion, however, but with a chirp to Roland to
+indicate that she wished to go faster, hurried the
+pony along at such a pace that in less than
+five minutes they came in sight of the waiting
+train.</p>
+
+<p>No, she was not too late. The long transcontinental
+express was standing still, and a number
+of the passengers had left the cars and were
+sauntering leisurely about. Marjorie's heart beat
+fast with excitement, and she drew the pony in
+sharply.</p>
+
+<p>"We mustn't go too near, Roland," she whispered.
+"Oh, look, isn't it interesting? See those
+girls in shirt-waists and straw hats. They look
+just about my age. How I should like to speak
+to them, but I suppose they would think it queer."</p>
+
+<p>The sight of a girl in a striped khaki skirt, with
+a sombrero on her head, sitting astride a bay
+pony, had quickly attracted the attention of some
+of the passengers, and Marjorie soon realized
+that she was being stared at in a manner that was
+slightly disconcerting. Not that she was in the
+least shy, but these strangers had a way of looking<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span>
+at her, as if they found something amusing
+in her appearance, and Marjorie did not like being
+stared at any more than any other girl.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think we'll stay any longer, Roland,"
+she said, conscious of the fact that her cheeks
+were burning uncomfortably. And turning the
+pony's head abruptly, she galloped away in the
+direction of home.</p>
+
+<p>But it was some minutes before her cheeks had
+regained their natural color.</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder why they stared so," she kept repeating
+to herself. "Was it the sombrero&mdash;I
+don't suppose girls wear sombreros in the East&mdash;or
+was it something else? Oh, there's the
+whistle; thank goodness they're off!" And
+Marjorie gave a sigh of relief, and let Roland
+drop into a trot.</p>
+
+<p>It was still early when she reached home, and
+having delivered Roland to the Indian boy, whose
+duty it was to look after him, and finding that
+her mother and aunt were both busy, she betook
+herself once more to the playhouse, intending to
+spend the hour before supper in learning more of
+the fortunes of Anne and her friends. But her
+ride in the heat had made her sleepy, and after
+turning a few pages rather listlessly, her eyes
+drooped, and letting the book slip into her lap,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span>
+she rested her head against the wall of the cabin,
+and dropped off into an afternoon nap.</p>
+
+<p>How long she had been asleep she did not
+know, but she started up, wide awake, aroused by
+a sound close beside her. Then for a moment she
+sat staring stupidly at the apparition before her;
+for there, standing in the doorway, regarding
+her with big, hungry, brown eyes, was a girl&mdash;not
+a Mexican or an Indian, but a pale-faced,
+dark-haired girl of about her own age, in a faded
+linen dress, much too short in the skirt, and
+a battered straw hat, decidedly the worse for
+wear.</p>
+
+<p>"Goodness gracious me!" gasped Marjorie in
+amazement; "where in the world did you come
+from?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm hungry," said the stranger, in a remarkably
+sweet voice; "Won't you please give me
+something to eat?"</p>
+
+<p>"Who are you?" demanded Marjorie, fully
+convinced that this was a dream.</p>
+
+<p>A frightened expression came into the big
+brown eyes, and the girl's lip began to tremble.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," she said; "I can't remember.
+Won't you please give me something to eat?"</p>
+
+<div class="figleft" style="width: 318px;">
+<img src="images/i-001.jpg" width="318" height="500" alt="&quot;Where in the World Did You Come from?&quot;&mdash;Page 19." title="" />
+<span class="caption">&quot;<span class='smcap'>Where in the World Did You Come from?</span>&quot;&mdash;Page 19.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>"I know I'm dreaming," said Marjorie, and
+she pinched her arm, but though the pinch hurt<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span>
+considerably, she did not wake up. The strange
+girl continued to stand in the doorway.</p>
+
+<p>"How&mdash;how did you get here?" she repeated;
+"where did you come from?"</p>
+
+<p>"I got off the train. I've walked ever so far,
+and it was so hot. I thought there would be
+houses, but there weren't any. You won't be
+cross with me, will you? I'm afraid of cross
+people."</p>
+
+<p>"Why did you get off the train?" inquired
+Marjorie. If this were not a dream, then it was
+certainly the most extraordinary adventure she
+had ever had.</p>
+
+<p>The brown eyes filled with tears, and the
+stranger clasped her hands nervously.</p>
+
+<p>"Don't scold, ah, please don't," she pleaded;
+"I'm so tired of being scolded. I got off the
+train because Mrs. Hicks was so cross I couldn't
+stand it any longer. She said I was a lazy, good-for-nothing
+girl, and she wished she had never
+promised to take me to Kansas. I said I wished
+she hadn't either, and that I didn't want to go to
+Kansas or anywhere else with her, and then she
+said I was an impudent little wretch, and she
+wished she could get rid of me. She slapped me,
+too, and that made me furious, so when she sent
+me to the dining-car to get some milk for the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span>
+baby, and the train was standing still, I just got
+off. I don't want to stay with people who don't
+like me, and I can't stand being slapped."</p>
+
+<p>"But think how frightened your friend must
+have been when the train started and you didn't
+come back," said Marjorie, reproachfully. She
+did not know quite what to make of this singular
+young person, who appeared to think nothing of
+deserting her friends, and wandering off by herself
+on the prairie.</p>
+
+<p>"Mrs. Hicks isn't my friend, and she won't
+care, anyway; she'll be glad to get rid of me. I
+heard her telling a woman on the train that I
+was an awful nuisance, and she couldn't think
+why she had ever promised her sister to take me
+to Kansas with her. She doesn't want me&mdash;nobody
+wants me, nobody in the whole world!"
+And suddenly this extraordinary visitor put both
+hands before her face, and burst into tears.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie sprang to her feet, wide awake at
+last. She had not seen many people cry, and the
+sight always affected her deeply.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, don't, please don't!" she cried, and almost
+without realizing what she was doing she
+had slipped an arm about the shaking shoulders.
+"We'll take care of you, of course we will, and
+you can tell us about everything. Oh, please do<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span>
+stop crying; you make me so very uncomfortable."</p>
+
+<p>But the brown-eyed girl did not stop crying.
+On the contrary, she cried all the harder, and
+buried her face on Marjorie's shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>"You're kind, oh, you're kind!" sobbed the
+poor child, clinging convulsively to her new
+friend. "Nobody was ever kind to me before
+except old Mr. Jackson, and now he's dead. I've
+been so miserable, and it's so dreadful not to remember
+anything, not even my name."</p>
+
+<p>"Your name?" repeated Marjorie stupidly;
+"do you mean you don't even know your own
+name?"</p>
+
+<p>The stranger shook her head mournfully as she
+searched for a missing pocket-handkerchief.
+Marjorie supplied the handkerchief from her own
+pocket, and sympathetically wiped her visitor's
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"But I don't understand," she said doubtfully;
+"I never heard of a person's not knowing her
+own name. Haven't you any relatives?"</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose I had once, but I can't remember
+them. The first thing I remember is waking up
+in a hospital. It was just after the earthquake
+in San Francisco, and they told me I was found
+in the street under some ruins. They thought a<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span>
+stone or something must have fallen on my head,
+and that was what made me forget everything.
+Nobody knew whom I belonged to, and I had
+only a nightgown on when I was found, so they
+couldn't trace me by my clothes. At first the
+doctors thought I would remember soon, and
+they used to ask me questions, but I never could
+answer any of them. They kept me at the hospital
+a long time, but I was always frightened
+because I couldn't remember anything. At last
+when I was strong again, and nobody came to
+look for me, they said they couldn't keep me there
+any longer. They sent me to the 'Home For
+The Friendless in Oakland,' but I had only been
+there a week when Miss Brent came to look for a
+girl to run errands, and carry home parcels.
+They told her about me, and she said she would
+take me, because I might have rich friends, who
+would come for me, and pay her well for taking
+care of me. So I went to live with her, and she
+put an advertisement about me in the newspapers.
+For a long time I kept hoping some one would
+come for me, but nobody ever did. Miss Brent
+was a dressmaker, and she had a lot of girls
+working for her, but I didn't like any of them,
+they were so rough, and they used to laugh at me,
+and call me 'loony.' Miss Brent called me Sally,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span>
+but I know that isn't my real name. I got so
+tired running errands, and carrying the heavy
+boxes home made my back ache. I don't think
+I could have stood it if it hadn't been for Mr.
+Jackson. He boarded with Miss Brent, and lived
+in a little room on the top floor. He was very
+old, and nobody paid much attention to him, but
+I was sorry for him, and I used to carry up his
+meals, and he talked to me so kindly. He never
+made fun of me, because I couldn't remember,
+but he lent me books to read, and asked me questions
+like the doctors at the hospital. It's very
+queer, but I could always remember how to read.
+I can write, too, and I can even remember things
+in history, but I can't remember a single thing
+about myself. Mr. Jackson said he was sure my
+memory would come back some day, and then I
+would be able to find my friends. He died last
+winter, and after that it was dreadful. Miss
+Brent was always busy and cross, and the girls
+were worse than ever. A month ago Miss Brent
+told us she was going to be married, and give up
+the business, and that all the girls would have to
+leave. Most of them didn't mind, because they
+had homes, but Miss Brent said she didn't know
+what in the world to do with me. She didn't
+think any one would take me, because I wasn't<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span>
+strong enough to do hard work, and she was
+afraid I was too old to go back to the 'Home For
+The Friendless.'</p>
+
+<p>"The wedding was last week, and Mrs. Hicks
+came on from Kansas. She is Miss Brent's sister,
+and her husband has a big cattle farm. Mrs.
+Hicks brought her baby with her, and they got
+me to help take care of it, and then Miss Brent
+persuaded her sister to take me home with her.
+I didn't want to go, for I knew I shouldn't like
+Mrs. Hicks, but Miss Brent said I must. We
+started yesterday, and it was awful. Mrs. Hicks
+kept saying she knew I would never be any use
+to her, and the baby was so heavy, and cried all
+the time. I had just about made up my mind to
+run away when Mrs. Hicks slapped me, and that
+settled it. I never was slapped before, and I
+couldn't stand it."</p>
+
+<p>The brown eyes flashed indignantly, and there
+was a crimson spot in both the girl's cheeks.
+Marjorie had been listening to this strange story
+in breathless astonishment. It did not occur to
+her for a moment to doubt its truth. Before she
+could ask any more questions, however, she was
+brought back to a recollection of every-day life
+once more by the sound of her father's voice calling
+from the porch:<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Supper's ready, Marjorie."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie came down to earth with a rush, and
+hastily explaining to her new friend that she
+would be back in a minute, dashed away to the
+house, there to electrify her family with the astounding
+news that there was a strange girl in
+the playhouse, who had walked all the way
+from the railroad, and didn't know her own
+name.</p>
+
+<p>When Marjorie returned five minutes later,
+she was accompanied by an excited group, consisting
+of Mr. and Mrs. Graham, Miss Jessie,
+and the Mexican servant, Juanita. At sight of so
+many strangers the visitor shrank into a corner,
+and her eyes seemed to grow bigger and more
+frightened than ever, but when Mrs. Graham
+spoke to her in her kind, motherly voice, the pale
+face lighted up, and holding out both hands to
+Marjorie's mother, she exclaimed joyfully:</p>
+
+<p>"You're kind, too; I can see it in your face.
+Oh, please don't send me away; I'm so tired and
+hungry, and I don't know where else I can possibly
+go."</p>
+
+<p>"And what are we to call you, my dear?"
+Mrs. Graham inquired, late that evening, when
+the uninvited guest had been refreshed by a bath
+and a hearty supper, and was lying back comfortably<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span>
+in the big rocker in the living-room. "Did
+I understand Marjorie to say that you had been
+called Sally?"</p>
+
+<p>The stranger pouted. Now that her face was
+washed she was really very pretty.</p>
+
+<p>"I hate 'Sally,'" she said, impatiently; "it's
+not my name, and I don't see why I need be
+called by it. I wish you'd call me something
+pretty."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham looked a little doubtful, but Marjorie,
+who was regarding this singular young
+person in a kind of fascinated awe&mdash;half expecting
+to see her vanish at any moment as mysteriously
+as she had come&mdash;hastened to the rescue.</p>
+
+<p>"I've thought of a beautiful name for her,
+Mother," she said, eagerly. "Why can't we call
+her Undine&mdash;at least till she remembers what
+her name really is? She didn't come out of a
+fountain, but she really did come almost as mysteriously
+as Undine came to the fisherman's hut,
+in the story. Would you like to be called Undine,
+Sally?"</p>
+
+<p>"I should love it," declared the visitor in a
+tone of satisfaction and as Marjorie generally
+had her way, and Undine really seemed as good
+a name as any other, the matter was settled, and<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span>
+the new Undine fell asleep that night, happier
+than she had ever been since that strange waking
+in the California hospital, more than two years
+before.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER III</h2>
+
+<h3>TRYING TO REMEMBER</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">And</span> so Undine went back into the fountain,
+carrying the knight, Hildebrand, with her, and
+nobody ever saw either of them again. I always wished
+it hadn't ended there, but had gone
+on to tell what became of the fisherman and his
+wife, and all the other people. That's the great
+trouble with stories; they are so apt to end just
+where you want to hear more. If I ever wrote
+a book I should put a chapter at the end, telling
+what became of all the characters afterward."</p>
+
+<p>The two girls were sitting together on the
+porch; Marjorie busily engaged in darning stockings;
+the new Undine patiently hemming a towel.
+It was a week since the arrival of "the mysterious
+stranger," as Marjorie called her, and she
+had already become an established member of the
+household. Marjorie accepted the mystery of a
+girl who didn't know her own name, and who apparently
+belonged to nobody, just as she would
+have accepted any other girl friend who might<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span>
+have come into her rather uneventful life. It
+had never even occurred to her to doubt the truth
+of Undine's strange story. The rest of the
+family had not been quite so easily satisfied, and
+for several days Mr. and Mrs. Graham had been
+inclined to regard the stranger with some doubt,
+even suspicion; but there was something very
+winning about this new Undine&mdash;she seemed
+such a simple, innocent child&mdash;so grateful for
+every kindness, and so eager to be of use in
+the household&mdash;that they gradually found themselves
+coming to believe in her, in spite of appearances.</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure the child is telling the truth as far
+as she knows it," Aunt Jessie had said to her sister-in-law
+that morning. "It all sounds very
+strange and incredible, I know, but I can't doubt
+the truth in those honest eyes of hers. I am
+really growing quite fond of her already." To
+which Mrs. Graham had replied, with a smile:</p>
+
+<p>"We shall know when Donald receives the
+answers to the letters he sent to the Home in
+Oakland and to the dressmaker."</p>
+
+<p>As Marjorie concluded her remarks on the
+story of Undine, she glanced critically at her
+friend's work.</p>
+
+<p>"You are hemming much better to-day," she<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span>
+said in a tone of satisfaction; "I am sure Mother
+will say you have improved."</p>
+
+<p>Undine's face brightened.</p>
+
+<p>"I hope she will&mdash;oh, I do hope so!" she
+said eagerly. "She is so dear, and I want to
+please her so much, but I'm afraid I'm very
+stupid."</p>
+
+<p>"You are not stupid at all," declared Marjorie
+loyally. "You are much cleverer than I
+am about lots of things. It isn't your fault if
+you've never been taught to sew."</p>
+
+<p>"There wasn't any time to learn at Miss
+Brent's," said Undine; "there were always such
+a lot of errands, and so many parcels to be carried
+home. I suppose if I had learned before the
+earthquake I shouldn't remember now."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," said Marjorie thoughtfully;
+"you must have learned to read, and you haven't
+forgotten that."</p>
+
+<p>"No, nor to write either. It's very queer
+about the things I remember and those I don't.
+Mr. Jackson used to asked me a great many questions,
+and he wrote down some of the things I
+told him, to show to a society he belonged to.
+Once a very funny thing happened. I had taken
+a dress home to a lady, and was waiting in the
+hall while she tried it on, to see if it had to go<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span>
+back for any alterations. There were some people
+in the parlor talking French. I don't know
+how I knew it was French, but I did, and I understood
+almost everything they said. I told Mr.
+Jackson, and he was so interested. He made me
+tell Miss Brent, too, and he wanted her to put another
+advertisement in the newspapers, but she
+said she hadn't any money to waste in advertising,
+and that if I had any relatives they would
+have come for me long ago."</p>
+
+<p>"It's the most interesting thing I ever heard of
+in my life," declared Marjorie. "Aunt Jessie
+says she is sure your friends must have been educated
+people, because you never make mistakes
+in grammar."</p>
+
+<p>Undine looked pleased.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm glad your aunt thinks that," she said.
+"I should hate to talk in the way some of the
+girls at Miss Brent's did. They used to laugh at
+me and call me stuck up, but I didn't want to be
+like them. I hate rough girls. I dream about
+my mother sometimes, and I know she would be
+sorry to have me grow up rough and coarse."</p>
+
+<p>"It seems so strange that you can't even remember
+your mother," said Marjorie, reflectively.
+"I can't imagine that anything could possibly<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span>
+happen to me that would make me forget
+Mother."</p>
+
+<p>A shadow crept into Undine's face, and the
+troubled, frightened look came back into her
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," she said, wearily; "I don't
+know anything. Oh, Marjorie, it frightens me so
+sometimes."</p>
+
+<p>There was a quiver in the girl's voice, and
+kind-hearted Marjorie laid a protecting hand on
+hers.</p>
+
+<p>"Never mind," she said, soothingly; "don't
+think any more about it than you can help.
+Perhaps it will all come back some time; Father
+thinks it will. He thinks the stone, or whatever
+it was, that fell on you, must have given your
+brain a terrible shock. He says he heard of a
+man once who was very badly hurt in a railroad
+accident, and couldn't remember anything for a
+long time. His family thought he must be dead,
+but suddenly his memory all came back to him,
+and he went home, and gave them a great surprise.
+Perhaps it will be like that with you some
+day."</p>
+
+<p>"Miss Brent thinks all my people must have
+been killed in the earthquake," said Undine, with<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span>
+a sigh. "That might be the reason why nobody
+ever came to look for me. They say more people
+were killed than any one knew about. If I
+could only remember the very least thing that
+happened before, but I can't; it's just as if I
+came alive for the first time that day in the hospital.
+Oh, here comes your aunt; I'll go and help
+her with her chair." And dropping her towel
+on the floor of the porch, Undine darted into the
+house, whence she returned in a moment, carefully
+guiding Miss Graham's wheeled chair over
+the door-sill.</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you, dear," Miss Graham said, kindly.
+"You are a very helpful little girl, but when you
+are as accustomed to me and my chair as Marjorie
+is, you will realize that I can manage very
+well. I heard your voices, and thought I would
+come out here for a little while; it's so much
+cooler than in the house."</p>
+
+<p>"Won't you let me get your sewing, or your
+book, or something?" inquired Undine, hovering
+solicitously over the invalid.</p>
+
+<p>"No, thank you. I have been sewing all the
+afternoon; helping Mrs. Graham with the new
+parlor curtains, and I'm going to be lazy for a
+little while. I am afraid you dropped your own
+sewing, in your anxiety to help me."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Undine blushed as she stooped to pick up the
+discarded towel.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid I'm very careless," she said apologetically;
+"Miss Brent said I was, but I love to
+wait on people."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Graham laughed, and she had such a
+merry, contagious laugh that she was speedily
+joined by Marjorie, and even Undine herself.</p>
+
+<p>"It is very pleasant to be waited on," she said,
+"and I am sure you would make a capital nurse,
+Undine."</p>
+
+<p>Undine looked pleased.</p>
+
+<p>"I should like to be a nurse," she said. "I
+used to do lots of things for Mr. Jackson, and he
+liked to have me. I wish I could wait on you,
+because then I should feel that I was of some
+use, and that you weren't just keeping me because
+you were sorry for me."</p>
+
+<p>There was an unmistakable wistfulness in Undine's
+tone, and Miss Graham was touched.</p>
+
+<p>"My dear little girl," she said, "I am sure
+there are many ways in which you can make
+yourself useful if you stay with us. You will
+soon learn to be a great help to Mrs. Graham, and
+there will be many little things you can do for me
+as well."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie gave her aunt a grateful glance, and<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span>
+Undine looked relieved. At that moment the
+afternoon stillness was broken by a sound of distant
+hoof-beats, and a clear tenor voice singing:</p>
+
+<div class='poem'>
+"'On the road to Mandalay,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Where the old flotilla lay.'"</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p>"It's Jim coming with the mail," cried Marjorie
+joyfully; "I should know his voice anywhere,
+and that's his favorite song. Oh, I wonder
+if there will be an answer to Father's letter
+to Miss Brent. What's the matter, Undine?"</p>
+
+<p>For Undine, who was still standing by Miss
+Graham's chair, had suddenly grown pale, and a
+strange, startled expression had come into her
+face.</p>
+
+<p>"Who's Jim?" she demanded sharply.</p>
+
+<p>"Only one of Father's men. He used to be a
+cow-puncher in Texas. I think you must have
+seen him; he's about the ranch a good deal."</p>
+
+<p>The hoof-beats were drawing nearer, and the
+rider had begun another verse of his song.</p>
+
+<div class='poem'>
+"'Er petticoat was yaller,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">An' 'er little cap was green,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">An' 'er name was Supy Yawler,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Jes' the same as Thebaw's queen.'"</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p>"I know that song," cried Undine excitedly,
+clasping and unclasping her hands, and she began
+reciting in a dreamy, far-away voice:<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span></p>
+
+<div class='poem'>
+"'An' I see 'er first a smokin'<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Of a whackin' big sheroot,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">An' wastin' Christian kisses</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">On a 'eathen idol's foot.'</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p>"Somebody used to sing it. Who was it? Oh,
+tell me quick; I must remember, I must, I must!"</p>
+
+<p>She turned imploringly to Miss Graham and
+Marjorie, but the two blank, puzzled faces gave
+her no help, and with a low cry, the poor child
+covered her face with her hands, and began to
+sob. Marjorie's kind arms were round her
+friend in a moment, but it was no easy task to
+stem the torrent of Undine's grief.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, help me to remember, please, please do
+help me!" she wailed, between hysterical sobs
+and gasps. "I almost remembered, and now it's
+all gone again. Oh, what shall I do&mdash;what shall
+I do?"</p>
+
+<p>"You'll remember it all some time, dear, I
+know you will," soothed Marjorie, crying herself
+from pure sympathy. "Do try not to mind quite
+so much, Undine. I know it must be terrible,
+but we're all so sorry for you, and we'll try to
+make you happy, indeed we will."</p>
+
+<p>By this time horse and rider had reached the
+ranch house, and Jim Hathaway, a freckled, red-haired
+youth, had sprung to the ground, and was
+regarding the scene in undisguised astonishment.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Have you brought us any letters to-day,
+Jim?" Miss Graham asked, by way of relieving
+the situation.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes'm; there's two for Mr. Graham, and
+some newspapers, and a magazine."</p>
+
+<p>"Ask him where he learned that song," whispered
+Undine to Marjorie. She was still trembling,
+and seemed very much agitated.</p>
+
+<p>"Where did you learn that song you were
+singing just now, Jim?" Marjorie inquired, eagerly;
+"the one about the 'Road to Mandalay,'
+you know?"</p>
+
+<p>Jim looked rather vague.</p>
+
+<p>"Blessed if I remember," he said. "I picked
+it up somewhere, but I couldn't rightly say where
+it was."</p>
+
+<p>"Won't you please try to remember?" said
+Undine, lifting her tear-stained face from Marjorie's
+shoulder. "I want very much to know.
+I am trying to remember something about it, and
+if you could tell me where you learned it it might
+help me."</p>
+
+<p>Jim stared at her rather stupidly; then his face
+brightened.</p>
+
+<p>"I guess I do remember, now I come to think
+of it," he said slowly. "It was in Texas.
+There was an English chap there, who was forever<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span>
+singing it. I picked it up from him. There
+were a lot of verses to it but I don't know 'em
+all."</p>
+
+<p>Undine shook her head hopelessly.</p>
+
+<p>"Thank you," she said; "I don't believe I was
+ever in Texas." And without another word, she
+turned and went into the house.</p>
+
+<p>It was more than an hour later when Mrs.
+Graham knocked softly at the door of the little
+room which had been given to the strange guest.
+She waited a moment, and then, receiving no answer,
+turned the handle and went in. Undine
+was lying on the bed, her face buried in the pillow.
+She was so still that Mrs. Graham thought
+she must be asleep, and was turning away again
+when there was a slight movement on the bed,
+and with a long sigh, the girl lifted her head.</p>
+
+<p>At sight of her hostess, Undine sprang to her
+feet, and began pushing the tumbled hair back
+from her eyes. She was very white, and there
+was a drawn, suffering look on her face, which
+went to Mrs. Graham's motherly heart.</p>
+
+<p>"I beg your pardon," said Undine, humbly.
+"I'm afraid you must all think me very silly and
+troublesome. I didn't mean to make a fuss, but
+when I heard that boy singing 'Mandalay' it
+seemed for just a minute as if I were going to remember<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span>
+something, and then it was all gone
+again. I thought that perhaps if I lay very still
+with my eyes shut tight, and thought as hard as I
+could, it might come again, but it didn't."</p>
+
+<p>"Sit down, dear," said Mrs. Graham, kindly,
+and seating herself on the edge of the bed, she
+drew Undine down beside her. "Does your
+head ache?"</p>
+
+<p>"It aches dreadfully," confessed Undine,
+pressing her hand to her forehead. "It always
+does when I try very hard to remember."</p>
+
+<p>"I was afraid so. It isn't good for you to try
+to remember in this way; it won't help things at
+all, and may make them much worse. You must
+promise me not to try to think so hard again.
+When your memory comes back it will come naturally,
+and without any forcing. Now I want to
+talk to you about something quite different. Mr.
+Graham has had a letter from the 'Home For
+The Friendless' at Oakland, and another from
+your friend Miss Brent, or Mrs. Rogers, as I
+believe she is now."</p>
+
+<p>"What did they say?" inquired Undine, languidly.
+She seemed too much exhausted to take
+much interest in letters.</p>
+
+<p>"Mrs. Rogers spoke kindly of you, and seemed
+pleased to know where you are. Her sister had<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span>
+telegraphed her of your disappearance. She said
+she hoped you would find a good home, for she
+was afraid nothing would induce Mrs. Hicks to
+take you back. They remembered you at the
+'Home,' too, and are willing to have you there
+again if we will pay your expenses back to California."</p>
+
+<p>"But I don't want to go back there," protested
+Undine, lifting her head, and speaking more like
+her old self. "Oh, Mrs. Graham, must I go?
+Can't I stay here? I'll do anything you want me
+to, and I can work hard, just wait and see if I
+can't."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham smiled as she glanced at the soft
+little hands, which did not look as though their
+owner were capable of much hard work.</p>
+
+<p>"That is just what we have been talking
+about," she said. "I should be glad of a little
+extra help in the house; Juanita isn't as young as
+she once was, and I want to give Marjorie a little
+more time for study. So if you think you would
+really care to stay with us, and are willing to
+work for small wages&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Wages!" cried Undine indignantly; "I don't
+want any money; I only want to stay with you,
+and work for my board. You're all so kind, and
+... and I think you must be more like the people<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span>
+I used to live with than Miss Brent and Mrs.
+Hicks were. Oh, if I could only remember!"</p>
+
+<p>"There, there, we won't talk any more about
+remembering just now," interrupted Mrs. Graham
+cheerfully. "You shall stay with us, at
+least for the present, and who knows what may
+happen in the future. Now lie down again, and
+try to take a nap before supper. You look very
+tired, and a good sleep will do your head more
+good than anything else." And yielding to a
+sudden impulse, Mrs. Graham stooped and kissed
+the flushed face on the pillow, almost as tenderly
+as if this strange, friendless little waif had been
+her own Marjorie.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER IV</h2>
+
+<h3>A VISITOR FROM THE EAST</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">Of</span> all the different kinds of housework, I
+think pickling is the most disagreeable!"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie made this remark as she came into
+her aunt's room one glorious October afternoon.
+Miss Graham's room was the prettiest and most
+luxurious in the ranch house. Every comfort
+which limited income and inaccessible surroundings
+could afford had been procured for the invalid,
+and to Marjorie, after a hard day's work
+of helping her mother and Juanita in the yearly
+pickling, it seemed a very haven of rest and comfort.
+Miss Graham herself, in a pretty pink
+wrapper, was lying on the sofa, while Undine
+read aloud to her. She was a very different Undine
+from the pale, timid girl of two months before.
+The thin cheeks had filled out wonderfully,
+and the big brown eyes had almost entirely lost
+their expression of frightened bewilderment, for
+Undine had found her place in the household and
+was happy. I have my doubts as to whether Undine<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span>
+would have proved of great use in the kitchen,
+her knowledge of any kind of housework
+being decidedly limited, but before she had been
+in her new home a fortnight Miss Graham was
+taken ill. It was not a serious illness, though a
+tedious and painful one, and almost from the first
+moment Undine had established herself as nurse.
+Her devotion was touching; it was with difficulty
+that she could be persuaded to leave the invalid's
+bedside even for the necessary rest and exercise,
+and she would gladly have worked night and day
+in the service of gentle Miss Graham, who almost
+unconsciously grew to love the girl, and to
+depend upon her more than she would have believed
+possible in so short a time.</p>
+
+<p>Now Miss Graham was better, and the task of
+nursing was almost at an end, but she was still
+weak, and Mr. and Mrs. Graham were thankful
+for the willing service of the girl whom they had
+taken into their home on account of her friendless
+condition and her big honest brown eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"You don't know what you two people have
+been spared to-day," continued Marjorie, throwing
+herself wearily into the rocking-chair.
+"Thank goodness, they're all done, and we shall
+have pickles enough to last another year."</p>
+
+<p>"We haven't been spared the smell," said Miss<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span>
+Graham, laughing. "I really felt at one time to-day
+that I would gladly forego pickles for the
+rest of my life."</p>
+
+<p>"What have you been reading?" Marjorie inquired,
+with a glance at the book Undine had put
+down on her entrance.</p>
+
+<p>"'Lorna Doone.' We have had a delightful
+afternoon. It is such a charming story, and Undine
+reads aloud remarkably well."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie glanced out of the window, at the
+brilliant autumn sunshine.</p>
+
+<p>"I think I'll go for a ride, to get the smell of
+the pickles out of my nostrils," she said.
+"Mother says she won't need me any more to-day."</p>
+
+<p>"That's a good idea," said Miss Graham approvingly,
+"and suppose you take Undine with
+you? She has been indoors all day; the fresh
+air will do her good."</p>
+
+<p>"All right," assented Marjorie, well pleased.
+"Come along, Undine," she added, rising; "we'll
+have time for a good gallop before supper."</p>
+
+<p>Undine hesitated.</p>
+
+<p>"Are you sure you can spare me?" she asked,
+with an anxious glance at the pale face on the pillow.</p>
+
+<p>"Quite sure, dear. I shall not need anything,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span>
+and even if I should Mrs. Graham and Juanita
+are both within call. So run along, you conscientious
+little nurse, and enjoy yourself for the rest
+of the afternoon."</p>
+
+<p>Undine blushed with pleasure at the compliment,
+and five minutes later she and Marjorie
+were on their way to the stables.</p>
+
+<p>It was one of those glorious autumn days, when
+the air is like a tonic, and every object stands
+out with almost startling clearness.</p>
+
+<p>"The mountains look so near to-day, it seems
+almost as if we might ride to them, doesn't it?"
+remarked Undine, as the two girls trotted out of
+the ranch gates on their ponies; Undine sitting as
+straight, and riding with almost as much ease as
+Marjorie herself.</p>
+
+<p>"They are nearly a hundred miles away," said
+Marjorie, with a glance in the direction of the
+great snow-tipped mountains, which certainly did
+look very near in that wonderful atmosphere.
+"We could go there, though, if we had an automobile.
+What wonderful things automobiles
+must be."</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose they are&mdash;there were plenty of
+them in California&mdash;but nothing could be
+half as nice as a gallop in this wonderful air. A
+pony like this is worth all the automobiles in San<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span>
+Francisco." And Undine bestowed an affectionate
+pat on the neck of the pretty brown horse she
+was riding.</p>
+
+<p>"I believe you love riding as much as I do,"
+said Marjorie, sympathetically. "I wonder
+where you learned to ride. I shall never forget
+how astonished Father and I were that first
+day, when we made you get on a pony just for
+fun, and you took the reins, and started off as if
+you had been accustomed to riding every day
+of your life."</p>
+
+<p>There was a trace of the old shadow in Undine's
+face as she answered:</p>
+
+<p>"It's all very strange, and I can't explain it,
+but it seemed quite natural, and as if I had done
+it often before. Even when the pony jumped,
+and your father thought I would be frightened, I
+wasn't. I seemed to know just what to do,
+though I couldn't tell how I knew."</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps you lived on a ranch once," Marjorie
+suggested. "That would explain it."</p>
+
+<p>Undine shook her head.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think so," she said, "for when I first
+came here it was all quite strange, and though
+I'm not a bit afraid of horses, I'm horribly afraid
+of cows. A girl who had lived long on a ranch
+couldn't be afraid of cows, could she?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Marjorie assented, and the two girls rode on in
+silence for several minutes. Then Undine spoke
+again.</p>
+
+<p>"There's another curious thing that I haven't
+told you. That book I'm reading to your aunt&mdash;'Lorna
+Doone,' you know&mdash;I'm sure I've read
+it before. I know what is going to happen in
+every chapter."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie looked much interested.</p>
+
+<p>"Have you told Aunt Jessie about it?" she
+asked.</p>
+
+<p>"No, I was afraid it might bother her. I
+don't think she or your mother like to have me
+talk about the things I remember."</p>
+
+<p>"That's only because they're afraid you will
+worry and make yourself ill," Marjorie explained.
+"You remember what a dreadful headache
+you had the day you heard Jim singing
+'Mandalay.' They're really tremendously interested."</p>
+
+<p>"Are they?" said Undine, looking pleased.
+"I was afraid they thought me silly. At first I
+know they thought I was a fraud, and I'm sure I
+don't blame them. How could any one believe
+such a queer story? And yet it's all true, every
+word."</p>
+
+<p>"They believe it now, at any rate," said Marjorie,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span>
+"and they're just as much interested as I
+am. Mother says she can't help worrying when
+she thinks of your friends, and how they may be
+grieving for you."</p>
+
+<p>"Miss Brent said she didn't believe I had any
+friends or they would have come to look for me,"
+said Undine sadly.</p>
+
+<p>"But you must have belonged to somebody,"
+persisted Marjorie, "and it isn't likely all your
+family were killed in the earthquake, even if some
+of them were. Then you do remember some
+things&mdash;there was the person who sang 'Mandalay.'"</p>
+
+<p>"But I can't remember who it was; I only
+know there was somebody who used to sing it. I
+almost remembered for a minute that day, but it
+was gone in a flash, and it has never come back
+since."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, don't let's talk any more about worrying
+things this glorious afternoon," broke in Marjorie,
+noticing the troubled sound in her friend's
+voice. "Let's have a good gallop, and forget
+everything else. Come along, Roland."</p>
+
+<p>Away flew Roland, admonished by a gentle
+tap from his mistress, and he was followed closely
+by Undine's pony. The next half hour was one
+of unalloyed enjoyment to both girls. The<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span>
+quick motion, the bright sunshine, the keen air, all
+conspired to banish thoughts of care or perplexity
+from Undine's mind, and to bring the bright
+color into her cheeks. Marjorie, glancing over
+her shoulder at her friend, suddenly realized what
+a very pretty girl Undine was. Even the khaki
+skirt and the sombrero, counterparts of Marjorie's
+own, could not detract from her beauty,
+and she sat on her pony with as much grace as
+any lady in the land.</p>
+
+<p>"There! wasn't that great?" exclaimed Marjorie,
+drawing Roland in at last, and turning to
+her friend, with sparkling eyes. "I don't believe
+you ever had a finer gallop than that in your
+life."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe I ever did," agreed Undine,
+straightening her sombrero, and pushing back the
+tumbled hair from her eyes. "Must we go back
+now?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid so. Father and Mother don't
+like to have me stay out after sunset. Look at
+the mountains; they seem just as near as ever,
+don't they? And yet we've been riding straight
+away from them all the time."</p>
+
+<p>"Isn't it still?" whispered Undine, with a deep
+breath. "I feel as if I ought to whisper, though
+I don't know why. I don't suppose there's another<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span>
+living soul within miles of us, and yet I'm
+not the least bit afraid."</p>
+
+<p>"There is, though," exclaimed Marjorie, in
+sudden astonishment. "Look at that man.
+Where can he be going?" And she pointed with
+her whip-handle to a solitary figure, carrying a
+suit-case, which was slowly advancing in their direction.
+"He isn't an Indian or a Mexican,
+either," she added eagerly; "he's a white man,
+and he must be on his way to the ranch. Nobody
+who isn't coming to the ranch ever takes
+this road."</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps he's a tramp," suggested Undine
+nervously. "We'd better hurry home."</p>
+
+<p>But Marjorie scorned the suggestion.</p>
+
+<p>"Nonsense," she said indignantly. "The idea
+of wanting to run away! Besides, we can't;
+he's making signs to us to wait for him. He
+wants to speak to us."</p>
+
+<p>Undine did not feel at all sure of the wisdom
+of this proceeding, but there seemed nothing else
+to do, and in a few moments the stranger, who
+had quickened his pace at sight of the two girls,
+was within speaking distance. He was plentifully
+besprinkled with dust, and was looking decidedly
+warm and tired, but his appearance and
+manner were those of a gentleman.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Excuse me for detaining you," he said, apologetically,
+"but can you tell me how far I am
+from Mr. Donald Graham's ranch?"</p>
+
+<p>"I thought you must be coming to the ranch,"
+said Marjorie, with a friendly smile; "it's about
+five miles from here."</p>
+
+<p>"Five miles," repeated the stranger in a tone
+of dismay, and he set down the heavy suit-case
+he was carrying, and wiped his forehead with his
+handkerchief.</p>
+
+<p>"Have you been walking far?" Marjorie inquired
+sympathetically.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I think I must have walked at least five
+miles already. My team broke down, one of the
+wheels came off, and the man who was driving
+me out to the ranch seemed to think the only
+thing to be done was to leave the wagon with my
+trunk on it by the roadside while he returned to
+town on horseback, to get another trap. He advised
+me to walk on, but I had no idea of the distance.
+Will you please tell me if this is the
+shortest way to the ranch?"</p>
+
+<p>"It's the only way," said Marjorie, smiling,
+and thinking that this tall, broad-shouldered man
+must certainly be "a tenderfoot." Her own
+father thought nothing of a ten-mile tramp over
+the prairie.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Then I suppose there is no help for it, but
+five miles&mdash;are you sure it's as much as five
+miles?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie nodded; she was trying to think of
+some way of helping the stranger out of his difficulty.
+But it was finally he himself who put
+into words the very suggestion she was going to
+make.</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder if by any chance you young ladies
+happen to be going as far as the ranch," he said,
+with a rather curious glance at the two figures,
+sitting astride their ponies.</p>
+
+<p>"We're going straight there now," said Marjorie,
+eagerly, "and if you don't mind waiting,
+I'll ask Father to send a horse for you."</p>
+
+<p>"You are very kind, but do you think he could
+possibly send a wagon as well? I am not much
+of a horseman."</p>
+
+<p>This certainly was a "tenderfoot," and no mistake,
+but Marjorie was too polite to laugh.</p>
+
+<p>"All right," she said, "I'll see about it, but
+it will take longer to wait for a team to be
+hitched up."</p>
+
+<p>"That can't be helped. I'm afraid I'm not
+equal to another five miles on foot. Do you know
+Mr. Graham?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie laughed.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Of course I do," she said in her frank,
+friendly way; "he's my father."</p>
+
+<p>"Your father!" repeated the gentleman, his
+face lighting up; "why, you don't mean to tell
+me you are little Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm Marjorie Graham, but I'm not very little.
+I'm five feet, three, and I was fourteen last
+March."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you were about two feet, three when
+I last saw you," said the gentleman, smiling; "so
+you must forgive me for not recognizing you at
+once. Have you ever heard of your uncle Henry
+Carleton?"</p>
+
+<p>With a joyous exclamation, impulsive Marjorie
+sprang from her pony and leaving the faithful
+Roland to his own devices, rushed to her
+uncle's side, holding out both hands.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I have!" she cried, lifting her
+radiant face for the expected kiss. "Oh, Uncle
+Henry, I'm so glad you've come to see us at last;
+Mother will be so happy."</p>
+
+<p>Although somewhat surprised by the warmth
+of this greeting, Mr. Carleton was not at all displeased.
+Indeed, he was smiling very pleasantly
+by the time he had given his niece the kiss she
+was evidently expecting, and his face softened as
+he regarded her more attentively.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I ought to have known you, Marjorie," he
+said, "for you are very like your mother."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie flushed with pleasure.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm glad," she said; "I'd rather look like
+Mother than any one else. Is Elsie with you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie? You know about my little girl, too,
+then?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, indeed; I know she is just about my
+age. Mother has a photograph of her, taken
+when she was a baby, and I've always wished I
+could see her. Having a cousin of one's own
+age must be almost as good as having a sister.
+Oh, I do hope she's coming to the ranch!"</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton shook his head.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie and her mother were with me, but they
+have gone back to New York. We have been
+through the Canadian Rockies and the Yosemite
+together, and yesterday we stopped at the Grand
+Canyon. Your aunt and cousin have gone on in
+the train, but I thought I would like a few days
+with your mother, so I got off at the nearest station
+to the ranch, and was driving out. I suppose
+I should have written, but I thought I would
+rather enjoy giving your mother a surprise. I
+hope I sha'n't be in the way."</p>
+
+<p>"No, indeed, you won't," declared Marjorie
+heartily. "Mother and Father will be delighted,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span>
+and so will Aunt Jessie. We so seldom have
+visitors, and it's such a treat, but I'm dreadfully
+sorry Aunt Julia and Elsie aren't coming, too.
+What a lucky girl Elsie is to have seen all those
+wonderful places! Father is going to take
+Mother and me to the Canyon some day when he
+can afford it. But I was so glad to see you that
+I forgot to introduce my friend. Undine, this
+is my uncle, Mr. Carleton.</p>
+
+<p>"Uncle Henry, this is my friend, Miss Undine&mdash;we
+don't know her other name."</p>
+
+<p>Undine&mdash;who had been watching proceedings
+with interest&mdash;smiled shyly, and held out
+her hand. She had also dismounted from her
+pony, and was holding him by the bridle.</p>
+
+<p>"Undine," repeated Mr. Carleton, looking
+amused, as he took the girl's hand, and regarded
+her curiously; "that is a rather unusual name,
+isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>Undine blushed, and looked embarrassed, and
+Marjorie hastened to explain.</p>
+
+<p>"It isn't her real name, but she didn't like being
+called Sally, so we thought we would call her
+Undine until she remembers what her name is.
+It's a very interesting story, Uncle Henry, but I
+won't stop to tell it now, for it's getting late, and
+I must hurry home as fast as I can, and have<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span>
+Father send a team for you. I wish you could
+ride my pony; I wouldn't mind walking the five
+miles a bit."</p>
+
+<p>"That's a nice little girl of Susie's," Mr.
+Carleton remarked to himself, as the ponies and
+their riders disappeared in a cloud of dust.
+"She has her mother's eyes and friendly ways,
+but&mdash;well, perhaps it was just as well I couldn't
+persuade Julia to stop over at the ranch. I doubt
+if Marjorie and Elsie would hit it off very well
+together."</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER V</h2>
+
+<h3>UNCLE HENRY'S PROPOSITION</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Mr. Carleton</span> received a hearty welcome at
+the ranch. Mr. and Mrs. Graham were not the
+sort of people to remember old grievances; Mrs.
+Graham was honestly glad to see her brother, and
+they were both quite willing to let bygones be
+bygones. So the visitor found the meeting with
+his sister and her husband a much less embarrassing
+one than he had expected, and the days at
+the ranch passed so pleasantly that he was easily
+persuaded to prolong his stay from a day or two
+to a week, and then to a fortnight. He and his
+sister had more than one long confidential talk,
+and although no word of complaint was uttered,
+Mr. Carleton was clever enough to read between
+the lines, and it was after one of these talks that
+he wrote a letter to his wife in New York, for an
+answer to which he was anxiously waiting.</p>
+
+<p>It was on an afternoon in the second week of
+his visit that Mr. Carleton sauntered out on to
+the porch, to find Marjorie alone, and busily engaged
+in trimming a hat.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Where are all the others?" he inquired,
+throwing himself rather wearily into the rocker
+by her side. "I've been writing letters all the
+afternoon, and haven't heard a sound in the
+house."</p>
+
+<p>"They are all out," said Marjorie. "Father
+wanted Mother to see some colts he is thinking
+of buying, and Aunt Jessie has gone with them,
+for the sake of the drive. Undine has gone,
+too."</p>
+
+<p>"And how does it happen that you were left
+behind, like Cinderella. Wasn't there room in
+the wagon?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I could have squeezed in, or else ridden
+Roland, but I was too busy. I'm making a new
+hat, and that's always a very absorbing occupation.
+Don't you think it's going to be pretty?"
+And Marjorie held up the plain straw hat,
+trimmed with blue ribbon, for her uncle's inspection.</p>
+
+<p>"I have no doubt it will be most becoming,"
+said Mr. Carleton, smiling, "but have you done
+it all yourself?"</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I have. I've trimmed all my hats
+since I was twelve. I make my shirt-waists,
+too, all but the cutting out; Mother does that.
+Doesn't Elsie make her own things?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"No, I'm afraid she doesn't; sewing isn't exactly
+in Elsie's line."</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps she likes other kinds of work better,"
+said Marjorie, cheerfully. "I suppose
+Aunt Julia is disappointed, though. Mother says
+she would be very sorry if I didn't like to sew;
+she thinks every girl should learn to make her
+own clothes."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid your aunt isn't any more fond of
+sewing than Elsie is," said Mr. Carleton, with a
+rather peculiar smile.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie secretly wondered who made Elsie's
+dresses, and who attended to the household mending,
+but fearing it might be impolite to ask,
+changed the subject by saying:</p>
+
+<p>"Undine could scarcely sew at all when she
+came, but Aunt Jessie has been teaching her, and
+she has improved very much. Don't you think
+it's tremendously interesting about Undine, Uncle
+Henry?"</p>
+
+<p>"It is certainly a most unusual case," admitted
+Mr. Carleton. "I was at first inclined to believe
+that Miss Undine was gifted with a vivid
+imagination, and was imposing on you all, but
+your father and mother believe her story."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, indeed, we all believe it," cried Marjorie,
+eagerly. "We know it's true, because<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span>
+Father wrote to the dressmaker where Undine
+worked for two years, and she said everything
+was just as Undine had told us."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, it is certainly a case for a brain specialist,"
+said Mr. Carleton, "but unfortunately
+there are no specialists of any kind in this part
+of the world. I wish there were, for your aunt
+Jessie's sake."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's bright face was suddenly clouded.</p>
+
+<p>"You don't think Aunt Jessie ill, do you?"
+she asked, anxiously. "She seems so much better
+than she was two weeks ago."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know that she is worse than usual,
+but she is a very different creature from the
+strong, active girl I remember. Poor child, she
+has had a terrible experience; I wish some good
+surgeon could see her."</p>
+
+<p>"You mean&mdash;oh, Uncle Henry, you mean
+you think a surgeon might possibly be able to
+help her!" Marjorie's hat had fallen into her
+lap, and she was regarding her uncle with eager,
+troubled eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know whether a surgeon could help
+her or not, but he could at least make an examination.
+I don't suppose there is even an ordinary
+physician in this neighborhood."</p>
+
+<p>"There is one at Lorton, but that's twenty<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span>
+miles away, and I've heard people say he wasn't
+very good. Father sent for a surgeon from Albuquerque
+when Aunt Jessie was hurt, and he
+said it was her spine that had been injured, and
+that she could never be cured. Do you think a
+doctor from the East might say something different?"</p>
+
+<p>"My dear child, don't get so excited. I
+really have not the slightest idea; I was only
+speculating on my own account. It seems such
+a pity that one so young&mdash;well, well, it can't be
+helped, I suppose, and there is no use in talking
+about it."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie sighed as she took up her work
+again, and they were both silent for several minutes.
+Then Marjorie spoke again, and her voice
+was not quite steady.</p>
+
+<p>"If I thought there was any surgeon in the
+world who could cure Aunt Jessie, I believe I
+would go and find him myself, and bring him
+here, if it took me years to earn the money, and I
+had to work day and night to do it. She's the
+dearest, bravest&mdash;oh, Uncle Henry, you haven't
+any idea what Aunt Jessie is!"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie broke off, with a half-suppressed sob,
+and dashed away some tears, which would come
+in spite of a brave effort to keep them back.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span>
+Mr. Carleton's face softened as he watched her;
+he had grown to have a high opinion of this
+niece of his. He could not help wondering
+rather sadly whether there were any one in the
+world of whom his own little daughter would
+have spoken in such glowing terms.</p>
+
+<p>"You're a loyal little soul, Marjorie," he said
+kindly. "I wish Elsie had you for a friend."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie smiled through her tears.</p>
+
+<p>"I wish I had her for my friend," she said.
+"Don't you think she would like to come out
+here and make us a visit some time? She might
+find it rather hot in summer, if she wasn't accustomed
+to it, but the winters are beautiful."</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie has her school in winter," Mr. Carleton
+said, "but perhaps she may come some day.
+Hark, who is that singing?"</p>
+
+<p>"Only Jim coming with the mail. He always
+sings when he rides. It's generally 'Mandalay,'
+but it's 'Loch Lomond' to-day."</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><p>"'Oh, you'll tak' the high road, and I'll tak' the low road,'"</p></div>
+
+<p>sang the clear tenor voice, and Jim Hathaway,
+on his big brown horse, came galloping up to
+the door.</p>
+
+<p>"There's only one letter for you to-day, Uncle<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span>
+Henry," announced Marjorie, taking the handful
+of letters and papers from the boy. "It's
+a big fat one, though. Perhaps it's from Elsie;
+you haven't had one letter from Elsie since you
+came."</p>
+
+<p>"It is from your Aunt Julia," said Mr. Carleton,
+and immediately proceeded to make himself
+acquainted with its contents, while Jim galloped
+away to the stables, and Marjorie went on with
+her hat trimming.</p>
+
+<p>It was, as Marjorie had said, a "fat letter,"
+and it took Mr. Carleton some time to read it.
+Indeed, he read some parts over more than once,
+before he finally put it in his pocket, and prepared
+to light a cigar. "Are Aunt Julia and
+Elsie well?" Marjorie inquired, politely. She
+could not help wondering why this aunt and
+cousin never sent any messages to her.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, they are very well, thank you.
+Your aunt says it has been rather warm for the
+season, and there hasn't been much going on."</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton relapsed into silence, and Marjorie
+said no more. Her thoughts were filled by
+a new idea. What if a surgeon could really be
+found who would be able to cure Aunt Jessie?
+Such a possibility seemed almost too wonderful
+to be contemplated, and yet,&mdash;and yet<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span>&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>The whistle of a distant train broke the stillness,
+and Marjorie came down from her air castle
+to remark&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"There goes the East Bound; two hours late
+to-day."</p>
+
+<p>"You seem as much interested in the hours of
+trains as if you were in the habit of traveling on
+one at least once a week," said Mr. Carleton,
+smiling. "How would you like to take a journey&mdash;to
+go to New York, for instance?"</p>
+
+<p>"I should love it better than anything in the
+world," said Marjorie frankly.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, perhaps it can be managed. What
+would you say to going East with me next week,
+and spending the winter in New York?"</p>
+
+<p>For the second time the hat Marjorie was
+trimming rolled unheeded into her lap, while she
+sat staring at her uncle with startled, wondering
+eyes. The proposal was so sudden&mdash;so undreamed
+of&mdash;that for the first moment she was
+speechless, and when words did come at last,
+they were only:</p>
+
+<p>"You mean to spend the winter with you and
+Aunt Julia?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, and to go to school with Elsie. I think
+your father and mother are rather anxious about
+your education."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I know they are," said Marjorie, eagerly.
+"They wanted to send me to school at Albuquerque
+this autumn, but the drought spoiled
+the alfalfa crop, and there was disease among the
+cattle, so Father didn't feel he could afford it. I
+should love to see New York more than anything
+I can think of, but to go so far away from them
+all for a whole winter&mdash;oh, Uncle Henry, you're
+very kind to suggest it, but I really don't believe
+I could."</p>
+
+<p>"Not if you knew your father and mother
+wished it very much, and that it would be a great
+relief to their minds?" Mr. Carleton spoke
+rather gravely, and Marjorie felt suddenly embarrassed.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I would try to do what they
+wanted me to," she said meekly, "but I don't believe
+they would be willing to have me go as far
+away from them. Albuquerque was different; I
+could have come home for the vacations from
+there. It's awfully good of you, Uncle Henry,
+and I would love to see Aunt Julia and Elsie, but
+New York is so far away."</p>
+
+<p>"Only three days by train," said Mr. Carleton,
+smiling; "that ought not to seem much to
+you Westerners. You would find the life very
+different from that to which you have been accustomed,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span>
+but I think you would enjoy it, and
+you must have an education, you know."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie blushed, and her eyes drooped.</p>
+
+<p>"I want it very much," she said humbly. "If
+I were well educated, I might be able to teach,
+and to help Father and Mother in other ways.
+Uncle Henry, do you think it is my duty to go to
+New York?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, Marjorie, I do," said her uncle, with
+unusual gravity. "I think it is an opportunity
+that you should not miss. I have written your
+Aunt Julia about it, and her answer has just
+come. She agrees with me that it will be the
+best thing for you. Your home will be with us,
+of course, and you will go to school with Elsie.
+It is not a large school, only a class of a dozen
+girls, and the teacher is a charming woman.
+You will soon make friends, and I think you
+would be happy."</p>
+
+<p>"And I would be with Elsie," said Marjorie,
+beginning to look on the bright side, as she generally
+did. "It would be lovely to know my own
+cousin. Have you spoken to Mother about it,
+Uncle Henry?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not yet, but I intend doing so this evening.
+I have been waiting for your aunt's reply to my
+letter. I feel quite sure your mother will consent;<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span>
+she is too sensible a woman to do anything
+else. But it will be hard for her to let you go
+so far away, and I want you to be a brave, sensible
+girl, and not make it any harder than you
+can help."</p>
+
+<p>For a moment Marjorie was silent, and her
+uncle could see by her face something of the
+struggling that was going on within. Then she
+spoke, and her voice was clear and brave.</p>
+
+<p>"All right, Uncle Henry, I promise. If
+Father and Mother want me to go I will, and I'll
+try not to let them see how hard it is. After
+all, it won't be like going to stay with strangers,
+for I shall be with my own relations all the time,
+and it will be so nice to have a cousin of my own
+age. Here comes the wagon, so we can't talk
+any more now. Oh, Uncle Henry, there's just
+one question I want to ask. Are there many
+good surgeons in New York?"</p>
+
+<p>"Plenty of them," said her uncle, smiling.
+"Don't say anything of what we have been talking
+about, Marjorie, until I have a chance to explain
+to your mother."</p>
+
+<p>"No, I won't, and, Uncle Henry, please don't
+think me ungrateful because I couldn't be so glad
+just at first. It's beautiful of you and Aunt
+Julia to want me, and if I go I'll try not to give<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span>
+any more trouble than I can possibly help. Now
+I am going to my room for a few minutes. I
+don't want Aunt Jessie to see me till I've got my
+face straightened out. She knows me so well
+she says she can tell the moment there is anything
+the matter."</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER VI</h2>
+
+<h3>THE LAST EVENING</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was settled. Marjorie was to go East with
+her uncle, and spend the winter in New York.
+Mr. Carleton felt that he could not leave his
+business much longer, and was anxious to start
+as soon as Marjorie could be ready. For a week
+Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie had sewed as they
+had never sewed before, and Marjorie and even
+Undine had worked so hard that there had been
+little time to think of anything else. Now it was
+the last evening, and the small leather trunk containing
+all Marjorie's simple possessions, stood
+packed, and ready to be taken early next
+morning, to the railway station twenty miles
+away.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton had been somewhat puzzled by
+all these elaborate preparations, and had ventured
+a gentle remonstrance to his sister.</p>
+
+<p>"Why take so much trouble, Susie? Julia
+will get the child everything she needs, and I'll
+attend to the bills. You needn't worry about<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span>
+Marjorie's being well-dressed; you know Julia
+has excellent taste."</p>
+
+<p>But Mrs. Graham was resolute. She knew
+well that her own ideas of dress and those of her
+New York sister-in-law were very different, but
+she was not without her share of family pride,
+and was not willing that Marjorie should appear
+before her Eastern relatives in clothes unfit for
+her position. But alas! It was twelve years
+since Mrs. Graham had left her New York home,
+and styles change a good deal in twelve years.</p>
+
+<p>Every one had kept up bravely during that
+busy week, and they had all been extremely
+cheerful. Marjorie never knew of the bitter
+tears shed by mother and aunt in the solitude of
+their own rooms, and Mrs. Graham's heart would
+have ached even more than it did had she known
+of the hours Marjorie lay awake, her head buried
+deep in the pillow, so that Aunt Jessie in the next
+room, should not hear her crying. Every one
+knew it was for the best. Even Marjorie, miserable
+as she was sometimes at the thought of
+the two thousand miles which must soon lie between
+herself and the people she loved best,
+would have been keenly disappointed if Uncle
+Henry had suddenly changed his mind, or Aunt
+Julia written that it would not be convenient to<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span>
+have her. All through that last day she had
+worked hard, trying not to think about to-morrow,
+but now everything was done and everybody was
+resting after their labors. Marjorie had sat on
+the porch for an hour with her mother and aunt,
+and they had all tried to talk cheerfully as usual,
+but it was of no use. There was a dreadful inclination
+on all their parts to drop into long silences,
+which nobody seemed able to break.
+They were alone, for Mr. Carleton and his
+brother-in-law had gone for a walk, and Undine
+was helping Juanita in the kitchen.</p>
+
+<p>At last, at the end of a longer silence than
+usual, Marjorie, feeling sure she shouldn't be
+able to hold out much longer, suddenly sprang up,
+explaining hurriedly:</p>
+
+<p>"I'll be right back; I'm just going to the
+stables for a moment to say good-by to Roland."
+And she was off across the lawn, biting her lip
+to keep back the sobs that must not come until
+she was out of sight and hearing of her dear
+ones.</p>
+
+<p>The bidding good-by to her pony was a rather
+lengthy proceeding. She was alone, for the men
+had all gone off to their suppers, so she had her
+cry out on Roland's neck, and whispered her last
+loving instructions into his faithful ears.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"You are to be a good pony, Roland, and do
+just as you are told till I come home. Undine is
+to ride you whenever she likes, and Aunt Jessie
+thinks riding is so good for her that she's going
+to try to let her go out for an hour every day.
+You will miss me, I know, Roland dear, and I
+shall miss you terribly, but I've got to have an
+education, and after all one winter isn't so very
+long to be away."</p>
+
+<p>Whether Roland understood or not I cannot
+pretend to say, but he rubbed his soft nose
+against Marjorie's cheek, and snuggled up close
+to her as if he loved her, and she left the stable
+feeling somehow cheered and comforted.</p>
+
+<p>On the way back she passed the old playhouse,
+and could not resist the temptation of going in
+for one more last good-bye, although she knew
+it would mean another fit of crying. The sight
+of the old toys and picture books&mdash;relics of the
+childhood that would never come back&mdash;affected
+her even more than the parting with Roland had
+done, and sinking down on the bench where she
+had dozed on the afternoon of Undine's arrival,
+she gave herself up to a few minutes of quiet,
+undisturbed grief.</p>
+
+<p>She had just dried her eyes, and was wondering
+if she could manage to reach her own room,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span>
+and wash her face, without being seen by any of
+her family, when the door, which had been partly
+closed, was pushed gently open, and Undine came
+in.</p>
+
+<p>At sight of her friend, Undine drew back,
+blushing.</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't know you were here," she said,
+apologetically; "I'll go away if you want to be
+alone."</p>
+
+<p>"Come in," said Marjorie, making room for
+her on the bench. "Were you looking for
+me?"</p>
+
+<p>Undine's eyes drooped, and the color deepened
+in her cheeks.</p>
+
+<p>"I came to cry," she said simply.</p>
+
+<p>"To cry?" repeated Marjorie in surprise;
+"what did you want to cry for?"</p>
+
+<p>"Because you're going away," Undine confessed,
+nestling closer to her friend.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie slipped an arm round her. "I didn't
+know you cared so much," she said. "You'll
+have Aunt Jessie, and you're so fond of her."</p>
+
+<p>"I shall miss you dreadfully," whispered Undine
+tremulously. "You've been so good to me,
+and&mdash;and you were the first one to believe in me.
+All the rest thought I was telling stories, even
+Miss Jessie."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I couldn't help believing you," said Marjorie,
+laughing. "When you looked at me with
+those big eyes of yours, and told me all those
+strange things, I felt sure they were true, though
+it was the queerest story I had ever heard. I
+think I should have to believe every word you
+ever told me."</p>
+
+<p>Undine smiled.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think your uncle believes it all even
+yet," she said. "He looks at me so queerly
+sometimes that it makes me uncomfortable. I
+wish you were not going away with him."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, he is very kind," said Marjorie, loyally.
+"It's so good of him to be willing to take
+me to New York, and send me to school for the
+whole winter. I'm sorry you don't like him, Undine."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, he may be kind, but he isn't nearly as
+nice as your father and mother. How do you
+know you are going to like New York?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I am sure I shall like it, as soon as I
+get used to things there." Marjorie spoke with
+forced cheerfulness and choked down a rising
+lump in her throat. "You see, it isn't
+like going to live among strangers," she went
+on, as much for the sake of reassuring herself
+as her friend. "I shall be with my own<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span>
+uncle and aunt, and then there will be Elsie."</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps you won't like Elsie; you've never
+seen her."</p>
+
+<p>"Why, of course I shall like her. She's my
+own cousin, and only three months older than
+I am. I have always thought that having a
+cousin was the next best thing to having a
+sister."</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder if I ever had a sister," Undine remarked
+irrelevantly. "Somehow I don't believe
+I had, for when I say the word 'sister' it never
+makes my heart beat the way it does when I
+say 'Mother.' I know I had a mother, and I
+think I must have loved her very much."</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps that's because you've grown to love
+my mother," Marjorie suggested; "she may remind
+you of yours."</p>
+
+<p>Undine pressed her hand to her forehead, and
+the old bewildered look came back into her
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," she said, with a sigh; "I
+don't know anything. Oh, Marjorie, do you
+think I shall ever remember?"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sure you will," said Marjorie confidently,
+"and so is Aunt Jessie. She says she's
+sure when you get well and strong it will make a
+great difference, and that's why she wants you to<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span>
+be out in the air as much as possible. You are
+ever so much better now than when you came,
+and when you are better still, and have left off
+worrying, you'll wake up some morning remembering
+everything; just wait and see if you
+don't."</p>
+
+<p>Undine smiled, but the smile was rather sad.</p>
+
+<p>"I try not to worry," she said, "and I'm happier
+here than I ever was before, but I'm so
+frightened even now when I stop to think about
+it all." Undine's sentence ended with an involuntary
+shudder.</p>
+
+<p>"Look here, Undine," said Marjorie, with a
+sudden determination, "I'm going to let you in
+to a great secret. You must promise not to
+speak to any one about it, even Mother, for if
+it should never come to anything it would be such
+a dreadful disappointment to everybody."</p>
+
+<p>"I won't tell," promised Undine, beginning to
+look interested.</p>
+
+<p>"It's about Aunt Jessie. Uncle Henry was
+speaking of Aunt Jessie one day, and he thinks
+it such a pity a good surgeon couldn't see her.
+He says she might be helped a great deal.
+There are no good surgeons here, but Uncle
+Henry says there are a great many in New York,
+and I've been thinking&mdash;oh, Undine, I'm almost<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span>
+afraid to say it, it seems so presumptuous&mdash;but
+just suppose I should meet a surgeon in New
+York, and be able to persuade him to come here
+to see Aunt Jessie, and suppose he should cure
+her! It's the one hope that keeps me up every
+time I feel like breaking down at the idea of going
+so far away from everybody."</p>
+
+<p>"It would be perfectly beautiful," Undine
+agreed warmly, "but do you suppose any surgeon
+would be willing to come so far to see some
+one he didn't know?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's face, which had brightened for a
+moment, grew very serious again.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," she said. "If he knew her
+I'm sure he would come&mdash;any one would&mdash;but
+if he had never even heard of her existence it
+would be different, of course. I don't know how
+I'm going to manage it; I only know it's the
+thing I want most in the whole world, and I'm
+going to try for it with all my might."</p>
+
+<p>There was a ring in Marjorie's voice, and a
+light in her eyes, which impressed her friend,
+and with a quick, affectionate impulse, Undine
+caught her hand and squeezed it.</p>
+
+<p>"I wish I could help," she said, "but there
+isn't anything I can do except pray about it. I
+will pray every night, just as hard as I do to remember,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span>
+and if it really should happen I think I
+should be almost as happy as you."</p>
+
+<p>Just then the conversation was interrupted by
+the sound of approaching footsteps and voices,
+and with a whispered caution to Undine not to
+breathe a word to any one, Marjorie hurried
+away to join her father and uncle, who were returning
+from their walk.</p>
+
+<p>Everybody made a great effort to be cheerful
+at supper that evening. Even Mr. Carleton,
+who was usually rather quiet, threw himself
+manfully into the breach, and told funny stories
+that made them all laugh. After all, the evening
+wasn't as dreadful as Marjorie had feared
+it was going to be, but when bedtime came, and
+she had to say good-night to her family for the
+last time for eight whole months, she felt herself
+in immediate danger of breaking down.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham sat for a long time by her daughter's
+bedside that night, and they had what Marjorie
+called "a perfectly Heavenly talk." It
+was a serious talk, but not a sad one, and when it
+was over, and Marjorie flung her arms round
+her mother's neck, and did break down just a
+little, things did not seem nearly as hopeless as
+she had expected.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe any other girl in the world<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span>
+has such a perfect mother as I have," was Marjorie's
+last waking thought. "I don't deserve
+her, and never can, but I'm going to try not to
+disappoint her any more than I can possibly
+help. One winter can't last for ever, and when
+June comes, and I am at home again, how gloriously
+happy we shall all be!"</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER VII</h2>
+
+<h3>MARJORIE WRITES LETTERS</h3>
+
+
+<div class="blockquot"><div class='right'>
+
+"October 28th, 19&mdash;<br />
+</div>
+
+"<span class="smcap">My Own Precious Mother</span>:
+
+<p>"The first letter must be to you, of course,
+and the next to Aunt Jessie. Uncle Henry says
+if I write now I can post my letter when we stop
+at Albuquerque this afternoon. Oh, Mother
+darling, was it only this morning that I said
+good-bye to you all? It seems as if I had been
+away a month already.</p>
+
+<p>"I am writing this at the desk in the library
+car, and the train shakes so I am afraid my
+writing will be worse than ever. Uncle Henry
+says I shall soon get accustomed to the motion,
+but just now it makes my head ache, and the car
+feels very hot and stuffy. I opened the window,
+but a great many cinders came in, and a lady in
+the section next to mine asked me to close it
+again, so I had to.</p>
+
+<p>"I hope Father didn't tell you what a goose I
+was at the station. I didn't mean to cry so<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>
+much, but when I thought of you and Aunt Jessie
+waving good-bye to me from the porch, with
+such a sorrowful look on both your dear faces,
+I just couldn't help it. I am going to cheer up
+right away, though, so please don't worry about
+me.</p>
+
+<p>"It really was very exciting when the train
+stopped at Lorton, and Uncle Henry and I got
+in. When it began to move, and I realized that
+I was actually on board, I gave a kind of gasp,
+and would have liked to scream, if I hadn't been
+afraid of shocking Uncle Henry. There are
+not many people on the train, the colored porter
+says, and Uncle Henry and I both have sections
+to ourselves. I thought there would be regular
+beds to sleep in, but there are not. The porter
+says they turn the seats into beds at night, and
+there are curtains to let down. I should think
+it would be very uncomfortable sleeping so close
+to other people, but I suppose one gets used to it
+when one has traveled a good deal. Uncle
+Henry says Aunt Julia won't travel unless she
+has a stateroom, but he doesn't object to the sections.
+I looked into the stateroom in this car,
+but it didn't look very different from the sections,
+except that it was larger and there was a
+place to wash.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"We had lunch at a little table in the dining-car.
+It was delicious but my head ached a little,
+and I wasn't very hungry. Uncle Henry
+talked politics with a gentleman who sat at the
+same table with us, but they didn't say much to
+me, so I looked out of the window, and it was all
+very interesting. We are in Mexico now, and
+to-morrow we shall be in Kansas. Kansas
+makes me think of Undine and Mrs. Hicks. Oh,
+how I do wonder if Undine will ever remember!</p>
+
+<p>"Uncle Henry says we shall be in Albuquerque
+in a few minutes, so I must stop writing
+if I want to post my letter there. Good-night,
+Mother darling; I will write again to-morrow,
+and indeed, indeed, I will try to remember all the
+things you said to me last night, and to be always</p>
+
+<div class='sig'>
+<span style="margin-right: 4em;">"Your own loving</span><br />
+"<span class="smcap">Marjorie</span>."<br />
+</div>
+
+
+<div class='right'><br /><br />
+"October 28th.<br />
+</div>
+
+"<span class="smcap">Darling Aunt Jessie</span>:
+
+<p>"I have been a whole night on the train, and
+when I think of how far away from home we
+are, I can't help being just a little frightened,
+though it is all very interesting. I posted
+Mother's letter at Albuquerque, where the train
+stopped half an hour. Uncle Henry and I got<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span>
+out and walked up and down the platform, and,
+oh, it was good to get a breath of fresh air! I
+really didn't know that any place could be quite
+so stuffy as this train. Everybody seems afraid
+to have the windows open on account of the cinders,
+but I think I should prefer even cinders to
+stuffiness. There were some Indians selling
+blankets and baskets, and a good many people
+bought things. They crowded round us, and
+made a good deal of fuss, and I heard one lady
+say she was afraid of them. Just think of being
+afraid of poor harmless Indians! I would have
+liked to tell her how foolish she was, but was
+afraid Uncle Henry might be displeased. I don't
+think he is a very friendly person, for he hardly
+speaks to any of the passengers on the train, and
+last night he told me I talked too much to the
+black porter, who was making up the sections.
+Oh, Aunt Jessie, it was so curious to see him
+turning all the seats into beds, but you have been
+on a sleeping car, and know all about it.</p>
+
+<p>"We had a very good dinner, which I enjoyed
+more than lunch, because my head was better,
+and in the evening we sat on the platform of the
+observation car, and it was very pleasant. Uncle
+Henry was kind, and talked to me a good deal&mdash;at
+least it was a good deal for him. I asked him<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span>
+if he wasn't very anxious to get home to see
+Aunt Julia and Elsie, and he said of course he
+should be glad to see them, but didn't seem
+nearly as excited as I am sure Father would be
+about seeing us if he had been away from us
+for three whole weeks. I think Elsie must be
+very busy, for besides going to school, she has
+music and German lessons in the afternoons, and
+goes to a dancing class. Uncle Henry said he
+hoped she and I would be good friends, and I
+told him I was quite sure we should. Imagine a
+girl not being good friends with her own first
+cousin! Did you know we are to live in a hotel
+all winter? Uncle Henry has a house on Madison
+Avenue, but Aunt Julia is tired of housekeeping,
+so he has rented it, and taken rooms in a
+hotel instead. Uncle Henry calls the rooms an
+apartment, and the name of the hotel is the
+'Plaza.' It is on Fifth Avenue, and right opposite
+the park, which must be very pretty. I
+should think it would seem very queer to live in
+a house with a lot of other people, but then the
+people who live in hotels must have a great many
+friends.</p>
+
+<p>"At about nine o'clock Uncle Henry said he
+was sleepy, so we went back to our car, and that
+was when I talked to the porter while he made<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span>
+up the beds. I thought at first that I should
+never be able to sleep; the train shook so, and we
+were going so fast. It was hard work undressing
+behind the curtain, but I managed somehow,
+and even had a wash, though I had to hold on to
+the side of the car with one hand while I washed
+my face with the other. I did cry a little after
+I was in bed, but I don't think any one heard.
+It was my very first night away from home, you
+know, Aunt Jessie dear, but I tried to remember
+all the lovely, comforting things you and Mother
+said to me, and I think I must have been pretty
+tired, for before I realized I was getting sleepy
+I was sound asleep, and I never opened my eyes
+till it was broad daylight.</p>
+
+<p>"To-day we are in Kansas, and it is very flat,
+and not at all pretty. Uncle Henry says we
+won't have any more fine scenery till we get to
+the Hudson. The train seems stuffier than ever,
+and I am just pining for fresh air and exercise.
+We sat on the observation platform for a while
+this morning, but Uncle Henry didn't like the
+cinders, and wouldn't let me stay there by myself,
+so we came back to our car. I don't think
+traveling on a train is quite as pleasant as I
+thought it was going to be. I am sure I should
+like an automobile better. We saw automobiles<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span>
+at Topeka, where we stopped for ten minutes
+this morning, and they looked very queer, going
+all by themselves, without any horses, but I think
+I should like a ride in one. Uncle Henry says
+Aunt Julia is afraid of automobiles, so she still
+uses a carriage.</p>
+
+<p>"I talked to some people in the observation
+car&mdash;a lady and a little boy, who are going to
+Chicago&mdash;but I think most of the passengers
+on this train are rather unsociable. They don't
+talk much to each other but just read magazines
+and newspapers when they are awake, and take
+naps about every hour. I have watched the two
+ladies in the section opposite mine, and they have
+been asleep at least four times to-day. I heard
+one of them say she never could sleep on a train;
+wasn't that funny?</p>
+
+<p>"We can post letters from Kansas City,
+where we are due at half past eight to-night, so I
+can send this on from there. We get to Chicago
+to-morrow morning, and have three hours
+there; won't that be exciting? Oh, I do hope
+Uncle Henry will take me for a good long walk!
+I feel as if I could tramp ten miles.</p>
+
+<p>"Good-bye, you precious Auntie! I send a
+thousand hugs and kisses to everybody. Tell
+Undine not to forget Roland's sugar&mdash;he always<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span>
+has three lumps&mdash;and to be sure the kittens
+in the barn have their milk every night and
+morning. I am afraid I forgot to tell her about
+the kittens; there were so many other things to
+think of. I am so glad you and Mother have
+Undine; she is such a dear, and I know will try
+to take my place. I will write to Father and
+Mother after I have been in Chicago.</p>
+
+<div class='sig'>
+<span style="margin-right: 4em;">"From your own little niece,</span><br />
+"<span class="smcap">Marjorie.</span>"<br />
+</div>
+
+
+<div class='right'><br /><br />
+"October 30th.<br />
+</div>
+
+"<span class="smcap">My Own Precious Father and Mother</span>:
+
+<p>"This letter is for you both, and Aunt Jessie
+must have a share in it, too, because it is the last
+I shall be able to write on the train.</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't write at all yesterday, it was such an
+exciting day! We got to Chicago at about noon,
+and, oh, what a big, noisy, wonderful place it is!
+I know I could never describe it if I tried for a
+week, so I will just tell you what we did. It
+was raining, which was a great disappointment
+to me, but Uncle Henry didn't seem to mind.
+He said we would take a taxi and go to the
+'Blackstone' for lunch. I had no idea what a
+taxi was, but didn't like to ask and when Uncle
+Henry called one what do you suppose it was?<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span>
+One of those wonderful automobiles! I was a
+tiny bit scared when we first got in, but when we
+started, and went rushing through those crowded,
+noisy streets, I just loved it.</p>
+
+<p>"It didn't take us long to get to the 'Blackstone,'
+which is an enormous hotel, looking out
+on the lake. The lake is wonderful; I never saw
+so much water before, and though the fog was
+thick, and we couldn't see very far, I should have
+liked to stand and look at it for a long time, but
+Uncle Henry said we must hurry. I never saw
+such a wonderful place as the dining-room at the
+'Blackstone.' There were quantities of little
+tables, and men waiters to bring you what you
+wanted. I thought the bill of fare on the train
+was long enough to satisfy any one, but the one
+at the 'Blackstone' was simply endless. Uncle
+Henry told me to choose what I wanted, but
+there were so many things I couldn't possibly
+choose, so he ordered a nice lunch, and all the
+time we were eating music was playing in a gallery
+overhead.</p>
+
+<p>"After lunch Uncle Henry took another taxi,
+and told the driver to show us the city. It was
+all very interesting, but so noisy and confusing
+that I got very tired looking at so many things
+at once, and I was really rather glad when Uncle<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span>
+Henry said it was time to go back to the station.</p>
+
+<p>"This train is called the 'Chicago Special,'
+and is even grander than the one we were on
+before. It goes very fast, but doesn't swing so
+much, because the road-bed is smoother, Uncle
+Henry says. I was so tired last night that I
+went to bed right after dinner, and never woke
+once till morning. We are due in New York
+this afternoon, and Uncle Henry says I had better
+post my letter in Albany, because after we
+leave there he wants me to see the Hudson, which
+I believe is very beautiful. So good-bye, you
+dear precious people! Oh, how anxious I am
+for my first letters from home! Don't forget to
+tell me about every single little thing that happens.
+I am thinking of you all every minute,
+and if I were going to any other people but Aunt
+Julia and Elsie I would be so unhappy. But of
+course going to one's own aunt and cousin is
+very different from being with strangers, and
+Uncle Henry is really very kind. Oh, I do wonder
+if Elsie is as much excited about meeting me
+as I am about meeting her!</p>
+
+<p>"Uncle Henry says we shall be in Albany in ten
+minutes, so good-bye again, with oceans of love
+from</p>
+
+<div class='sig'>
+"<span class="smcap">Your Own Marjorie</span>."<br />
+</div></div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER VIII</h2>
+
+<h3>AUNT JULIA AND ELSIE</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">Elsie</span>, my dear child, do you know what
+time it is? Nearly half past five, and you haven't
+started to dress. Your father will be so annoyed
+if you are not ready when he arrives."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton, a small, fair woman, with a
+rather worried, fretful expression, paused in the
+doorway of her daughter's room, and regarded
+the delinquent with anxiety not unmixed with dismay.
+Elsie, arrayed in a pink kimono, was lying
+comfortably on the sofa, deep in the pages of
+an interesting story-book. At her mother's
+words she threw down her book, and rose with a
+yawn. She was a tall girl with dark eyes and
+hair, and she would have been decidedly pretty
+if she too had not looked rather cross.</p>
+
+<p>"Is it really so late?" she said, indifferently.
+"Why didn't Hortense call me? I had no idea
+what time it was."</p>
+
+<p>"But you ought to have known, dear," Mrs.
+Carleton protested gently. "I don't suppose
+Hortense knew you wanted to be called, but I<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span>
+will ring for her at once. You will hurry, won't
+you, darling? What excuse can I possibly make
+to your father if he asks for you and finds you
+are not ready?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, don't worry, Mamma. You know papa
+only scolds because he thinks it his duty; he
+doesn't really care. Besides, the train will probably
+be late; those Western trains always are."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton rang the bell for the maid,
+whose room was in a different part of the hotel,
+and went to the closet in quest of her daughter's
+evening dress.</p>
+
+<p>"I will help you till Hortense comes," she
+said. "You really must hurry, Elsie. It is not
+as if your father were coming alone; he will expect
+you to be ready to greet Marjorie."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie shrugged her shoulders indifferently.</p>
+
+<p>"As if a girl who has been living on a cattle
+ranch in Arizona would care whether I were
+dressed or not," she said. "Probably where she
+comes from people wear kimonos all day long,
+and never even heard of dressing for the evening."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton sighed, and the worried expression
+deepened in her blue eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"I really wish, darling, that you would try to
+be a little more gracious about this. Of course<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span>
+it is a trial, but your father has made up his
+mind that Marjorie shall spend the winter with
+us, and it isn't going to make things any
+pleasanter to be constantly finding fault about
+them."</p>
+
+<p>"I wasn't finding fault," retorted Elsie, who
+had by this time taken off the kimono, and begun
+brushing out her long hair. "I only said Marjorie
+Graham wouldn't care a fig what I had on,
+and I don't believe she will. I don't intend to be
+disagreeable to her, but you know what an awful
+nuisance it's going to be, and how I hate it.
+Think of having to take her about everywhere
+with me, and introduce her to all my friends."</p>
+
+<p>"My dear, she is your own first cousin. Besides,
+I am sure she is a nice child&mdash;your father
+speaks so affectionately of her in his letters&mdash;and
+her mother is a lovely woman. I was very
+fond of her when we were girls together."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I dare say she is all right," Elsie admitted
+grudgingly, "but that doesn't alter the
+fact of its being an awful bother to have her
+here for a whole winter. You know how papa
+fusses. He will be sure to get some idea in his
+head about my not paying Marjorie enough attention,
+and he will expect me to take her everywhere.
+Oh, I hate it, I just hate it!" And<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span>
+Elsie's voice actually trembled with vexation.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton sighed again.</p>
+
+<p>"I am very sorry, dear," she began, but the
+entrance of the maid at this moment, put an end
+to the conversation, and she left the room, with
+a final admonition to her daughter to hurry as
+much as possible.</p>
+
+<p>But alas! it was too late for hurrying. Mrs.
+Carleton had only just entered the drawing-room,
+when she heard a key turned in the outer door of
+the apartment, followed by the sound of a familiar
+voice calling cheerfully&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"Julia, Elsie, where are you? Here we are,
+safe and sound!"</p>
+
+<p>With a rapidly beating heart Mrs. Carleton
+hurried forward to greet her husband and his
+niece.</p>
+
+<p>"My dear Henry, your train must have been
+just on time," she exclaimed rather nervously.
+"We had scarcely begun to expect you yet.
+And so this is Marjorie. I am very glad to see
+you, dear; I hope you are not quite worn out
+after that dreadful journey."</p>
+
+<p>"I am not the very least bit tired," returned
+a fresh young voice, and Marjorie returned her
+aunt's kiss so heartily that Mrs. Carleton was
+rather startled.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"We were twenty minutes late," Mr. Carleton
+said, in answer to his wife's remark, but he
+kissed her affectionately before putting the question
+she was dreading.</p>
+
+<p>"And where is Elsie?"</p>
+
+<p>"She will be here in a few moments," Mrs.
+Carleton explained hurriedly. "Now do come
+in and have some tea, or is it too late for tea?
+I am so glad to have you back, Henry dear; we
+have missed you terribly. I am sure you must
+be tired even if Marjorie isn't."</p>
+
+<p>"Not so tired as hungry; we had a very poor
+lunch on the train. It is rather late for tea,
+though; we can have an early dinner instead.
+Where is that little witch, Elsie? Isn't she coming
+to see us?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, certainly, dear; I told you she would be
+here in a few moments. Now I will take Marjorie
+to her room; she will be glad to wash off
+some of those horrid cinders, I am sure." She
+glanced as she spoke at Marjorie's linen shirt-waist,
+and the straw hat, which certainly did not
+look as if it had come from a New York milliner.</p>
+
+<p>"Am I not to have the same room with Elsie,
+Aunt Julia?" Marjorie inquired, in a tone of
+some disappointment, as Mrs. Carleton led the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span>
+way down a long, narrow entry, with doors on
+both sides.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no, dear; you are to have a nice little
+room all to yourself. It was so fortunate that
+we had this extra room in the apartment. We
+intended using it for guests, but when your uncle
+wrote that he was bringing you home with him,
+we decided to give it to you."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I hope I am not going to be in the way,"
+said Marjorie, blushing. "I had no idea I was
+to have a room to myself, especially when Uncle
+Henry told me you were living in a hotel. I
+wouldn't in the least mind rooming with Elsie."</p>
+
+<p>"But you are not at all in the way," said Mrs.
+Carleton, kindly. "We seldom have guests
+staying with us, and shall not need the extra
+room. This is Elsie's room; yours is just opposite."</p>
+
+<p>At that moment Elsie's door opened, and that
+young lady emerged, followed by the French
+maid, who was still fastening her dress. At
+sight of her cousin Marjorie sprang forward, and
+before Elsie at all realized what was happening
+to her, two eager arms were round her neck, and
+she was being hugged in a manner that fairly
+took away her breath.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Elsie, I am so glad!" cried Marjorie<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span>
+rapturously. "Isn't it too wonderful and beautiful
+that we should really meet at last? Do let
+me look at you; I want to see if you are like
+what I pictured you." And Marjorie held her
+astonished cousin off at arms' length, and surveyed
+her critically.</p>
+
+<p>"What did you expect me to be like?" Elsie
+inquired, not without some curiosity, as she
+gently extricated herself from Marjorie's embrace.
+She had taken in every detail of her
+cousin's appearance in one glance.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't exactly know&mdash;at least it is rather
+hard to describe," said Marjorie, with an embarrassed
+laugh. Something in Elsie's expression
+was making her vaguely uncomfortable.
+"I didn't think you would be quite so grown up
+as you are."</p>
+
+<p>"I am nearly fifteen," said Elsie, as if that
+fact alone were quite sufficient to account for her
+"grown up" appearance. "Is Papa in the
+drawing-room, Mamma?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, darling; run and speak to him; he is expecting
+you. This is your room, Marjorie; I
+hope you will find it comfortable."</p>
+
+<p>"It's a beautiful room," declared Marjorie,
+heartily, "only&mdash;only, are you quite sure you
+want me to have it, Aunt Julia?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Quite sure," said Mrs. Carleton, smiling.
+"I suppose your trunk will be here before long.
+Hortense will unpack for you, and help you to
+dress for dinner."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's eyes opened wide in surprise, and
+she glanced at the white-capped French maid,
+who still lingered in the background.</p>
+
+<p>"You are very kind, Aunt Julia," she said
+politely, "but I don't need any help; I always do
+everything for myself."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton looked a little embarrassed.</p>
+
+<p>"You may go, Hortense," she said, turning to
+the maid; "Miss Marjorie will ring if she wants
+you. You mustn't let her think you don't need
+her, dear," she added in a lower tone, as the
+maid left the room. "She is rather inclined to
+be lazy, and she will take advantage of you if
+you are too easy with her."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie said nothing, but she was both puzzled
+and uncomfortable. Mrs. Carleton, however,
+did not appear to notice that anything was
+wrong.</p>
+
+<p>"I will leave you for a little while now," she
+said. "You must make yourself at home; your
+uncle and I want you to be very happy here."</p>
+
+<p>The quick tears started to Marjorie's eyes, and
+she impulsively held out her hand to her aunt.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span>
+But Mrs. Carleton did not notice the gesture, and
+in another moment she had left the room, closing
+the door after her. In the entry she encountered
+Elsie returning from the interview with
+her father. Elsie was not in the best of spirits.</p>
+
+<p>"Papa has sent me to stay with Marjorie,"
+she said in a discontented whisper. "He says
+he is afraid she is homesick. Oh, Mamma, did
+you ever see such clothes?"</p>
+
+<p>"Never mind about the clothes, dear," said
+her mother, with forced cheerfulness; "we shall
+soon fit her out with new ones. I think she will
+really be quite pretty when she is properly
+dressed."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie shrugged her shoulders, but made no
+further remarks, and the next moment she was
+tapping at her cousin's door.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I'm so glad you've come!" was Marjorie's
+joyful greeting. "Now we can have a
+nice talk before my trunk comes. Sit down in
+this comfortable chair and I'll take the little one.
+Isn't this a lovely room, and wasn't it sweet of
+your mother to say she hoped I should be happy
+here? Oh, I wonder if you can possibly be one
+half as glad to see me as I am to see you."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie was puzzled, but she was a little flattered
+as well. She was not a general favorite among<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span>
+her companions, and to find a cousin who had
+evidently been longing to make her acquaintance
+was rather an agreeable experience. So her face
+brightened considerably, and her voice was quite
+pleasant as she remarked, sinking into the comfortable
+arm-chair Marjorie had indicated&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"It is very interesting to meet you. I have
+often heard papa speak of you and your mother
+and father."</p>
+
+<p>"Why, of course you have," laughed Marjorie,
+wondering in her simple way whether all
+New York girls of fifteen were as "grown up"
+as Elsie. "I don't believe though that you have
+thought half as much about me as I have about
+you. You see, it's different in Arizona. There
+aren't very many people, and they all live a long
+way from each other. Ever since I can remember
+I have longed for a girl friend. But with
+you it must be very different, going to school
+and living in a big city. I suppose you have lots
+of friends."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, I have a good many," said Elsie,
+with her little society air. "I am not very fond
+of them all, though; some girls are so stupid."</p>
+
+<p>"I hope you will like me," said Marjorie, a
+little wistfully. "We ought to be even more
+than friends because we are cousins, and I have<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span>
+always thought that a cousin must be the next
+best thing to a sister. Don't you often long for
+a sister?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why no, I don't," Elsie admitted. "Indeed,
+I am not sure that I should care for one at all.
+I think being an only child is very pleasant,
+though of course having an older brother would
+have its advantages. He would introduce one to
+his friends and bring them to the house. Are
+you fond of boys?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, I like them very well, but I have
+never known many. In fact, I haven't known
+many people of any kind except Indians and
+Mexicans."</p>
+
+<p>"Indians and Mexicans!" repeated Elsie in a
+tone of dismay. "How perfectly awful! You
+don't mean that you make friends of those dreadful
+people we saw on the train coming home
+from California, do you?"</p>
+
+<p>"They are not all dreadful creatures," said
+Marjorie, flushing. "They are not quite like
+white people, of course, but some of them are
+very good. I know a Mexican boy who is just
+as bright and clever as he can be. His father is
+going to send him to college next year. Then
+there is Juanita; she has lived with us for years,
+and we are all very fond of her."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I didn't know you were talking about
+servants," said Elsie. "I thought you meant
+friends. Hadn't you any real friends?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not the kind of friends you mean. I had
+Father and Mother and Aunt Jessie, but until
+last August when Undine came, I had never
+spoken to a white girl of my own age."</p>
+
+<p>"Undine, what a queer name. Is she a Mexican
+or an Indian?"</p>
+
+<p>"She isn't either," said Marjorie, laughing,
+"and Undine isn't her real name. We only call
+her that because we don't know what her name
+is. It's a very interesting story, and I'll tell you
+all about it, but here comes my trunk, and I suppose
+I had better unpack and change my dress
+before dinner."</p>
+
+<p>In spite of Marjorie's reiterated assurances
+that she didn't need any help, Hortense reappeared,
+and insisted on making herself useful.
+She was very polite and talked volubly in broken
+English about Mademoiselle's being <i>fatiguer</i>
+and how glad she, Hortense, would be to assist
+her in every way, but Marjorie could not help
+feeling uncomfortable, and wishing that the well-intentioned
+maid would go away and leave her
+to unpack by herself. But what made her still
+more uncomfortable was the fact that Elsie also<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span>
+lingered, and regarded every article that came
+out of that modest leather trunk, with a keen,
+critical eye.</p>
+
+<p>"What are you going to wear down to dinner?"
+she inquired anxiously as the last things
+were being stowed away in the bureau drawers.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," said Marjorie; "I hadn't
+thought about it. I suppose my gray flannel
+suit, or else a clean shirt-waist and duck skirt."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie clasped her hands in horror.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, you can't, you can't possibly!" she cried
+in real dismay. "Those things will do very well
+for breakfast and luncheon, but everybody
+dresses here in the evening. Let me see what
+you can wear. You haven't got much, but I
+suppose that white muslin will do."</p>
+
+<p>"But that is my very best dress," protested
+Marjorie, her cheeks crimsoning from embarrassment
+and distress. "I don't think Mother
+would like to have me wear it the first evening.
+I won't have anything left for really grand occasions
+if I do."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, you will," said Elsie, confidently.
+"Mamma is going to buy you a lot of new
+clothes; that was all arranged before you came.
+It would never do to have you going about everywhere
+in these things."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Marjorie glanced at her cousin's stylish, well
+fitting blue chiffon and her heart was filled with
+dismay. Was it possible that all her mother's
+and aunt's <ins title="Transcriber's Note: original reads 'stiches'">stitches</ins> had been taken in vain? It
+was very kind of Aunt Julia to wish to buy her
+pretty clothes, but she did not like to have her
+present wardrobe spoken of as "those things."
+Before she had time to say any more on the subject,
+however, Mrs. Carleton appeared, to tell
+them to hurry, as her husband was impatient for
+his dinner.</p>
+
+<p>That first dinner in the big crowded hotel restaurant
+was a wonderful revelation to Marjorie.
+The bright lights, the gay music, the ladies in
+their pretty evening dresses, it was all like a
+vision of fairyland, and for the first few minutes
+she could do nothing but gaze about her and
+wonder if she were awake.</p>
+
+<p>"And do you really know all these people?"
+she whispered to Elsie, when they were seated at
+one of the small tables, and a waiter had taken
+their order.</p>
+
+<p>"Good gracious, no," laughed Elsie, who was
+beginning to find this unsophisticated Western
+cousin decidedly amusing. "We don't know one
+of them to speak to."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's eyes opened wide in astonishment.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"How very strange," she said. "I supposed
+people who lived in the same house always knew
+each other. We know everybody at home, even
+if they live ten miles away."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, this isn't Arizona, you know," said
+Elsie, shrugging her shoulders, and Marjorie,
+feeling as if she had somehow been snubbed, relapsed
+into silence.</p>
+
+<p>Just then a lady and a gentleman and a boy of
+eighteen or nineteen came in, and took their seats
+at an opposite table. Elsie, who had appeared
+quite indifferent to all the other guests, instantly
+began to show signs of interest.</p>
+
+<p>"There they are," she said eagerly, addressing
+her mother. "The gentleman is with them
+again to-night, too. I forgot to tell you,
+Mamma; I've found out their name, it's Randolph."</p>
+
+<p>"How did you find out?" Mrs. Carleton
+asked, beginning to look interested in her
+turn.</p>
+
+<p>"Lulu Bell told me to-day walking home from
+school. That boy passed us on the Avenue, and
+I asked her if she didn't think he was handsome.
+She said she knew who he was, though she had
+never met him. His uncle is a Dr. Randolph,
+and a friend of her father's. This boy and his<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span>
+mother are from Virginia, and are spending the
+winter here. He is a freshman at Columbia, and
+his mother doesn't want to be separated from
+him, because she is a widow, and he is her only
+child. Lulu says Dr. Randolph has asked her
+mother to call on his sister-in-law. He said they
+had taken an apartment at this hotel for the winter.
+I made Lulu promise to introduce me if
+she ever had the chance, but she may never even
+meet him. She is such a queer girl; she doesn't
+care the least bit about boys."</p>
+
+<p>"A very sensible young person, I should say,"
+remarked Mr. Carleton, dryly. "How old is
+your friend Lulu?"</p>
+
+<p>"Nearly fourteen; quite old enough to be interested
+in something besides dolls, but she's
+dreadfully young for her age."</p>
+
+<p>"I wish some other little girls were young for
+their age," said Mr. Carleton; "it doesn't appear
+to be a common failing in these days."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie flushed and looked annoyed.</p>
+
+<p>"That boy really has a very nice face," put in
+Mrs. Carleton, anxious to change the subject,
+"and his devotion to his mother is charming. I
+suppose her husband must have died recently;
+she is in such deep mourning."</p>
+
+<p>While the others were talking, Marjorie,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span>
+whose eyes had been wandering rapidly
+from one group to another, had finally fixed
+themselves upon the party at the opposite table.
+They certainly looked attractive; the gentleman
+with the strong, clever face, and hair just turning
+gray; the pretty, gentle little mother in her
+black dress, and the handsome college boy, with
+merry blue eyes. It was quite natural that Elsie
+should want to know them, but why in the world
+didn't she speak to them herself without waiting
+to be introduced? It seemed so strange and inhospitable
+to live in the same house with people
+and not speak to them. So when her aunt had
+finished her remarks about the Randolph family,
+she turned to Elsie and inquired innocently:</p>
+
+<p>"If you want to know that boy so much why
+don't you tell him so?"</p>
+
+<p>There was a moment of astonished silence;
+then Elsie giggled.</p>
+
+<p>"You are the funniest girl I ever met, Marjorie,"
+she said. "Why don't you do it yourself?"</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie," said her mother in a tone of shocked
+reproof, and turning to Marjorie, she added
+gravely:</p>
+
+<p>"When you have been in New York a little
+longer, my dear, you will learn that it is not the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span>
+proper thing for young girls to speak to strangers
+to whom they have not been introduced."</p>
+
+<p>There was no doubt about the snub this time,
+and poor Marjorie was horribly embarrassed.
+She cast an appealing glance at her uncle, but he
+appeared to be absorbed, and finding no help from
+Elsie either, she relapsed into silence, and did not
+speak again for at least five minutes.</p>
+
+<p>After all, that first evening could scarcely be
+called a success. Mr. and Mrs. Carleton were
+very kind, and Elsie seemed disposed to be
+friendly, but Marjorie was conscious of a sensation
+of disappointment for which she could
+scarcely account even to herself. She struggled
+bravely against the homesickness which threatened
+every moment to overwhelm her, and tried
+to take an interest in all her new relatives' conversation,
+but when dinner was over, and they
+had gone upstairs again, she was not sorry to
+avail herself of Aunt Julia's suggestion that she
+must be "quite worn out," and slip quietly off
+to bed. It was not easy to dispense with the
+services of Hortense, who showed an alarming
+tendency to linger and offer to assist, but even
+she was finally disposed of, and with a sigh of intense
+relief, Marjorie closed her door, switched
+off the electric light, and crept into bed. Then<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span>
+followed a good hearty cry, which somehow made
+her feel better, and then, being young and
+very tired as well, she fell into a sound, healthy
+sleep, from which she did not awaken until it was
+broad daylight.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER IX</h2>
+
+<h3>MARJORIE TAKES A MORNING WALK</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">When</span> Marjorie opened her eyes the next
+morning, she lay for some minutes thinking over
+the events of the previous day, and listening to
+the unusual noise in the street. There was so
+much noise that she began to fear it must be very
+late, and jumping out of bed, she went to look
+at the clock. It was only just half-past six.
+She had forgotten to ask at what hour the family
+breakfasted, but seven o'clock was the usual
+breakfast time at the ranch, so she decided that
+it might be well to dress as speedily as possible.
+She felt very wide awake indeed this morning,
+and suddenly remembered that she had not had
+a walk or ride since leaving home.</p>
+
+<p>"I'll get Elsie to come with me for a good
+long tramp after breakfast," she said to herself.
+"If she can't go on account of school, I'll ask
+Uncle Henry to let me walk with him to his office,
+and I can come back by myself."</p>
+
+<p>Greatly to Marjorie's relief, no Hortense appeared<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span>
+with offers of assistance, and she performed
+her morning toilet in peace. She put on
+the gray flannel suit, which Elsie had pronounced
+"good enough for breakfast and luncheon," and
+then once more glancing at the clock, discovered
+that it was still only five minutes past seven.</p>
+
+<p>"If they breakfast at seven I shall be only
+five minutes late," she said, with a feeling of satisfaction;
+"I should have hated to be late the
+first morning. Perhaps they won't have it till
+half-past, and then I shall have time to write a
+few lines to Mother first."</p>
+
+<p>She opened her door, and crossed the hall to
+the drawing-room, where her aunt had told her
+the family usually breakfasted, in preference to
+going downstairs to the restaurant, but somewhat
+to her surprise, she found the room just as she
+had left it on the previous evening, and the whole
+apartment seemed very quiet. She went to one
+of the windows and looked out.</p>
+
+<p>"What a lot of people there are in the street,"
+she remarked reflectively, "and they all seem in
+such a hurry. I wonder where they are going.
+How pretty the park is. Oh, how I should love
+a gallop on Roland before breakfast."</p>
+
+<p>The door behind her opened, and a woman
+with a duster in her hand came in. She looked<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span>
+very much surprised at finding the room occupied.</p>
+
+<p>"Good morning," said Marjorie, with her
+friendly smile; "it's a lovely day, isn't it?"</p>
+
+<p>"It's very pleasant," returned the chambermaid,
+still looking surprised. "You are up
+early, Miss," she added politely.</p>
+
+<p>"Am I?" said Marjorie, surprised in her turn.
+"I didn't know I was. At what time do my
+aunt and uncle generally have breakfast?"</p>
+
+<p>"Never before half-past eight, and sometimes
+later. Mrs. Carleton generally has her breakfast
+in bed, but Mr. Carleton and the young lady have
+theirs in here."</p>
+
+<p>"Half-past eight," repeated Marjorie in dismay,
+"and it's only a little after seven now. I
+should say I was early."</p>
+
+<p>The maid smiled, and began dusting the ornaments
+without making any further remarks.
+She did not appear to be a very communicative
+person, and Marjorie decided that she might as
+well go back to her room, and write the letter to
+her mother, which could now be a much longer
+one than she had at first intended. But on the
+way she suddenly changed her mind.</p>
+
+<p>"I can write later just as well," she decided,
+"and it really is much too beautiful to stay indoors.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span>
+I'll go and have a walk in that lovely
+park. I shall feel much more like breakfast when
+I've had some fresh air and exercise."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie had not the least idea that she was
+doing anything unusual as she ran lightly down
+the broad marble stairs five minutes later, and
+stepped out through the open street door into the
+fresh morning air. The Carleton's apartment
+was on the fifth floor, but Marjorie scorned to
+use the lift, which had struck her the evening
+before, as a very wonderful but unnecessary invention.</p>
+
+<p>Several people in the hall looked at her curiously,
+and a man in brass buttons asked her if
+he should call a cab.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no, thank you," said Marjorie, pleasantly;
+"I'm going for a walk," and she passed
+out, without another backward glance.</p>
+
+<p>It really was a glorious morning, and Marjorie
+drew in long deep breaths of the keen autumn
+air, as she crossed the broad avenue and
+entered the park. She was not disappointed in
+her first impression that the park was beautiful,
+and the further she walked among the trees and
+broad asphalt paths, the more attractive it became.
+It was the last of October, but the autumn
+had been a warm one, and the grass was almost<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span>
+as green as in summer. To Marjorie, accustomed
+all her life to the arid prairie, where
+trees and flowers were practically unknown, it all
+seemed very wonderful, and she enjoyed every
+step. She walked rapidly on for some distance,
+paying no particular attention to the direction
+she was taking. The possibility of getting lost
+never once entered her mind. She met very few
+people, and they all seemed in a hurry, and
+looked like men and women on their way to their
+day's work. Once she passed a forlorn-looking
+man asleep on a bench, and remembered what
+Undine had once said about a tramp. This must
+be a tramp, she felt sure, and she paused to regard
+him with interest as a new specimen of humanity.</p>
+
+<p>Suddenly she came to a standstill and looked
+about here. She was in a quiet path, with rocks
+on both sides, and there was not a soul in sight.</p>
+
+<p>"I must turn back," she said, with an uncomfortable
+recollection of the passing of time. "I
+was enjoying my walk so much I never realized
+how far I was going, but I'm afraid I shall have
+to hurry now if I don't want to be late for breakfast."</p>
+
+<p>Accordingly she turned her steps in the direction
+from which she had come, and walked on<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span>
+rapidly for several minutes. But alas! she had
+taken more than one turn since entering the park,
+and going back was no such easy matter as she
+had imagined. The more she tried to remember
+the way she had come, the more bewildered she
+became.</p>
+
+<p>"I declare, I believe I am lost!" she said at
+last, with a feeling of amused dismay. "I must
+be more careful to notice where I am going next
+time. Oh, there is one of those men in uniform,
+that Uncle Henry said were policemen. He will
+be able to tell me if I'm going right."</p>
+
+<p>She quickened her steps, and approaching the
+officer, inquired politely:</p>
+
+<p>"Will you please tell me if this is the way to
+the entrance?"</p>
+
+<p>"Which entrance?" inquired the policeman,
+regarding her curiously.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," said Marjorie; "the entrance
+I came in&mdash;are there more than one?"</p>
+
+<p>"A good many more; which avenue do you
+want?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's heart was beginning to beat rather
+fast. For the moment she could not remember;
+even the name of the hotel&mdash;which she had
+only heard once or twice&mdash;had escaped her
+recollection.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I have forgotten the name of the street," she
+said helplessly, "but it's the entrance opposite
+the big hotel."</p>
+
+<p>The policeman looked uncertain, but at that
+moment a young man riding a bicycle appeared
+upon the scene, at sight of whom Marjorie's face
+brightened, and she uttered a little gasp of relief.</p>
+
+<p>"That young gentleman knows," she exclaimed
+joyfully, and, quite forgetful of her
+aunt's snub of the evening before, she darted
+forward, and hailed the youth on the bicycle
+quite as if she had been an old friend.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, please excuse me for stopping you," she
+cried, eagerly, "but you know where I want to
+go, and I have forgotten the name of the hotel."</p>
+
+<p>The young man brought his bicycle to a standstill;
+sprang to the ground, and snatched off his
+cap. He was evidently very much surprised, but
+too polite to show it.</p>
+
+<p>"I beg your pardon," he said in a very pleasant
+voice; "can I be of any assistance to you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Marjorie, frankly. "I saw you
+in the hotel dining-room last night, and I heard
+my cousin say you lived there. I came out for
+a walk before breakfast, and&mdash;it's very stupid I
+suppose&mdash;but I can't find my way back to the
+entrance where I came in."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>A look of comprehension came into the
+young man's pleasant face, and he regarded
+Marjorie with interest not unmixed with
+amusement.</p>
+
+<p>"I understand," he said; "you are staying at
+the 'Plaza,' and want to go back there."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, that is the name," said Marjorie, looking
+much relieved; "will you please show me the
+way to the gate?"</p>
+
+<p>"Certainly," said her new acquaintance, smiling,
+and he at once began to lead the way, pushing
+his bicycle along beside him.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, don't you want to get on your wheel
+again?" Marjorie inquired anxiously. "I can
+easily follow if you don't go too fast."</p>
+
+<p>The young man protested that he had ridden
+quite long enough, and would be glad of a little
+walk.</p>
+
+<p>"You are very kind," said Marjorie, heartily.
+"It was very stupid of me to lose my way; I
+never was lost before."</p>
+
+<p>"And do you often walk here in the park?"
+her new friend inquired, politely.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no, I was never here before. I only
+came to New York yesterday; my home is in Arizona."</p>
+
+<p>"You have come a long distance," he said.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span>
+"And how do you like New York&mdash;that is to
+say as much as you have seen of it?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think it is very noisy and rather smoky,
+but the hotel is beautiful, and so is this park.
+I haven't seen much of New York yet, but I am
+going to spend the winter here."</p>
+
+<p>"I quite agree with you as to the noise and
+smoke," said her companion, smiling, "but New
+York is a pretty jolly place notwithstanding. It
+isn't my home either; I am from Virginia."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know you are," said Marjorie, innocently.
+"You came here to go to college, and
+your mother is with you. My cousin told us all
+about it last evening at dinner."</p>
+
+<p>The young man laughed outright. It was
+such a merry laugh that Marjorie could not help
+joining in it, and after that they were excellent
+friends.</p>
+
+<p>"Now I wonder if you would mind telling
+me how your cousin obtained her information,"
+Marjorie's new friend said when he had recovered
+his gravity. "I haven't met her, have I?
+What is her name?"</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie Carleton. No, she hasn't met you yet,
+but she wants to very much. A friend of hers
+has promised to introduce you if she has a chance.
+Your name is Randolph, isn't it?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Yes, Beverly Randolph, at your service. I
+shall be very glad to meet your cousin, I am sure.
+Perhaps you will introduce us."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I will if you like. It seems very
+queer not to know a person who lives in the same
+house with one, but Elsie says they don't know
+any of the people at the hotel. It was all so different
+at home."</p>
+
+<p>Then Beverly Randolph asked some questions
+about Arizona, which set Marjorie off on a description
+of the ranch, and her life there, which
+lasted until they reached the Fifth Avenue entrance.</p>
+
+<p>"That's the gate I came in," exclaimed Marjorie.
+"I wasn't so far away, after all. Would
+you mind telling me what time it is?"</p>
+
+<p>Beverly Randolph took out his watch.</p>
+
+<p>"Ten minutes past nine," he said, looking
+somewhat dismayed in his turn; "I had no idea
+it was so late. Luckily it is Saturday, so there
+are no recitations to miss."</p>
+
+<p>"O dear! I am afraid I am terribly late for
+breakfast," said Marjorie, feeling very much
+ashamed of herself. And without another word,
+they hurried across the avenue, and entered the
+hotel, where the very first person Marjorie saw in
+the entrance hall was her uncle.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Uncle Henry, I am so sorry to be late!"
+she cried remorsefully, springing to Mr. Carleton's
+side. "I hope you and Aunt Julia aren't
+annoyed with me."</p>
+
+<p>"Where in the world have you been, Marjorie?"
+her uncle demanded, ignoring the latter
+part of her remark. He was looking decidedly
+annoyed as well as worried.</p>
+
+<p>"Why, I got up early," Marjorie explained,
+"and the girl who was dusting said you never
+had breakfast before half-past eight, so I thought
+I would go for a walk in the park. I got lost,
+and couldn't remember the name of the hotel,
+but fortunately, just as I was beginning to be a
+little frightened, I met Mr. Beverly Randolph,
+and he brought me home."</p>
+
+<p>"And who is Beverly Randolph? I had no
+idea you had friends in New York."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, he isn't exactly a friend&mdash;at least he
+wasn't till this morning. You know who he is,
+Uncle Henry; that nice-looking boy Elsie was
+talking about at dinner last night. Wasn't it
+fortunate I recognized him. He is just as nice
+as he can be, and I'm going to introduce him to
+Elsie."</p>
+
+<p>"Come upstairs at once," said Mr. Carleton,
+a trifle less sternly. "We have been very anxious<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span>
+about you; you must never do such a thing
+again."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was dumb with astonishment. Beyond
+being late for breakfast she had no idea
+that she had done anything wrong. She followed
+her uncle in silence, and did not utter another
+word until they had reached their own
+apartment, where they found Mrs. Carleton in a
+condition bordering on hysteria, and Elsie trying
+to look solemn, but secretly rather enjoying the
+situation. "I should really think, Marjorie, that
+you might have known," said Mrs. Carleton in a
+tone of deep reproach, when she had heard her
+niece's explanation, "your own common sense
+should have told you that to go wandering off
+by yourself in a strange city at seven o'clock in
+the morning, was a most extraordinary thing to
+do. You must never again go out alone at any
+hour. Elsie has never been out without a maid."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's eyes opened wide in amazement.</p>
+
+<p>"Not go out alone?" she repeated stupidly.
+"Why I've always gone everywhere by myself
+ever since I was a little girl."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you are not to do it here, whatever you
+may have done in Arizona," said Mrs. Carleton,
+crossly. "As for speaking to a strange young
+man, and getting him to bring you home, I really<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span>
+never heard of anything so outrageous. We have
+been frightened to death about you."</p>
+
+<p>"There, there, Julia," put in Uncle Henry,
+"don't you think you have said enough? I am
+sure Marjorie will never do such a thing again;
+she will soon be accustomed to New York ways.
+Now suppose you let the child have some breakfast;
+she looks about ready to drop."</p>
+
+<p>But it was not want of food that had driven
+the color from Marjorie's cheeks and the light
+from her eyes. Indeed, she had but small appetite
+for the tempting breakfast that was set before
+her, and it was only by a mighty effort that
+she was able to keep back the burst of homesick
+tears which threatened every moment to overpower
+her.</p>
+
+<p>At the same moment that Mrs. Carleton was
+administering her reproof to Marjorie, Beverly
+Randolph was giving his mother an account of
+the morning's adventure, as they sat together at
+breakfast in their pleasant sitting-room on the
+floor below.</p>
+
+<p>"I know you would like the little girl,
+Mother," he ended; "she is such a natural, jolly
+sort, and there isn't one bit of nonsense about
+her."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph smiled as she poured her son's<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span>
+coffee, and regarded him with proud, loving
+eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"You never have admired the 'sort' with nonsense
+about them, have you, dear?" she said
+rather mischievously.</p>
+
+<p>"I haven't any use for them," said Beverly
+with decision. "I like girls well enough when
+they behave decently, but the silly giggly ones
+get on my nerves. This one&mdash;Marjorie Graham
+she says her name is&mdash;is all right, though.
+I think I know the cousin by sight, and I don't
+feel so sure about her."</p>
+
+<p>"You mustn't be too fastidious, Beverly," said
+his mother, laughing. "I dare say they are both
+nice little girls. By the way, I have received an
+invitation from that charming Mrs. Bell, who
+called the other day, asking us both to dine with
+her next Tuesday. Her husband is an old friend
+of Uncle George's, you know. Mrs. Bell told
+me she had a daughter of thirteen or fourteen, so
+that will be another acquaintance for you."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, if she is like most of the New York
+girls I've seen I sha'n't care much about her," declared
+Beverly. "I prefer the ones that come
+from Arizona. Honestly, Mother, I want you to
+meet that little girl. I don't know what it was
+about her, but she reminded me of Babs."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>A look of pain crossed Mrs. Randolph's sweet
+face, but her voice was still quite cheerful as she
+answered&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, dear, be sure to introduce her to
+me; I want to know all your friends."</p>
+
+<p>As soon as she could escape from her relatives
+after breakfast, Marjorie fled to her own
+room, there to have her cry out, and pull herself
+together, before starting on a shopping expedition
+with her aunt. Elsie was going to lunch with a
+schoolmate, but Aunt Julia had ordered the carriage
+and told Marjorie that she intended devoting
+the day to shopping.</p>
+
+<p>"You are to begin school on Monday," she
+explained, "and I must get you some decent
+clothes as soon as possible."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie supposed she ought to be grateful,
+but she could not help resisting the fact that her
+aunt evidently did not consider her present wardrobe
+"decent," and this, added to her other
+troubles, resulted in a very unhappy half-hour.
+But Marjorie was a plucky girl, and she had
+plenty of common sense.</p>
+
+<p>"I won't write a word about all this to Mother
+or Aunt Jessie," she decided as she dried her
+eyes. "It wouldn't do any good, and they would
+be so sorry. I am sure Aunt Julia means to be<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span>
+kind, and I suppose I did frighten them, but it
+does seem so silly not to be allowed to go out for
+a walk by one's self."</p>
+
+<p>She had just bathed her red eyes, and was sitting
+down to write the deferred letter to her
+mother, when the door opened, and Elsie came
+in.</p>
+
+<p>"Mamma says you are to be ready to go out
+with her in fifteen minutes," she began, then
+paused, regarding her cousin curiously. "You
+look as if you'd been crying," she said abruptly.
+"Mamma did pitch into you pretty hard, but it
+was an awfully queer thing to go out by yourself
+at seven o'clock in the morning."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm very sorry I did what was wrong," said
+Marjorie, "but I had no idea any one would object.
+I often go for a gallop on my pony before
+breakfast at home."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I daresay you do, but that is very different.
+I think it was too funny that you should
+have met Beverly Randolph. Do tell me what he
+is like."</p>
+
+<p>"He is very nice indeed," said Marjorie,
+frankly; "I liked him ever so much."</p>
+
+<p>"You'll be sure to introduce us, won't you?
+It will be such fun to tell Lulu Bell I've met him
+first; not that she'll care much, she's such a baby.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span>
+Mamma thinks she may call on Mrs. Randolph
+to thank her."</p>
+
+<p>"What does she want to thank her for?" inquired
+Marjorie, innocently.</p>
+
+<p>"Why, for her son's bringing you home, and
+being so kind to you. You might have been lost
+for hours if he hadn't done it."</p>
+
+<p>"But his mother had nothing to do with that,"
+persisted Marjorie. "Besides, he was on his
+way home, anyway. He was very nice, but I
+don't see what there is to thank his mother for."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie reddened, and looked a little annoyed.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, well, it doesn't matter," she said carelessly.
+"Mamma would like to call on Mrs.
+Randolph, and this makes a good excuse, that's
+all. She says the Randolphs of Virginia are a
+very old family. Now hurry and get ready; the
+carriage will be here in a few minutes."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie said no more on the subject, but she
+was puzzled. It was only natural that Aunt
+Julia should wish to make the acquaintance of a
+lady who lived in the same house with her, but
+why was it necessary to have an excuse for doing
+so? She was beginning to think that there
+were going to be a great many new things to learn
+in New York.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER X</h2>
+
+<h3>NEW FRIENDS AND NEW FASHIONS</h3>
+
+
+<div class="blockquot"><div class='right'>
+
+"November 6th.<br />
+</div>
+
+"<span class="smcap">Dearest Aunt Jessie</span>:
+
+<p>"I am at home alone this evening; Uncle
+Henry and Aunt Julia have gone out to dinner,
+and Elsie is at a party. I am going to write you
+a long, long letter, and try to tell you every single
+thing that has happened.</p>
+
+<p>"I have been here just a week, and I think I
+am beginning to get more accustomed to things.
+It is all very interesting, but some of it does seem
+a little queer, and, oh, how I do wish I could have
+a good talk with Mother or you, and ask you to
+explain the things I don't understand. Aunt
+Julia is very kind, but I could never talk to her
+as I do to you and Mother. The things that
+puzzle me most are what it is proper to do and
+what isn't. For one thing, they say it isn't proper
+to speak to people unless one has been introduced.
+At home we always speak to every one whether<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span>
+they are in the 'Social Register' or not. The
+Social Register is a book, and Elsie says the
+names of all the nice people are in it, and when
+her mother wants to find out who people are, and
+whether or not she wants to have Elsie know
+them she just looks for their names in the Social
+Register, and if she finds them there she knows
+they are all right. Then it isn't considered
+proper for girls to go out by themselves in New
+York. I have seen some nice-looking girls alone
+in the streets, but Elsie says they can't be the
+kind one wants to know. Hortense, the French
+maid, always goes out with Elsie and me, and
+even carries our books to school for us. Hortense
+is very nice, but it is rather a bother having
+her always about, and she wants to do a great
+many more things for me than I really need.
+But the greatest difficulty of all is that Elsie isn't
+fond of walking, and I do miss my tramps dreadfully.
+We walk to school and back every day,
+but it isn't far, and in the afternoon Elsie is always
+having engagements. So I go driving with
+Aunt Julia, and, oh, but it does seem slow! Aunt
+Julia hates to drive fast, and I sometimes feel as
+if I would give anything to jump out of the carriage
+and have one good run. I know I could
+easily keep up with those horses if it were only<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span>
+proper to run behind the carriage, but of course it
+isn't.</p>
+
+<p>"I ought not to object to going out with Aunt
+Julia, for she has been very good to me. She is
+having some perfectly lovely dresses made for
+me, and has bought me two simply wonderful
+hats. I am not sure whether Mother would quite
+approve of all my new clothes. Some of them
+do look very grown-up, but then the girls here
+are all much more grown-up than I had any idea
+they would be. Elsie puts up her hair, and
+wanted me to put mine up, too, but I knew
+Mother wouldn't like it, and Uncle Henry said I
+was right.</p>
+
+<p>"I have been at school every day since Monday,
+and like it very much indeed. It is not a
+large school, only a class of twelve girls. The
+teacher's name is Miss Lothrop, and Elsie and
+several of the other girls have been going to her
+since they were quite little. Miss Lothrop is
+lovely, and all the girls have been very kind and
+polite to me. The two I like best are Lulu Bell
+and Winifred Hamilton. Elsie says they are
+both very young for their age, and I think perhaps
+that is the reason I like them better than
+some of the others. Winifred is only thirteen,
+but she is just as sweet as she can be, and Lulu<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span>
+is awfully pretty, and a great favorite. Carol
+Hastings is another girl in the class, and Elsie's
+most intimate friend. She is only fourteen, but
+seems much older. I wonder why New York
+girls seem to care so much about boys. I like
+a nice boy ever so much myself, but I can't see
+the use of giggling and looking silly every time
+his name is mentioned. Carol Hastings came
+here to dinner last night, and when Beverly Randolph
+came over to our table to speak to us, she
+was so silly I was really ashamed of her. I
+spoke to Elsie about it afterwards, and she said
+Carol was a goose, but I think she is a little bit
+silly herself sometimes. I wrote Mother all
+about Beverly Randolph, and how much I liked
+him. I would give anything to have a brother
+just like him. He adores his mother, and I don't
+wonder, for she is lovely. He says she is so
+jolly, and is always interested in everything he is
+interested in; even the college games. His father
+died when he was little, and I suppose this is one
+reason why he and his mother are so much to
+each other. There is an uncle, who is a doctor,
+but he only comes to dine with them sometimes,
+and lives somewhere else. Mrs. Randolph has
+one of the sweetest faces I have ever seen&mdash;yours
+and Mothers excepted&mdash;and she looks<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span>
+very young to be the mother of a big boy of
+eighteen. She dresses in black, and looks rather
+sad sometimes, but I suppose that is when she is
+thinking of her husband.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie is very clever, and Aunt Julia admires
+her tremendously. She says Elsie has always
+been the brightest girl in her classes and that she
+recites Shakespeare quite wonderfully. I haven't
+heard her recite yet, but she plays the piano very
+well, and takes music lessons twice a week. She
+speaks French, too, and is beginning to study German.
+Of course I am not nearly as far advanced
+as she is, but Miss Lothrop says I am not backward
+for my age, and that makes me very happy.
+I was so proud when she asked me if I had a
+governess at home, and I told her Father and
+Mother had taught me everything I knew. I
+don't think Elsie liked my saying that; she says
+I mustn't talk about our being poor, but I am sure
+I can't see why she should object. However, I
+have promised to try not to say anything she
+doesn't like; they have all been so good to me
+that I do want to please them if I can.</p>
+
+<p>"Last Tuesday was Aunt Julia's birthday, and
+she gave a family dinner party. She has a good
+many relatives, and they all came. I should think
+Elsie would love having so many cousins, but she<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span>
+says she doesn't care very much about many of
+them. Aunt Julia's two sisters were here, and I
+thought the oldest one&mdash;Mrs. Lamont&mdash;was
+lovely. Her daughter, Miss Annie, came with
+her, and she was awfully nice and jolly. She is
+quite old&mdash;about twenty-five I think&mdash;and she
+works downtown in a settlement. I didn't know
+what a settlement was, but Elsie explained that
+it is a place where ladies go to live among very
+poor ignorant people, and try to help them. She
+and her mother send some of their old clothes
+to Miss Lamont, and she gives them to the poor
+women at the settlement. Aunt Julia's other
+sister is Mrs. Ward. She is quite stout, and
+talks a great deal about what is good for her to
+eat and what isn't. She was nice, but I didn't
+like her as much as the Lamonts. Her husband
+is fat, too, and is always saying funny things that
+make people laugh. They have two little girls,
+but they were not allowed to come because Tuesday
+was a school night, and they are never allowed
+to go out anywhere except on Fridays and
+Saturdays. Elsie can go out any night she likes,
+because she is so clever that Aunt Julia says it
+doesn't matter whether she misses her lessons one
+day or not. There is a Ward boy, too, but he is
+at Yale. Elsie likes him best of all her cousins,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span>
+and she says he is very fond of her, too. Aunt
+Julia says all the boys admire Elsie very much,
+but I think she is mistaken about Beverly Randolph.
+He has such an honest face that he can't
+hide his feelings, and when Elsie and Carol giggled
+so much that night, and talked so very
+grown-up, I am sure he was trying not to laugh.</p>
+
+<p>"You can't begin to imagine how glad I was
+to get your and Mother's precious letters. I read
+them over and over until I almost knew them by
+heart, and slept with Mother's first one under my
+pillow all night. Father's letter was splendid
+too, and I was so interested to hear all about the
+new colts. I am so glad Undine is proving such
+a comfort. I knew you couldn't help loving her,
+she is such a dear, and she promised to try to
+take my place. I told the girls at school about
+her, and they thought it the most interesting thing
+they had ever heard. Lulu Bell says she is going
+to tell her aunt, who is an authoress, about it,
+and ask her to put Undine in a book. Won't it
+be too interesting if she really does?</p>
+
+<p>"O dear! there is the clock striking ten, and
+I have been writing ever since half-past eight.
+I must stop now, and go to bed, or I shall be
+sleepy to-morrow morning. Ten o'clock at night
+used to seem very late indeed at home, but it<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span>
+seems quite early here. Elsie doesn't expect to
+get home from her party before half past eleven.
+Uncle Henry doesn't approve of late hours for
+school-girls, but Aunt Julia says everybody in
+New York keeps them, so it can't be helped. I
+forgot to say the party is at Bessie Winston's.
+She is one of the girls at Miss Lothrop's, and one
+of Elsie's intimate friends. I was invited, too,
+but Aunt Julia wouldn't let me accept, because
+my new dresses haven't come home yet. Elsie
+says I wouldn't have enjoyed it, anyway, because
+I can't dance. She goes to a dancing class every
+Saturday morning, and Aunt Julia says she may
+have me go too after Christmas. I think I
+should like dancing, for the sake of the exercise
+if nothing else. Oh, how I do long for exercise!
+Elsie rides in summer, but her pony is at
+their country place on Long Island, and they
+don't think it worth while to bring it in to New
+York. Aunt Julia says Elsie has so many other
+things to do in winter she has no time for riding.
+What wouldn't I give for one good canter on
+Roland! I can't help envying the girls I see riding
+in the park, though none of them look as if
+they were enjoying it as much as I should. They
+all ride side-saddle, and I don't believe it can be<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span>
+nearly as pleasant as riding astride, but Aunt
+Julia told me not to say so, because it isn't considered
+the thing to ride astride here. I saw
+Beverly Randolph riding in the park this afternoon,
+and he really did look as if he enjoyed it.
+His home is in Virginia, and he says the people
+there are very fond of horses. Lulu says Mrs.
+Randolph owns a large plantation, and I suppose
+a plantation is something like a ranch.</p>
+
+<p>"Now I really must stop writing, for my hand
+is getting tired, and I have made two big blots
+on this page. So good night, Auntie darling.
+If I could send all the love that is in my heart,
+I am afraid no postman would be able to carry
+the letter, it would be so heavy. So you must
+just imagine it is there. I am really very happy,
+though I can't help feeling homesick sometimes,
+especially at night. I am going to work hard,
+and try to learn so much this winter that you will
+all be proud of me when I come home. I have
+already begun counting the weeks; there are
+just twenty-eight and a half till the first of June.
+A winter does seem a very long time, but this
+week has gone by faster than I expected. I will
+write to Mother on Sunday, and your next letters
+ought to be here by Monday. Letters are<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span>
+the best thing in the world when one is so far
+away from home, so please all write just as often
+as you can to</p>
+
+<div class='sig'>
+<span style="margin-right: 2.5em;">"Your own loving</span><br />
+"<span class="smcap">Marjorie.</span>"<br />
+</div></div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XI</h2>
+
+<h3>MARJORIE ENGAGES IN BATTLE</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">The</span> most glorious thing is going to happen,
+Marjorie," announced Elsie, as her cousin came
+into the drawing-room to breakfast one November
+morning, about two weeks after the writing
+of that long letter to Aunt Jessie.</p>
+
+<p>"What is it?" inquired Marjorie, regarding
+Elsie's radiant face and sparkling eyes, with interest.
+Elsie was not, as a rule, a very enthusiastic
+young person.</p>
+
+<p>"The most delightful invitation you ever heard
+of," Elsie explained with a glance at the letter
+her mother was reading. "It's from my cousin
+Percy Ward. You know he's a sophomore at
+Yale, and he wants Mamma and me to come to
+New Haven for the football game next Saturday.
+It's the big Yale-Harvard game, you know, and
+I've been simply crazy to go, but it's almost impossible
+to get tickets. It really was angelic of
+Percy to get two for us, and he wants us to come
+up on Friday afternoon so we can go to the dance<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span>
+that evening. He has engaged a room for us at
+the hotel."</p>
+
+<p>"It must be wonderful to see a great match
+like that," declared Marjorie, with hearty appreciation
+of her cousin's good fortune. "I
+have seen pictures of the college games, and
+Father always reads the football news in the
+papers. He is a Harvard man himself, you
+know, and used to be on the team."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry you can't go with us," said Elsie,
+regretfully, "but of course Percy couldn't get
+more than two tickets. Perhaps you wouldn't
+enjoy it much, though. It can't be much fun
+unless you know a lot of the boys. Percy is such
+a dear; he is sure to introduce me to all his
+friends."</p>
+
+<p>"I wish your father had not gone to Washington
+on that tiresome business just now," remarked
+Mrs. Carleton, laying down her nephew's
+letter, and looking a little worried. "I should
+have liked to consult him before answering
+Percy."</p>
+
+<p>"Why, Mamma, you surely don't think he
+would object!" cried Elsie in dismay. "What
+possible reason could he have for not wanting us
+to go?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no reason whatever, of course, dear. I<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span>
+was only thinking of Marjorie. I am not sure
+that he would like the idea of her being left here
+alone while we are away."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, bother! Marjorie won't mind&mdash;will
+you, Marjorie? Besides, she needn't be alone;
+Hortense can sleep in my room, and it's only for
+one night."</p>
+
+<p>"Please don't worry about me, Aunt Julia,"
+said Marjorie, blushing. "I shall get on all
+right, I am sure, and it would be terrible to have
+you and Elsie miss the game on my account. I
+can have my meals up here while you are away,
+and go out with Hortense."</p>
+
+<p>But Mrs. Carleton did not look quite satisfied.</p>
+
+<p>"You are very sweet and unselfish, dear," she
+said, "but I wish Percy had bought another
+ticket; then we could have taken you with us. I
+cannot bear to disappoint Elsie, so I suppose I
+shall have to accept the invitation, though I dislike
+the idea of leaving you behind, especially at
+a time when your uncle is away, too."</p>
+
+<p>So the matter was settled, and as soon as breakfast
+was over Mrs. Carleton sat down to write
+her note of acceptance, while the two girls
+started for school, accompanied as usual by Hortense.
+Elsie was in high spirits, and entertained<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span>
+her cousin with a vivid description of the delight
+and excitement of a college football match.</p>
+
+<p>"Not that I have ever seen one myself," she
+explained. "Papa hates crowds, and has always
+said it was too difficult to get tickets, and
+last year Percy couldn't get any either, being only
+a freshman. Carol Hastings has been, though,
+and she told me she was never so excited in her
+life. The Bells are going this year, and have invited
+Winifred Hamilton and Gertie Rossiter to
+go with them. I can't see why they want to take
+Winifred; she is such a baby, and I don't believe
+a boy will notice her; but she and Lulu are such
+chums, one never seems able to go anywhere
+without the other."</p>
+
+<p>"Beverly Randolph and his mother are going,
+too," said Marjorie, who was making a great effort
+to keep down the feeling of envious longing,
+and to show a real interest and sympathy in
+her cousin's anticipations. "He told me so yesterday.
+His uncle, Dr. Randolph, is going to
+take them in his automobile."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know; I heard him talking about it.
+I must be sure to tell him Mamma and I are going,
+so he will look us up. Oh, here come Bessie
+and Carol; I must tell them the good news."</p>
+
+<p>Percy Ward's letter arrived on Wednesday<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span>
+morning, and on Friday afternoon soon after
+luncheon, Mrs. Carleton and Elsie departed for
+New Haven. Mr. Carleton had been called to
+Washington on business, and was not expected
+home before Saturday night. Aunt Julia was
+very kind, and kissed Marjorie with more affection
+than usual.</p>
+
+<p>"I really hate to leave you," she said regretfully.
+"If it were not for the disappointment it
+would have been to Elsie, I would never have accepted.
+I hope you will not be very lonely."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no, I won't," promised Marjorie cheerfully.
+She was really touched by her aunt's
+solicitude, and had almost, if not quite, succeeded
+in banishing the feelings of envy and disappointment.
+"I've got some hard lessons for Monday,
+and I want to have them all perfect, so I can
+write Mother that I haven't missed in any of my
+classes for a week. Then Hortense says she likes
+walking, so we can have some fine long tramps.
+To-morrow night will be here before I've begun
+to realize that you are away."</p>
+
+<p>But despite her cheerful assurances, Marjorie's
+heart was not very light when she accompanied
+her aunt and cousin to the lift, and saw them
+start, Elsie's face wreathed in smiles, and even
+Aunt Julia looking as if she had not altogether<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span>
+outgrown her interest in a football game. She
+went slowly back to her own room, and taking up
+her Greek history, determined to forget present
+disappointment, and spend the next hour with the
+Greek heroes. But to make up one's mind to do
+a thing, and to carry out one's good intentions
+are two very different matters. Marjorie conscientiously
+tried to fix her thoughts on "The
+Siege of Troy," but the recollection of Elsie's
+radiant face kept obtruding itself between her
+eyes and the printed page, and at the end of half
+an hour she threw down her book in despair.</p>
+
+<p>"There isn't any use," she said to herself, with
+a sigh; "I can't remember a single date. I'll
+ring for Hortense, and ask her to take me for a
+walk. Perhaps by the time we come back my
+wits will have left off wool-gathering, and I shall
+have a good long evening for studying and writing
+letters."</p>
+
+<p>Hortense was quite ready for a walk, and
+really the afternoon was much less forlorn than
+Marjorie had anticipated. The French maid had
+taken a fancy to the little Western girl, who was
+always kind and friendly in her manner, and did
+not&mdash;as she told a friend&mdash;treat her as if she
+were "<i>seulement une machine</i>." Elsie never
+talked to Hortense during their walks, but this<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span>
+afternoon Marjorie was longing for companionship,
+and she and the maid chatted together like
+old friends. They were both young and far
+away from home, and perhaps that fact had a
+good deal to do towards drawing them together.
+Marjorie was always glad to talk of her life on
+the ranch, and Hortense told in her turn of the
+little French village, where she had spent her
+childhood, and of the widowed mother and little
+brothers and sisters, to whom she sent more than
+half of her earnings. She spoke in broken English,
+with here and there a French expression
+thrown in, but Marjorie had no difficulty in understanding,
+and her interest and sympathy for
+the plucky little French girl, who had left home
+and friends to earn her own living, grew rapidly.</p>
+
+<p>They took a long walk, for Hortense was almost
+as fond of tramping as Marjorie herself,
+and it was almost dusk when they at last came in
+sight of the big hotel. Then Hortense suddenly
+remembered an errand she had to do for Mrs.
+Carleton, and Marjorie&mdash;who was not in the
+least tired&mdash;declared her intention of accompanying
+her.</p>
+
+<p>"It is not far," the maid explained; "only to
+Sixth Avenue. We shall not be more than a
+quarter of an hour."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>The errand accomplished they turned their
+steps in a homeward direction, and were about
+half way up Fifty-seventh Street, on their way to
+the Plaza, when Marjorie's attention was attracted
+by a horse and cart, which had come to a
+standstill only a few feet in front of them. The
+cart was loaded with boxes and packages, and the
+horse, which was a mere skeleton, and looked as
+if his working days had long been over, had evidently
+completely given out. The driver, a boy
+of sixteen or seventeen, had sprung down from
+his seat, and was endeavoring to discover the
+cause of the trouble.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, look, Hortense," cried Marjorie, her
+quick sympathies instantly aroused, "look at that
+poor horse. He isn't strong enough to drag that
+heavy wagon, with all those boxes in it. Oh,
+what a shame! That boy mustn't beat him so&mdash;he
+mustn't!" And before the horrified maid
+could interpose, impulsive Marjorie had sprung
+forward to remonstrate.</p>
+
+<p>"Stop beating that horse," she commanded,
+with flashing eyes; "can't you see he isn't able
+to go any farther with that load? You ought to
+be ashamed to load a poor creature like that in
+such a way!"</p>
+
+<p>The boy stared at her for a moment in stupid<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span>
+amazement; then an ugly look came into his face.
+He gave one quick glance up and down the street,
+to make sure there was no policeman in sight;
+and turned on Marjorie with rough fury.</p>
+
+<p>"You leave me alone, will you? It ain't none
+of your biz what I do with this here horse."
+And before the indignant Marjorie could protest
+he had again laid the whip lash, sharply across the
+poor animal's back.</p>
+
+<p>Then for one moment Marjorie forgot everything&mdash;forgot
+that she was in the streets of a
+big city&mdash;forgot all Aunt Julia's lectures and
+Elsie's warnings&mdash;and with one quick movement
+she seized the whip handle, trying with all her
+strength to drag it away from the boy. She was
+strong, but her antagonist was stronger, and the
+end of that momentary struggle was a sharp cry
+of pain from Marjorie, a muttered imprecation
+from the driver, and in another second he had
+sprung into his seat, and horse and wagon were
+clattering away down the street.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Mademoiselle, Mademoiselle," gasped
+Hortense, seizing Marjorie's arm, and fairly
+trembling with fright and horror; "how could
+you do such a terrible thing? A young lady to
+fight with a <i>canaille!</i> Oh, what will Madame
+say when she hears?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span></p>
+
+<div class="figright" style="width: 317px;">
+<img src="images/i-002.jpg" width="317" height="500" alt="With One Quick Movement She Seized the Whip Handle.&mdash;Page 145." title="" />
+<span class="caption"><span class='smcap'>With One Quick Movement She Seized the Whip Handle</span>.&mdash;Page 145.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>"He is a wicked, cruel boy," panted Marjorie;
+"he ought to be arrested. He is killing
+that poor old horse."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know, he is cruel, a beast, but young
+ladies must not interfere with such things. You
+might have been hurt. Let us go home quickly;
+I am near to faint. Thank Heaven no one saw.
+Madame would never forgive such a disgrace."</p>
+
+<p>"But some one ought to interfere," protested
+Marjorie, her wrath beginning to cool, "and
+there wasn't anybody else to do it. I would
+have taken that whip away from him if I could,
+but he was so strong, and he has hurt my wrist."</p>
+
+<p>"Hurt your wrist! Let me see. Ah, but it is
+red. How could you have held on so tight?
+Come home quickly, and we will bathe it with
+arnica. How fortunate that Madame and
+Mademoiselle Elsie are away! Ah, here comes
+the young gentleman, Mademoiselle Elsie's friend
+from the hotel; he must not know that anything
+is wrong."</p>
+
+<p>But Marjorie had no intention of keeping her
+indignation to herself, and she turned to greet
+Beverly Randolph with eyes that flashed and
+cheeks that tingled.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Mr. Randolph," she exclaimed, as the
+young man smilingly took off his hat, and paused<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span>
+beside her, "the most dreadful thing has happened.
+A cruel, wicked boy has been ill-treating
+a poor old horse. The poor creature had a
+terribly heavy load, and when he refused to go
+any further, the boy beat him, and&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Where is he?" inquired Beverly, his own
+eyes beginning to flash. "I'll report the case to
+the Society for the Prevention of Cruelty to Animals."</p>
+
+<p>"He has gone," said Marjorie, regretfully.
+"He gave the horse a dreadful cut with the whip,
+and it was so frightened it started, and then he
+jumped into the wagon and went off. I tried to
+get the whip away from him, but he was terribly
+strong, and he hurt my wrist so much I had to
+let go."</p>
+
+<p>Beverly Randolph's face was a mixture of astonishment,
+amusement and horror.</p>
+
+<p>"You don't mean that you tackled the fellow
+yourself?" he demanded incredulously.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie nodded. Now that the excitement
+was over she was beginning to feel a little startled
+at what she had done.</p>
+
+<p>"I had to," she said humbly; "there wasn't
+any one else to do it. Hortense thinks it was
+very unladylike, but I don't see what else I could
+have done. I couldn't just stand by and do nothing<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span>
+while that poor horse was being ill-treated."</p>
+
+<p>"No, I don't suppose you could," said Beverly,
+smiling. "I don't think I would do it
+again, though; you might get hurt. Hello!
+what's the matter?&mdash;don't you feel well?"</p>
+
+<p>For Marjorie had suddenly grown very pale,
+and leaned against the lamp-post.</p>
+
+<p>"It's&mdash;it's my wrist," she faltered; "it hurts
+dreadfully, and&mdash;and I think I feel a little
+faint."</p>
+
+<p>Without a moment's hesitation Beverly drew
+the girl's arm through his.</p>
+
+<p>"Come along," he said, peremptorily, and
+without another word he conducted the wounded
+soldier back to the hotel. Marjorie, too, was silent;
+the pain in her wrist was very bad, and she
+had to bite her lips hard to keep back the rising
+tears. Hortense, still covered with shame and
+confusion, followed close behind. At the door
+of the lift Beverly paused.</p>
+
+<p>"Is your aunt at home?" he inquired.</p>
+
+<p>"No," said Marjorie, unsteadily; "she and
+Elsie have gone to New Haven for the football
+game."</p>
+
+<p>"To be sure they have; I had forgotten.
+Your cousin told me they were going this afternoon.
+Well, I think I will take you to our apartment.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span>
+My mother is used to sprains and bruises,
+and will know what to do for your wrist."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie protested that she could not think of
+disturbing Mrs. Randolph, but Beverly, who appeared
+to be accustomed to having his own way,
+remained firm, and in the end his companion was
+forced to yield, much to the distress and horror
+of Hortense, who considered that the story was
+already known to more persons than Mrs. Carleton
+would approve.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph and her brother-in-law were
+having tea in the former's pretty sitting-room,
+when the door was unceremoniously flung open,
+and Beverly appeared on the threshold, leading in
+a trembling, white-faced girl, who immediately
+collapsed into the nearest chair, and looked as
+if she were about to faint.</p>
+
+<p>"It's Miss Marjorie Graham, Mother," Beverly
+explained, "and she has hurt her wrist.
+Her aunt is away, so I brought her in here. Oh,
+here's Uncle George; what luck! This is my
+uncle Dr. Randolph, Miss Marjorie; he is a surgeon,
+you know, and he'll fix you up in no
+time."</p>
+
+<p>"To be sure I will if I can," said a pleasant
+voice, not unlike Beverly's. "Let me see what
+the trouble is. Ah, this is the hand, isn't it?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span>
+And Marjorie felt her wrist taken in firm, kind
+fingers. She winced at the touch, but the doctor's
+next words were reassuring.</p>
+
+<p>"I see; only a slight sprain, nothing serious.
+Have you some arnica, Barbara, and some linen
+that I can use for a bandage?"</p>
+
+<p>"How did it happen, dear?" Mrs. Randolph
+inquired sympathetically, as Marjorie leaned back
+in her chair, with a sigh of intense relief, and
+the doctor applied a cooling lotion to her aching
+wrist.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's cheeks were crimson again, but not
+for a moment did she hesitate about telling the
+truth. Beverly had gone off to his own room,
+having left his charge in safe hands.</p>
+
+<p>"I am afraid it was my own fault," she said,
+honestly. "I saw a boy ill-treating a poor old
+horse, and tried to stop him by getting the whip
+away from him, but he was much stronger than
+I, and in the struggle I suppose he must have
+twisted my wrist. I am afraid your son and my
+aunt's maid both think I was very unladylike."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph and the doctor exchanged
+amused glances, and the latter said kindly:</p>
+
+<p>"I wish more people were moved by the same
+spirit, though I don't know that I should advise
+young girls to attack rough drivers. I imagine<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span>
+you have not been very long in New York or you
+would be accustomed to such sights."</p>
+
+<p>"No," said Marjorie, much relieved. "I
+have only been in New York three weeks. My
+home is on a ranch in Arizona, but I have been
+accustomed to horses all my life. I think my
+father would almost kill any boy who dared to
+treat one of ours like that."</p>
+
+<p>"I daresay he would. Your father raises
+horses, I suppose?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, and cattle, too. I have lived on the
+ranch ever since I was two years old, and New
+York seems very strange in some ways."</p>
+
+<p>"It must," said Dr. Randolph gravely, but his
+eyes twinkled, and Marjorie felt sure he was trying
+not to laugh. "There, I think the wrist will
+do nicely now. You can wet this bandage again
+in an hour, and if I am not mistaken the pain will
+be gone by that time. I must be going now, Barbara;
+I have two patients to see before dinner.
+I'll call for you and Beverly in the car at nine to-morrow
+morning; that will give us plenty of time
+to make New Haven before lunch." And with a
+hurried leave-taking the doctor departed, leaving
+Mrs. Randolph and Marjorie alone together.</p>
+
+<p>The next half-hour was a very pleasant one.
+Mrs. Randolph would not allow the girl to go<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span>
+back to her own apartment until the pain in her
+wrist had subsided, and she made her lie on the
+sofa, and petted her in a way that recalled Mother
+and Aunt Jessie so strongly that Marjorie had
+some difficulty in keeping back the homesick tears.
+Almost before she knew it, she was chatting away
+to this new acquaintance as if they had been old
+friends.</p>
+
+<p>"I hope I shall get accustomed to New York
+ways soon," she said humbly. "I am afraid I
+make a great many mistakes, and they distress
+my aunt and cousin very much. You see, it is all
+so different on the ranch. I suppose your son
+told you how I spoke to him that morning in the
+park, and asked him to take me home. It seemed
+quite a natural thing to do, because I knew he
+lived in this hotel, but Aunt Julia was dreadfully
+shocked."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph laughed.</p>
+
+<p>"Beverly was not at all shocked," she said.
+"He and I have rather old-fashioned ideas about
+some things; we like little girls to be natural."</p>
+
+<p>"I am so glad you think me a little girl still,"
+said Marjorie in a sudden burst of confidence.
+"All the girls here seem so grown-up, and I
+don't want to grow up just yet; I am only fourteen."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"My little girl would have been just about
+your age if she had lived," said Mrs. Randolph,
+with a rather sad smile. "I am sure I should
+not have begun to think of her as grown-up
+yet."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was interested. She would have
+liked to ask Mrs. Randolph about her little girl,
+but feared the subject might be a painful one,
+and just that moment Beverly came back, and
+the conversation turned on other matters. In a
+little while Marjorie rose to go.</p>
+
+<p>"You have been very kind to me," she said to
+Mrs. Randolph. "My wrist feels ever so much
+better already. I do hope I haven't been a
+bother."</p>
+
+<p>"Not a bit of it," Mrs. Randolph declared,
+laughing. "On the contrary, I have enjoyed
+your call very much, and I hope you will
+come often, for I am very fond of little girls.
+By the way, what are you going to do to-morrow?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I don't know," said Marjorie; "walk
+and read and study, I suppose. Aunt Julia said
+I might drive in the afternoon, but the horses
+go so slowly I always feel as though I should
+like to get out of the carriage and run. Galloping
+over the prairie is much more fun."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph and her son both laughed, and
+Beverly remarked rather indignantly:</p>
+
+<p>"It's a shame you couldn't have gone to the
+game with the others."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, that wasn't Aunt Julia's fault," said
+Marjorie, loyally. "Her nephew only sent two
+tickets, and Elsie says it's almost impossible to
+get extra ones. They were very kind about it,
+and Aunt Julia hated to leave me behind."</p>
+
+<p>Beverly and his mother exchanged a significant
+glance, and then Beverly offered to accompany
+the visitor as far as her own apartment for the
+purpose of carrying the arnica bottle, which Mrs.
+Randolph insisted she should keep in case of
+necessity. Marjorie protested, but Beverly was
+firm, and the two young people left the room together,
+after Mrs. Randolph had kissed the girl,
+and told her she must come again very soon.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XII</h2>
+
+<h3>A MOTOR RIDE AND A FOOTBALL GAME</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">I think</span> your mother is perfectly lovely,"
+declared Marjorie, the moment the door of the
+Randolph's apartment had closed behind them.
+"Is she always so kind to strangers?"</p>
+
+<p>"Mother's a brick," said Beverly, heartily.
+"She's kind to everybody, and always doing
+things for people. She's a good sport, too. I
+really believe, she is looking forward to the game
+to-morrow almost as much as I am. It's because
+she's so unselfish; she never stops to think of
+herself so long as other people are having a good
+time."</p>
+
+<p>"My aunt is like that," said Marjorie, with
+shining eyes. "She is a great invalid, and suffers
+very much most of the time, but she never
+complains, and is always interested in everything
+we do. Is your uncle a surgeon?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Beverly, rather surprised by the
+abruptness of the question; "he is a very fine
+surgeon, I believe. Why do you want to know?<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span>
+Aren't you satisfied with the way your wrist is
+bandaged?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it isn't that," said Marjorie, blushing;
+"it was only something I was thinking of that
+made me ask the question. This is our apartment;
+now I can take the bottle, and not bother
+you any more. Oh, there's a letter in the box;
+perhaps it's for me!" And forgetting everything
+else in her eagerness for home news, Marjorie
+sprang forward to possess herself of the
+contents of the letter-box.</p>
+
+<p>"It is for me!" she cried joyfully, glancing
+at the postmark. "It's from Undine; the first
+one I've had from her."</p>
+
+<p>"Undine," repeated Beverly, his eyes beginning
+to twinkle; "I had no idea you counted
+water sprites among your acquaintances."</p>
+
+<p>"She isn't a water sprite," laughed Marjorie.
+"She's just a girl like anybody else. We call her
+Undine because nobody knows what her real
+name is. It's a very strange story indeed. She
+was found under some ruins in the streets of San
+Francisco right after the earthquake, and we
+think a stone or something must have fallen on
+her head, for she was unconscious for a long
+time, and now she can't remember anything that
+happened before the earthquake, not even her<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span>
+own name. She isn't crazy, or anything like
+that, but she has simply forgotten everything.
+Did you ever hear of a case like that before?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think I have read of such cases, but I imagine
+they are rather rare. It is very interesting,
+but if you don't mind, Miss Marjorie, please
+don't mention it to my mother. Any mention of
+the San Francisco earthquake is very painful to
+her. My little sister was killed there."</p>
+
+<p>"No, indeed I won't," promised Marjorie,
+"but how very sad about your sister. Would
+you mind telling me how it happened? Don't
+talk about it, though, if you would rather not."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't mind in the least," said Beverly,
+"but it was such a frightful shock to my mother
+that we don't like to have her dwell on it any
+any more than can be helped. My sister Barbara
+was in San Francisco with my aunt at the
+time of the earthquake. She had been very ill
+with scarlet fever in the winter, and the doctor
+had ordered a change for her. My aunt was going
+to California for a few weeks, and offered to
+take Barbara with her. Mother couldn't leave
+home, for she was taking care of my grandmother,
+who was ill at the time, and I was away
+at school. So it ended in my aunt and Barbara
+going by themselves. My aunt intended<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span>
+taking a maid, but the one she had engaged disappointed
+her at the last moment, and as all the
+railroad accommodations had been secured, she
+decided to start, and trust to finding a suitable
+maid in San Francisco, which was to be their first
+stopping place. They reached San Francisco,
+and my aunt wrote my mother that she had engaged
+a very satisfactory girl, and two days later
+came the earthquake."</p>
+
+<p>Beverly paused abruptly, and Marjorie, her
+face full of sympathy, laid a kind little hand on
+his arm.</p>
+
+<p>"Don't tell me any more," she said, gently;
+"it must have been very terrible."</p>
+
+<p>"It was," said Beverly, sadly. "Part of the
+wall of the hotel where they were staying fell in,
+and they were both instantly killed. We feared
+for a time that my mother would never recover
+from the shock."</p>
+
+<p>"And was the maid killed, too?" Marjorie
+asked. She was longing to hear more, but did
+not like to ask too many questions.</p>
+
+<p>"We never knew; you see, she was a stranger
+to us. My uncle advertised in all the California
+papers, in the hope of finding her, and perhaps
+learn more particulars, but no answer ever came.
+She was probably killed, poor thing."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Your mother spoke of her little girl this
+afternoon," said Marjorie; "she said she would
+have been just about my age."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, she would have been fifteen this January.
+It is rather odd, but when I saw you that
+first morning in the park you somehow reminded
+me of Babs. She was such a jolly little girl.
+She was four years younger than I, but there
+were only we two, and we were always chums."</p>
+
+<p>There was a look of such genuine sorrow on
+the boy's face that impulsive Marjorie held out
+her hand.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm so sorry," she said and that was all, but
+Beverly understood, and he went back to his
+mother's apartment with a very kindly feeling
+for the little girl from Arizona.</p>
+
+<p>Once in her own room Marjorie speedily forgot
+the Randolphs and their troubles in the delight
+of a letter from home. Undine's handwriting
+was rather immature for a girl of her
+age, but the letter itself was most interesting and
+satisfactory.</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><div class='right'>
+"November Fifteenth.<br />
+</div>
+
+"<span class="smcap">Dear Marjorie</span>:
+
+<p>"Your aunt thinks you would like to have a
+letter from me, and although I can't see how you<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span>
+can possibly care about hearing from such a
+stupid person, I am very glad to write.</p>
+
+<p>"You have no idea how much I have missed
+you. If your mother and aunt had not been so
+very kind I don't think I could have borne it, but,
+oh, Marjorie dear they are so good; I do hope I
+can deserve just a little of all they are doing for
+me. Your mother is making me a new dress&mdash;isn't
+it sweet of her? She sent to Albuquerque
+for the material; it is dark blue serge with a little
+stripe in it, and just as pretty as it can be. I
+take a sewing lesson every day from Miss Jessie,
+but I know as well as can be that I shall never
+learn to make things as you do.</p>
+
+<p>"Another thing that makes me very happy is
+that your mother is giving me lessons, and letting
+me recite to her every evening. Even if I
+am stupid and can't remember my own name, I
+don't want to grow up ignorant. We are reading
+English history together, and it is very
+strange, but I almost always know what is coming
+next. Mrs. Graham says she feels sure I
+must have learned the same things before.</p>
+
+<p>"A very strange thing happened to me one
+day last week; I think I almost remembered. It
+was the day your long letter to Miss Jessie came,
+and she was reading it aloud to us when it happened.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span>
+It was just like the day I heard Jim singing
+'Mandalay' for the first time. It seemed to
+me just for one minute that I was going to remember
+everything, and I was so excited I
+screamed, and frightened Mrs. Graham and Miss
+Jessie. Then in a flash it was all gone again,
+and I was so unhappy I couldn't help crying. I
+am afraid I gave them a good deal of trouble,
+but they were so kind! Afterward Miss Jessie
+talked to me for a long time, and made me
+promise to try not to worry any more about not
+remembering. She said some lovely comforting
+things about my being helpful and trying to take
+your place, and they made me very happy, although
+I am afraid I didn't really deserve them.</p>
+
+<p>"I ride almost every afternoon, and I think
+Roland is beginning to like me. I never forget
+his sugar, and I am teaching him to put his nose
+in my pocket for it. I think I must have taught
+another horse that some time, it seemed so natural,
+but I am not sure. I have promised your
+aunt not to talk about the things I think I used
+to do.</p>
+
+<p>"I had such a beautiful dream last night. I
+thought some one came and told me I was very
+rich, and I was so happy, because I would have
+the money to pay a surgeon to come and see Miss<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span>
+Jessie. I was just planning out how I was to
+do it when I woke up. I have thought a great
+deal about what you told me that last evening,
+but of course I have never mentioned it to any
+one. I don't suppose you have had time to meet
+a surgeon yet.</p>
+
+<p>"I must stop writing now, and study my history.
+Everybody is well, and they all send heaps
+of love and kisses. Your mother says 'don't
+let Marjorie know how much we miss her,' but
+I am sure you know that without any telling. I
+don't want to be selfish, but I should just love a
+letter all to myself some time. New York must
+be a very interesting place, and your letters telling
+about it all are wonderful.</p>
+
+<div class='sig'>
+<span style="margin-right: 4em;">"With a heart full of love, I am</span><br />
+<span style="margin-right: 2em;">"Your true but nameless friend,</span><br />
+"<span class="smcap">Undine.</span>"<br />
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Marjorie spent a busy evening over her lessons,
+and went to bed at nine o'clock instead of
+writing the home letters she had intended.</p>
+
+<p>"They would be so sorry to know I was here
+all by myself while the others were off having a
+good time," she thought, resolutely crushing down
+that troublesome little feeling of envy. "If I
+wrote to-night I should have to mention it, but<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span>
+if I wait till Sunday when Aunt Julia and Elsie
+are back again, I won't have to say anything
+about their having been away. I promised
+Mother to let her know about all the things, but
+some of them will keep till I get home and can
+tell her myself."</p>
+
+<p>But in spite of the throbbing pain in her wrist,
+and the disappointment in her heart, Marjorie
+soon feel asleep, and did not wake until it was
+broad daylight, and Hortense, with a note in her
+hand, was standing by her bedside.</p>
+
+<p>"It is only seven," the maid said apologetically,
+as Marjorie sat up in bed, and rubbed her
+eyes. "I would not have called you so early, but
+the hall boy has brought this note, and waits for
+an answer."</p>
+
+<p>"What in the world can it be?" exclaimed
+Marjorie in astonishment, as she tore open the
+envelope, but at the first glance at the contents
+her face brightened, and she uttered a joyful little
+cry. This is what she read.</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot">"<span class="smcap">My Dear Marjorie</span>:
+
+<p>"I know you won't object to my calling you
+Marjorie, because you say you like being a little
+girl. I am writing to ask if you will go with us
+to New Haven to-day. We are going in my<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span>
+brother-in-law's car, and are to be ready to start
+at nine o'clock. The friend we expected would
+go with us has been prevented at the last moment,
+which gives us an extra seat in the car
+as well as a ticket for the game, and we
+should be delighted to have you with us. I am
+sure your aunt would not object, and I will explain
+everything to her myself. I would have
+written you last evening, but it was after ten
+when we learned that the friend we had expected
+would be unable to go. We have ordered breakfast
+for eight o'clock, and would be glad to have
+you take it with us. Be sure to wrap up well,
+for it may be a cold ride, and we shall not get
+back till late.</p>
+
+<p>"Hoping that you will be able to join us, I remain</p>
+
+<div class='sig'>
+<span style="margin-right: 2.5em;">"Sincerely your friend,</span><br />
+"<span class="smcap">Barbara Randolph.</span>"<br />
+</div></div>
+
+<p>Marjorie was out of bed almost before she had
+finished the last line. Her eyes were dancing,
+and her heart pounding with excitement.</p>
+
+<p>"Tell the boy to say I shall be delighted to
+go," she cried. "There isn't time to write a
+note; I shall have to hurry. Oh, Hortense, did
+you ever hear of anything quite so splendid?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>It was a very radiant Marjorie who presented
+herself at the Randolphs' apartment an hour
+later, and Beverly and his mother felt fully repaid
+for the kindly impulse which had prompted
+the invitation. The breakfast that followed was
+a very pleasant one, and Marjorie chatted away
+to her new friends as if she had known them all
+her life, and enjoyed herself more than she had
+done at any time since coming to New York.</p>
+
+<p>"I really didn't know how disappointed I was
+about not going till your mother's note came,"
+she said to Beverly, when breakfast was over,
+and Mrs. Randolph had gone to put on her hat.
+"I have always longed to see a football game.
+My father was on the team at Harvard."</p>
+
+<p>"You seemed to take your disappointment
+rather cheerfully," said Beverly with characteristic
+bluntness.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie blushed.</p>
+
+<p>"It was just one of the things that couldn't be
+helped," she said simply. "My aunt says there
+are some things every one has to make the best
+of."</p>
+
+<p>"Your aunt must be a sensible woman," remarked
+Mrs. Randolph, who had returned just in
+time to hear Marjorie's last sentence. Thereupon
+Marjorie launched forth into an account of<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span>
+Aunt Jessie's bravery and cheerfulness, in which
+both her companions seemed interested.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was sure she would never forget the
+delight of that motor ride to New Haven. It
+was her first ride in an open touring car, and the
+bright sunshine, the keen frosty air, and the swift
+motion, all combined to render the trip a truly
+enjoyable one. She sat in the tonneau, between
+Mrs. Randolph and the doctor, and Beverly occupied
+the front seat with the chauffeur.</p>
+
+<p>"It's the most heavenly motion I ever imagined,"
+murmured Marjorie, as they bowled
+swiftly out of the park and along the grand boulevard.
+"I always thought riding was the most
+delightful thing in the world, but I believe motoring
+is even better."</p>
+
+<p>The doctor laughed.</p>
+
+<p>"You must be an accomplished horsewoman,"
+he said. "Beverly tells me you have spent a
+good part of your life on a ranch."</p>
+
+<p>"I rode my first pony before I was five, and
+helped Father train a colt when I was nine," said
+Marjorie. "I suppose that is one reason why
+I love horses so much, and can't bear to see one
+ill-treated."</p>
+
+<p>"I have no doubt of it, but if I were you I
+think I would leave the punishment of cruel<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span>
+drivers in future to the Society for the Prevention
+of Cruelty to Animals. By the way, how is
+the wrist this morning?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it's ever so much better," said Marjorie,
+blushing at the memory of her escapade. "I
+don't believe I have thought of it once since Mrs.
+Randolph's note came. I have been so anxious
+to see a real college football match. My father
+was on the team at Harvard."</p>
+
+<p>"Indeed!" said the doctor, looking interested.
+"I am a Harvard man myself, and there was a
+Graham on the team in my time; a splendid chap&mdash;what
+is your father's name?"</p>
+
+<p>"Donald, and he was in the class of 1890,"
+said Marjorie, eagerly. "Oh, I wonder if you
+can really have known Father."</p>
+
+<p>"I certainly did. Ninety was my class, too,
+and I remember Donald Graham very well,
+though we have never met since the old college
+days."</p>
+
+<p>"How perfectly delightful!" cried Marjorie,
+with sparkling eyes. "Father will be so interested
+when I write him about it."</p>
+
+<p>Dr. Randolph was really pleased to hear of his
+old classmate, forgotten for nearly twenty years,
+and he and Marjorie were soon in the midst of
+an animated conversation; she telling of her<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span>
+father's busy life on the Arizona cattle ranch,
+and he relating college stories, and growing young
+again himself in recalling those old merry
+days.</p>
+
+<p>That was a wonderful ride, and Marjorie enjoyed
+every moment. Dr. Randolph told her
+the names of all the towns they passed through,
+and Beverly and his mother were so kind and so
+merry. It was noon when they reached New
+Haven, where they found the streets crowded
+with people and automobiles, and many of the
+buildings decorated with flags and Yale colors.</p>
+
+<p>"Have all these people come to see the game?"
+Marjorie asked breathlessly.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, and a good many more as well," Dr.
+Randolph told her. "There is always a big
+crowd for these games; the railroads run special
+trains on purpose. We are going to have lunch
+now, and then go out to Yale Field."</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder if we shall meet Aunt Julia and
+Elsie," said Marjorie. "How surprised they
+will be to see me if we do. Aunt Julia will be
+pleased, I know, for she hated to leave me at
+home."</p>
+
+<p>"We shall meet the Bells and their party at
+any rate," said Beverly. "They came yesterday
+by train, and are saving a table for us at the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span>
+restaurant. You know Lulu Bell, don't you,
+Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, she is in my class, and I like her ever so
+much. I like Winifred Hamilton, too, and she
+is to be with the Bells, I believe."</p>
+
+<p>At that moment they drew up before the hotel
+where they were to lunch, and Mrs. Randolph
+and Marjorie hurried away to the dressing-room
+to remove wraps and motor veils, while the doctor
+and his nephew went to order luncheon.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIII</h2>
+
+<h3>MARJORIE SURPRISES HER RELATIVES</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">I really</span> don't know when I've been so
+pleased about anything!" exclaimed Lulu Bell, a
+pretty, bright-faced girl of fourteen, as she and
+her friends greeted Marjorie in the restaurant.
+"We were all so glad when Beverly Randolph
+told us you were here. Won't Elsie be surprised?
+She hadn't the least idea you were coming.
+Come here and sit between Winifred and me."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe any one can be much more
+surprised than I am myself," said Marjorie,
+laughing, as she took the proffered seat, and received
+the kindly greeting of her other schoolmates.
+"Wasn't it just heavenly of the Randolphs
+to bring me with them?"</p>
+
+<p>"It was nice," Winifred Hamilton agreed
+heartily. "This is my first football game, too,
+and I'm almost too excited to eat. Did you ever
+see such a crowd in your life?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, never," said Marjorie, with a glance
+round the packed restaurant. "I wonder if they<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span>
+will really have lunch enough for all these people.
+Do you suppose Aunt Julia and Elsie are here?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, I don't think so," said Winifred. "We
+saw Elsie at the dance last night, and she said
+they were going to lunch with some friends of
+her cousin's. She will be at the game, of course,
+and perhaps you may see her there."</p>
+
+<p>"I think it was real mean of Elsie to come
+without you," chimed in Gertie Rossiter, who
+was not noted for tact. "I should have hated to
+go off for a good time and leave my cousin at
+home alone."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Elsie couldn't help it," protested Marjorie;
+"her cousin could only get two tickets."</p>
+
+<p>"Nonsense!" retorted Gertie indignantly.
+"He could have gotten an extra one as well as
+not if he had known in time; he told me so last
+night. I know Percy Ward very well, and he's
+an awfully nice boy. He felt dreadfully sorry
+when he heard about your being left behind. He
+said it was just like Elsie."</p>
+
+<p>"Isn't Mrs. Randolph pretty?" broke in Winifred,
+anxious to change the subject before Gertie
+made any more uncomfortable revelations.
+"She looks awfully young to be that big boy's
+mother."</p>
+
+<p>"She is perfectly lovely," declared Marjorie,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span>
+and Lulu added, by way of keeping the conversation
+in safe channels:</p>
+
+<p>"Papa knows her brother-in-law, Dr. Randolph,
+very well, and he says she is the bravest
+woman he has ever met. You've heard about
+her little girl, haven't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Marjorie, "it was very sad; I
+don't see how poor Mrs. Randolph ever got over
+it."</p>
+
+<p>"She didn't," said Lulu. "Dr. Randolph says
+it nearly killed her, and even now she can't bear
+to speak of it, but she doesn't think it right to
+sadden her son's life, and so she is always bright
+and cheerful. If I ever write a book I shall
+make my heroine just that sort of person."</p>
+
+<p>At this moment Beverly, who had gone to
+speak to some friends at another table, joined the
+party, and the subject of his family was dropped.
+The luncheon was a very merry one. They were
+a large party, for besides Lulu's father and
+mother and the three girls, there were a couple of
+Yale students, friends of the Bells, and everybody
+seemed in excellent spirits. Marjorie felt
+a little shy at first, but soon thawed under the
+genial atmosphere, and before the meal was over
+she was chatting and laughing as merrily as any
+of the others.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Isn't Marjorie a nice girl?" whispered Winifred
+to Lulu, as they were leaving the restaurant.
+"I'm so glad she got the chance to come, but I
+do wonder what Elsie will say."</p>
+
+<p>It seemed to Marjorie that the next three hours
+must be the most exciting period of her life. To
+most girls a college football game is looked upon
+as a rather important event, but to Marjorie,
+fresh from her Arizona home, it was an experience
+never to be forgotten. It was on the whole
+a peaceful game, and there were no serious accidents
+to mar the general enjoyment and as the
+sun continued to shine, and the day was comfortably
+warm, there were not even the usual discomforts
+of weather to be endured. Marjorie
+and her friends were about equally divided in their
+championship; Lulu, Winifred and Gertie being
+for Yale, while Beverly and Marjorie herself
+favored Harvard, and joined in the cheers and
+rejoicing when the "Crimson" at last carried off
+the honors of the day, although Yale ran so close
+behind that at one time fears had been entertained
+that the game would be a tie.</p>
+
+<p>"Are you tired, Marjorie?" Beverly asked, as
+they were making their way through the dense
+throng to the waiting motor-car.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know whether I am or not," said<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span>
+Marjorie, laughing. "It has all been so wonderful,
+and I don't feel as if I could quite realize
+it yet. Oh, there they are!"</p>
+
+<p>"Who?" demanded Beverly, looking round
+in surprise. "Oh, I see, your aunt and cousin&mdash;do
+you want to speak to them?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, of course I do; they'll be so surprised.
+Why, Elsie is staring at me as if she didn't know
+me."</p>
+
+<p>To say that Mrs. Carleton and her daughter
+were surprised would be but a mild way of expressing
+their feelings. They were for the moment
+literally speechless with astonishment.
+Elsie was the first to recover her power of articulation.</p>
+
+<p>"Is it really and truly you, Marjorie?" she
+demanded, regarding her smiling cousin with
+round-eyed amazement.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, it really and truly is," laughed Marjorie.
+"I've been trying to find you all the afternoon,
+but there was such a crowd. I knew you'd be
+surprised."</p>
+
+<p>"Surprised!" echoed Elsie, looking from
+Marjorie to her tall companion, "I was never
+so surprised in my life. But how did it happen&mdash;who
+brought you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Mr. Randolph and his mother," said Marjorie,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span>
+"wasn't it perfectly lovely of them?"
+And she proceeded to give her aunt and cousin
+an account of recent events.</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure it was extremely kind of Mrs.
+Randolph," Mrs. Carleton said, when Marjorie
+had finished her story. "I only hope this little
+girl hasn't been a trouble to your mother, Mr.
+Randolph."</p>
+
+<p>"Indeed she hasn't," declared Beverly, not
+without some indignation in his tone. "We've
+had a splendid time, haven't we, Marjorie?"
+To which Marjorie, who felt suddenly as if a
+pail of ice water had been dashed over her,
+answered rather meekly:&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"It was beautiful. I never had such a good
+time in my life."</p>
+
+<p>"I am afraid that we must hurry along, Mrs.
+Carleton," said Beverly. "My mother and uncle
+have gone ahead, and will be waiting for us at
+the entrance. Don't worry about Marjorie; we'll
+take good care of her, and bring her home safely.
+We may be a little late, as my uncle doesn't like
+to run his car fast after dark."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I shall not worry," said Mrs. Carleton,
+with her sweetest smile. "I know Marjorie is
+in excellent hands, and between ourselves, I
+think she is a very fortunate little girl."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was rather silent during the long
+ride back to New York that evening. Mrs. Randolph
+and the doctor thought she was tired after
+all the excitement of the day, and kindly left
+her alone, but Beverly was of a different opinion,
+and his feelings towards Marjorie's aunt and
+cousin were not of the kindest.</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose your aunt was very much surprised
+to see you," Mrs. Randolph said kindly,
+merely for the sake of conversation.</p>
+
+<p>"Very much indeed," said Marjorie, in a tone
+that was not altogether steady. "Oh, Mrs. Randolph,
+I do hope I haven't been a trouble to you."</p>
+
+<p>"A trouble! My dear child, what nonsense.
+It has been perfectly delightful to have you with
+us, and you have added greatly to our pleasure.
+I hope we may have many more little trips together
+before the winter is over. You know I
+am very fond of little girls."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was much relieved, but her heart was
+not as light as it had been all day.</p>
+
+<p>"Be sure to remember me to your father
+when you write," were Dr. Randolph's parting
+words to Marjorie, as they drew up before the
+big hotel at ten o'clock that night. "Tell him
+he mustn't forget to look me up when he comes
+to New York."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Indeed I will," promised Marjorie; "he will
+be so interested. I don't suppose&mdash;" with sudden
+eagerness&mdash;"that you ever go to Arizona?"</p>
+
+<p>"I have never been there as yet, but nobody
+knows what may happen. If I ever go to Arizona,
+though, I shall certainly call on my old
+college friend, Donald Graham."</p>
+
+<p>"Isn't your uncle a dear?" remarked Marjorie
+to Beverly, as her friend was taking her
+upstairs to the Carletons' apartment.</p>
+
+<p>"He's a brick," was the young man's hearty
+rejoinder. "I'm glad you like him, for I know
+he likes you. He doesn't take to everybody, but
+he's been awfully good to Mother and me, and
+he was very fond of my little sister. Here's
+your door, so I'll say good-night. Hasn't it
+been a jolly day?"</p>
+
+<p>"It has been one of the loveliest days I've ever
+had," said Marjorie earnestly. "I'm sorry Aunt
+Julia thought I might have been troublesome, but
+your mother said I wasn't."</p>
+
+<p>"Troublesome! I should say not. Don't
+bother about what your aunt says; she doesn't
+know anything about it, and it's all nonsense, you
+know."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie had already gone to bed, and Mr. Carleton
+had telegraphed that he was taking the midnight<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span>
+train from Washington, and would not
+reach home till the following morning. But
+Aunt Julia was still up and dressed, and awaiting
+her niece's return.</p>
+
+<p>"My dear child, how late you are," was the
+rather reproachful greeting. "Do you know it
+is nearly half-past ten? Elsie went to bed more
+than an hour ago; she was quite worn out, poor
+child, as indeed I am myself, but I couldn't make
+up my mind to undress until I knew you were
+safely at home. I am horribly afraid of those
+automobiles."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm so sorry you worried about me, Aunt
+Julia," said Marjorie, regretfully. "I think we
+were quite safe, though; Dr. Randolph's chauffeur
+seems very careful, and they don't like going
+fast. I wasn't a bit frightened."</p>
+
+<p>"No, I don't suppose you were; children seldom
+realize danger. Sit down, Marjorie; I want
+to have a little talk with you before you go to
+your room."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie complied, drawing a chair close to
+the fire, and stretching her cold hands out to the
+welcome blaze. She was longing to tell all about
+the day's pleasures, and was glad of the prospect
+of a little chat with Aunt Julia before going to
+bed.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Now my dear," began Mrs. Carleton, speaking
+fast and rather nervously, "I don't want you
+to let what I am going to say make you unhappy.
+I am not in the least displeased with you, because
+I am sure you had no intention of doing anything
+wrong; I have told Elsie so. But, Marjorie
+dear, it is not quite the proper thing for a
+girl of your age to accept invitations from
+strangers without first consulting the people under
+whose care she has been placed."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Aunt Julia," cried Marjorie, clasping
+her hands in dismay, while all the brightness died
+suddenly out of her face, "I am so sorry! I
+had no idea you would object to my going with
+the Randolphs; I thought you would be pleased
+because you were so sorry about leaving me at
+home. Mrs. Randolph said she was sure you
+wouldn't mind."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton moved uneasily in her chair, and
+her eyes did not meet Marjorie's honest, astonished
+gaze.</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure it was very kind of Mrs. Randolph
+to think of giving you so much pleasure," she
+said. "I am not displeased with you either,
+Marjorie; I am only warning you not to make
+such a mistake another time. The Randolphs
+are merely slight acquaintances of ours, and one<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span>
+doesn't like being under obligations to strangers,
+you know. Elsie feels this quite as strongly as
+I do."</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie," repeated Marjorie, with a start, "why
+does she care? Didn't she want me to go to the
+game?"</p>
+
+<p>"Nonsense, dear; of course Elsie wanted you
+to go. She would have been delighted if only
+the circumstances had been a little different.
+Don't look so distressed, Marjorie; there is really
+nothing tragic in the situation. You have done
+nothing wrong, and I am glad you have had such
+a pleasant day, but don't accept another invitation
+without consulting either your uncle or me.
+Now kiss me good-night; I am tired to death and
+simply cannot sit up another minute."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie cried herself to sleep that night for
+the first time in weeks. In spite of the memories
+of her happy day, she was more homesick than
+she had been at any time since coming to New
+York. She was so anxious to do right; to please
+her uncle and aunt in every way, and show them
+how grateful she was for all they were doing
+for her. And now, without having the slightest
+idea of having done anything wrong, she had
+annoyed Aunt Julia. She was thankful Hortense
+had not mentioned the episode of the cruel driver,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span>
+and that her wrist no longer required a bandage.
+What would her aunt say if she knew of this
+delinquency as well as the other? But Marjorie
+was a very honest, truthful girl, and she decided
+to make a clean breast of everything to Uncle
+Henry when he came home. There was only one
+thing she could not understand, and that was why
+Elsie should have objected to her going to New
+Haven with the Randolphs.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIV</h2>
+
+<h3>THE POETRY CLUB</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">There</span> was a marked coolness in Elsie's manner
+to her cousin the next morning, which Marjorie
+found decidedly uncomfortable as well as
+perplexing, but even Elsie was not proof against
+the weakness of curiosity, and after a few veiled
+hints, which Marjorie quite failed to understand,
+she finally softened, and demanded a full account
+of yesterday's doings, which her cousin was only
+too glad to give.</p>
+
+<p>"Tell me about Lulu Bell," said Elsie, when
+Marjorie had reached the part of her story where
+they had arrived at New Haven, and gone to
+lunch at the hotel restaurant. "Did Beverly
+Randolph pay her a lot of attention?"</p>
+
+<p>"Why, no, I don't think so," said Marjorie,
+innocently, "at least not any more than he paid
+to any of us. He was very polite to everybody,
+and I think he's the nicest boy I've ever met."</p>
+
+<p>"Probably that is because you have never met<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span>
+many people except Mexicans and Indians," remarked
+Elsie sarcastically.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie, who had a quick temper of her own,
+flushed angrily, and was just going to say something
+sharp when Mrs. Carleton called them to
+get ready for church. Sunday was always a
+homesick day with Marjorie; there was not so
+much to do as on week-days, and she generally
+wrote a long home letter in the afternoon. Mr.
+Carleton had returned in time for breakfast, but
+it was not until after luncheon that Marjorie
+succeeded in getting him to herself. Then he
+proposed taking a walk, and asked the girls to
+accompany him. Elsie protested that she was too
+tired after the exertions of yesterday, but Marjorie
+gladly accepted her uncle's invitation, and
+it was during that walk that she told her little
+story, concealing nothing not even the battle
+royal with the brutal driver. Mr. Carleton could
+not help smiling over his niece's account of that
+affair, although he grew grave again in a moment,
+and told Marjorie she must never interfere
+in such a case. But he saw nothing wrong in
+her having accepted Mrs. Randolph's invitation.</p>
+
+<p>"I daresay your aunt is right in wishing you
+to consult her before accepting invitations as a
+rule," he said, "but in this case I really don't see<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span>
+how you could have acted differently. The Randolphs
+are charming people, and it was very kind
+of them to offer to take you with them. It
+would have been scarcely courteous to refuse."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie returned from her walk with a much
+lighter heart, and in writing a long and detailed
+account of the game to her father, she quite
+forgot to worry over Elsie's sulks, or Aunt Julia's
+warnings.</p>
+
+<p>When the two girls arrived the next morning
+at the building where Miss Lothrop held her
+daily classes, they found several of their classmates
+gathered in an eager group, all talking
+fast and earnestly.</p>
+
+<p>"The most interesting thing is going to happen,"
+announced Gertie Rossiter, pouncing upon
+the two new arrivals. "Lulu is getting up a
+club, and she wants us all to join."</p>
+
+<p>"What sort of a club?" inquired Elsie, doubtfully.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, an awfully nice one. It's to meet at our
+different houses on Friday evenings, and we are
+to sew for the poor for the first hour, and dance
+and play games the rest of the evening."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe I should care to join," said
+Elsie, indifferently, as she took off her hat, and
+smoothed out her crimps; "I hate sewing."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"So do I, but the sewing is only for the first
+hour, and the rest will be such fun. The boys
+will be invited to come at nine and stay till half-past
+ten."</p>
+
+<p>"Boys!" repeated Elsie her face brightening;
+"are there to be boys in the club, too?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, but of course they can't sew, so Lulu
+is going to put them on the amusement committee.
+My brother Rob is going to be asked, and
+Bessie's two cousins, and any others we can think
+of. You'll be sorry if you don't join, Elsie; it's
+going to be splendid."</p>
+
+<p>"I never said I wasn't going to join," said
+Elsie loftily, and sauntering over to the window
+where Lulu Bell and several other girls were still
+in earnest conversation, she inquired with an air
+of would-be indifference:</p>
+
+<p>"What's all this about a club somebody is
+getting up?"</p>
+
+<p>"It's Lulu," said Winifred Hamilton, proudly;
+"she thought of it yesterday and we all think
+it's such a good idea."</p>
+
+<p>"The first meeting is to be held at my house
+next Friday evening," Lulu explained, "and
+every member has got to read an original
+poem."</p>
+
+<p>"What for?" demanded Elsie, beginning to<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span>
+look rather blank. "I don't see what poems
+have to do with a sewing club."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, we all have to be initiated," said Lulu,
+"the way college boys are, you know, and the
+way we are going to initiate is to make everybody
+write a poem. It needn't be more than
+eight lines, and it doesn't matter what it's about,
+so long as it's poetry. It will be such fun reading
+the poems and deciding which is the best.
+The one who writes the best poem is to be president
+of the club. It will be decided by vote."</p>
+
+<p>"I think the club sounds very interesting," said
+Elsie, with a little air of condescension, "but if
+I were you I would give up the initiation; it's so
+silly."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, the initiation is half the fun!" cried
+Lulu and Bessie both together, and Lulu, who
+was not very fond of Elsie, added with decision:</p>
+
+<p>"Any one who isn't willing to take the trouble
+to write a poem can't join the club."</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure I have no objection to writing
+a poem," said Elsie, shrugging her shoulders.
+"It's perfectly simple; I could write one every
+week if I chose, but it's so foolish."</p>
+
+<p>Bessie and Gertie looked at each other, and
+Gertie formed the word "brag" with her lips,
+but did not say it aloud. Marjorie saw the look<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span>
+that passed between the two girls, and her cheeks
+grew suddenly hot.</p>
+
+<p>Elsie was certainly very clever, but she could
+not help feeling that it would be better taste on
+her cousin's part not to talk about it.</p>
+
+<p>"I wish I found it easy to write a poem," said
+Winifred, mournfully. "I never made a rhyme
+in my life, but Lulu says I've got to try. She
+made me write a story once when we were little
+girls, and it was the most awful nonsense you
+ever heard. Have you ever written a poem, Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>"Only a few silly doggerels. One of my
+aunt's favorite games is capping verses, and we
+used sometimes to play it on winter evenings."</p>
+
+<p>Just then more girls arrived, and in a few
+moments Miss Lothrop rang her bell, and school
+began.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, Marjorie, what do you think of the
+idea of the club?" Elsie inquired of her cousin,
+as the two were walking home from school together
+that day.</p>
+
+<p>"I think it will be splendid," declared Marjorie,
+heartily. "Lulu must be a clever girl to
+have thought of such a plan, especially of the
+initiation. I am sure the poems will be great
+fun."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"They won't amount to anything," said Elsie,
+with her superior smile. "Nobody will write a
+decent poem, and I do hate poetry that isn't
+really good. Papa would never allow me to
+learn anything but the classics."</p>
+
+<p>"Lulu says we mustn't read our poems to any
+one until the night of the initiation," said Marjorie.
+"I know yours will be splendid, Elsie;
+you are so clever."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie smiled, well pleased by the compliment,
+and added rather irrelevantly:</p>
+
+<p>"I asked Lulu why she didn't invite Beverly
+Randolph to join the club. He hasn't many
+friends in New York and might enjoy it. She
+says he is older than any of the other boys, but
+she would be glad to have him if he cares to join,
+so I am to ask him and let her know to-morrow.
+The boys are not to be initiated, because they are
+only the amusement committee, but they are all
+to come to the first meeting, and vote on the
+poems."</p>
+
+<p>Nothing more was said on the subject just
+then, but Elsie was careful to deliver the message
+to Beverly that evening, and the invitation was
+readily accepted.</p>
+
+<p>"The girl who writes the best poem is to be
+president, you know," Elsie explained, with her<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span>
+sweetest smile. "You must be sure to come to
+the first meeting and vote for the one you like
+best."</p>
+
+<p>"I am afraid I'm not very well up on poetry,"
+said Beverly, laughing. "It's a lucky thing the
+boys aren't expected to write poems as well as
+the girls; I am sure I should disgrace myself
+hopelessly if I were to attempt anything original."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no, you wouldn't," Elsie protested.
+"You have no idea how easy it really is. Of
+course some of the poems will be dreadfully
+silly, but you don't have to vote for them."</p>
+
+<p>It was Thanksgiving week, so school closed
+on Wednesday, not to open again till the following
+Monday. Elsie had several invitations for
+the holidays, but Marjorie, whose New York
+acquaintances were still limited to the girls at
+Miss Lothrop's, had only the first meeting of
+the Club on Friday evening to which to look forward.
+She wrote her poem on Wednesday evening,
+while Elsie was at a theater party, and although
+far from satisfied with it, decided that
+it would have to do, as she had several hard lessons
+to prepare for Monday, and there was no
+more time for writing poetry.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course it won't be nearly as good as<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span>
+Elsie's," she told herself cheerfully. "She is
+sure to be voted president."</p>
+
+<p>She had asked her cousin that evening if she
+had written her poem, and Elsie had replied carelessly
+that there was plenty of time, and she
+would probably do it to-morrow.</p>
+
+<p>"It really isn't worth bothering about," she
+had added, with some scorn; "it won't take me
+half an hour."</p>
+
+<p>The next day was Thanksgiving, and the
+Carletons and their niece were invited to a family
+dinner at Mrs. Lamont's. Elsie spent a long
+time in her room that afternoon, and came out
+looking rather cross. Marjorie, going into her
+cousin's room for something later in the day,
+noticed that the waste-paper basket was full of
+torn papers.</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder if she can be having trouble with
+her poem," Marjorie thought innocently, but when
+she questioned Elsie on the subject, that young
+lady colored angrily, and replied that of course
+she wasn't, and she did wish people would stop
+talking about that silly Club; she was sick of the
+subject and had a great mind not to join at all.</p>
+
+<p>The dinner at the Lamonts was very pleasant,
+and Marjorie could not help being conscious of
+the fact that she looked unusually well in her new<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span>
+dress. Every one was kind to the little Western
+girl, and she liked Mrs. Lamont and her daughter
+better than ever. The Ward family were also
+of the party, and Marjorie was introduced to
+the Yale boy, Percy, whom she found most
+agreeable, though not, as she wrote her mother
+afterward, quite so nice as Beverly Randolph.</p>
+
+<p>"Why didn't you tell me what a jolly girl
+Marjorie Graham was?" Percy demanded of
+Elsie, when the cousins were alone together for
+a moment after dinner.</p>
+
+<p>Elsie flushed.</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't know you'd like her," she said,
+evasively. "She's dreadfully young for her age,
+and not a bit like the New York girls."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, she's all right anyway," maintained
+Percy. "I only wish I'd known about her in
+time to get another ticket for the game last Saturday.
+But she went with some other friends,
+didn't she?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, she went," said Elsie, with a rather
+sarcastic smile. "She got some people at the
+hotel to take her in their car. You needn't
+worry about Marjorie; she knows how to take
+care of herself."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie spent another hour in her room on Friday
+morning, and was so cross and disagreeable<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span>
+at luncheon, that Marjorie wondered more and
+more what the matter could possibly be. But in
+the afternoon Elsie cheered up, and her cousin
+came to the conclusion that whatever the trouble
+had been, it was evidently over.</p>
+
+<p>The meeting was to begin at eight o'clock, so
+immediately after an early dinner, the two girls,
+accompanied as usual by Hortense, started in the
+carriage for Lulu's home, which was on Madison
+Avenue, only a few blocks away.</p>
+
+<p>Lulu was a charming little hostess, and gave
+her friends a cordial greeting, explaining that her
+mother and aunt would come down later, but it
+had been a stipulation with some of the Club
+members that nobody grown up was to hear the
+poems or take part in the initiation. Several of
+Miss Lothrop's girls had already arrived, and
+there were also present a few more young people,
+particular friends of Lulu's, who had been
+invited to join the Club.</p>
+
+<p>"I want you to meet my friend, Betty Randall,"
+Lulu said to Marjorie, as Elsie turned away
+to speak to other friends. "She's English, and
+just as nice as can be. She and her mother and
+brother are visiting us. She can't be a member,
+because they are all going back to England next
+week, but she and Jack are the special guests<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span>
+of the evening, and they are both to be allowed
+to vote on the poems."</p>
+
+<p>Betty Randall was a quiet, sweet-faced girl of
+fifteen, and Marjorie liked her at once.</p>
+
+<p>"Have you been in this country long?" she
+asked, when Lulu had left them together, and
+gone to greet other arriving guests. She could
+not help feeling a good deal interested in meeting
+"a real English girl."</p>
+
+<p>"Only since September," Betty answered,
+"but we used to live in New York. My mother
+is English, but she and my father came to this
+country when they were married, and my brother
+and I were both born in New York. We lived
+here until four years ago, when my uncle took
+us back to England to live with him."</p>
+
+<p>"I should think it would be wonderfully interesting
+to live in England," said Marjorie. "I
+suppose of course you have been in London, and
+seen the Tower and Westminster Abbey?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes," said Betty, smiling. "One of my
+uncle's places is quite near London, and we often
+motor into town. I like America, though; it
+always seems more like home. Do you know the
+names of all these girls?"</p>
+
+<p>"I know most of them; we go to the same
+school, but I haven't been in New York nearly<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span>
+as long as you have. My home is in Arizona,
+and I have only come here to spend the winter,
+and go to school with my cousin."</p>
+
+<p>Betty looked a little disappointed.</p>
+
+<p>"Then I suppose you can't tell me something
+I want to know very much," she said. "Lulu
+told me Dr. Randolph's nephew was to be here,
+and I do want to see him."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I can point him out to you," said Marjorie.
+"He lives at the Plaza, where my uncle
+has an apartment, and Elsie and I know him very
+well. There he is, that tall boy, who has just
+come in. Isn't he handsome?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, very," agreed Betty, regarding the new
+arrival with considerable interest. "I never met
+him, but his uncle was such a good friend to us
+once."</p>
+
+<p>"I know Dr. Randolph, too," said Marjorie;
+"he took us to New Haven in his car to see the
+game last Saturday. He is very kind."</p>
+
+<p>"Kind!" repeated Betty, with shining eyes;
+"he is more than kind, he is wonderful. He
+cured my brother, and made him walk, when he
+had been a cripple all his life."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie gave a little gasp, and some of the
+color went out of her face.</p>
+
+<p>"Tell me about it," she said, clasping her<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span>
+hands, and regarding her new acquaintance with
+such an eager expression in her eyes, that Betty
+was quite startled.</p>
+
+<p>"It was before we went back to England," she
+said. "We were living here in New York, and
+Winifred Hamilton and her father and mother
+had an apartment in the same house. My
+mother was taken very ill, and Winifred went
+for Lulu Bell's father, whom you know is a
+doctor. He was very good to us, and while attending
+mother he became very much interested
+in my brother, who was nine years old then, and
+had never walked a step since he was born. He
+brought Dr. Randolph to see Jack, and he felt
+sure something could be done for him, and persuaded
+Mother to let him be taken to a hospital.
+Mother consented, and Dr. Randolph performed
+a wonderful operation."</p>
+
+<p>"And does your brother walk now?" Marjorie
+asked almost breathlessly.</p>
+
+<p>"There he is," said Betty, smiling, and pointing
+to a tall boy of thirteen, who was standing
+near the door, talking to Winifred Hamilton.
+"You would never believe that he was a helpless
+cripple only four years ago, would you?"
+she added proudly.</p>
+
+<p>"No, indeed," said Marjorie; "it seems very<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span>
+wonderful. Do you suppose Dr. Randolph often
+performs such operations?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think so. Dr. Bell says he is one of the
+finest surgeons in the country. Why are you so
+much interested? Do you know some one who
+is a cripple, too?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Marjorie, with a sigh. "It's my
+aunt; she had a terrible accident eight years ago,
+and has never walked since. But she is away in
+Arizona; we could never ask Dr. Randolph to
+go all that distance to see her."</p>
+
+<p>"No, I suppose not," Betty admitted regretfully,
+"but couldn't your aunt be brought here
+to him? I know people come from all parts of
+the country to consult him. There was a little
+girl at the hospital when Jack was there, who
+had been brought all the way from Texas."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie thought of the long three-days journey,
+and of her father's desperate struggle to
+make both ends meet, but before she could
+answer, Lulu, as mistress of ceremonies&mdash;rapped
+sharply on the table, and the Club was
+called to order.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XV</h2>
+
+<h3>ELSIE TRIUMPHS</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">Ladies</span> and gentlemen," began Lulu, speaking
+in the tone she had heard her mother use
+when conducting a meeting of a charitable board
+of which she was president, "I think every one
+is now here, and I must request you all please
+to keep quiet during the reading of the poems.
+After the reading, votes will be taken as to the
+best poem, and the girl who gets the most votes
+will be elected president of this Club. The boys
+are particularly requested not to laugh at any
+of the poems. The first to be read is by Miss
+Winifred Hamilton, and is called 'Ria and the
+Bear.' Miss Hamilton wishes me to explain that
+she has never heard the name Ria, but chose it
+because it was the only word she could think of
+that rhymed with fear."</p>
+
+<p>There was a general titter from the audience,
+followed by a burst of applause, as Winifred,
+very red, and looking as if she were being led to
+execution, rose and announced:<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"It's perfectly awful, but it's the first poem
+I ever wrote in my life, and I want to say that
+I sha'n't be in the least offended if everybody
+laughs." Then, unfolding a small sheet of paper,
+she began to read very fast.</p>
+
+<div class='center'><br />"<span class="smcap">Ria And The Bear.</span><br /></div>
+<div class='poem'>
+
+<br />
+"The sky was of the darkest hue,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The grass beneath was wet with dew,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And through the trees the wind did howl,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Causing the hungry bears to growl.</span><br />
+<br />
+"All were protected from the storm,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">All but one wee, shivering form,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">She stood beneath an old elm tree,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The boughs of which from leaves were free.</span><br />
+<br />
+"A big bear darted through the wood,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">His instinct told him where she stood.</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Soon the monster came close to Ria,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">But the child showed no sign of fear.</span><br />
+<br />
+"As the big bear drew very close,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">She gave a pat to his cold nose,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">At this touch the bear did cease to growl,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And for response a joyful howl.</span><br />
+<br />
+"Then these two friends lay down together,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Quite heedless of the raging weather,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Upon the hard and frozen ground,</span><br />
+<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The two friends slept, both very sound.</span><br />
+<br />
+"But one of the two never awoke;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Long, long after the wind storm broke,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">She was discovered lying there,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Where she had died beside the bear."</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p>"Bravo! Winifred, that's fine!" shouted Jack
+Randall, and then followed a shout of laughter,
+in which everybody joined, Winifred herself as
+heartily as any of the others.</p>
+
+<p>"I told you it was awful," she said between
+gasps, "but Lulu said no one could be a member
+who didn't write a poem, so I had to do my
+best."</p>
+
+<p>"I should die of mortification if I were
+laughed at like that," whispered Elsie to Carol,
+who sat next to her. To which her friend replied
+sympathetically:</p>
+
+<p>"Of course you would, but then everybody
+isn't a genius like you."</p>
+
+<p>"The next poem," announced Lulu, when order
+had been restored, "is by Miss Marjorie
+Graham of Arizona. Get up, Marjorie."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's heart was beating rather fast as
+she rose, but there was a merry twinkle in her
+eye, and if her voice shook a little when she began
+to read, it was more from suppressed laughter
+than from fear.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span></p>
+
+
+
+<div class='center'>"<span class="smcap">The Boring Life of New York.</span><br /></div>
+
+<div class='poem'><br />
+"Some think it delightful to live in New York,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">But with them I do not agree;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">'Tis nothing but hustle and bustle and talk,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">All very distasteful to me.</span><br />
+<br />
+"I love all the pleasures the country can give,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">The beautiful flowers and the birds;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The city produces not one of these things,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Only traffic and crowds by the herds.</span><br />
+<br />
+"The city is good as a workshop for men,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Who in parks idle moments may pass,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">But the pleasure for children e'en there is quite spoiled,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">When a sign bids them 'Keep off the <ins title="Transcriber's Note: original reads 'Glass'">Grass</ins>.'"</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p>A burst of genuine applause followed this production,
+and Marjorie sat down again quite covered
+with confusion.</p>
+
+<p>"It's splendid; I couldn't have written anything
+half so good," whispered Betty encouragingly.
+"I am rather glad I am not to be a member
+of the Club, for I know I could never have
+written two lines that rhymed."</p>
+
+<p>"The next poem," continued Lulu, in her business-like
+tone, "is by Miss Gertrude Rossiter,"
+and Gertie, looking very much embarrassed, rose,
+and began:<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span></p>
+
+
+
+<div class='center'>"<span class="smcap">The Storm at Sea.</span><br /></div>
+<div class='poem'><br />
+"The waves did beat on a rocky shore;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The noise resounded more and more;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">A little craft was tossed on the sea,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And all knew that saved she might not be.</span><br />
+<br />
+"The crew were gathered on the deck,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Awaiting the crash of the awful wreck;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Many hearts stopped beating as the time drew near</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">To bid good-bye to their children dear.</span><br />
+<br />
+"The babies and children all did shriek,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And now their voices grew very weak.</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The staunch big men grew white with fear,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">At the thought of death that was so near.</span><br />
+<br />
+"But all at once the winds did cease,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The waves stopped tossing, and there was peace,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The children stopped crying; with joy they all laughed,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And gladness prevailed on that safe little craft."</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p>There was more applause, mingled with laughter,
+and Elsie whispered to Carol, quite loud
+enough to be heard by several others:</p>
+
+<p>"Did you ever hear anything so silly? Even
+the meter is wrong; there are too many words
+in some lines, and not enough in others."</p>
+
+<p>"Read yours next, Lulu," said Winifred, before<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span>
+her friend could make another announcement.
+"Lulu writes beautiful poetry," she
+added in a lower tone to Jack Randall; "I'm
+crazy to know what she's written this time."</p>
+
+<p>Lulu protested that as hostess her turn should
+come last, but several other girls joined their entreaties
+to Winifred's, and she was forced to
+yield. Blushing and smiling, she took a sheet
+of paper from her pocket, and began to read:</p>
+
+<div class='center'>
+"<span class="smcap">The Fire.</span><br /></div>
+<div class='poem'><br />
+"The forest trees were waving in the wind;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">The sun was slowly sinking o'er the hill,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The clouds in purple, gold and blue outlined,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Were mirrored in the still pond by the mill.</span><br />
+<br />
+"The birds were twittering their last good-night;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">The dainty flow'rets closing up their eyes,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">When all at once a fearful lurid light</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Shone in the many-colored sunset skies.</span><br />
+<br />
+"Quickly that awe-inspiring fire spread,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And many a tall and stately tree there fell.</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The timid animals and birds all fled,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And naught but charred remains were left the tale to tell.</span><br />
+<br />
+"At morn when in his glory rose the sun,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Over the blackened, devastated hill,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">The scene that there the traveler looked upon</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Seemed to his inmost heart to send a chill."</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Isn't she wonderful?" whispered Winifred
+excitedly to Jack. "I told you hers would be
+the best."</p>
+
+<p>"It's very pretty," Jack admitted, "but I
+think I like the one about Ria and the Bear the
+best of all."</p>
+
+<p>"The next poem," announced Lulu, when the
+applause had subsided, "is by Miss Elsie Carleton."</p>
+
+<p>There was a little flutter of excitement as
+Elsie rose&mdash;as the brightest girl in the school, a
+good deal was expected of her. Some of the
+girls noticed with surprise, that Elsie had grown
+rather pale, but her voice was as calm and superior
+as ever, when she unfolded her paper, and
+began:</p>
+
+<div class='center'>
+"GOD KNOWS.<br />
+</div>
+<div class='poem'><br />
+"Oh, wild and dark was the winter's night<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">When the emigrant ship went down,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">But just outside the harbor bar,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1em;">In the sight of the startled town.</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And the wind howled, and the sea roared,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And never a soul could sleep,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Save the little ones on their mothers' breasts,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Too young to watch and weep.</span><br />
+<br />
+"No boat could live in that angry surf,<br />
+<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">No rope could reach the land&mdash;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">There were bold, brave hearts upon the shore;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">There was many a helping hand;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Men who strove, and women who prayed,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Till work and prayer were vain;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And the sun rose over that awful void,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And the silence of the main.</span><br />
+<br />
+"All day the watchers paced the sand;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">All day they scanned the deep;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">All night the booming minute guns</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Echoed from steep to steep.</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">'Give up thy dead, oh cruel sea!'</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">They cried athwart the space,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">But only a baby's fragile form</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Escaped from its stern embrace.</span><br />
+<br />
+"Only one little child of all,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Who with the ship went down,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">That night while the happy babies slept</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">All warm in the sheltered town.</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">There in the glow of the morning light</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">It lay on the shifting sand,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Pure as a sculptor's marble dream,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">With a shell in its dimpled hand.</span><br />
+<br />
+"There were none to tell of its race or kin&mdash;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">'God knows,' the pastor said,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">When the sobbing children crowded to ask</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">The name of the baby dead.</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And so when they laid it away at last,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">In the churchyard's hushed repose,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">They raised a slab at the baby's head,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">With the carven words 'God knows.'"</span><br />
+</div><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>There was a general murmur of admiration, as
+Elsie sat down again, in the midst of a burst of
+applause louder than had greeted any of the other
+productions.</p>
+
+<p>"Wasn't it lovely?" whispered Winifred to
+Jack, as she wiped her eyes. "I do love those
+sad pieces, don't you?"</p>
+
+<p>"They're all right," said Jack, a little doubtfully,
+"but don't you like the funny ones that
+make you laugh, better? Ria and the Bear was
+so funny."</p>
+
+<p>"That poem is really beautiful," declared
+Betty Randall, turning to Marjorie, and speaking
+in a tone of hearty admiration. "She must
+be an awfully clever girl to have written it; it's
+quite good enough to be published."</p>
+
+<p>But Marjorie did not answer. She had given
+one violent start when Elsie began the first line
+of her poem, and at the same moment she had
+caught the expression on Beverly Randolph's
+face. After that she had sat quite still, with
+crimson cheeks, and a heart that was beating so
+loudly she was almost afraid people must hear
+it. In her mind was a mild confusion of feelings;
+astonishment, mortification, and incredulity,
+and, worst of all, the knowledge that at least one<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span>
+other person in the room besides herself knew.
+When the burst of applause came she was conscious
+of a momentary sensation of relief. At
+least no one was going to speak yet. She cast
+an imploring glance at Beverly, but his face expressed
+nothing beyond amusement and a sort of
+indifferent contempt.</p>
+
+<p>There were more poems read; some funny,
+some sentimental; but Marjorie scarcely heard
+them. In her thoughts there was room but for
+one thing. Even the wonderful story Betty
+had told about her brother and Dr. Randolph
+was swept away in the shock of the discovery
+she had made. Several times she glanced at
+Elsie, fully expecting to see some expression of
+shame or remorse but that young lady was looking
+the picture of smiling content.</p>
+
+<p>When the poems had all been read, there was
+a general move, and pencils and bits of paper
+were handed around.</p>
+
+<p>"One of the boys will pass round a hat," Lulu
+explained, "and you must all drop your votes
+into it." Then, with a sudden generous impulse,
+she went up to Elsie and held out her hand.</p>
+
+<p>"Yours was ever so much the best, Elsie,"
+she said, frankly; "you certainly deserve to be
+president."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Elsie just touched the outstretched hand with
+the tips of her fingers, and for one moment her
+eyes dropped and her color deepened.</p>
+
+<p>There was a moment of dead silence while the
+names were being written, then Gertie Rossiter's
+brother passed round the hat, and each girl and
+boy dropped a bit of paper into it.</p>
+
+<p>"I shall vote for Elsie Carleton, sha'n't you?"
+whispered Betty to Marjorie, but Marjorie shook
+her head.</p>
+
+<p>"I am going to vote for Lulu Bell," she said
+shortly.</p>
+
+<p>It was an exciting moment when Beverly Randolph
+and Rob Rossiter&mdash;the two oldest boys
+present&mdash;counted the votes and announced the
+results: "Elsie Carleton, thirteen. Lulu Bell,
+nine. Marjorie Graham, five. Gertie Rossiter,
+three, and Winifred Hamilton, one."</p>
+
+<p>The presidency of the Club was unanimously
+accorded to Elsie.</p>
+
+<p>Then came an hour of games and dancing, followed
+at half-past nine, by light refreshments.
+But although Marjorie entered into the gayety
+with the rest, her heart was very heavy, and she
+did not join in the congratulations which were
+being showered upon the new president, in which
+even Lulu's mother and aunt, who had come<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span>
+downstairs as soon as the initiation was over,
+joined heartily. Beverly Randolph was a general
+favorite, and devoted himself in turn to almost
+every girl in the room, but he, too, held
+aloof from the new president. He and Marjorie
+had no opportunity for private conversation till
+the refreshments were being served, when he
+approached her corner, with a plate of ice-cream.</p>
+
+<p>"Your 'Boring Life of New York' was fine,"
+he remarked, pleasantly, taking the vacant chair
+by her side. "I quite agree with your sentiment.
+I voted for you."</p>
+
+<p>"You are very kind," said Marjorie, blushing,
+"but it wasn't nearly as good as several of the
+others. Lulu's was splendid. You&mdash;you
+didn't like Elsie's?"</p>
+
+<p>"No, I didn't," said Beverly bluntly, "and
+you didn't, either."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's cheeks were crimson, but she made
+one desperate effort to save her cousin.</p>
+
+<p>"It was a beautiful little poem," she faltered,
+"only&mdash;only I thought&mdash;but perhaps I was
+mistaken&mdash;I'm sure Elsie wouldn't have done
+such a thing; it must have been a mistake."</p>
+
+<p>Beverly said nothing, but he did not look convinced.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Where&mdash;where did you see it before?"
+Marjorie went on desperately.</p>
+
+<p>"In an old volume of 'St. Nicholas' at home.
+My mother used to take the magazine when she
+was a little girl, and has all the volumes bound.
+I used to be very fond of some of the old stories,
+and so was my sister Barbara. I remember she
+learned that poem once to recite to Mother on
+her birthday."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's heart sank like lead. Well did she
+remember the old worn volumes of St. Nicholas&mdash;relics
+of her own mother's childhood&mdash;over
+which she had pored on many a rainy day at
+home. She cast an appealing glance at Beverly.</p>
+
+<p>"You won't tell?" she said unsteadily.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I won't; I'm not a cad. And look
+here, Marjorie; I wouldn't bother my head about
+it if I were you. Miss Elsie is quite able to fight
+her own battles."</p>
+
+<p>"But she is my cousin," said Marjorie in a
+very low voice, "and I'm so ashamed."</p>
+
+<p>Beverly's face softened, and his voice was very
+kind when he answered:</p>
+
+<p>"You're a brick, Marjorie; lots of girls
+wouldn't care. But don't let it make you unhappy.
+If I were you I'd have it out with Elsie;
+perhaps she'll have some excuse to offer."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Before Marjorie could answer Lulu came up
+to ask Beverly to come and be introduced to
+Betty Randall, who was particularly anxious to
+meet him, and he was obliged to hurry away.</p>
+
+<p>"What were you and that English girl talking
+about so long?" Elsie inquired, as she and Marjorie
+were driving home together half an hour
+later.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie roused herself from uncomfortable
+reflections with a start.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, nothing in particular," she said, "at
+least nothing you would be interested in. She
+was telling me about her brother, who used to be
+a cripple till Beverly Randolph's uncle cured him.
+He is a fine, strong-looking boy now&mdash;did you
+notice him?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. Did you know their uncle was a lord?"</p>
+
+<p>"Is he?" said Marjorie indifferently, and once
+more relapsed into silence. Elsie regarded her
+cousin in evident surprise.</p>
+
+<p>"What's the matter, Marjorie?" she inquired
+curiously. "You seem to be in the dumps, and
+I'm sure I can't see why. You really danced
+much better than I supposed you could. You're
+not jealous, are you?"</p>
+
+<p>"Jealous," repeated Marjorie, stupidly, "what
+about?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Why, your poem, of course, because you
+didn't get more votes. It really wasn't bad; I
+heard several of the girls say so."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I wasn't jealous," said Marjorie,
+indignantly. "I never dreamed of getting many
+votes. I think people were very kind to vote for
+me at all; it was just silly doggerel."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you needn't fly into a temper even if
+you're not jealous," laughed Elsie. "Do you
+know you never congratulated me on my poem.
+I think people thought it rather queer, when every
+one was saying how much they liked it."</p>
+
+<p>"I couldn't," said Marjorie in a low voice.</p>
+
+<p>"Why not?" demanded Elsie, sharply. She
+was evidently startled but beyond a slightly
+heightened color, she showed no sign of embarrassment.</p>
+
+<p>"I'll tell you when we get home," whispered
+Marjorie, with a glance at Hortense, who was
+sitting in the opposite seat.</p>
+
+<p>Not another word was spoken until the carriage
+drew up before the big hotel. Mr. and
+Mrs. Carleton were out, and the girls went at
+once to their rooms, without exchanging the
+usual good-nights. Marjorie's heart was beating
+painfully fast, and her cheeks were burning,
+but she did not waver in her determination to<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span>
+"have it out" with Elsie before they went to
+bed. So instead of beginning to undress, she
+sat down to wait until Hortense should have
+finished waiting on her cousin and gone away.
+She had, with some difficulty, at last succeeded in
+convincing the maid that she did not require assistance
+herself.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie will be terribly angry," she told herself
+mournfully, "and it will be very horrid and uncomfortable,
+but it wouldn't be honest not to let
+her know I recognized that poem. Perhaps she
+can explain&mdash;oh, I do hope she can&mdash;and then
+I can tell Beverly, and everything will be all right
+again."</p>
+
+<p>She heard the outer door close behind Hortense,
+and was just about to go to her cousin's
+room, when her door was pushed unceremoniously
+open and Elsie herself came in. Elsie's
+cheeks were flushed, and her eyes were flashing,
+but whether with anger or excitement Marjorie
+could not tell.</p>
+
+<p>"Well," she began in a tone which she evidently
+intended to be quite cheerful and indifferent,
+"I've gotten rid of Hortense. She seemed
+to think she ought to stay till Papa and Mamma
+came home, but I told her we didn't need her.
+Now you can tell me what you said you would<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span>
+when we got home. Do be quick about it,
+though, for I'm awfully sleepy, and I want to
+go to bed."</p>
+
+<p>Before answering Marjorie went over to her
+cousin's side, and laid a timid hand on her shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie," she said gently, "I'm so sorry; I hate
+to say it, but I've got to. It's&mdash;about that
+poem; I've read it before. You didn't think you
+really made it up, did you?"</p>
+
+<p>With an angry gesture Elsie pushed away her
+cousin's hand.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I made it up," she said angrily;
+"how dare you say I didn't? I don't believe
+you ever saw a poem like it before in
+your life; you only say so because you're
+jealous."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Elsie, how can you say such dreadful
+things?" cried poor Marjorie, clasping her hands
+in her distress, and on the verge of tears. "How
+could I possibly be jealous of any one so much
+cleverer than myself? I've been so proud of
+you, Elsie&mdash;indeed, indeed I have&mdash;but I read
+that poem in an old 'St. Nicholas' at home. I
+remembered it because it was so pretty. Beverly
+Randolph remembers it, too; he&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>"Beverly Randolph!" cried Elsie, her eyes<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span>
+flashing ominously; "so you told him about it,
+did you? That accounts for his not congratulating
+me when all the others did. Marjorie
+Graham, you are the meanest, most contemptible
+girl I have ever known. To think of your doing
+such a thing after all Papa and Mamma have
+done for you! But if you suppose for one moment
+that any one is going to take your word
+against mine, you'll find yourself very much mistaken.
+I shall write a note to Beverly Randolph
+to-morrow. A nice opinion he must have of you
+already&mdash;boys hate sneaks."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm not a sneak," retorted Marjorie, her own
+eyes beginning to flash. "I wouldn't have told
+Beverly Randolph or any one else such a thing
+for the world; I would have been ashamed to
+have them know. He recognized the poem, too.
+I saw he did the minute you began to read&mdash;and
+afterwards he spoke of it. But he won't
+tell; he promised not to, and&mdash;oh, Elsie I
+thought you might be able to explain it in some
+way."</p>
+
+<p>"There isn't anything to explain," said Elsie,
+obstinately. "If you and that horrid Randolph
+boy choose to say wicked things about me you
+can, but you are not everybody, and when my
+friends hear about it I think they'll have something<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span>
+to say." And without another word, Elsie
+walked out of the room, slamming the door behind her,
+and her cousin was left to cry herself
+to sleep undisturbed.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XVI</h2>
+
+<h3>THE THINGS THAT HURT</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Marjorie</span> awoke the next morning with a
+very heavy heart. Although Elsie's companionship
+had not proved quite all she had anticipated,
+still they had hitherto been perfectly good friends.
+Marjorie had looked upon her clever cousin with
+genuine admiration, and if in some things Elsie
+had disappointed her, she had explained the fact
+to herself by remembering how different life in
+New York was from life in Arizona.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie has so many friends," she had told herself
+over and over again; "of course I can't expect
+her to be as fond of me as I am of her."</p>
+
+<p>But last night's discovery had been a cruel disappointment,
+and her cousin's parting words had
+hurt more than perhaps Elsie herself fully
+realized. She had lain awake a long time, hoping&mdash;almost
+expecting&mdash;that Elsie would
+come back to tell her she was sorry. She was
+so ready to forgive, herself, and even to make allowances,
+but no sound had come from the adjoining room,
+and she had fallen asleep at last,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span>
+still hoping that morning might bring about the
+longed-for reconciliation.</p>
+
+<p>It was still very early, but accustomed all her
+life to the early hours of the ranch, she had not
+yet learned to sleep as late as the other members
+of the family. She tossed about in bed for
+half an hour, vainly trying to go to sleep again,
+and then suddenly determined to get up.</p>
+
+<p>"If I could only have a canter on Roland, or
+a good long tramp before breakfast," she thought,
+with a regretful sigh, "I know it would clear the
+cobwebs from my brain, and I should feel ever
+so much better. But since that is out of the
+question, I may as well answer Undine's letter.
+She will like a letter all to herself, and I shall
+have plenty of time to write before the others are
+up."</p>
+
+<p>Accordingly, as soon as she was dressed, she
+sat down at her desk, and began a letter, which
+she was determined to make as bright and cheerful
+as possible.</p>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><div class='right'>
+
+"<span class="smcap">New York</span>, November 28th.<br />
+</div>
+
+"<span class="smcap">Dear Undine</span>:
+
+<p>"I was delighted to get your nice letter last
+week, but this is the very first spare moment I
+have had in which to answer it. It is still very<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span>
+early&mdash;only a little after six&mdash;and nobody else
+is up, but I can't get accustomed to the queer
+New York hours. Just think, nobody has breakfast
+much before half past eight, and instead of
+dinner at twelve or one, we don't dine till half
+past seven. I thought I should be dreadfully
+hungry when I first heard at what hour New
+York people dined, but really luncheon&mdash;which
+they have in the middle of the day&mdash;is almost
+the same as dinner. I have eaten so much since
+I came here that I am sure I must have gained
+pounds already.</p>
+
+<p>"I wrote Father all about the football game,
+and what a wonderful day I had. Since then
+we have had Thanksgiving, and that was very
+pleasant too, though of course not as exciting as
+the football match and the motor ride. We all
+dined with Aunt Julia's sister, Mrs. Lamont.
+Mrs. Lamont's son, who is an artist, and very
+clever, drew funny sketches on all the dinner
+cards, and his sister made up the verses. I
+think my card was lovely; it had a picture of a
+girl riding a horse, and the verse underneath was:</p>
+
+<div class='poem'>
+"'Welcome, Western stranger<br />
+To our Thanksgiving board,<br />
+May you have a jolly time,<br />
+And not be very bored.'<br />
+</div><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Miss Annie says she isn't a poet, and I don't
+suppose any of the verses were really very good,
+but they made everybody laugh. It was funny
+to have 'board' and 'bored' in the same verse,
+but Miss Lamont said she got hopelessly stuck
+when she had written the first two lines, and had
+to end up with 'bored,' because it was the only
+word she could think of to rhyme with 'the
+Thanksgiving board.' I sat next to Mr. Ward&mdash;Aunt
+Julia's other sister's husband&mdash;and he
+was very kind, and told funny stories all the time.
+After dinner we had charades, and played old-fashioned
+games, which were great fun.</p>
+
+<p>"<ins title="Transcriber's Note: original reads 'Luly'">Lulu</ins> Bell, one of the girls at school, has
+gotten up a Club, which is to meet every Friday
+evening at the different girls' houses. We had
+the first meeting last night, and every girl had
+to write a poem in order to become a member.
+Some of the poems were very clever, and some
+very funny. One girl made 'close' rhyme with
+'nose.' My poem was silly, but I am going to
+send it to Aunt Jessie, because she likes to keep
+all my foolish little things.</p>
+
+<p>"I am so glad you are happy, and are growing
+so fond of Mother and Aunt Jessie. The
+more people I meet, the more convinced I am
+that they are the two of the very best in the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span>
+world. I am glad, too, that you are trying not
+to worry about the things you can't remember.
+I have told the girls at school about you, and
+they all think you are the most wonderful person
+they have ever heard of. The lady who
+took me to the football game had a little girl
+who was killed in the San Francisco earthquake.
+Her brother told me about it, and it is a very
+sad story. He asked me not to mention you to
+his mother, because it always distresses her to
+hear anything about the earthquake. She is
+perfectly lovely, and so bright and jolly that it
+seems hard to realize she has had such a great
+sorrow, but her son says that is because she is
+so unselfish, and is always thinking of other people.
+Isn't it wonderful how many brave, unselfish
+people there are in the world?</p>
+
+<p>"I have met a surgeon. He is the gentleman
+in whose car we went to New Haven last
+Saturday, and he is just as nice and kind as he
+can be. He is very clever too, and has performed
+some wonderful operations, but oh, Undine
+dear, I am afraid I shall never have the
+courage to speak to him about Aunt Jessie. Arizona
+is so far away, and it would be so terribly
+presumptuous to even suggest the possibility of
+a great surgeon's taking such a journey to see a<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span>
+person he didn't even know. Still, if it could
+only happen&mdash;I pray about it every day.</p>
+
+<p>"I must stop writing now, and study a little
+before breakfast. Be sure to write again very
+soon, and don't forget to give me every scrap of
+news about every one and everything. Kiss
+Roland's dear soft nose for me, and tell him not
+to forget his old mistress. Heaps of love and
+kisses for everybody, with a good share for
+yourself thrown in, from</p>
+
+<div class='sig'>
+<span style="margin-right: 4em;">"Your true friend,</span><br />
+"<span class="smcap">Marjorie Graham.</span>"<br />
+</div></div>
+
+<p>When Elsie entered the sitting-room, she
+found her uncle and cousin already at the breakfast
+table. Mrs. Carleton had a headache, and
+was breakfasting in bed. Mr. Carleton's morning
+greeting was as pleasant and affectionate as
+usual, but Elsie merely vouchsafed a slight nod,
+and a muttered "good-morning," and then kept
+her eyes steadily on her plate, as though to avoid
+any friendly overtures on Marjorie's part.</p>
+
+<p>"What are you little girls going to do to-day?"
+Mr. Carleton inquired pleasantly, as he
+rose from the table.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm going to dancing-school this morning,"
+said Elsie, "and then to lunch with Carol."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carlton glanced inquiringly at Marjorie.</p>
+
+<p>"And you?" he asked kindly&mdash;"are you going
+to dancing-school, too?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie hesitated, and her color rose. It
+had been suggested that she should accompany
+Elsie to the dancing class that morning, and that
+Aunt Julia should make arrangements about having
+her admitted as a regular pupil, but after
+what had happened last night she did not
+feel at all sure that Elsie would desire her
+society.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm&mdash;I'm not quite sure," she faltered; "I
+think Aunt Julia may want me to go out with
+her."</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton looked a little troubled, and when
+he left the room he beckoned his daughter to follow
+him.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie dear," he said in a rather low voice, as
+he put on his overcoat in the entry, "I wish you
+would try to do something to give Marjorie a
+good time to-day. She is looking rather down-hearted
+this morning, and I'm afraid she may be
+a little homesick. Can't you arrange to take her
+out to luncheon with you?"</p>
+
+<p>Elsie shrugged her shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>"She hasn't been invited," she said, shortly.
+She did not think it necessary to add that Carol<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span>
+Hastings had proposed that Marjorie should
+make one of the party, but that she herself had
+opposed the plan, declaring that they would have
+a much pleasanter time by themselves.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton frowned.</p>
+
+<p>"I should think you knew Carol Hastings well
+enough to ask her if you might bring Marjorie
+with you," he said impatiently. "Remember,
+Elsie, what I have told you several times before;
+I won't have Marjorie neglected."</p>
+
+<p>Now it was rather unfortunate that Mr. Carleton
+should have chosen just this particular time
+for reminding his daughter of her duty. As a
+rule, his words would have produced the desired
+effect, for Elsie stood considerably in awe of her
+father, but just at present she was very angry
+with Marjorie, and this admonition only made
+her angrier still.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie is all right," she said, sulkily;
+"she manages to have a good time wherever she
+goes. If you knew as much about her as I do
+you wouldn't worry for fear she might be neglected."</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton did not look satisfied, but he had
+an appointment to keep, and there was no time
+for argument, so, after giving his daughter a
+good-bye kiss, and telling her to be an unselfish<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span>
+little girl, he hurried away, and had soon forgotten
+the incident in the interest of more important
+matters.</p>
+
+<p>Elsie did not go back to the parlor, but went at
+once to her mother's room, where she remained
+for some time with the door closed. Marjorie,
+having finished her breakfast, wandered aimlessly
+over to the window, where she stood looking
+down at the crowds of people and vehicles in the
+street below. It was a lovely morning and, early
+as it was, the park seemed full of children.
+Some had already mounted their ponies, and
+others were on roller skates or bicycles. How
+Marjorie longed to join them, but going out
+alone was strictly forbidden. She was feeling
+very unhappy, and more homesick than at any
+time since coming to New York.</p>
+
+<p>"I must get something to do or I shall make a
+goose of myself and begin to cry," she said desperately,
+and picking up the first book she found
+on the table, she plunged into it haphazard, and
+when Elsie returned she found her cousin to all
+appearances quite absorbed in "The Letters of
+Queen Victoria."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie did not speak, but seating herself at the
+piano, began practicing exercises as if her life depended
+on it. Marjorie closed her book, and sat<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span>
+watching her cousin in silence for several minutes;
+then she spoke.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, what is it?" inquired Elsie, wheeling
+round on the piano stool.</p>
+
+<p>"Aren't you going to be friends with me?"</p>
+
+<p>"I certainly am not unless you intend to apologize
+for the outrageous things you said to me last
+night. I've been telling Mamma about it, and
+she is very angry."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie rose.</p>
+
+<p>"I can't apologize, Elsie; you know I can't,"
+she said, steadily, and without another word she
+turned and left the room.</p>
+
+<p>When Mrs. Carleton entered her niece's room
+an hour later, she found Marjorie curled up in a
+little disconsolate heap on the bed, her face buried
+in the pillows. Aunt Julia was still in her
+morning wrapper, and was looking decidedly
+worried.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie," she began in a rather fretful tone,
+as she closed the door, and sank wearily into the
+arm-chair, "I am very much distressed by what
+Elsie tells me. I have come to ask you what it
+all means."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie raised a swollen, tear-stained face
+from the pillows.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"What has Elsie told you?" she inquired anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton pressed her hand to her forehead.</p>
+
+<p>"O dear!" she sighed, "my head aches so this
+morning, and I do dislike all these quarrels and
+arguments. I did hope you and Elsie would get
+on together without quarreling."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't want to quarrel," protested Marjorie;
+"what does Elsie say about me?"</p>
+
+<p>"She says you have been very unkind and unjust
+to her. She won't tell me what it is all
+about. I tried to make her tell, but Elsie is so
+honorable; she hates tale-bearing. But I know
+you have hurt her pride, and made her very unhappy."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was silent; what could she say?
+And after a moment her aunt went on in her
+fretful, complaining voice.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe you have the least idea what
+a noble, splendid girl Elsie is. It was rather
+hard for her at first when she heard you were
+coming to spend the winter, for of course it
+couldn't help making some difference. She has
+never had to share anything with any one else
+before. But she was so sweet and unselfish
+about it, and I did hope things might go on as<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span>
+they had begun. But now you have begun to
+quarrel, and I suppose there will be nothing but
+trouble and unpleasantness all winter."</p>
+
+<p>"She was so sweet and unselfish about it!"
+How those words hurt Marjorie, and all the time
+she had been thinking that Elsie had looked forward
+to meeting her almost, if not quite as much,
+as she had looked forward to knowing the cousin
+who was "the next best thing to a sister." It
+was only by a mighty effort that she managed to
+choke back the flood of scalding tears, which
+threatened to overwhelm her.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm very sorry, Aunt Julia," she said tremulously;
+"I didn't mean to quarrel with Elsie. If
+she had told you what it was about perhaps you
+would have understood."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, she wouldn't tell," said Mrs. Carleton,
+crossly, "so there is no use in talking about that.
+All I want to say to you is that I am very much
+annoyed, and sincerely hope nothing so unpleasant
+will happen again. Elsie has gone to dancing-school,
+and Hortense has gone with her, as
+my head was so bad. Now I am going back to
+my room to lie down for a while; perhaps I may
+be better by luncheon time."</p>
+
+<p>That was the most unhappy day Marjorie had
+ever spent in her life. It seemed to her as if the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span>
+morning would never end, and when her aunt appeared
+at luncheon she still wore an air of injured
+dignity, and entertained Marjorie during
+the meal, with a long account of Elsie's many accomplishments,
+a subject of which her niece was
+becoming heartily tired, although she would
+scarcely have admitted the fact even to herself.
+Soon after luncheon Mr. Carleton telephoned to
+say that he would come uptown in time to drive
+with his wife, and Aunt Julia proposed that Marjorie
+should go for a walk with Hortense. The
+girl's own head was aching by this time, and she
+was glad of a brisk walk in the keen, frosty air,
+but she was so unusually silent and preoccupied,
+that the maid asked her anxiously if she "had the
+homesickness."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Marjorie, with a catch in her
+voice, "I've got it badly to-day."</p>
+
+<p>"Ah, I understand," murmured Hortense,
+softly, "Mademoiselle is like me&mdash;I, too, often
+have the homesickness."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie did not reach home till after five, as
+Carol's mother had taken the two girls to the
+theater, and even then she took no notice of Marjorie,
+but went at once to her mother's room,
+where Marjorie heard her giving a long and animated
+account of the play she had seen.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"By the way," remarked Mr. Carleton at dinner
+that evening, "I forgot to ask about the Club&mdash;how
+did the poems turn out?"</p>
+
+<p>There was a moment's embarrassed silence, and
+Marjorie's heart began to beat very fast; then
+Elsie spoke.</p>
+
+<p>"They were all very silly," she said, indifferently.
+"I told Lulu it was nonsense having all
+the girls write poems."</p>
+
+<p>"Whose poem was the best?" Mr. Carleton
+asked.</p>
+
+<p>"They made me president of the Club," said
+Elsie, her eyes bent on her plate; "my poem got
+the most votes."</p>
+
+<p>"I was sure it would," murmured Mrs. Carleton,
+with an adoring glance at her clever daughter.
+"Why didn't you tell us about it before,
+darling&mdash;you knew how interested we would
+be?"</p>
+
+<p>"Let me see the poem," said Mr. Carleton,
+good-naturedly; "I should like to judge its merits
+for myself."</p>
+
+<p>"I can't; I've torn it up." Elsie tried to speak
+in a tone of complete indifference, but her
+cheeks were crimson, and her father watched her
+curiously.</p>
+
+<p>"My darling child, how very foolish!" remonstrated<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span>
+Mrs. Carleton. "You know your
+father and I always want to see everything
+you write. Why in the world did you tear it
+up?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it wasn't any good," said Elsie, with an
+uneasy glance at Marjorie; "some of the girls
+thought Lulu's poem was better."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe it was, though," Mrs. Carleton
+maintained with conviction. "Wasn't Elsie's
+poem much the best, Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>It was a dreadful moment for poor Marjorie.
+She had never told a lie in her life, and yet how
+could she offend her uncle and aunt, who were
+doing so much for her, and who both adored
+Elsie? She cast an appealing glance at her
+cousin, and remained silent.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, you needn't ask Marjorie," remarked
+Elsie, with a disagreeable laugh; "she doesn't
+like my poem. She only got five votes herself, so
+I suppose it's rather hard for her to judge of
+other people's poetry."</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton frowned, and Mrs. Carleton
+looked distressed, but no more was said on the
+subject, for which Marjorie felt sincerely thankful.</p>
+
+<p>The next day was Sunday, and the most unhappy,
+homesick day Marjorie had spent in New<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span>
+York. Her uncle was the only member of the
+family who continued to treat her as usual. Elsie
+scarcely spoke to her, and Aunt Julia, though
+evidently making an effort to be kind, showed so
+plainly by her manner that she was both hurt and
+displeased, that poor Marjorie's heart grew
+heavier and heavier. They all went to church in
+the morning, and in the afternoon Elsie went for
+a drive with her mother, and Mr. Carleton retired
+to his own room to read and write letters.
+Marjorie began her usual home letter, but had
+not written half a page when she broke down,
+and spent the next half hour in having a good
+cry, which was perhaps the most satisfactory
+thing she could have done under the circumstances.</p>
+
+<p>She had just dried her eyes, and having made
+a brave resolution not to be so foolish again, was
+sitting down with the intention of going on with
+her letter, when she heard her uncle's voice calling
+her from the sitting-room.</p>
+
+<p>"Come here, Marjorie," said Mr. Carleton,
+kindly, as his niece appeared in answer to his
+summons. "Sit down and let us have a little
+talk before the others come home."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie complied. She hoped devoutly that
+her uncle would not notice that she had been crying,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span>
+but perhaps Uncle Henry's eyes were
+sharper than his family always suspected.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie," he said abruptly, "I want you to
+tell me what this trouble is between you and
+Elsie."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie gave a little gasp, and her cheeks
+grew pink.</p>
+
+<p>"I&mdash;I'm afraid I can't tell you, Uncle
+Henry," she faltered; "you had better ask
+Elsie."</p>
+
+<p>"I have asked her, and so has your aunt, but
+she refused to tell us anything except that you
+have quarreled about something, and that you
+have treated her rather unkindly."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's eyes flashed indignantly, and she bit
+her lips to keep back the angry words.</p>
+
+<p>"Now I happen to know a good deal about
+these little quarrels of Elsie's," Mr. Carleton went
+on quietly. "She is a good girl, and a clever
+one, too, but she has her faults and I have no reason
+to suppose that you are any more to blame
+than she in this case. All I want is a clear account
+of what happened, and then I can settle
+this tempest in a teapot, which I can see has
+been making you both unhappy for the past two
+days."</p>
+
+<p>By this time Marjorie had succeeded in controlling<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span>
+her temper, and her voice was quite clear
+and steady as she answered&mdash;</p>
+
+<p>"I am very sorry, Uncle Henry, but if Elsie
+hasn't told you what the trouble is, I am afraid I
+can't tell either. Please don't be angry, or think
+me disrespectful, but I can't tell; it wouldn't be
+fair."</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton was evidently displeased.</p>
+
+<p>"Very well," he said, turning away coldly, and
+taking up a book, "I have no more to say on the
+matter. I am sorry, for I hoped you would have
+sufficient confidence in your aunt and me to trust
+us, and confide in us. I do not wish to force you
+to tell us anything against your will, but you must
+remember that your mother has placed you under
+our care."</p>
+
+<p>The tears rushed to Marjorie's eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Uncle Henry!" she began, then checked
+herself abruptly, and, with a half suppressed sob,
+turned and fled back to her own room.</p>
+
+<p>It was more than an hour later when Elsie presented
+herself at her cousin's door.</p>
+
+<p>"May I come in, Marjorie?" she inquired in
+a rather conciliatory tone.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie looked up from the letter she was
+writing; her face brightening with sudden hope.</p>
+
+<p>"Of course you may," she said, heartily.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Elsie, do let us make up; I can't stand not
+being friends with people I love."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie advanced slowly into the room and closed
+the door.</p>
+
+<p>"Papa has been talking to me," she said, "and
+I have promised him to forgive you for what you
+said to me the other night. You&mdash;you didn't
+tell him anything, did you?"</p>
+
+<p>"No," said Marjorie indignantly, "of course
+I didn't. He asked me, but I wouldn't tell. I'm
+afraid I made him angry."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie looked much relieved.</p>
+
+<p>"That's all right," she said, speaking more
+pleasantly than she had done since the meeting
+of the Poetry Club. "We won't say any more
+about it. I've torn up that silly poem, and nobody
+is going to remember it. If Beverly Randolph
+should ever say anything to you, you can
+tell him it was just a joke. Now come into my
+room, and I'll tell you all about the good time
+Carol and I had yesterday."</p>
+
+<p>But although Marjorie accepted the olive
+branch, and she and Elsie were apparently as
+good friends as ever that evening, her confidence
+in her cousin had been cruelly shaken, and she
+told herself sadly that she could never feel quite
+the same towards Elsie again. Still, it was a<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span>
+great comfort to be on good terms once more,
+and to see the worried expression disappear from
+Aunt Julia's face, even though she could not help
+feeling a slight shock on hearing her aunt remark
+in a low tone to her uncle at the dinner
+table:</p>
+
+<p>"Isn't Elsie sweet? I really think she has the
+most lovable, forgiving disposition I have ever
+known."</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XVII</h2>
+
+<h3>BEVERLY SINGS "MANDALAY"</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">It</span> was a stormy December afternoon, about
+ten days later, and Marjorie was alone in her
+room preparing her lessons for the next day.
+Elsie had gone shopping with her mother, and
+Hortense had been sent on an errand. Marjorie
+was aroused from the intricacies of a difficult
+mathematical problem by a ring at the bell, and
+on going to the door, found Beverly Randolph
+standing on the threshold.</p>
+
+<p>It was the first time the two had been alone together
+since the evening of the Initiation, and in
+spite of herself, Marjorie felt her cheeks growing
+hot as she asked the visitor to come in. But
+Beverly had no intention of referring to unpleasant
+bygones.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm so glad to find you at home," he said,
+with his pleasant smile and in the voice that always
+put people at their ease. "My mother sent
+me to ask if you would come and sit with her for
+a while this afternoon, provided you have nothing<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span>
+more important to do. She is laid up with a
+cold, and is feeling rather blue and forlorn."</p>
+
+<p>"I should love to come," said Marjorie, her
+face brightening at the prospect. "I was afraid
+your mother might not be well when I didn't see
+her at luncheon. I hope she isn't really ill."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, no; nothing but a disagreeable cold, that
+has kept her in the house for the past two days.
+I'm glad you can come, for I'm sure it will cheer
+her up."</p>
+
+<p>"All right," said Marjorie; "I'll come in just
+a minute. I must leave a note for Aunt Julia in
+case she should get home before I do."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie found Mrs. Randolph sitting in an
+arm-chair by the fire, looking rather pale and
+tired, but her greeting to the girl was just as kind
+and cheerful as usual, and Marjorie hoped that
+it was only in her imagination that she saw that
+sad, wistful expression in her kind friend's eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"Now sit down and tell me about all you have
+been doing," said Mrs. Randolph, when the first
+greetings had been exchanged. "I love to hear
+about the things girls are interested in. My little
+Barbara used to tell me of all her good times
+as well as her troubles. I am so glad you have
+brought your work&mdash;what are you making?"</p>
+
+<p>"A shawl for my aunt's Christmas present;<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span>
+one of the girls at school taught me the stitch,
+and I think it's going to be very pretty. I shall
+have to work hard, though, to finish it in time.
+Do you like the color?"</p>
+
+<p>"Very much," said Mrs. Randolph. "I suppose
+this will be your first Christmas away from
+home?"</p>
+
+<p>A shadow crossed Marjorie's bright face. "I
+try not to think of it," she said. "It's going to
+be pretty hard, but every one has been so kind,
+and Uncle Henry and Aunt Julia are doing so
+much for me, that it wouldn't be right to be unhappy.
+I think perhaps if I keep very busy I
+shall manage to get on all right. Aunt Jessie
+says that's a good way of making the best of
+things that can't be helped."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph said nothing, but the look she
+gave Marjorie was such an understanding one
+that the girl's heart warmed towards her more
+and more. The next half-hour slipped away
+very pleasantly. Mrs. Randolph was one of
+those rare people who have the power of drawing
+others out, and Marjorie chatted away to her of
+school and school-friends, and all the little unimportant
+happenings of her New York life, with
+almost as much freedom as she would have talked
+to her mother or aunt. Then Mrs. Randolph<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span>
+asked her if she liked reading aloud, and when
+Marjorie assured her that she had read a great
+deal to Aunt Jessie, she explained that, owing to
+a cold in her eyes, she had not been able to read
+herself for several days. Marjorie was delighted
+to be of real use, and they were soon deep in
+an interesting story. Marjorie read aloud very
+well, and it was an accomplishment of which she
+was rather proud.</p>
+
+<p>At five o'clock Beverly, who had gone to his
+room to "cram," as he expressed it, returned,
+and his mother rang the bell for tea.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie and I have had a delightful afternoon,"
+she said; "she seems to be almost as fond
+of reading aloud as I am of listening. I am going
+to be very selfish and ask her to come again
+to-morrow, provided she can spare the time.
+The doctor doesn't want me to use my eyes much
+for several days."</p>
+
+<p>"I shall just love to come," declared Marjorie
+eagerly, "and I can easily manage it. My lessons
+aren't very hard, and I always have a good
+deal of time to myself every day."</p>
+
+<p>"Don't you and your cousin ever go off together
+in the afternoons?" Beverly inquired
+bluntly.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie blushed.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Not very often," she admitted reluctantly.
+"You see, Elsie has so many more friends than I
+have, and they are always doing things together.
+I like the girls at school ever so much, and they
+are all very nice and kind to me, but of course
+they don't know me very well yet."</p>
+
+<p>"How did the last meeting of the Club come
+off?" Beverly asked. "I was sorry I couldn't
+go, but I had another engagement."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was conscious of a sensation of embarrassment
+at this mention of the Club, for she
+had not forgotten the secret that she and Beverly
+shared together, but she tried to answer quite
+naturally.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, it was very pleasant. The girls have decided
+to sew for the little blind children at the
+'Home For Blind Babies.' We sewed for three
+quarters of an hour, and then Carol said we
+might as well stop, and begin to get ready for the
+boys. They weren't invited till nine, but some
+of the girls seemed to think it would take some
+time to get ready for them, though there really
+wasn't anything in particular to do. I hope
+they'll sew a little longer next time, for if they
+don't I'm afraid the Club won't accomplish very
+much."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph and Beverly both laughed, and<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span>
+then Beverly sauntered over to the piano, and
+began to drum.</p>
+
+<p>"Sing something, dear," said his mother.
+"Are you fond of music, Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think I should be if I had a chance of hearing
+much," said Marjorie, smiling, "but until I
+came to New York I had scarcely ever heard any
+music except the boys singing on the ranch.
+Mother used to play a little when she was a girl,
+but we haven't any piano. I love to hear Elsie
+play."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I think you will like to hear Beverly
+sing; you know he is on the college Glee Club.
+Sing that pretty Irish ballad, 'She Is Far From
+the Land,' Beverly; I am sure Marjorie will like
+that."</p>
+
+<p>Beverly laughingly protested that he had no
+voice whatever, and was sure Marjorie would
+want to run away the moment he began to sing,
+but good-naturedly yielded to his mother's request,
+and after striking a few preliminary
+chords, began in a clear tenor voice&mdash;</p>
+
+<div class='center'>
+"'She is far from the land where the young hero lies.'"<br />
+</div>
+
+<p>Marjorie&mdash;who had a real love for music&mdash;was
+much impressed, and at the close of the ballad,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span>
+begged so earnestly for more, that Beverly
+could not help being flattered, and his mother
+beamed with pleasure.</p>
+
+<p>Beverly sang several more ballads, and one or
+two college songs, and then, after strumming
+idly on the piano for a moment, as if uncertain
+what to sing next, he suddenly broke into an air
+Marjorie knew.</p>
+
+<div class='poem'>
+"'In the old Mulniam pagoda,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Lookin' eastward to the sea;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">There's a Burma gal a-waitin',</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And I know she thinks of me;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">For the wind is in the palm-trees,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And the Temple bells they say,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Come you back, you British soldier,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Come you back to Mandalay.</span><br />
+<br />
+"'Come you back to Mandalay,<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Where the old flotilla lay,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Can't you 'ear their paddles chunkin'</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">From Rangoon to Mandalay?</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">On the road to Mandalay,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Where the flyin' fishes play,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">And the sun comes up like thunder,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Outer China 'cross the bay.'"</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p>Marjorie turned with a start, arrested by the
+sound of a low, half-suppressed sob. Mrs. Randolph
+had covered her face with her hands, and
+was crying softly. At the same moment Beverly
+also turned, and, with an exclamation of dismay,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span>
+hastily sprang to his feet, and hurried to his
+mother's side.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Mother dear, I'm so sorry!" cried the
+boy, dropping on his knees, and trying to draw
+Mrs. Randolph's hands down from her face. "I
+never thought; it was very careless. Oh, Mother
+darling, please don't cry&mdash;please forgive me!"</p>
+
+<p>At the sound of her son's voice, Mrs. Randolph
+looked up, and tried to smile through her
+tears.</p>
+
+<p>"Never mind, dear," she said, gently, "it was
+very foolish of me, but that song&mdash;you know
+how fond she was of it."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, Mother, I know; I was a brute to have
+forgotten." And Beverly put his strong young
+arms tenderly round his mother. Mrs. Randolph
+laid her head on his shoulder for a moment,
+as if she found comfort in the touch, and
+then she roused herself with an effort, dried her
+eyes, and turned to Marjorie.</p>
+
+<p>"You must excuse me for being so foolish,
+dear," she said, "but that was my little Barbara's
+favorite song; she was always asking Beverly
+to sing it. I don't think I have heard it since&mdash;since
+she went away."</p>
+
+<p>There were tears of sympathy in Marjorie's
+eyes, and although she said nothing, the look she<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span>
+gave her friend touched Mrs. Randolph, and perhaps
+comforted her more than any words would
+have done.</p>
+
+<div class="figleft" style="width: 314px;">
+<img src="images/i-003.jpg" width="314" height="500" alt="&quot;Oh, Mother Dear, I&#39;m so Sorry!&quot;&mdash;Page 243." title="" />
+<span class="caption">&quot;<span class='smcap'>Oh, Mother Dear, I&#39;m so Sorry!</span>&quot;&mdash;Page 243.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>Beverly did not sing again, but quietly closed
+the piano, and for the rest of the afternoon his
+merry boyish face was unusually grave.</p>
+
+<p>"You have given me a great deal of pleasure,"
+Mrs. Randolph said, when Marjorie at last rose
+to go. "I hope you will come again to-morrow.
+It is very tiresome to have to stay in the house
+all day, especially when one hasn't the solace of
+reading."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie said she would surely come again,
+and then she hurried back to their own apartment,
+where she found her aunt and cousin, who
+had come in some time before.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton had read Marjorie's note, and
+had no objection to the girl's spending as much
+time with the invalid as she liked.</p>
+
+<p>"Was Beverly at home?" Elsie inquired, anxiously,
+following her cousin to her room.</p>
+
+<p>"He was there some of the time," said Marjorie;
+"he had lessons to do at first, but he came
+in for tea. Mrs. Randolph asked him to sing&mdash;he
+has a beautiful voice."</p>
+
+<p>"You certainly have a way of getting what<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span>
+you want," remarked Elsie in a rather dissatisfied
+tone; "I wonder how you manage."</p>
+
+<p>"Manage what?" demanded Marjorie in
+amazement; "what in the world do you mean,
+Elsie?"</p>
+
+<p>Elsie shrugged her shoulders.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I guess you know," she said, sarcastically,
+and walked out of the room, leaving Marjorie
+very much puzzled, and more than a little
+uncomfortable.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph did not recover from her cold
+as quickly as she had hoped, and she was confined
+to the house for nearly a week. Her eyes, too,
+continued troublesome, and reading and sewing
+were strictly forbidden. So it came to be quite
+a natural thing that Marjorie should spend an
+hour every afternoon in the Randolphs' apartment,
+and the girl grew to look forward to those
+hours as the pleasantest of the whole day.</p>
+
+<p>"You remind me more of my little Barbara
+every day," Mrs. Randolph said to her once, and
+Marjorie felt that she had received a great compliment.
+She was growing to feel a deep interest
+in this Barbara, whose tragic death had cast
+such a shadow of sorrow over her mother's life,
+but she had too much tact, and was too kind-hearted,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span>
+to show undue curiosity on a painful
+subject, and so, though there were many questions
+she would have liked to ask about this unknown
+Barbara, she refrained from asking one,
+and was fain to content herself with the stray
+bits of information that Mrs. Randolph or Beverly
+occasionally let fall.</p>
+
+<p>When Mrs. Randolph was well again Marjorie
+greatly missed the daily chat, and pleasant hour
+of reading aloud. The drives with Aunt Julia,
+shut up in the brougham, with only one window
+open, proved a most unsatisfactory substitute,
+but her aunt was very kind, and showed so much
+real interest in the Christmas box she was preparing
+for her dear ones at home that Marjorie
+reproached herself bitterly for not finding Aunt
+Julia's society as agreeable as Mrs. Randolph's.
+But Christmas was drawing near, and there were
+times when Marjorie fought desperately against
+the homesickness, which seemed almost greater
+than she could bear.</p>
+
+<p>To add to everything else, she caught a feverish
+cold, and Mrs. Carleton, who was always
+nervous about illness, insisted on her remaining
+in the house; a state of affairs hitherto unknown
+to healthy Marjorie, who had never in her life
+spent a day in bed.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>It was on the second afternoon of headache
+and sore throat that Mrs. Randolph came to the
+rescue. Marjorie had come to the end of her
+resources. She had read till her eyes ached, and
+sewed on Christmas presents until she felt that
+she couldn't take another stitch. The longing for
+fresh air and exercise was almost beyond her endurance,
+and yet she dared not even open a window,
+for fear of incurring her aunt's displeasure.
+Mrs. Carleton and Elsie were out, but Hortense
+had been left in charge, with strict injunctions
+to see that Mademoiselle Marjorie kept out of
+draughts, and took her medicine regularly. Marjorie
+was just wondering in her desperation
+whether a walk up and down the steam-heated
+hotel corridor would be regarded in the light of
+an imprudence, when there was a ring at the bell,
+and Hortense announced Mrs. Randolph.</p>
+
+<p>"I have only just heard you were ill," the visitor
+said kindly, taking Marjorie's hand in hers,
+and looking with sympathetic interest into the
+pale, woe-begone face. "Your aunt told Beverly
+at luncheon that you had a bad cold. You
+should have let me know sooner; I can't have
+my kind little friend laid up without trying to return
+some of her goodness to me."</p>
+
+<p>"It wasn't goodness at all," said Marjorie,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span>
+flushing with pleasure; "it was just having a
+lovely time. I was thinking only yesterday, what
+a very selfish girl I must be, for I couldn't help
+being sorry you didn't need me any more, it's so
+pleasant to be needed."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's voice trembled a little, for she was
+feeling rather weak and forlorn, and Mrs. Randolph
+drew her down beside her on the sofa.</p>
+
+<p>"I think I always need you, dear," she said.
+"I have missed your visits very much, and reading
+to myself doesn't seem half as pleasant as
+having a nice little girl read aloud to me. Still,
+I am glad to have the use of my eyes again, especially
+as we are going away next week."</p>
+
+<p>"Going away!" repeated Marjorie, and her
+face expressed so much dismay that Mrs. Randolph
+could not help smiling.</p>
+
+<p>"We are not going for good," she explained,
+"but Beverly's vacation begins next Wednesday,
+and he is anxious to spend Christmas at our Virginia
+home. We shall only be away about ten
+days."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie looked much relieved.</p>
+
+<p>"I was afraid you meant you were going to
+Europe, or somewhere far away," she said, "and
+that I shouldn't see you any more. I don't know
+what I should do without you."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"And I should miss you very much, too," said
+Mrs. Randolph, "but nothing so unpleasant is
+going to happen, I hope. What are your plans
+for the holidays?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, nothing in particular. Elsie and I are
+invited to several parties, and Aunt Julia's sister,
+Mrs. Ward, is having a tree on Christmas night.
+I can't help wishing the holidays were over. It
+will be my first Christmas away from home, you
+know."</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose your family will miss you as much
+as you miss them," Mrs. Randolph said, sympathetically.</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know they will, and that is one of the
+hardest things to bear. I had a letter from Undine
+to-day, and she says they are all very sad,
+though they are trying hard to be brave and
+cheerful."</p>
+
+<p>"Who is Undine?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, haven't I told you about her? She's a
+girl who lives at the ranch, and we call her Undine,
+but it isn't her real name."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph looked interested.</p>
+
+<p>"What is her real name?" she asked, anxious
+to cheer Marjorie by talking of home and friends.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie opened her lips to explain, but suddenly
+remembered something Beverly had told<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span>
+her. It would be scarcely possible to tell Undine's
+story without mentioning the fatal subject
+of the earthquake, so she only said:</p>
+
+<p>"We don't know her real name, but the people
+she lived with before she came to the ranch
+called her Sally. She didn't like Sally, and asked
+us to call her something else, and I suggested
+Undine."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph laughed. "A rather romantic
+name for a flesh and blood girl," she said; "how
+old is your Undine?"</p>
+
+<p>"About fifteen, we think, but we are not sure,
+and she doesn't know herself. Lulu Bell says
+you have a beautiful home in Virginia. I suppose
+you will be glad to go there for the holidays."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, we all love it very much. It is a dear
+old place; my husband's family have lived there
+for generations, and my old home, where I lived
+before I married, is only a couple of miles
+away."</p>
+
+<p>"I have always thought Virginia must be a
+very interesting place," said Marjorie. "I have
+read ever so many books about the early settlers
+in Jamestown. Have you read 'To Have and to
+Hold,' and 'White Aprons'?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I have read both. Our home is on the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span>
+James River, not far from Jamestown&mdash;would
+you like to see it?"</p>
+
+<p>"I should love it," said Marjorie, heartily.
+"I don't suppose I ever shall though," she added,
+with a sigh.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't see why not," said Mrs. Randolph,
+smiling. "How would you like to go home with
+us for the holidays?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was speechless. For the first moment
+she could scarcely believe that her friend
+was in earnest.</p>
+
+<p>"I came this afternoon on purpose to propose
+it," Mrs. Randolph went on, convinced by the
+girl's flushed cheeks and sparkling eyes that
+there was no doubt about her wanting to accept
+the invitation. "Beverly and I were speaking
+of it last evening. We shall be alone except for
+Dr. Randolph, who is going with us, but we have
+some pleasant young people in the neighborhood,
+and there is generally a good deal going on at
+Christmas. I think you would have a pleasant
+time."</p>
+
+<p>"It would be the next best thing to going
+home," declared Marjorie, "but, oh, dear Mrs.
+Randolph, are you sure you really want
+me?"</p>
+
+<p>"Quite sure," said Mrs. Randolph, kissing her.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span>
+"It will make us all very happy to have our nice
+little friend with us."</p>
+
+<p>"If only Aunt Julia will let me go," said Marjorie,
+with a vivid recollection of her aunt's rebuke
+on the evening after the football game.</p>
+
+<p>But, contrary to Marjorie's expectations, Mrs.
+Carleton made no objection to the plan, beyond
+hoping that the Randolphs would not find her
+niece too much care. Neither did Elsie make
+any of the unpleasant remarks her cousin expected.
+Since the first meeting of the Poetry
+Club, Beverly and she had not had much to say
+to each other. Beverly was always polite, but
+Elsie could never feel quite comfortable in his
+society, and the knowledge that he was not to
+share in any of the holiday gayeties was something
+of a relief. She and Marjorie were apparently
+very good friends, but there was a look
+in Marjorie's eyes sometimes when they rested
+on her cousin, which Elsie did not like. So when
+Mrs. Carleton consulted her daughter on the subject
+of Marjorie's going to Virginia with the
+Randolph's, Elsie said good-naturedly:</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, let her go, Mamma; she'll have a much
+better time than she would here. It would be
+such a bother to have to take her everywhere,
+and see she had partners at the dances, and all<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span>
+that. Papa would be sure to ask questions and
+make a fuss if she didn't have a good time."</p>
+
+<p>So the invitation was accepted, and Marjorie
+wrote a long, joyful letter to her mother, and
+went to bed that night, feeling happier than she
+had done since coming to New York.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XVIII</h2>
+
+<h3>IN THE SUNNY SOUTH</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">It's</span> the most beautiful place I've ever even
+imagined!" Marjorie spoke with conviction, and
+drew in a long, deep breath of the fresh morning
+air.</p>
+
+<p>She and Beverly were standing on the wide
+veranda at Randolph Place gazing off over the
+wide landscape, of low Virginia hills, with the
+wide river less than half a mile away. It was a
+glorious morning, and the peace and quiet seemed
+indescribably delightful after the noisy, stuffy
+night on the train. Beverly was very proud of
+his Southern home, but boy like, he tried not to
+show it.</p>
+
+<p>"It's pretty enough," he admitted, "but this
+isn't the season to see it at its best; you ought to
+come here in the spring."</p>
+
+<p>"It's perfect just as it is," declared Marjorie.
+"I've read about such places, but never expected
+to see one myself. Is that river really the James,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span>
+and did your great-grandfather truly live in this
+very house?"</p>
+
+<p>"He most certainly did," said Beverly, laughing;
+"my people have lived here for over a hundred
+years. You should have heard some of my
+father's war stories. He was only a boy at the
+time of the war, but he had some exciting experiences.
+When I was a little chap I used to wish I
+had been alive then, too."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, I love war stories!" cried Marjorie,
+rapturously; "are there any people here now who
+can tell them?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, indeed, plenty. I'll introduce you to
+old Uncle Josh. He was my grandfather's body
+servant, and went all through the war with him.
+He's over seventy now, and doesn't work any
+more, but he and his wife live in a cabin down at
+the quarters."</p>
+
+<p>"It all sounds just like a story-book," said
+Marjorie, with a little sigh of utter content. "I
+should think you would be tremendously proud
+of your home."</p>
+
+<p>"I like it all right," said Beverly, "but now
+hadn't you better come in and have some breakfast?
+I hear Mother and Uncle George in the
+dining-room, and I should think you'd be hungry,
+for it's after nine, and you were up before six."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Of course I was," laughed Marjorie; "I was
+much too excited to sleep. I wasn't going to
+miss the first sight of Virginia."</p>
+
+<p>The dining-room at Randolph Place was very
+large, and the walls were lined with portraits.
+Marjorie was so much interested in the portraits
+of great-grandfather and great-grandmother
+Randolph, that she came near forgetting to eat
+her breakfast, although the fried eggs and bacon,
+and waffles with maple syrup, were certainly the
+most delicious she had ever tasted. Mrs. Randolph
+and the doctor watched her with kindly
+amusement. Her eyes were sparkling with excitement,
+and there was a bright color in her
+cheeks; she seemed quite a different creature
+from the pale, subdued girl of a week before.</p>
+
+<p>"I declare, Barbara, I had no idea that little
+girl was so pretty," Dr. Randolph remarked in a
+low tone to his sister-in-law, when Marjorie and
+Beverly were in the midst of an animated discussion
+about Captain John Smith and Pocahontas.</p>
+
+<p>"She is charming," Mrs. Randolph answered,
+smiling. "It is strange how much environment
+has to do with appearance."</p>
+
+<p>"And now I am going to take you to your
+room, Marjorie," said Mrs. Randolph as they
+rose from the breakfast table. "You will want<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span>
+to unpack and wash up a little after that dusty
+journey. I have asked some cousins of ours, the
+Pattersons, to luncheon, and perhaps this afternoon
+you and Beverly will like to go for a ride.
+I needn't ask if you are accustomed to riding;
+every girl brought up on a ranch must be."</p>
+
+<p>"I have ridden ever since I can remember,"
+said Marjorie, her eyes sparkling at the prospect
+of the coming pleasure. "I would rather ride a
+horse than do anything else in the world."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph laughed, and led the way up a
+broad oak staircase, and along a wide hall, to the
+prettiest little room imaginable, all furnished in
+pink and white; a typical girl's room, as Marjorie
+saw at the first glance.</p>
+
+<p>"I have put you here because this room is next
+to mine," Mrs. Randolph explained. "I thought
+you would like it better than being away down at
+the other end of the hall. This was my little
+Barbara's room," she added softly; "no one has
+slept here since she left it, and nothing has been
+changed."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Mrs. Randolph," cried Marjorie, gratefully,
+"how very good you are to me, but are you
+sure you really want me to have this room?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, dear, I am quite sure I do. If my Barbara
+were alive I know she would love you,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span>
+and I like to think I shall have a little girl next
+to me again to-night."</p>
+
+<p>With a sudden impulse, Marjorie flung her
+arms round Mrs. Randolph's neck and hugged
+her. She did not speak&mdash;words did not come
+easily just then&mdash;but Barbara's mother understood,
+and the kiss she gave in return was a very
+tender one.</p>
+
+<p>When Marjorie was left alone, her first occupation
+was to look about the room, and examine
+all its details. It was very simple, but everything
+was in perfect taste, and the girl admired it
+all, from the pretty china ornaments on the bureau,
+to the row of books on a shelf over the writing-desk.
+She took down one of the books reverently;
+it seemed almost like sacrilege to touch
+these things that had belonged to another girl,
+whose death had been so very sad. It was
+"Lorna Doone," and on the fly-leaf Marjorie
+read, "To Barbara Randolph, from her affectionate
+cousin, Grace Patterson." Then she examined
+the framed photographs on the mantelpiece;
+Mrs. Randolph and Beverly, and a gentleman
+whom she supposed must have been Barbara's
+father. There were other photographs as
+well, one in particular of a girl with curly hair,
+and a very friendly expression, and Marjorie<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span>
+wondered if she could be the cousin, who had
+given Barbara "Lorna Doone." It was strange
+how intimate she was beginning to feel with this
+Barbara, who had died nearly three years ago.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie had just finished her unpacking when
+there was a tap at her door, and in answer to her
+"Come in," a girl of about her own age presented
+herself. One glance was sufficient to assure
+Marjorie that she was the same curly-haired,
+friendly-faced girl, whose photograph, in a silver
+frame, stood in a prominent place on the writing-desk.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm Grace Patterson," announced the visitor,
+in a voice as friendly as her face. "Cousin Barbara
+told me to come right up; my brother and
+I have come over especially to see you."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm very glad to meet you," said Marjorie,
+shaking hands, and drawing forward a chair for
+her guest. "I've just been looking at your picture,"
+she added, smiling.</p>
+
+<p>Grace Patterson glanced about the room, and a
+shade of sadness crossed her bright face.</p>
+
+<p>"It seems so strange to be in this room again,"
+she said; "I haven't been here since poor Babs&mdash;you've
+heard about Babs, of course?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie nodded.</p>
+
+<p>"She was my chum," said Grace, with a little<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span>
+catch in her voice, "and one of the dearest girls
+that ever lived. We were almost the same age,
+and as neither of us had any sisters, we were together
+a great deal. Babs had a governess, and
+my younger brother and I used to come over here
+every day for lessons. Our place is only two
+miles away, and my mother and Cousin Barbara
+are great friends. It nearly killed poor Cousin
+Barbara."</p>
+
+<p>"I know," said Marjorie. "It was lovely of
+Mrs. Randolph to let me have this room. I have
+been so interested in Barbara ever since I first
+heard about her, but I don't like to talk to her
+mother or brother about her."</p>
+
+<p>"You know how it happened, I suppose?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes; Beverly told me that. It must have
+been a frightful shock to you all."</p>
+
+<p>"Frightful! I should say it was. Even Beverly
+has never been quite the same since. He
+was devoted to Babs, and they were such chums.
+I don't think it would have been quite so terrible
+if they could have recognized her afterward, but
+she was so frightfully injured&mdash;oh, I can't bear
+to talk about it! They recognized Miss Randolph,
+Bab's aunt, but poor Babs was completely
+crushed, and&mdash;oh, let's come downstairs. I
+can't stand it up here; it gives me the horrors."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>There were more questions Marjorie would
+have liked to ask, but the subject was evidently
+a very painful one to her new acquaintance, for
+Grace had grown rather pale, and there was a
+look of horror in her eyes. So she said no more,
+and the two girls went downstairs, where they
+found the family assembled, and where Marjorie
+was introduced to Harry Patterson&mdash;Grace's
+brother&mdash;a pleasant-faced boy of seventeen.</p>
+
+<p>The Pattersons stayed to luncheon, and Marjorie
+liked them immensely. Grace soon recovered
+from the momentary depression, caused by
+recalling painful memories, and Marjorie was
+quite ready to endorse Beverly's opinion that
+"she was one of the jolliest girls going." They
+had a very merry morning, and after luncheon it
+was proposed that Marjorie and Beverly should
+ride home with the Pattersons, who had come
+over on their ponies.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie is pining for a gallop, I know,"
+said Beverly, laughing; "she is as wild about
+horses as you are, Grace, and trained a colt when
+she was nine."</p>
+
+<p>"How jolly!" cried Grace; "you and I can
+have some fine rides together, Marjorie. I
+haven't had a girl to ride with since&mdash;" Grace
+did not finish her sentence, but Marjorie knew by<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span>
+her suddenly heightened color, and the glance
+she gave Beverly, that she was thinking of her
+cousin Barbara.</p>
+
+<p>"I declare they've brought Nelly Gray for you
+to ride!" whispered Grace to Marjorie, as the
+two girls stood on the veranda, waiting to mount.
+"I didn't know any one rode her now."</p>
+
+<p>"She's a beauty," said Marjorie, with an admiring
+glance at the handsome little chestnut
+mare, which was being led up to the door by a
+groom.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, she's a love! She was Babs's pony, and
+Babs loved her dearly. I remember she taught
+her to take sugar out of her pocket."</p>
+
+<p>Nelly Gray certainly was "a love" and Marjorie
+enjoyed that ride as she had enjoyed few
+things since leaving her Western home. It was
+a beautiful afternoon, and Nelly herself appeared
+to enjoy it almost as much as her rider. They
+took the longest way round to the Patterson
+home, and when they had left their friends, Beverly
+proposed that they should ride a few miles
+farther, and come home by a different road.</p>
+
+<p>"I think I could ride all night without getting
+tired," laughed Marjorie. "This is an adorable
+pony."</p>
+
+<p>"She was my sister's pony," said Beverly.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Yes, I know, your cousin told me. It was
+awfully good of you and your mother to let me
+ride her."</p>
+
+<p>Beverly said nothing, and they rode on for a
+few moments in silence, both young faces unusually
+grave. Marjorie was the first to speak.</p>
+
+<p>"I wish I could make your mother understand
+how much I appreciate all she has done for me,"
+she said, impulsively. "Do you know she has
+given me your sister's room?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, she told me she was going to. Mother
+is very fond of you, and she says she thinks Babs
+would have loved you, too."</p>
+
+<p>"I know I should have loved her," said Marjorie,
+earnestly. "Grace has been telling me
+about her, and I have been looking at all her
+things."</p>
+
+<p>"She was almost as fond of riding as you are,"
+said Beverly. "She was such a plucky little
+girl; never afraid of anything. She rode better
+than any girl in the neighborhood."</p>
+
+<p>Beverly's voice sounded a little husky, and
+Marjorie thought it might be best to change the
+subject, so she launched into an account of a
+"round up" she had once seen, and the rest of
+the ride was a very merry one.</p>
+
+<p>"Will you mind if I stop for a moment to<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span>
+speak to my old mammy?" Beverly asked, as they
+were on their way home. "She lives in one of
+these cabins, and I know she'll be on the lookout
+for me."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I won't mind," said Marjorie,
+promptly; "I shall love it. I've never seen a
+real colored mammy, but I've often read about
+them in stories."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you shall see one now. Ours was the
+genuine article, though people pretend to say the
+old-fashioned darky is a thing of the past. She
+was devoted to Babs and me, although she was a
+firm believer in the efficacy of the rod. We
+loved her dearly, and minded her better than we
+minded Mother. She was put on the pension
+list several years ago, and now has a cabin to
+herself. Here it is, and there's Mammy on the
+watch for us, as I was sure she would be. Hello,
+Mammy, here's your bad boy back again!"</p>
+
+<p>Beverly sprang to the ground, and the next
+moment was being rapturously hugged by a very
+stout old negress, with a turban on her head.
+She was so exactly Marjorie's idea of what a
+mammy ought to be, that the girl was delighted,
+and sat looking on with deep interest, while Beverly
+and his old nurse exchanged greetings.
+Then Marjorie herself was introduced, and<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span>
+Mammy begged them both to tie their horses,
+and come in for a cup of tea. But Beverly declared
+it was too late, and they finally made
+their escape, having promised to come another
+day, for a feast of the waffles, for which it appeared
+Mammy was famous.</p>
+
+<p>"It has been one of the loveliest days I've
+ever had," Marjorie declared, as they rode up the
+avenue at Randolph Place, in the light of the setting
+sun. "I shall never forget it as long as I
+live, and I shall have so much to write home in
+my next letter, that I believe it will fill a volume."</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XIX</h2>
+
+<h3>A VIRGINIA CHRISTMAS</h3>
+
+
+<div class="blockquot"><div class='right'>
+
+<span style="margin-right: 2em;">"Randolph Place,</span><br />
+"December 26th.<br />
+</div>
+
+"<span class="smcap">Darling Aunt Jessie</span>:
+
+<p>"Christmas is over, and it really wasn't half
+as bad as I thought it was going to be. But before
+I begin writing about anything else, I must
+tell you how happy I was to get all your dear
+home letters. Uncle Henry was so kind about
+forwarding them as soon as they reached New
+York, and I had them all on Christmas Eve.
+Aunt Julia wrote me the box has come, too, but
+she will have to keep that until I get back the end
+of next week. How I shall adore every single
+thing in it!</p>
+
+<p>"I sent mother a few lines the morning I got
+here, but that was before I had found out how
+beautiful it all is. It is just like the Southern
+plantations one reads about in stories, and everything
+is very interesting. There is even a dear
+old black mammy, who lives in a cabin, and has<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span>
+asked Beverly and me to come and have waffles
+some afternoon. All the servants are black, and
+the butler has lived in the family nearly forty
+years. Then the neighbors are just the kind one
+reads of, so kind and hospitable, and always having
+good times. I think I like Southerners better
+than New Yorkers; they make me feel much
+more at home. I have met a good many of
+them, for we went to a Christmas dance at the
+Pattersons', on Christmas Eve, and I had a perfectly
+gorgeous time. The Pattersons are cousins
+of the Randolphs', and Grace, the girl, is
+just my age, and awfully nice; but then everybody
+here is nice, and I am having the very best
+time that it is possible for a girl to have.</p>
+
+<p>"The riding is the greatest pleasure of all.
+Beverly and I have been out for a ride every
+day, and he enjoys it almost as much as I do.
+They have given me the dearest little chestnut to
+ride, and it is a great honor, because she belonged
+to Beverly's sister, who was killed in the
+San Francisco earthquake, and scarcely any one
+has ridden her since. She is very gentle, and so
+friendly that she will take sugar out of my
+pocket. Beverly says his sister taught her to do
+that.</p>
+
+<p>"But if I go on chattering like this, I shall<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span>
+never get to Christmas, which was the most interesting
+of all. The Virginians seem to think a
+great deal of Christmas, and nearly all the day
+before we were busy dressing a tree for the little
+negroes on the plantation. Mrs. Randolph had
+brought presents from New York for all of them,
+and for the fathers and mothers as well. Beverly
+says she has done the same thing every
+Christmas since her little girl died; it is a sort of
+memorial, I suppose. We all hung up our stockings,
+even Mrs. Randolph and the doctor, who is
+just as nice and jolly as he can be, though Grace
+Patterson says some people are afraid of him.
+It was late when we got back from the Pattersons'
+party on Christmas Eve, but after I was in
+bed I heard Mrs. Randolph going about softly,
+filling the stockings, which were all hung outside
+our doors.</p>
+
+<p>"I was so tired after the party, that I didn't
+wake till after seven, and then the very first thing
+I did was to run and look at my stocking. It
+was stuffed full of good things; oranges, candy,
+figs and dates, and just as I thought I had
+reached the bottom, I felt something hard away
+down in the toe. What do you think it was?
+You will never guess, so I may as well tell you
+right away; it was a little velvet box, and inside<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span>
+was a ring, a beautiful gold ring, with two adorable
+little pearls in it! That was Mrs. Randolph's
+Christmas present, and the loveliest thing
+I have ever had in my life. I was so happy when
+I saw it that I cried; I know it was dreadfully
+silly, but I couldn't help it. Oh, how I wish I
+could show it to you this minute, but you will see
+it when I come home next June, and all my other
+presents, too, for the ring wasn't the only one.
+When I came down to breakfast there were more
+parcels beside my plate; two nice books from
+Beverly, and a gold bracelet from the doctor.
+Just think of it, two pieces of jewelry in one day!
+I am sure I didn't deserve such beautiful things,
+but when I told them so, and tried to thank them,
+they only laughed.</p>
+
+<p>"In the morning we went to church, and the
+Christmas music was lovely. We met the Pattersons
+at church, and they all came home with
+us to dinner. Oh, such a dinner! I don't see
+how any one could possibly ever eat so many
+things. There were more dishes than I have
+ever imagined possible for one meal, and every
+single one was delicious.</p>
+
+<p>"After dinner came the tree for the children,
+and that was the best fun of all. I quite lost my
+heart to some of the piccaninnies, and one little<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span>
+chap, as black as coal, was so adorable that I
+wanted to hug him. The children all had a
+beautiful time, and screamed with delight over
+their presents. How I wished you and Mother
+could have seen Mrs. Randolph going about
+among them, speaking so pleasantly to every one,
+and making them all feel at home. After the
+tree had been stripped they all had ice cream, and
+I got hold of my little black boy, and made him
+sit on my lap while I fed him until I don't believe
+he could have swallowed another mouthful.
+Then the old butler, who is just like a negro servant
+in a book, proposed three cheers for Mrs.
+Randolph, and you should have heard those
+darkies yell!</p>
+
+<p>"The Pattersons left as soon as the fun was
+over, and we all went upstairs to our rooms to
+rest. But I wasn't a bit tired, and was afraid
+that if I sat down to think I might be homesick,
+so I thought I would go for a walk. I was just
+starting when I saw Mrs. Randolph come out
+from the greenhouse, with her hat on, and her
+hands full of beautiful roses, and I stopped to ask
+if she were going for a walk, too, and if I might
+go with her. She hesitated for a minute, and
+then said I might come if I liked, but she was
+afraid I would find it sad; she was going to the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span>
+cemetery to put flowers on her little girl's grave.
+She said it quite calmly, but there was such a sad
+look in her eyes, and I was horribly embarrassed,
+for I was afraid I ought not to have suggested
+going with her. But she assured me she would
+really like to have me, if I didn't mind, so of
+course I went, and, oh, Aunt Jessie, I am so glad
+I did. It was all beautiful and sacred&mdash;almost
+too sacred to write about, even to you and
+Mother. The cemetery was such a lovely, peaceful
+place, and as it was quite warm and pleasant,
+we sat down by Barbara Randolph's grave, and
+her mother talked to me about her. It was the
+first time she has ever told me much about Barbara,
+and I was so interested in all she said. I
+don't think I shall ever be afraid of dying again;
+Mrs. Randolph spoke so beautifully about it.
+She says she can never feel that her little girl
+is far away, and she is quite sure they will be together
+again some day. I think Barbara must
+have been an awfully nice girl; every one seems
+so fond of her. Grace Patterson was her chum,
+and she can hardly speak of her without crying.
+As for Beverly, he just can't bear to talk about
+her at all, and I don't dare ask him a single question.
+Grace says he was devoted to her, and she
+adored him. I wish I could see a picture of<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span>
+Barbara, but there are no photographs of her
+about. Mrs. Randolph wears a little gold locket,
+and I am sure there is a miniature of Barbara inside,
+but I have never had the courage to ask
+her to show it to me. I was just making up
+my mind to do it yesterday, when we heard
+footsteps, and there was Beverly himself, bringing
+more flowers. He didn't know we were
+there, and looked horribly embarrassed when he
+saw us. Boys always hate to show their feelings,
+and I think he would have gone away again
+without speaking to us, if his mother hadn't
+called him. She was so pleased to see him, and
+after the first minute I don't think he really
+minded. I thought they might like to be alone,
+so I slipped away as quietly as I could, and on
+the way home I met the doctor, and he asked
+me to go for a walk with him. I know you
+would like Dr. Randolph; he is so clever, and has
+traveled almost all over the world. He told
+me such an interesting story about a Christmas
+he once spent in Jerusalem. It is so pleasant
+that he met Father at Harvard, and remembers
+all about him. He says Father was a very handsome
+boy, and a great favorite with the girls.
+Doesn't it seem queer to think of Father's going
+to dances and flirting with girls! He looks so<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span>
+much older than Dr. Randolph, and yet I suppose
+they must be about the same age.</p>
+
+<p>"Mrs. Randolph and Beverly were quite cheerful
+when they came home, and I noticed that
+Beverly was very gentle with his mother all the
+evening. He is always nice to her, and that is
+one of the reasons why I like him so much.
+One of the things that has surprised me most
+of all in New York, is the way some of the girls
+and boys speak to their fathers and mothers. I
+really don't know what Mother would do to me
+if I were ever to answer her back the way Elsie
+sometimes answers Aunt Julia, but her mother
+doesn't seem to mind.</p>
+
+<p>"We had a quiet evening at home, but it was
+pleasant, for we were all a little tired. Mrs.
+Randolph and the doctor played cribbage, and
+Beverly sang; he has a lovely voice, but he won't
+often sing. Altogether my Christmas was a very
+happy one, and if I did 'weep a little weep' after
+I was in bed, it was only natural, considering
+it was my first Christmas away from you all.
+Oh, Aunt Jessie, darling, I am having a beautiful
+visit, but I never forget you, or Father or
+Mother, a single minute! I love your letters
+better than anything else, and I am just longing
+to get my hands on that precious Christmas box.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span>
+I hope you will all like the presents I sent.
+Uncle Henry was so kind; he gave me twenty-five
+dollars to spend for Christmas presents. I
+never had so much money in my life, but Aunt
+Julia helped me select the presents, which was a
+great relief, for I should never have known what
+to buy without her. Things seem to cost so much
+more than one expects them to.</p>
+
+<p>"I felt sure you and Mother would want
+something I had made myself, and I hope you
+will like the color of the shawl; Mrs. Randolph
+thought it very pretty. I chose the little daisy
+pin for Undine, because I liked it so much myself.
+I am so glad you have all grown so fond
+of her, and that she is happy, and doesn't worry
+so much about not remembering.</p>
+
+<p>"Beverly is calling me to go for a ride, so
+I must stop writing. Heaps of hugs and kisses
+for everybody from</p>
+
+<div class='sig'>
+<span style="margin-right: 4em;">"Your own</span><br />
+"<span class="smcap">Marjorie.</span>"<br />
+</div></div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XX</h2>
+
+<h3>MARJORIE SEES A PHOTOGRAPH</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">Don't</span> you think there is always something
+very sad about last days in places?"</p>
+
+<p>Beverly laughed, and cast an amused glance
+at his companion's sober face. He and Marjorie
+were trotting leisurely along a road where the
+trees met overhead in summer, although now the
+boughs were leafless, and there was a light covering
+of snow on the ground. It was their last
+afternoon in Virginia, and they were making the
+most of it, despite a lowering sky, and a frostiness
+in the air, which threatened more snow before
+night.</p>
+
+<p>"Just think," Marjorie went on mournfully,
+"I sha'n't have another ride for five whole
+months. School doesn't close till the first of
+June."</p>
+
+<p>"Why don't you ride in the park? Lots of
+girls do, you know. Ask your uncle to hire a
+horse for you from the riding academy."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie blushed.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I don't like to," she said, frankly. "Uncle
+Henry and Aunt Julia are doing so much for me
+already, I don't think I ought to ask for anything
+more. Elsie doesn't ride in New York."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, I have no doubt she could if she wanted
+to. I imagine Miss Elsie generally gets what
+she wants."</p>
+
+<p>"You don't like Elsie, do you?" The words
+were out before Marjorie realized she had uttered
+them. The next moment she wished she
+had not asked the question.</p>
+
+<p>"No, I don't," said Beverly, honestly.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry; I wish you did; she's so clever,
+and&mdash;and there are lots of nice things about
+her. You see, she is an only child, and her father
+and mother worship her. I suppose she
+can't help being a little spoiled."</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you are an only child, too, and I have
+no doubt your family are as fond of you as
+Elsie's are of her, but you are not spoiled."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was silent. She felt that loyalty to
+her cousin required her to say something in Elsie's
+defence, and yet what could she say? After a
+moment's silence Beverly went on.</p>
+
+<p>"I should like your cousin a lot better if she
+resigned from being president of that Club."</p>
+
+<p>"She&mdash;she tore up the poem," faltered Marjorie.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span>
+"She said it was trash. I don't think
+she meant to do anything mean, but she is so
+clever, she couldn't bear to have any other poem
+better than hers."</p>
+
+<p>"You're a loyal little soul, Marjorie," said
+Beverly, approvingly, "but all you can say won't
+alter the fact that your cousin did a mean, contemptible
+thing. She knows I found her out,
+and she hasn't looked me straight in the face
+since. I don't like sneaks in girls any better than
+in boys."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie felt the conversation had gone far
+enough. She did not wish to discuss Elsie even
+with Beverly Randolph, although the two had
+become great friends during the past ten days,
+so after a little pause, she changed the subject
+by asking her companion if he did not think they
+had better be turning towards home.</p>
+
+<p>Beverly glanced at his watch.</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose we'd better," he said, reluctantly.
+"I hate to cut our last ride short, but Mammy
+will be heart-broken if we keep her waffles waiting."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm so glad we are going to Mammy's cabin,"
+Marjorie said, as they turned the horses' heads
+in a homeward direction. "It makes me think
+of so many things I have read. Don't you remember<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span>
+in 'Uncle Tom's Cabin,' how George
+Selby used to slip away from the big house, and
+go down to Uncle Tom's for waffles and fried
+chicken? Mammy is such an old dear; I do
+want to hear her talk again."</p>
+
+<p>"She certainly is a character," said Beverly,
+laughing. "We'll get her to tell some anecdotes
+about Barbara and me. According to Mammy
+I must have been a pickle."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie was conscious of a feeling of relief
+at having successfully turned the conversation
+away from Elsie and her affairs, and she and
+Beverly chatted on pleasantly until they reached
+Mammy's cabin, where they dismounted and
+Beverly tied the horses to the hitching post.
+Mammy was on the watch for them, and gave
+them a hearty welcome.</p>
+
+<p>"Now you jes lay off yo' tings, and set down
+by de fiah," she commanded, placing chairs for
+the visitors, "an' I'll have dem waffles done in
+a jiffy. Lor', Mas'r Bev'ly, it jes' does my heart
+good to see you settin' heah in my kitchen, like
+you used to do when you an' Miss Babs&mdash;now
+Mas'r Bev'ly, don't you tease my Josephus; he
+mighty 'telligent cat, he is. He won't stan' no
+foolin'."</p>
+
+<p>"He's a beauty," said Marjorie, stooping to<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span>
+stroke the big maltese, who responded to the
+caress by springing on the arm of her chair.</p>
+
+<p>Mammy beamed with satisfaction.</p>
+
+<p>"Josephus likes you fust rate, Missy," she said,
+approvingly. "He don't make friends with mos'
+folks; he's too 'ristocratic. He knows what's
+what, Josephus does."</p>
+
+<p>"Mammy is the most delicious snob," laughed
+Beverly; "she only allows Josephus to associate
+with aristocratic cats. All the unfortunate
+plebeian cats in the neighborhood are driven
+away with a stick."</p>
+
+<p>"Cose dey is," declared Mammy, indignantly.
+"What yo s'pose I want common, no-'count cats
+botherin' round heah for? Ain't I always lived
+in de most 'ristocratic Virginia fam'lies, and
+wasn't my paw own body-servant to ole General
+Putnam, an' my maw bought by Mas'r Randolph's
+father when she weren't more'n ten years
+old, an' brought up in de house, to be maid to de
+young ladies? I'se lived in de fust fam'lies, I
+has, and I'm proud of it, too."</p>
+
+<p>"What a perfectly heavenly place!" whispered
+Marjorie to Beverly, with a glance round
+the neat little kitchen, as the old negress bustled
+away intent on household duties.</p>
+
+<p>"You must get Mammy to show you the family<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span>
+photographs before we go," said Beverly; "she
+has quite a gallery, and can give you the separate
+history of each picture. Ah, here come the
+waffles. Nobody can beat you on waffles,
+Mammy."</p>
+
+<p>The old woman grinned.</p>
+
+<p>"Cose dey cyan't," she said, placidly. "Dere
+cyan't nobody in dese parts beat me on waffles
+and corn-bread. Folks comes askin' for my
+recipes, but it ain't de recipe dat does it, it's de
+light hand. Now Mas'r Bev'ly, don't you take
+de whole dishful; dere's plenty more comin'.
+Lor' sakes, Missy, you jes' oughter seen de way
+dat boy would go in for waffles an' maple syrup
+when he was little. Do you 'member de day,
+Mas'r Bev'ly, when yo maw was havin' lot of
+comp'ny for tea, an' yo' an' Miss Babs sneaked
+into de pantry, and eat up all de lobster salad
+'fo' de comp'ny got a chance to have it? What
+a swattin' I did give de two of you' for dat!"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, indeed I remember it," said Beverly,
+laughing. "I deserved the 'swatting' more
+than Babs did, for she was only four and I was
+eight."</p>
+
+<p>"Dat's true; but yo' bofe deserved it bad
+enough. Lordie! How dat chile Babs could
+stuff! Notin' ever hurted her, and de wust of it<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span>
+was, she didn't mind castor oil no more'n if it
+was molasses. Have some more syrup, Missy;
+waffles ain't no good without plenty of syrup.
+You was forever gettin' Miss Babs into mischief,
+Mas'r Bev'ly. I'll never forget de day I dressed
+de two of you in yo' best white suits, cause yo'
+grandmother Randolph was comin' on a visit,
+an' de minute my back was turned you was bofe
+off to de swamp. My, what sights you was when
+I found you! Miss Babs had tumbled in, an'
+yo' two faces was as black as mine, and you was
+all over black mud. You bofe got a good whippin',
+an' was put to bed in de middle of de day,
+but Lordie! What good did it do? Miss Babs
+was sound asleep in ten minutes, and never woke
+up till nex' mornin'. Nottin' ever upset her fo'
+long; God bless her."</p>
+
+<p>The old woman's voice grew very gentle and
+Beverly, who had been smiling over the childish
+reminiscences, grew suddenly grave. But Mammy
+was a cheerful soul, and she did not intend
+to sadden the young people's visit.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, de Lord has his reasons, I s'pose," she
+said, with a sigh, "but dey does seem hard to
+make out sometimes. Jes' 'scuse me one minute;
+I got some hot ones on de fiah."</p>
+
+<p>When Marjorie and Beverly had eaten so many<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span>
+waffles that they felt as though they should not
+require anything more in the way of food for
+days, Mammy reluctantly desisted from her
+hospitable efforts to force another plateful upon
+her visitors, and the hospitably entertained young
+people rose to go.</p>
+
+<p>"I've had a lovely time," declared Marjorie,
+heartily. "It was dear of you to let me come,
+Mammy; I shall never forget it."</p>
+
+<p>"Any frien' of de Randolph fam'ly is always
+welcome to my cabin," said Mammy, with the
+air of a queen dispensing hospitality to her subjects.
+"Would you like to see de fam'ly pictures
+'fo' you go?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie said she would like nothing better,
+and while Beverly went out to untie the horses,
+she followed Mammy into her tiny bedroom,
+the walls of which were literally covered with
+photographs.</p>
+
+<p>"Dis," announced Mammy, pausing in the
+doorway, and pointing to a gentleman in uniform,
+"is Mas'r Will Randolph, Mas'r Bev'ly's
+gran'father, took in de clothes he wore when he
+went to de wah. Dis lady is his wife, de mis'
+Randolph dat brought up my maw; a gran' lady
+she was too. Dis is Mas'r Bev'ly's father when
+he went away to school, jes after de wah was<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span>
+over. Dis one is Mas'r Bev'ly's maw in her
+first ball dress. Dat's Mas'r Bev'ly when he was
+a baby, and here's Miss Babs in her fust short
+clothes. Over on dis side is Mas'r Bev'ly when
+he was seven, and dis is&mdash;oh, good Lordie,
+Missy, whatever is de matter?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie&mdash;who had been following Mammy
+from one photograph to another, with amused
+interest&mdash;had suddenly uttered a sharp cry of
+astonishment, and was staring blankly at the photograph
+of a girl of twelve, which was occupying
+the place of honor over Mammy's bed.</p>
+
+<p>"Who&mdash;who is that?" she gasped, seizing
+the old woman's arm, and beginning to tremble
+with excitement.</p>
+
+<p>"Dat Miss Babs, took jes' 'fo' she went away
+to Californy," said Mammy, sadly. "Land
+sakes, Missy! What is it? You jes' sit right
+down heah, an' I'll go call Mas'r Bev'ly."</p>
+
+<p>When Beverly appeared in answer to Mammy's
+hasty summons, he found Marjorie ghastly
+white, and shaking from head to foot.</p>
+
+<p>"Good gracious, Marjorie!" exclaimed the
+boy, springing to her side, "what's the matter?
+Don't you feel well&mdash;is it the waffles?"</p>
+
+<p>"It's&mdash;it's Undine!" faltered Marjorie, with
+shaking lips, and she pointed to the photograph<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span>
+on which her eyes still rested, in a wild, incredulous
+stare.</p>
+
+<div class="figright" style="width: 320px;">
+<img src="images/i-004.jpg" width="320" height="500" alt="&quot;Land Sakes, Missy! What is it?&quot;&mdash;Page 283." title="" />
+<span class="caption">&quot;<span class='smcap'>Land Sakes, Missy! What is it?</span>&quot;&mdash;Page 283.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>"'Undine,'" repeated Beverly, stupidly, "who
+is Undine? That is the picture of my sister
+Barbara."</p>
+
+<p>"It's Undine," repeated Marjorie, with obstinate
+persistence; "it's exactly like her; I would
+know her anywhere."</p>
+
+<p>"But who is Undine? I never even heard of
+her?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, you did; I told you about her once, and
+you said I mustn't mention her to your mother,
+because she was hurt in the earthquake. We
+called her Undine, because she couldn't remember
+her real name, or anything that happened
+to her before the earthquake. That's her photograph,
+Beverly, I tell you it is&mdash;it is!"</p>
+
+<p>Beverly had grown very pale, but he made
+a great effort at self-control.</p>
+
+<p>"Don't talk nonsense, Marjorie," he said, almost
+angrily; "I tell you that is my sister's photograph.
+I can show you another just like it
+at home."</p>
+
+<p>"Beverly," cried Marjorie, clasping her hands,
+and speaking in a tone of sudden conviction, "I
+am not talking nonsense. That is the picture of
+the girl who has been at the ranch since last<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span>
+August. She was found in the street just after
+the earthquake, half buried under some ruins.
+She was unconscious, and they took her to a
+hospital. She has never been able to remember
+anything about herself since. Your sister was
+in the earthquake, too; you think she was killed,
+but perhaps&mdash;oh, Beverly dear, let us go home
+quick, and tell your uncle all about it."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph was in the library reading.
+Twice she had put down her book, and gone to
+the window to look out. It was growing dark,
+and had begun to snow.</p>
+
+<p>"How late they are," she said to herself, with
+an anxious glance at the clock. "They ought
+to be back by this time, but I suppose they have
+stayed listening to Mammy's stories, and forgotten
+the time."</p>
+
+<p>She sat down again by the fire, and took up
+her book. But she was feeling restless and
+nervous that afternoon, though she could not
+have told why, and after reading a page, she
+closed the book again.</p>
+
+<p>"I wish they would come," she said, impatiently.
+"No one knows what may have happened;
+they may never have reached Mammy's
+cabin. I think I will go and speak to George.
+He will laugh at me for worrying, but that will<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span>
+be better than sitting here by myself. There's
+the clock striking six; they should have been in
+an hour ago."</p>
+
+<p>She rose, and was moving towards the door
+when she heard an approaching footstep, and in
+another moment her brother-in-law himself came
+into the room.</p>
+
+<p>"I was just coming to look for you, George,"
+she said; "I am getting a little anxious about
+the children."</p>
+
+<p>"The children are all right," said the doctor,
+quietly, sinking into the arm-chair by the fire;
+"they came in half an hour ago, and have gone
+to their rooms. Marjorie was feeling a little
+upset, and I advised her to go and lie down till
+dinner-time."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph turned towards the door again.</p>
+
+<p>"I think I will go and see if there is anything
+I can do for her," she said. "It isn't like Marjorie
+to give up; I'm afraid she isn't well."</p>
+
+<p>But Dr. Randolph held out a detaining hand.</p>
+
+<p>"Sit down, Barbara," he said, "I want to talk
+to you. There is nothing the matter with Marjorie
+or Beverly either. They have had a long
+ride, and stopped at Mammy's for waffles. I
+want to ask you a favor. I have just received
+some important news, which will necessitate my<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span>
+going West at once, and I want you to let Beverly
+go with me."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph was very much surprised.</p>
+
+<p>"But, George dear," she remonstrated gently,
+"college begins again on Monday&mdash;do you
+think it wise to take the boy away just now?"</p>
+
+<p>"I shall not be gone more than a week, and
+I want Beverly for company. He has never seen
+much of his own country, and this trip to Arizona
+will do him an immense amount of good.
+As for college, a few days more or less won't
+make any material difference, and he can make
+up for lost time when he gets back."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph still looked doubtful, but the
+doctor was Beverly's guardian, and since her
+husband's death she had been accustomed to depend
+upon his judgment and advice. So instead
+of arguing the point, she only said:</p>
+
+<p>"Of course he may go if you think best,
+George, only it does seem foolish to take him
+away so soon again after his holidays."</p>
+
+<p>"I do think it best, Barbara," said the doctor,
+decidedly. "I want the boy with me very much.
+I must start as soon as possible. Do you think
+you could persuade Emma Patterson to go home
+with you and Marjorie to-morrow, and stay till
+Beverly and I come back?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I can try," said Mrs. Randolph, who was still
+unconvinced of the wisdom of this sudden whim
+of her brother-in-law's, and a little uneasy as
+well. "Emma has promised to visit us later;
+perhaps she would be willing to come now instead.
+You know, George dear, I never ask you
+about your cases, but this seems so very sudden&mdash;are
+you going to see a patient?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said the doctor, quietly. "I may be
+able to tell you more about the case when I come
+back, but I cannot now."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph regarded him anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>"I am afraid you are not well, George," she
+said, "you are dreadfully pale. Is that why
+you don't want to take this long journey alone?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not exactly. I am perfectly well, but&mdash;well,
+the fact is, this may prove a very trying
+business, and I want the boy with me."</p>
+
+<p>"Then you shall certainly have him," said Mrs.
+Randolph, with decision. "Have you spoken to
+Beverly on the subject?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, and he is most anxious to go. Now I
+must make arrangements about accommodations
+on the train, for I want to be off early in the
+morning, if possible. Wouldn't it be a good idea
+to telephone Emma Patterson at once, and see<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span>
+if she can be ready to go with you and Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph stood for a moment, looking
+after her brother-in-law as he left the room.</p>
+
+<p>"There is something wrong," she said: "I
+never saw George so agitated before. I wish I
+knew what it was, but doctors don't like to be
+questioned. I hate to have Beverly lose a whole
+week of college, but if his uncle needs him, I
+have nothing more to say." And, with a resigned
+sigh, she went away to telephone to her
+cousin, Mrs. Patterson.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXI</h2>
+
+<h3>UNDINE REMEMBERS</h3>
+
+<div class='poem'>
+"'A Highland laddie lives over the lea;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">A laddie both noble and gallant and free,</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Who loved a lassie as noble as he&mdash;</span><br />
+<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">A bonnie sweet lassie; the maid of Dundee.'"</span><br />
+</div>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Mrs. Graham</span> glanced up from her sewing,
+with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>"What a sweet voice that child has," she said;
+"with training I believe she would sing remarkably
+well."</p>
+
+<p>"I love to hear her singing about the house,"
+said Miss Jessie, also pausing to listen to the
+clear young voice; "I wonder where she learned
+all those old songs. I remember that ballad, but
+I haven't heard it since I was a child."</p>
+
+<p>"She probably picks them up from Jim," Mrs.
+Graham suggested; "he is always singing about
+the place."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think I ever heard Jim sing this
+one," said Miss Jessie, reflectively. "Susie, I
+do wish we could find out something about the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span>
+child's family. I feel sure she has been brought
+up among people of refinement."</p>
+
+<p>"She is a very attractive girl," Mrs. Graham
+agreed, "but if she has relatives it seems incredible
+that they should never have made the
+slightest effort to find her. Donald and I were
+talking about her last night. He thinks that
+any relatives she had must have been killed in
+the earthquake. It seems the only explanation.
+There is nothing for us to do but wait patiently
+in the hope that Undine may some time be able
+to tell us everything herself. I confess I should
+be very sorry to part with her; she has been a
+great help and comfort since Marjorie went
+away."</p>
+
+<p>"She has indeed," said Miss Jessie, heartily.
+"I have grown very fond of her, and I think
+she cares for us, too. We should have another
+letter from Marjorie by this time."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, Jim has gone for the mail; he may
+bring one this afternoon. It does my heart good
+to know the dear child is having such a happy
+holiday. I would like to write and thank Mrs.
+Randolph for all her kindness to Marjorie; she
+must be a lovely woman."</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure she is, and the son must be a nice
+boy, too, judging from what Marjorie says. Our<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span>
+little girl has made some good friends, as I felt
+sure she would."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham rose, and began folding up her
+work.</p>
+
+<p>"I must go to the kitchen to look after
+Juanita," she said. "It is a lovely afternoon.
+Why don't you get Undine to wheel you out in
+the sun for an hour?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think I will," said Miss Jessie, with a glance
+out of the windows at the cloudless sky and brilliant
+winter sunshine. "Ah, here comes Undine.
+Undine dear, I think I will go out for a little
+while."</p>
+
+<p>The bright-faced, rosy-cheeked girl who entered
+the room at this moment was a very different
+being from the pale, timid, little waif of four
+months earlier. She had grown at least two
+inches, and the clothes which had hung loosely
+about her in her first days at the ranch had now
+become a tight fit. At Miss Jessie's request she
+smiled, and came hurrying to the side of her
+kind friend.</p>
+
+<p>"It's a glorious day," she said; "it makes
+one happy just to be alive. I've had such a
+wonderful ride. I went as far as the railroad,
+and saw the West Bound pass; it was two hours
+late. I'll get your warm coat and some wraps<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span>
+and we'll sit behind the playhouse. You won't
+feel the wind there, and it will be heavenly."</p>
+
+<p>"Undine," said Miss Graham suddenly, when
+the two were comfortably established in one of
+their favorite nooks; the invalid in her chair, and
+her companion on a rug spread on the ground;
+"where did you learn the song I heard you singing
+when you came in from your ride just now?"</p>
+
+<p>"I forget which it was," said Undine, looking
+puzzled. "Oh, yes, I remember&mdash;'A Highland
+Laddie Lived over the Lea.' I don't know
+where I learned it&mdash;isn't it one of Jim's songs?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think so, dear, but we can ask him.
+I never heard you sing it before."</p>
+
+<p>Something of the old, troubled, far-away look
+crept into Undine's face.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know how I remember things," she
+said, slowly; "they just come into my head
+sometimes. Now that I think of it, I don't believe
+I have ever heard Jim sing that song. I
+must have heard it somewhere, though."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Graham said nothing, and there was a
+short pause, which Undine broke.</p>
+
+<p>"You and Mrs. Graham don't like to have
+me talk about the things I can't remember," she
+said, a little wistfully.</p>
+
+<p>"Only because we don't want you to distress<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span>
+yourself and try to force your brain. I have
+always told you I was sure the memory would
+come back some day."</p>
+
+<p>"I think it is coming soon," said Undine,
+softly. "I keep having dreams. I dreamt of
+my mother last night."</p>
+
+<p>There was a quiver in the girl's voice, and
+Miss Jessie leaned forward and laid a kind hand
+on her shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>"Tell me about it, dear," she said, gently.</p>
+
+<p>Undine drew a deep breath that was almost a
+sob.</p>
+
+<p>"It was a beautiful dream," she said. "My
+mother and I were in a dear little room, all furnished
+in pink and white. I don't know where
+it was, but it seemed quite familiar in the dream.
+I was unhappy about something, and my mother
+kissed me, and put her arms round me. She
+had such a dear, beautiful face. Oh, Miss
+Jessie, do you suppose my poor mother was
+killed in that dreadful earthquake?"</p>
+
+<p>"My dear little girl, we cannot possibly know
+that; we must have patience. Have you had
+other dreams?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes. The other night I dreamt I was playing
+with a boy in a swamp. There was a black
+woman in the dream, too; she scolded us, but I<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[295]</a></span>
+wasn't a bit afraid of her. Do you think perhaps
+they were people I used to know?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know, dear; it may be possible, but
+you mustn't let these things worry you. You
+are happy here with us, are you not?"</p>
+
+<p>"Happy!" cried the girl, with sparkling eyes,
+"I never expected to be so happy anywhere. As
+long as I live I shall never forget all you and
+Mr. and Mrs. Graham have done for me, but I
+can't help wanting to remember."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course you can't; that is quite natural.
+We all want you to remember, too, but we must
+have patience. The more you strain your brain,
+the longer it may take for the memory to come
+back. You have been a great comfort to us
+since Marjorie went away; I told her so in my last
+letter."</p>
+
+<p>"I am so glad," said Undine, smiling. "I
+promised Marjorie I would try, but of course I
+knew I could never take her place. Oh, Miss
+Jessie, you said I might read Marjorie's last letter.
+It came when I was out, you know, and I
+didn't hear you read it to Mrs. Graham."</p>
+
+<p>"So I did, I am glad you reminded me, for
+I had forgotten all about it. It was written from
+the place in Virginia where she has been spending
+the holidays, and tells all about their Christmas<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[296]</a></span>
+festivities. It is in the right-hand drawer of
+my desk&mdash;you may read it whenever you like."</p>
+
+<p>Undine glanced at the book in Miss Graham's
+lap.</p>
+
+<p>"If you don't want me for anything, and are
+going to stay here for a while, I think I will go
+and read it now," she said; "I love Marjorie's
+letters."</p>
+
+<p>"Very well, dear; I want to finish this book
+before we begin the one we are going to read
+together. It won't take me more than fifteen
+minutes."</p>
+
+<p>Undine scrambled to her feet.</p>
+
+<p>"All right," she said; "I'll be back before
+that. Oh, Miss Jessie, isn't the air glorious to-day?
+It makes me feel so happy and excited;
+just as if something were going to happen."</p>
+
+<p>Undine tripped away to the house, and Miss
+Graham, as she opened her book, heard the clear
+young voice singing:</p>
+
+<div class='poem'>
+"'A Highland laddie lives over the lea;<br />
+<span style="margin-left: 2em;">A laddie both noble and gallant and free.'"</span><br />
+</div>
+
+<p>The song died away in the distance, and Miss
+Jessie became absorbed in her story. It was
+very still, and not a sound came to disturb her<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[297]</a></span>
+until she had turned the last page. Then she
+closed the book, and looked up in surprise.</p>
+
+<p>"How long Undine takes to read that letter!"
+she said to herself, in some surprise.</p>
+
+<p>Another ten minutes slipped away, but Miss
+Jessie was accustomed to waiting patiently&mdash;she
+had done little else for the past eight years.</p>
+
+<p>"Susie must have kept the child for something,"
+she decided, and settled comfortably back
+in her chair to await Undine's return.</p>
+
+<p>But it was not like her sister-in-law to detain
+Undine without sending some explanation;
+neither was it like the girl to remain away so
+long. At the end of another ten minutes Miss
+Jessie began to be a little curious.</p>
+
+<p>"What can be the matter?" she said uneasily,
+her thoughts reverting to a possible accident to
+her brother, who had gone to try some new
+horses that afternoon. "I think I'll wheel myself
+back to the house and find out."</p>
+
+<p>But at that moment she caught sight of her
+sister-in-law coming towards her across the lawn.
+Mrs. Graham was looking cheerful and serene
+as usual, and carried some sewing in her hand.</p>
+
+<p>"I thought I would come and join you," she
+said, as soon as she was within speaking distance.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[298]</a></span>
+"It's much too lovely to stay in doors. Where's
+Undine?"</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," said Miss Jessie, "I thought
+she was with you. She went in half an hour
+ago, to read Marjorie's last letter, which I had
+forgotten to show her, and hasn't come back
+since."</p>
+
+<p>"I haven't seen her," said Mrs. Graham, looking
+a little annoyed, "but then I have been in
+the kitchen with Juanita. Undine ought not to
+go off like this, and leave you alone so long."</p>
+
+<p>"She never did such a thing before," said Miss
+Jessie, anxiously. "I wish you would go and
+see where she is, Susie."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, she is all right, I am sure," Mrs. Graham
+maintained, but she turned back towards
+the house, nevertheless, for it had also occurred
+to her that it was unlike Undine to neglect her
+duty.</p>
+
+<p>There was not a sound to be heard when Mrs.
+Graham reached the house and although she
+called Undine several times, she received no
+answer.</p>
+
+<p>"Where can the child be?" she said, beginning
+to feel a little frightened, and she hurried to Undine's
+room. The door was open, and her first
+impression was that the room was empty. She<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[299]</a></span>
+was turning away again, more and more puzzled
+by the girl's mysterious disappearance, when her
+eye was caught by a heap of something white
+lying on the floor by the window, and in another
+moment she had hurried forward, with an exclamation
+of dismay, and was bending over Undine,
+who lay, white and unconscious on the floor,
+with Marjorie's letter clasped convulsively in
+her hand.</p>
+
+<p>When Undine opened her eyes she was lying
+on her bed, and Mrs. Graham was bathing her
+forehead, while the faithful Juanita plied a palm-leaf
+fan and held a bottle of smelling-salts to
+her nose. For a moment the girl gazed about
+her in a kind of dull bewilderment; then a look
+of recollection came into her eyes, and she started
+up, with a sharp cry.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm not dead, I'm not dead! Oh, tell them
+it isn't true! I'm not; I'm not!"</p>
+
+<p>"Lie down, dear," said Mrs. Graham in a tone
+of gentle authority. "Of course you are not
+dead; you fainted, that is all. You are better
+now, and if you lie still for a few minutes you
+will be all right."</p>
+
+<p>"But the letter said I was dead," persisted
+Undine, wildly, and she fixed her big, terrified
+eyes on Mrs. Graham's astonished face. "It<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[300]</a></span>
+said Barbara Randolph was dead, and her mother
+put flowers on her grave."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham was beginning to be seriously
+alarmed for the girl's reason, but she made an
+effort to appear calm.</p>
+
+<p>"My dear child," she said, soothingly, "you
+don't know what you are saying. Barbara Randolph
+is the daughter of the lady with whom
+Marjorie has been staying; she died long ago;
+she had nothing to do with you."</p>
+
+<p>"But she didn't die, I know she didn't!" cried
+Undine, sitting up, despite all Mrs. Graham's efforts
+to keep her quiet. "I knew it when I read
+the letter. For one minute I remembered something
+horrible. I don't remember it any more
+now, but I was so frightened, and&mdash;oh, Mrs.
+Graham, I was so terribly frightened!" And
+the poor child burst into a fit of wild, hysterical
+sobbing, and clung passionately to her kind
+friend's neck.</p>
+
+<hr style="width: 45%;" />
+
+<p>Miss Jessie pushed her wheeled-chair out onto
+the porch, and strained her eyes in the gathering
+dusk, in the vain hope of seeing some approaching
+figure. Fortunately the January evening was
+warm, but even if it had been cold she would
+scarcely have been aware of the fact. She was<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[301]</a></span>
+very anxious, and this long suspense of waiting
+was hard to bear. It was more than two hours
+since Undine had regained consciousness, and in
+all that time the girl had scarcely uttered an intelligible
+word. She had passed from one hysterical
+fit into another, and Mrs. Graham and
+Juanita were at their wits' end. For almost the
+first time in twelve years Miss Jessie realized the
+awful loneliness of their lives. "Donald must
+surely be back soon," she told herself, trying to
+be patient, "and Jim will be here with the mail
+before long. Oh, that poor child&mdash;what can it
+all mean?"</p>
+
+<p>There was a slight sound behind her, and Mrs.
+Graham, too, stepped out on the porch. She was
+looking pale and distressed.</p>
+
+<p>"How is she now?" Miss Jessie whispered,
+anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>"I think she has fallen into a doze; she must
+be quite exhausted, poor child. She has had a
+terrible shock of some kind."</p>
+
+<p>"Do you think it can have been caused by
+anything in Marjorie's letter? She must have
+been reading it when she fainted."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know what to think," said Mrs. Graham,
+clasping her hands nervously. "She spoke
+of that Randolph girl&mdash;the little girl who<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[302]</a></span>
+was killed in the earthquake, you know. Oh,
+Jessie, you don't suppose&mdash;" Mrs. Graham did
+not finish her sentence, but the two women
+looked at each other in the dusk, and both their
+faces were pale and startled.</p>
+
+<p>"I must go back," said Mrs. Graham in a
+hurried whisper; "I dare not leave her long.
+When she wakes she may remember; I think her
+memory is coming back. I am afraid you will
+take cold out here."</p>
+
+<p>"I am not cold, but I will come in soon. I
+am waiting for Donald and Jim. I must warn
+them not to speak loud; it might startle her
+again."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham made no further objection, but
+went back into the house and Miss Jessie folded
+her hands and waited.</p>
+
+<p>Five, ten minutes passed, and then came the
+sound of distant hoofs. With a sigh of intense
+relief, Miss Jessie sent the wheeled-chair gliding
+smoothly off the porch, and across the lawn. The
+hoof-beats drew nearer, and now she heard
+voices. Was it her brother or Jim, and who
+were the others, for she distinctly heard more
+than one voice?</p>
+
+<p>"Is it you, Donald?" she called, and in the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[303]</a></span>
+still, clear air, her voice was audible an eighth of
+a mile away.</p>
+
+<p>"No, Miss, it ain't Mr. Graham, it's me,"
+came the answer in Jim's well-known voice.
+"I've got some folks with me."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Jessie waited in silence while the hoofs
+and voices drew nearer. It was no uncommon
+thing for strangers to stop at the ranch, where
+they were always sure of a hospitable reception
+and a night's lodging. She was glad Jim was
+not alone. Perhaps the visitors, whoever they
+were, might be able to help, but how she could
+not imagine. It was nearly dark, and the first
+few stars were beginning to glimmer in the evening
+sky.</p>
+
+<p>The horses were very near now, and she could
+distinguish three figures, one was Jim Hathaway,
+the other two were strangers.</p>
+
+<p>"I beg your pardon, Madame." It was the
+elder of the two strangers who spoke; he had
+sprung from his horse, and taken off his hat.
+Even in the dim light Miss Jessie could see that
+he was a gentleman. His companion she noticed
+was much younger, scarcely more than a boy indeed,
+and he, too, was regarding her with eager,
+questioning eyes.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[304]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I must introduce myself," the gentleman
+went on, courteously. "I think you may have
+heard Marjorie speak of me. I am Dr. Randolph,
+and this is my nephew Beverly."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Jessie gave a little joyful cry, and held
+out both hands.</p>
+
+<p>"Is it about Undine?" she whispered breathlessly.
+"Have you come for her, and is it really
+true that the child is your niece?"</p>
+
+<hr style="width: 45%;" />
+
+<p>It was some time before Undine awoke from
+the heavy sleep of exhaustion into which she had
+fallen. She opened her eyes, gazed about her
+vaguely, and murmured, "Mother! I want
+Mother."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, dear, I know," said Mrs. Graham, softly
+kissing the girl's hot forehead. "Your mother
+isn't here, but she is safe and well, and you shall
+go to her very soon."</p>
+
+<p>Undine smiled faintly, and then a troubled
+look came into her face.</p>
+
+<p>"I forgot her," she said, dreamily, "I forgot
+my mother for a long time, but I remember now,
+and I want her&mdash;oh, I want her." And she
+stretched out her arms in helpless longing.</p>
+
+<p>Then Mrs. Graham moved aside, and some one
+else bent over her.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[305]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Babs," said a low, tremulous voice, "Babs
+darling, don't you know me? It's Beverly."</p>
+
+<p>With a great cry of joy Undine started up, and
+in another second she was clinging convulsively
+round her brother's neck.</p>
+
+<p>"Beverly," she sobbed, "oh, Beverly, I remember;
+I remember everything. It's all come
+back; poor Aunt Helen, that dreadful, dreadful
+time! You thought I was dead, and you and
+Mother put flowers on my grave; but I wasn't
+dead, I had only forgotten. Hold me, Beverly,
+hold me tight; I'm so afraid I'm going to forget
+again."</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[306]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXII</h2>
+
+<h3>UNDINE TELLS HER STORY</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">But</span> Undine did not forget again, although
+it was some time before she was able to give any
+coherent account of what she could remember.
+Indeed, she was in such a feverish, hysterical
+condition, that Dr. Randolph would not allow any
+attempt at questioning her that night.</p>
+
+<p>"She has had a terrible shock, poor child,"
+he said to Mrs. Graham. "The reading of that
+letter must have brought everything back with
+a rush and the knowledge that she had been
+mourned as dead for nearly three years was almost
+more than she could bear. But she is
+young and strong, and a good night's sleep will
+do wonders for her. When I think of what we
+owe to you and your&mdash;" The doctor's voice
+broke suddenly, and he impulsively held out his
+hand.</p>
+
+<p>"I think our obligations are mutual," said
+Mrs. Graham, smiling, though there were tears
+in her eyes. "According to Marjorie's last letter,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[307]</a></span>
+you and Mrs. Randolph have been making
+our little girl very happy, while your niece has
+been a great comfort to us. It is all so strange
+and wonderful that I can scarcely realize yet that
+it isn't a dream."</p>
+
+<p>It was pitiful to see Undine cling to her
+brother; she could not bear to have him out of
+her sight for a moment, and Beverly himself,
+almost stunned by the great shock of the discovery
+that Undine and Barbara were really one
+and the same, coming at the end of four days of
+almost unendurable suspense, could do little beyond
+hovering over his sister, in joy and thankfulness
+too deep for words.</p>
+
+<p>"Does Mother know, Beverly?" Undine whispered,
+late that evening, when the two were alone
+together.</p>
+
+<p>"No, Babs, she doesn't know yet, but we are
+going to take you home just as soon as we can.
+We couldn't let Mother even suspect until we
+were sure ourselves. Marjorie was certain she
+recognized your photograph, but Uncle George
+and I couldn't believe it was true; it seemed so
+impossible."</p>
+
+<p>"Poor, poor Mother," sighed Undine; "oh,
+Beverly, how unhappy she must have been!"</p>
+
+<p>"Don't talk about it, Babs; you know Uncle<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span>
+George doesn't want you to talk. You must try
+to go to sleep, so as to be able to start for home
+as soon as possible."</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid to go to sleep," protested Undine,
+feverishly. "Perhaps when I wake I shall have
+forgotten everything again. Oh, Beverly, don't
+let me forget again."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course we won't let you," said Beverly,
+putting a strong arm around her, protectingly.
+"You are quite safe now, you know, Babs darling,
+Uncle George and I are here, and we're
+going to take you home to Mother."</p>
+
+<p>Undine breathed a deep sigh of relief, as she
+nestled in her brother's arms, and when she fell
+asleep at last it was with Beverly's hand clasped
+fast in hers.</p>
+
+<p>But after a long night's sleep, and a joyful
+waking, to find that she had not forgotten again,
+Undine was quite a different creature, and during
+the morning that followed she was able to
+give her uncle and brother a fairly clear account
+of her adventures.</p>
+
+<p>"I remember it all quite well now," she said.
+"Aunt Helen was ill that night, and she said she
+would have the maid sleep in her room, in case
+she might need something. I slept in the maid's
+room, which was just across the hall. I was<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[309]</a></span>
+very tired, and I think I must have gone to sleep
+as soon as I was in bed, for I don't remember
+anything until I woke hearing a terrible noise.
+The whole hotel seemed to be rocking, and I saw
+some of the things on the bureau fall over, and
+a picture came down off the wall. I think I was
+too frightened to move, for I lay quite still,
+thinking every minute that Aunt Helen would
+come and tell me what had happened. In a few
+moments the shaking stopped and then I heard
+people screaming and running about in the halls.</p>
+
+<p>"Aunt Helen didn't come, or the maid either,
+and at last I got up, and went to look for them.
+I was in my nightgown and bare feet, but I was
+too frightened to stop to put any clothes on. I
+ran out into the hall, intending to go to Aunt
+Helen's room, but something frightful had happened;
+there wasn't any room, only a great pile
+of bricks and mortar, and I heard people say
+one of the chimneys had fallen in. Oh, it was
+terrible&mdash;I can't talk about it!" And the poor
+child began to shiver convulsively.</p>
+
+<p>"Never mind about that part of the story,
+dear," Dr. Randolph said, soothingly, while
+Beverly put his arm round her.</p>
+
+<p>"I called and called to Aunt Helen," Undine
+went on in a voice scarcely above a whisper,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[310]</a></span>
+"but nobody answered, and then the house began
+to shake again and people screamed that the
+walls were falling.</p>
+
+<p>"The next thing I remember is being out in
+the street. I don't know how I got there, but
+I was running along in my bare feet, in the midst
+of a great crowd. I don't know how far I ran
+or where I went. I think I must have been
+crazed with fright. I tried to speak to people,
+but nobody took any notice of me. I heard them
+saying there had been a terrible earthquake, and
+that the whole city had been destroyed. At last
+I got very tired, and I think I must have been
+faint too, for everything grew black, and I was
+so cold. I remember going inside a doorway,
+and thinking I would rest there for a few minutes,
+and then the stone must have fallen on my
+head, for I don't remember anything more till I
+woke up in the hospital, and didn't even know
+my name."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course it must have been the poor maid
+who was killed," said Beverly. "We never
+dreamed of that, because we felt so sure you and
+Aunt Helen had roomed together. But Babs
+dear, did you never remember anything at all&mdash;not
+even the least little thing?"</p>
+
+<p>Undine shook her head.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[311]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I used to have little gleams of memory sometimes,"
+she said, "but they were gone again in
+a minute. I had one the first time I heard Jim
+sing 'Mandalay,' and for one second I think I
+almost remembered you, Beverly. Another time
+I almost remembered was when Mrs. Graham
+was reading a letter from Marjorie, in which she
+mentioned your name for the first time. I kept
+saying 'Randolph, Randolph' over and over to
+myself for a long time, but after the first minute
+the words didn't seem to mean anything to me.
+It wasn't till yesterday when I read that letter,
+and saw all your names together&mdash;Mother's and
+yours, and Uncle George's and then that part
+about going to Barbara's grave&mdash;that it all
+came back with a rush, and I was so frightened
+that I fainted."</p>
+
+<p>Later in the day Undine&mdash;or Barbara, as I
+suppose we must call her now&mdash;had a long talk
+with her uncle. Dr. Randolph had insisted on
+Beverly's going out for a walk. The boy was
+utterly worn out from excitement and suspense,
+and his uncle feared he would be really ill if
+precautions were not taken. So he was sent off
+for a long tramp over the ranch with Mr. Graham,
+and the doctor sat down by his little niece's
+bedside, and tried to draw her thoughts away<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[312]</a></span>
+from painful memories, by talking of Marjorie,
+and of her own life on the ranch.</p>
+
+<p>"They have all been so good to me here, Uncle
+George," Barbara said, the grateful tears starting
+to her eyes. "If you could have seen me
+when I first came! I am sure I looked like a
+tramp, and I was so miserable I didn't care much
+what became of me. I don't think many people
+would have believed my crazy story, but they
+took me right in without a word, and have
+treated me just as if I belonged to them ever
+since. Aren't Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie
+lovely?"</p>
+
+<p>"They are indeed," said the doctor, heartily.
+"We owe them a debt of gratitude that can never
+be repaid. Miss Graham has one of the sweetest
+faces I have ever seen. Has she been a cripple
+all her life?"</p>
+
+<p>Barbara caught her breath as a sudden recollection
+flashed into her mind.</p>
+
+<p>"Uncle George," she cried excitedly, "aren't
+you a great surgeon?"</p>
+
+<p>"I am a surgeon certainly," said her uncle,
+smiling, "but I don't know just what you would
+call a great one; why do you want to know?"</p>
+
+<p>"Because," said Barbara, clasping her hands,
+and regarding the doctor with shining eyes,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[313]</a></span>
+"now Marjorie can have her wish&mdash;the thing
+she wants more than anything else in the world,
+and that she and I have been praying for all
+winter."</p>
+
+<p>And in a few rapid words she told the story of
+Miss Graham's accident, and of Marjorie's hopes.</p>
+
+<p>Dr. Randolph said nothing, but he looked much
+interested, and when Beverly returned from his
+walk, he left the brother and sister together, and
+went in quest of Mrs. Graham, with whom he
+had a long talk. Then Miss Jessie was taken
+into their confidence, and all through the long
+afternoon Barbara and Beverly waited in eager
+anxiety for their uncle's return.</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Graham was obliged to ride some distance
+to another ranch that afternoon, in order to see
+a man on business, and it was late in the evening
+when he returned, and found his old classmate
+waiting for him on the porch.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, and how are things going?" he inquired
+cheerfully, when Jim had taken away his
+horse. "I trust our little friend is better."</p>
+
+<p>"She is much better, thank you," Dr. Randolph
+answered. "She is fast recovering from
+the shock, and I hope we may be able to start for
+home by the day after to-morrow. Her mother
+must be told as soon as possible, and Barbara herself<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[314]</a></span>
+can scarcely wait to get home. I am going
+to make arrangements to leave on the first available
+train for the East and&mdash;Graham, I want
+to ask you a favor."</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure I shall be glad to do anything in
+my power," Mr. Graham said, smiling; "what
+is it?"</p>
+
+<p>"I want you to let me take your wife and
+sister back to New York with us."</p>
+
+<p>"My wife and sister!" repeated Mr. Graham
+in amazement. "Why, my dear boy, my poor
+sister hasn't left her wheeled-chair for eight
+years. I am sure that she could not stand such
+a journey."</p>
+
+<p>"I think she could," said the doctor, quietly.
+"I should take a compartment for her, of course,
+and she could lie down during the whole trip.
+As for the drive to the station, I think that could
+also be managed without much discomfort. She
+tells me she often takes fairly long drives with
+you and your wife. Barbara is still very much
+shaken, and will need a woman's care on the
+journey. Your wife can be of great assistance
+to us, and as to your sister&mdash;well, the fact is,
+Graham, I made an examination this afternoon,
+with her and Mrs. Graham's consent, and I see
+no reason why an operation cannot be performed.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[315]</a></span>
+I can't promise an absolute cure, but I have
+strong hopes."</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Graham did not speak, but he grasped
+his old friend's hand in gratitude too deep for
+words, and the doctor went away well satisfied,
+to carry the good news to his niece and nephew.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, how happy Marjorie will be!" cried
+Barbara, with sparkling eyes. "When she
+wrote me that she had met a great surgeon, but
+would never have the courage to speak to him
+about her aunt, how little either of us dreamed&mdash;oh,
+what a wonderful, beautiful thing it all is!
+To think that in five days I shall be with Mother.
+You don't think the shock will make her ill, do
+you, Uncle George?"</p>
+
+<p>"I hope not, dear, but we must be very careful
+how the news is broken to her. Now I want
+Beverly to go to bed, and you must try to sleep,
+too, Barbara, for you will need all your strength
+for the journey, and the meeting with your
+mother."</p>
+
+<p>But it was a long time before Barbara fell
+asleep that night. Old memories were trooping
+back thick and fast, and there was so much that
+was happy as well as sad to remember. She
+breathed more than one little prayer of thankfulness
+to the dear Heavenly Father, who had<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[316]</a></span>
+watched over her through all her trials and
+dangers, and brought her back at last to home
+and friends. And when sleep came at last, it
+was a peaceful, refreshing sleep, untroubled by
+feverish dreams.</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[317]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXIII</h2>
+
+<h3>BREAKING THE NEWS</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">Do</span> sit down, Marjorie; you haven't been
+still for five minutes since luncheon." Elsie
+spoke in a tone of weary exasperation, as she
+laid down the book she had been trying to read,
+and regarded her cousin's flushed cheeks and
+sparkling eyes, with a half amused, half annoyed
+expression.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie laughed nervously.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm sorry I've been so restless," she said,
+"but how can I help it. Just think, they'll be
+here this very day, and Mrs. Randolph doesn't
+know a single thing yet."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I know it's the most exciting
+thing that ever happened," Elsie admitted, with
+resignation, "but one can't help getting tired
+even of exciting things when one has heard of
+nothing else for a whole week. It will be a week
+to-morrow since you got that telegram, and I
+don't believe you've thought of another thing
+since."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">[318]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe I have," agreed Marjorie,
+"but then how could I? Oh, Elsie, I'm so
+happy when I think it has all come about through
+my recognizing that photograph! Just suppose
+Beverly and I hadn't gone to Mammy's cabin
+that afternoon. I might never have seen a picture
+of Barbara, and the Randolphs might never
+have known."</p>
+
+<p>"I wonder how they are going to break the
+news to Mrs. Randolph," remarked Elsie, without
+heeding her cousin's last observation. "I
+should think it would be dreadfully dangerous;
+the shock might kill her."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's bright face clouded.</p>
+
+<p>"I can't help worrying about it," she said,
+"but I am sure Dr. Randolph will find a way of
+doing it. It's wonderful to see her so calm, just
+doing every-day things, and talking as if nothing
+unusual were happening, when we are all so
+excited and nervous."</p>
+
+<p>"I really don't see how you managed to keep
+her from suspecting when you were on the way
+home," said Elsie; "I'm afraid I should have let
+out something without intending to."</p>
+
+<p>"I couldn't do that," said Marjorie, gravely.
+"Think how terrible it would have been if Mrs.
+Randolph had hoped and then been disappointed.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">[319]</a></span>
+I was sure myself, but neither Dr. Randolph nor
+Beverly believed it could be true. I shall never
+forget that last evening in Virginia. Beverly and
+I were both almost ill from excitement, and yet
+we had to act just as if nothing unusual had happened.
+Fortunately the doctor and Beverly were
+to start the first thing in the morning, so we all
+went to bed early. I don't believe any of us slept
+a wink; I know I didn't. The day on the train
+wasn't quite so bad, because Mrs. Patterson was
+with us, and she hadn't been told anything, and
+could be natural without trying. I pretended to
+be very much interested in a book, so as not to
+have to talk much, but I couldn't tell you what it
+was about. And all the time Mrs. Randolph was
+just as sweet and calm as possible, and worried
+about me because my hands were cold, and I
+couldn't eat."</p>
+
+<p>"I think you were very plucky," said Elsie.</p>
+
+<p>The bright color rushed into Marjorie's cheeks;
+this was the first compliment Elsie had ever paid
+her.</p>
+
+<p>"I wasn't at all plucky," she said, modestly;
+"any one else would have done the same thing.
+I'm glad you think I was, though, for I do want
+you to like me."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I like you," said Elsie, reddening<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">[320]</a></span>
+in her turn. "There's the door-bell; I wonder if
+it's Mamma."</p>
+
+<p>"Perhaps it's a letter," cried Marjorie, springing
+to her feet; "I ought to have a letter from
+home to-day. I haven't heard a word since that
+little note from Aunt Jessie the morning after
+Barbara was found."</p>
+
+<p>But it was not a letter. Neither was it Mrs.
+Carleton, who had gone driving with a friend.
+In a moment the faithful Hortense appeared with
+a message.</p>
+
+<p>"Madame Randolph has sent to inquire if
+Mademoiselle Marjorie will come to her apartment
+for a short time. Her friend has been
+obliged to go out, and she is alone."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie clasped her hands in dismay, and
+turned a little pale.</p>
+
+<p>"Send word you're very busy, and can't possibly
+come," suggested Elsie. But Marjorie
+shook her head.</p>
+
+<p>"I shall have to go," she said, with a little
+gasp. "Mrs. Randolph has been so good to me;
+she would think it so strange if I didn't come
+when she sent for me. Say I will be there in a
+few minutes, Hortense."</p>
+
+<p>"You really are a wonder, Marjorie," remarked
+Elsie, with involuntary admiration, as<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_321" id="Page_321">[321]</a></span>
+Hortense left the room with the message. "I'm
+sure I should never be able to do it."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, you would," said Marjorie, smiling
+and without another word she followed Hortense
+out of the room.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's heart was beating very fast when
+she rang Mrs. Randolph's bell five minutes later,
+but when that lady herself opened the door, and
+greeted her guest with her usual serene cheerfulness,
+the girl pulled herself together with a
+mighty effort, and her friend noticed nothing unusual
+in her manner, except that her cheeks were
+flushed and her eyes shining.</p>
+
+<p>"I am so glad you could come this afternoon,"
+Mrs. Randolph said, leading the way to the sitting-room.
+"I haven't seen you for days, and
+was beginning to feel quite neglected." She
+spoke playfully, but Marjorie felt the gentle reproach
+in her tone, and her heart beat faster than
+ever.</p>
+
+<p>"Indeed I didn't mean to neglect you," she
+said, eagerly, "but&mdash;but you see I have had a
+good deal to do since I came home; school began
+on Monday."</p>
+
+<p>"I understand, dear," said Mrs. Randolph,
+smiling, "and I am not blaming you in the least,
+but I have missed you very much."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_322" id="Page_322">[322]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"You have had Mrs. Patterson," said Marjorie,
+as she took the seat her friend indicated beside
+her on the sofa.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, and she has been a great comfort,
+for I have missed Beverly terribly. He and the
+doctor will be at home this afternoon, you know."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes," said Marjorie; "Mrs. Patterson told
+us at luncheon. She said you had a headache; I
+hope it's better."</p>
+
+<p>"Much better, thank you, dear. I didn't come
+down to luncheon because I wanted to be quite
+bright and well this evening when Beverly is
+here. This is always a rather sad day for me; it
+is my little Barbara's birthday."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie's heart gave one big jump, and began
+throbbing so fast she could scarcely breathe.
+She could not have spoken had her life depended
+on it, but fortunately Mrs. Randolph did not appear
+to expect an answer.</p>
+
+<p>"My little girl would have been fifteen to-day,"
+she said, sadly. "It seems hard to realize;
+she was such a child when she went away. I
+have missed Beverly so much to-day; he and I
+always talk of Barbara on her birthday."</p>
+
+<p>"Would you like to talk to me about her, Mrs.
+Randolph?" said Marjorie, in a voice that was
+scarcely above a whisper.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_323" id="Page_323">[323]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I should like it very much. Indeed, that is
+why I sent for you. Mrs. Patterson has gone
+out. I offered to go with her, but she said she
+had some important business to attend to, and
+would rather go alone. I am afraid something
+is troubling her, and she doesn't want to worry
+me about it."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie, who knew that Mrs. Patterson had
+gone to the station to meet the travelers, in answer
+to an urgent telegram from Dr. Randolph,
+said nothing. Mrs. Patterson, being a nervous,
+excitable little woman, had been purposely kept
+in ignorance of the real reason of her cousins'
+Western trip, and it was in order to break the
+news to her that the doctor had wired her to meet
+him at the station, and to say nothing on the subject
+of her errand to Mrs. Randolph. Consequently,
+the poor little lady had been filled by apprehensions
+of something dreadful having happened
+to one or both of the travelers, and had
+departed in a state of perturbation well calculated
+to arouse Mrs. Randolph's suspicions that something
+was troubling her.</p>
+
+<p>There was a moment's pause, and then Mrs.
+Randolph went on.</p>
+
+<p>"I never talk of my little girl to strangers&mdash;it
+is all too sacred for that&mdash;but you are not a<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_324" id="Page_324">[324]</a></span>
+stranger any more. I have loved you dearly ever
+since we stood together at my Barbara's grave,
+and you showed me by your silent sympathy how
+well you understood."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie could not speak, but she took her
+friend's hand, and stroked it softly, while Mrs.
+Randolph went on, calmly, though with a quiver
+in her voice:</p>
+
+<p>"I used to try to make the children's birthdays
+as happy as possible; I thought they would be
+pleasant memories for them when they were
+older. Even the year after my husband died,
+when my heart was very sad, I wanted them to
+have a merry time. Little children's lives should
+never be saddened. I think you would have
+loved my little girl, Marjorie; she was very
+sweet."</p>
+
+<p>"I know I should," said Marjorie, with a sob,
+that was half hysterical.</p>
+
+<p>"I am afraid she was a sad rogue sometimes,"
+said Mrs. Randolph, smiling; "Beverly and I
+often laugh even now over the memory of some
+of her pranks. I want him to remember all the
+bright, pleasant things, and not dwell too much
+on the sadness."</p>
+
+<p>"Mammy told me about some of Barbara's<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_325" id="Page_325">[325]</a></span>
+pranks," said Marjorie, "she showed me her
+photograph, too."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph unfastened a small gold locket
+from a chain she always wore about her neck,
+and opened it. Inside was the miniature of a
+merry-faced girl of twelve&mdash;the same face that
+had looked at Marjorie from the photograph in
+Mammy's cabin.</p>
+
+<p>"That was taken only a few weeks before my
+little girl went away," she said. "She was just
+twelve then. I suppose she would look older
+now, but I can never think of Babs as growing
+up."</p>
+
+<p>Then Marjorie had an inspiration. How it
+came she never knew, but she had yielded to it before
+giving herself time to think.</p>
+
+<p>"That picture reminds me of some one I
+know," she said, and the moment the words were
+out she would have given everything she possessed
+to have left them unsaid.</p>
+
+<p>"Who is it?" Mrs. Randolph asked, her eyes
+still resting lovingly on the face of the miniature.</p>
+
+<p>"A girl who has been at my home since last
+summer," said Marjorie, who was beginning to
+feel cold and sick with excitement and apprehension,
+but was determined to go on now that<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_326" id="Page_326">[326]</a></span>
+she had begun. "She came to the ranch one
+day all by herself. She had walked all the way
+from the railroad. It was a very strange case;
+she had had an accident, and forgotten everything
+about herself, even her own name."</p>
+
+<p>"Forgotten her name!" said Mrs. Randolph,
+incredulously. "What a curious thing&mdash;are
+you sure her story was true?"</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, yes, quite sure. She was such a dear
+girl, we couldn't doubt her. Besides Father
+wrote to the people she had lived with since her
+accident, and they said everything Undine had
+told us was true. We called her Undine because
+it was pretty, and we didn't know her real name."</p>
+
+<p>"Poor child," said Mrs. Randolph, closing the
+miniature as she spoke. "Has she never remembered
+anything about herself since?"</p>
+
+<p>"She hadn't a week ago," said Marjorie, wondering
+how her shaking lips formed the words,
+"but perhaps she may some time. Oh, Mrs.
+Randolph, suppose she should remember, and it
+should turn out that she had relatives&mdash;brothers
+and sisters, and&mdash;and perhaps a mother, who
+had been mourning her as dead! Can you think
+how her mother would feel? Can you even imagine
+it, Mrs. Randolph?"</p>
+
+<p>"I think such joy would be more than any<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_327" id="Page_327">[327]</a></span>
+mother could bear," said Mrs. Randolph, softly.
+"But such strange, romantic things don't often
+happen in this world, Marjorie dear. The poor
+child's mother is probably dead, or she would
+have found her long ago. How did the accident
+happen?"</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie gave a great gasp.</p>
+
+<p>"We&mdash;we are not quite sure," she said.
+"Undine says the people at the hospital told her
+a stone must have fallen on her head. She was
+found in San Francisco under some ruins, after&mdash;after
+the earthquake."</p>
+
+<p>"After the earthquake," repeated Mrs. Randolph
+in a strange, startled tone, and she grew
+suddenly pale. "Oh, poor, poor child! At least
+my little Barbara was spared those horrors. Why
+have you never told me about this girl before,
+Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>"Because Beverly said it made you sad to have
+any one speak of the earthquake, and I couldn't
+have told Undine's story without mentioning it.
+It was dreadful, of course, but she was saved.
+Think of it, Mrs. Randolph, she was saved, and
+perhaps some time&mdash;" poor Marjorie's over-strained
+nerves gave way, and she burst into
+tears.</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Randolph had grown very white; she was<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_328" id="Page_328">[328]</a></span>
+trembling, too, but she laid a firm hand on the
+girl's shoulder.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie," she cried sharply, "what does this
+mean? Why are you telling me all this? Something
+has happened, I know it has&mdash;oh, Marjorie,
+for God's sake tell me what it is! My little
+girl is dead; they brought her home to me,
+though they would not let me see her dear face.
+Marjorie, why do you cry so? You must tell me
+at once, do you hear? I say at once."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Mrs. Randolph, darling Mrs. Randolph,
+it isn't anything sad, indeed it isn't," sobbed Marjorie,
+with her arms about her friend's neck.
+"It's something beautiful; more beautiful and
+wonderful than you can ever imagine. I can't say
+any more, but Beverly will be here very soon, and
+he will tell you. Try to think of the very greatest
+joy that could possibly come to any one,
+and perhaps you will begin to have an idea what
+it is."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie paused, conscious of the fact that
+some one had entered the room. In their excitement
+neither she nor Mrs. Randolph had noticed
+the opening of the door, or the sound of an approaching
+footstep. But now as she lifted her
+face from her friend's shoulder, Marjorie saw
+two figures standing on the threshold; they were<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_329" id="Page_329">[329]</a></span>
+Dr. Randolph and Beverly. At the same moment
+Mrs. Randolph also recognized them, and held
+out her arms to her son.</p>
+
+<p>"Beverly," she cried, "tell me what it is!
+You know, I see it in your face. Oh, Beverly,
+my darling, it isn't&mdash;it can't be news of Barbara?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, Mother, it is!" cried the boy, gathering
+her in his strong arms. "Can you bear a great
+shock, Mother&mdash;a great joyful shock?&mdash;because
+if you can, Uncle George and I have something
+to tell you."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie waited for no more; such scenes were
+not for other eyes to see or other ears to hear.
+With a bound, she was out of the room, and flying
+across the corridor. In her flight she darted
+by two other figures without even seeing them; a
+trembling, white-faced girl clinging nervously to
+an older woman, whose face was scarcely less
+white than her own. She had but one thought:
+to reach her room before the burst of hysterical
+excitement completely overpowered her. A frantic
+ring at the Carletons' bell, and then the door
+was thrown open, and she was clinging to some
+one&mdash;presumably Hortense&mdash;crying and laughing
+both together.</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Hortense, Hortense," she wailed, "I've<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_330" id="Page_330">[330]</a></span>
+told her, and they've come! You don't think the
+shock will kill her, do you?"</p>
+
+<p>But it was not Hortense who answered, or
+who held the hysterical child in loving, motherly
+arms.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie, my dear little Marjorie, don't
+tremble so! Everything will be all right, my
+darling, I know it will, and here are Aunt Jessie
+and I come all the way from Arizona to give you
+a big surprise."</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_331" id="Page_331">[331]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXIV</h2>
+
+<h3>MARJORIE HAS HER WISH</h3>
+
+
+<p><span class="smcap">Marjorie</span> declared afterwards that she was
+sure that was the happiest moment of her life,
+but at the time the joyful surprise, coming so
+soon after the nervous strain of the past hour,
+proved almost too much for her, and she could
+do nothing for some time but hold her mother
+tight, and cry as if her heart would break.</p>
+
+<p>"It's the one thing I've been wishing for every
+day, and praying for every night since I came to
+New York," Marjorie said to her aunt, late that
+evening, when Miss Graham was in bed, and her
+niece was sitting beside her, holding her hand.
+"But I never dared hope it would really happen,
+even when I knew Dr. Randolph had gone to Arizona.
+We were all so excited about Barbara; it
+didn't seem as if he or Beverly would be able to
+think of anything else."</p>
+
+<p>"It was all Undine's doing," said Miss Jessie,
+smiling. She was looking pale and tired, but<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_332" id="Page_332">[332]</a></span>
+very happy and Marjorie gazed at her aunt, with
+shining eyes.</p>
+
+<p>"You know it was Undine who told her uncle
+about my accident," the invalid went on. "Dr.
+Randolph made an examination, and he hopes
+that I may be much helped by an operation. He
+is going to bring another surgeon to see me to-morrow,
+and if they agree in their opinion, I am
+to go to a hospital."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Graham spoke cheerfully, but there was a
+slight tremor in her voice, and Marjorie grew
+suddenly grave. They were both silent for a
+moment, and then Marjorie said:</p>
+
+<p>"Isn't Beverly a dear, and don't you like Dr.
+Randolph ever so much, too?"</p>
+
+<p>"I do indeed," said Miss Jessie, heartily. "I
+shall never forget their kindness during that long
+journey. As for Undine, she could not have
+been more devoted to me if she had been my own
+little niece. It has been a wonderful experience,
+Marjorie; I never expected to see the East
+again."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie bent and kissed her.</p>
+
+<p>"Beautiful things do happen in the world as
+well as sad ones, don't they?" she said, softly.
+"When I think of you and Mother being here,
+and of Mrs. Randolph having found her Barbara,<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_333" id="Page_333">[333]</a></span>
+my heart is so full it seems as if it must
+surely burst. Here comes Mother; perhaps she
+will be able to tell us how Mrs. Randolph has
+borne the shock."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham's news was most reassuring.</p>
+
+<p>"I have seen Beverly," she said, "and he says
+his mother is quite calm now. At first they were
+anxious about her, but only for a little while.
+Beverly says his uncle thinks it was a fortunate
+thing you were able to prepare her a little before
+they came, Marjorie; otherwise it would have
+been more difficult to break the news to her."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie gave a long sigh of relief.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm so glad it wasn't wrong," she said. "I
+was horribly frightened after I had begun, but
+when Mrs. Randolph showed me that picture, it
+came to me all at once to tell her about Undine.
+I thought that if she heard of one girl who was
+saved from the earthquake, she might be able to
+believe that another girl was saved, too."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie both smiled, and
+then Mrs. Graham said she must obey the doctor's
+instructions, and see that her sister-in-law was
+kept quiet, and went to sleep early.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie and her mother had a long talk that
+night, after Aunt Jessie was asleep, and the girl
+opened her heart as she had not done since leaving<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_334" id="Page_334">[334]</a></span>
+home, and Mrs. Graham learned of many
+things that she had not been told in letters.</p>
+
+<p>"I think Elsie really does like me now," finished
+Marjorie, when she had told of the many
+heartaches caused by the fear that her cousin did
+not like her. "She has been very sweet since I
+came back from Virginia, and just as kind and
+sympathetic as she could be."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Graham looked pleased.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie has been spoiled," she said, "but I believe
+she has the right stuff in her, after all. I
+am glad you have told me all these things, dear,
+although I understand your reasons for not writing
+them. You have had a harder time than I
+suspected, but I don't think it has done you any
+harm. Do you know, Marjorie, I am inclined to
+be rather proud of my little girl?"</p>
+
+<p>Those last words of her mother's filled Marjorie's
+cup to the brim, and I doubt if in all the
+great city that night, there were two happier beings
+than she and Barbara Randolph.</p>
+
+<p>But it was not all happiness for Marjorie during
+the next few days. There followed hours of
+keen anxiety about Aunt Jessie, and for a time
+she forgot everything else while she waited in suspense
+for the verdict of the two great surgeons.</p>
+
+<p>It was on an afternoon three days later, that<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_335" id="Page_335">[335]</a></span>
+she and Barbara sat together in the Randolphs'
+parlor, waiting for the news, which was to tell
+them whether Jessie Graham was to go through
+life a helpless cripple, or be restored to health and
+strength once more. The day before she had
+been taken to a private hospital, and the girls
+knew that an operation was to be performed that
+afternoon. They were alone, for Mrs. Graham
+was with her sister-in-law, and Mrs. Randolph&mdash;almost
+as anxious as the others&mdash;had gone to
+the hospital for news, promising to return as soon
+as possible. So Marjorie and Barbara sat together
+side by side on the sofa, holding each
+other's hands, and waiting in almost breathless
+suspense.</p>
+
+<p>"Mother will be sure to let us know just as
+soon as there's anything to tell," whispered Barbara,
+anxious to cheer her friend. "She says
+Uncle George told her he was very hopeful."</p>
+
+<p>"I know," said Marjorie, "he told us all so,
+but I can't help being frightened when I think of
+all it means to Aunt Jessie. She doesn't say
+much, but I know how she must feel. Just think
+how we would feel if we hadn't walked a step for
+more than eight years."</p>
+
+<p>"Where is your cousin this afternoon?" inquired
+Barbara, by way of changing the subject.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_336" id="Page_336">[336]</a></span>
+She was almost as anxious as Marjorie, but she
+had been living at high pressure for so long, it
+was a relief to get down to commonplaces.</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know," said Marjorie; "she was going
+out, but it rained so hard Aunt Julia wouldn't
+let her go, on account of her cold. Aunt Julia is
+very fussy about colds."</p>
+
+<p>"Don't you think she would like to come in
+here with us?" suggested Barbara. "She may
+be lonely all by herself."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't believe she is lonely," said Marjorie,
+doubtfully, "but if you think she might like to
+come&mdash;"</p>
+
+<p>A ring at the door-bell brought Marjorie's sentence
+to an abrupt end, and both girls sprang to
+their feet.</p>
+
+<p>"I'll see who it is," said Barbara; "it may be
+a message from Mother." And she flew to open
+the door, while Marjorie sank back in her seat,
+feeling suddenly cold and sick with fear.</p>
+
+<p>But it was not a message from Mrs. Randolph;
+it was Elsie.</p>
+
+<p>"I just came to ask if you had heard anything
+yet," she said, looking rather embarrassed, as she
+noticed the expression of disappointment on Barbara's
+face.</p>
+
+<p>"No, we haven't," Barbara answered; "we<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_337" id="Page_337">[337]</a></span>
+thought it might be a message when we heard the
+bell. Won't you come in?"</p>
+
+<p>Elsie hesitated.</p>
+
+<p>"Do you really want me?" she asked, doubtfully;
+"I thought perhaps you would rather be
+by yourselves."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course we want you," declared Barbara,
+heartily, while Marjorie&mdash;in the background&mdash;gave
+a little gasp of astonishment. Such humility
+from the proud Elsie was something that had
+never entered her imagination.</p>
+
+<p>Elsie made no remark, but she came in, and
+followed Barbara to the sitting-room, where Marjorie
+smiled a welcome which appeared to set her
+cousin more at her ease.</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure you must be almost as anxious as
+we are," said Barbara, "though of course you
+don't know Miss Jessie as well. No one could
+help loving her."</p>
+
+<p>"No, they couldn't," agreed Elsie, in a rather
+low voice, and then she walked over to the window,
+and stood with her back to the others, looking
+out at the falling rain.</p>
+
+<p>Nobody talked much during the next half-hour.
+Marjorie and Barbara both had lumps in
+their throats, and words did not come easily.
+Elsie, too, was unusually silent. There was another<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_338" id="Page_338">[338]</a></span>
+little excitement when the bell rang again,
+and Beverly came in. Beverly had been through
+a great deal during the past two weeks, but boys
+of eighteen cannot live on high pressure for very
+long without a reaction setting in. Beverly was
+a very natural, healthy-minded boy, and the reaction
+in his case took the form of unusually high
+spirits.</p>
+
+<p>"Don't all have such long faces," he remarked,
+cheerfully, surveying the solemn little
+group. "Just make up your minds everything is
+coming out all right, and you'll see it will. I've
+got more faith in Uncle George than in any other
+surgeon in the country. Think of what he did
+for that English boy we met at the Bells'."</p>
+
+<p>"I know Uncle George is wonderful," said
+Barbara, a trifle more hopeful, "but even he may
+not be able to cure everybody. You would be
+just as anxious as Marjorie and I, Beverly, if you
+knew dear Miss Jessie as well as we do."</p>
+
+<p>"I didn't say I wasn't anxious. I only said
+I didn't see any use in such long faces before you
+know whether there was anything to be mournful
+about. How do you do, Miss Elsie? I haven't
+seen you in a week of Sundays."</p>
+
+<p>In his present exuberant spirits, Beverly was
+quite ready to forget past unpleasantness, but<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_339" id="Page_339">[339]</a></span>
+Elsie had not forgotten, as her heightened color
+and embarrassed manner plainly showed.</p>
+
+<p>Beverly went to the piano, and began playing
+rag-time, with the cheerful desire of raising the
+drooping spirits of the party. He proposed they
+should sing college songs, but nobody felt inclined
+for singing and the attempt proved a dismal
+failure.</p>
+
+<p>"What a very uncomfortable thing suspense
+is," remarked Barbara, as the clock struck five.</p>
+
+<p>"You would say so if you had been through
+the suspense Marjorie and I have," her brother
+said. "We know something of what suspense
+means, don't we, Marjorie?"</p>
+
+<p>"Indeed we do," said Marjorie, rousing herself
+from present anxieties with an effort. "Oh,
+Beverly, those awful days when you and your
+uncle were on your way to Arizona, and I
+couldn't be absolutely sure I hadn't made a mistake
+about that photo after all. Suppose I had
+been mistaken, and you had had that terrible disappointment!"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, you were not mistaken, you see," broke
+in Beverly, who felt that the recollection of those
+days was still too vivid to bear discussion.
+"Come and sit by me, Babs," and he made room
+for his sister on the piano stool.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[340]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>But all suspense, however long, must come to
+an end at last, and just as the clock was striking
+half past five, there was another ring at the bell,
+followed by a simultaneous rush to the door.
+Only Marjorie remained behind. Until that moment
+she had scarcely realized how great her anxiety
+was, and her knees shook so that she could
+not rise from her chair. She heard all the others
+talking at once, apparently asking some question,
+and then Mrs. Randolph's voice, but she could not
+hear her words.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie, Marjorie, where are you?" cried
+Barbara joyfully; "here's Mother!"</p>
+
+<p>"I'm here," said Marjorie, faintly, and the
+next moment Mrs. Randolph was beside her,
+holding both her cold hands. Marjorie's eyes
+asked the question her lips refused to form, and
+Mrs. Randolph bent and kissed her.</p>
+
+<p>"Marjorie dear," she said in a voice that was
+not quite steady, though she was smiling, "your
+mother wanted me to tell you that the operation
+is over, and that Dr. Randolph feels almost certain
+it has been successful."</p>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_341" id="Page_341">[341]</a></span></p>
+<h2>CHAPTER XXV</h2>
+
+<h3>ELSIE REDEEMS HERSELF</h3>
+
+
+<p>"<span class="smcap">Do</span> you know, Aunt Jessie, that to-morrow
+will be the first of May? It's nearly four months
+since you and Mother came to New York."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Graham was leaning back in a comfortable
+arm-chair by an open window, through
+which the bright spring sunshine was pouring,
+flooding every corner of the pleasant hotel bedroom.
+She was still looking rather frail and delicate,
+but there was an expression of hope and joy
+in her face, that had never been there in the old
+days at the ranch. A crutch stood at her side,
+but there was no wheeled-chair to be seen. At
+Marjorie's words she looked round with a smile.</p>
+
+<p>"Time has certainly flown," she said. "Have
+you had a pleasant ride?"</p>
+
+<p>"It was glorious. Beverly and I had a
+splendid gallop. I hope you enjoyed your drive."</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, it was lovely," said Miss Jessie, secretly
+thinking that Marjorie had grown very pretty
+lately. She looked so well in her perfectly fitting<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_342" id="Page_342">[342]</a></span>
+riding habit, with her rosy cheeks and sparkling
+eyes. "I wasn't at all tired when I came home
+either, which Dr. Randolph considers a distinct
+gain. He says I am one of his star patients.
+Have you finished your lessons for to-morrow?"</p>
+
+<p>"Haven't any; it's Saturday, you know. I
+shall have plenty of time to study between now
+and Monday. I came to have a little chat with
+you before I dress. I'm going out this evening,
+you remember. It's the last meeting of the Club,
+and quite an important occasion. The Bells are
+sailing for Europe to-morrow, and Lulu is our
+president."</p>
+
+<p>"I thought you wrote me that Elsie was elected
+president," said Miss Graham, who seldom forgot
+anything Marjorie told her.</p>
+
+<p>"She was at first," said Marjorie, hoping her
+aunt would not notice her suddenly heightened
+color. She drew a low chair to Miss Jessie's
+side, and settled herself for a comfortable chat.</p>
+
+<p>"Why did she give it up?" Miss Graham inquired,
+with interest.</p>
+
+<p>"I&mdash;I don't exactly know. It was after I
+came back from Virginia and Barbara came
+home. She said she would rather not be president
+any more, and asked Lulu to take her
+place."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_343" id="Page_343">[343]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I like Elsie," said Miss Jessie. "She is very
+clever, and has been rather spoiled in consequence,
+but there is much that is fine about her.
+She will make a noble woman, I am sure."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie looked pleased.</p>
+
+<p>"Elsie likes you," she said, "and I don't think
+she is really fond of many people. She hasn't
+nearly as many friends as most of the girls at
+school have, but I love her dearly, and so does
+Babs."</p>
+
+<p>"I had a letter from your father this afternoon,"
+Miss Jessie said, after a little pause; "I
+am keeping it for you to read. He says things
+are looking up at the ranch, and he is hoping for
+a better season than last. He thinks he may possibly
+be able to come East for us himself next
+month. I do hope he can, for it would be such
+a treat for him."</p>
+
+<p>"I suppose he is thankful to get Mother back,"
+said Marjorie, "but, oh, how we do miss her,
+don't we, Aunt Jessie?"</p>
+
+<p>"Yes, indeed, but it wouldn't have been fair
+to have kept her any longer when she was so
+anxious to get home to your father. After all,
+she had a good long rest, and your father declares
+she is looking ten years younger in consequence."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_344" id="Page_344">[344]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"What a wonderful winter it has been," said
+Marjorie, reflectively, resting her knee against
+her aunt's knee. "When I left home last October,
+how little any of us dreamed of all the
+strange, beautiful things that were going to happen.
+Those first weeks were pretty hard; I was
+a good deal more homesick than I let any of you
+know, but I knew everybody meant to be kind
+and I did try hard to make the best of things.
+Then came the Randolphs' invitation to spend the
+holidays in Virginia, and the wonderful discovery
+about Undine. And then&mdash;as if that wasn't
+happiness enough&mdash;Dr. Randolph saw you, and
+brought you and Mother back to New York with
+him. The operation was pretty dreadful, but
+ever since Dr. Randolph told us he was sure it
+had been a success, everything has been simply
+heavenly."</p>
+
+<p>Miss Jessie said nothing, but softly stroked
+Marjorie's hair, and there was such a look of joy
+in her eyes, that the girl could not help being
+struck by it.</p>
+
+<p>"Aunt Jessie," she said, laughing, "do you
+know, I never realized before how young you are.
+I used to think of you as quite a middle-aged
+lady, but I don't know how it is, you look different
+now somehow&mdash;almost like a girl."<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_345" id="Page_345">[345]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I was twenty-nine last week," said Miss Jessie,
+smiling; "I suppose twenty-nine may seem
+middle-aged to fifteen."</p>
+
+<p>"But it doesn't," protested Marjorie; "not a
+bit; I think I must have been a goose ever to have
+thought such a thing. Beverly calls you a perfect
+trump, and he wouldn't say that about any
+one he considered middle-aged; it wouldn't be respectful."</p>
+
+<p>"I am very much obliged to Beverly for his
+good opinion," said Miss Jessie, laughing and
+blushing in such a very girlish manner that her
+niece regarded her in growing astonishment.</p>
+
+<p>"I believe it's the thought of being well and
+strong again that has made all the difference,"
+she said. "Oh, Aunt Jessie darling, think of it,
+you'll never have to sit in that dreadful wheeled-chair
+again! What walks and rides we'll have
+together. Are you sure Dr. Randolph will let
+you go back to the ranch in June?"</p>
+
+<p>"He says I shall be quite strong enough for
+the journey by that time," Miss Graham answered,
+but she did not meet Marjorie's direct
+gaze as she spoke. "I feel that I ought not to
+trespass on the Randolphs' hospitality any longer
+than is necessary. Think of what they have done
+for me, Marjorie. First all those weeks at the<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_346" id="Page_346">[346]</a></span>
+hospital, and then insisting on my coming here,
+and all of it just because we were kind to Undine."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think that is the only reason," said
+Marjorie, eagerly. "That was the beginning of
+it, of course, but now they all love you for yourself.
+Babs says her mother loves you dearly,
+and she and Beverly were both so pleased because
+you said they might call you 'Aunt Jessie.' As
+for the doctor, I'm sure he likes you ever so
+much."</p>
+
+<p>"There's some one at the door; go and see who
+it is, Marjorie."</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie rose obediently, wondering what could
+have possibly caused her aunt's sudden embarrassment,
+and when she returned she was followed
+by Barbara, who had also dropped in for
+a little chat, Miss Jessie's room being a favorite
+rendezvous with all the young people.</p>
+
+<p>"Well, and what have you been doing this
+afternoon?" Miss Graham asked pleasantly, as
+Barbara settled herself for a comfortable half-hour.</p>
+
+<p>"I went for a walk with Elsie and Hortense.
+We had a nice time, but I don't think Elsie felt
+very well, she was so quiet. I asked her if her<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_347" id="Page_347">[347]</a></span>
+head ached, and she said no, but I'm afraid it
+did."</p>
+
+<p>"I don't think Elsie has seemed quite like herself
+for several days," said Miss Jessie, a little
+anxiously. "Perhaps she is studying too hard;
+her mother tells me she is so very ambitious."</p>
+
+<p>Neither of the girls had any explanation to
+suggest, and they all chatted on pleasantly on
+various subjects until it was time to go away and
+dress for dinner. Barbara was also going to the
+Club that evening, having been admitted as a
+guest of honor some months before. Indeed, she
+was quite the heroine of the hour, for the romantic
+story had quickly spread from friends and
+acquaintances to strangers, and she had even been
+written about in several newspapers, a circumstance
+which had filled the breasts of some other
+girls with envy. For several weeks there was
+not a girl in the city so much talked about as
+Barbara Randolph, the child who had been
+mourned as dead by her family for nearly three
+years, and then reappeared under conditions sufficiently
+interesting and romantic to fill the pages
+of a thrilling story-book. The Randolphs disliked
+the publicity, but Barbara was pursued by
+reporters and photographers until Beverly lost<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_348" id="Page_348">[348]</a></span>
+his temper, and positively refused to allow any
+member of the family to grant another interview.</p>
+
+<p>"How does it feel to know that everybody in
+New York is talking about you, and all the papers
+asking for your picture?" Elsie had asked one
+day, to which Barbara had answered, with a
+laugh:</p>
+
+<p>"I don't know that I have any particular feelings
+about it. I am too happy at being at home
+again with Mother and Beverly to care for anything
+else in the world."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie was nowhere to be seen when Marjorie
+returned to her uncle's apartment, and the cousins
+did not meet till they were both dressed for the
+evening, and had joined Mr. and Mrs. Carleton
+in the drawing-room. Then Mrs. Carleton's first
+words were an anxious question.</p>
+
+<p>"Are you sure you are feeling quite well this
+evening, Elsie darling? You are very pale."</p>
+
+<p>"Of course I'm all right," said Elsie, crossly.
+"I do wish you wouldn't fuss so much about me,
+Mamma."</p>
+
+<p>Mrs. Carleton sighed.</p>
+
+<p>"I am sure I don't intend to fuss," she said,
+plaintively, "but how can I help worrying when
+I see you looking so badly, especially when you
+will insist on studying so hard?"<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_349" id="Page_349">[349]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"Nonsense," said Mr. Carleton, looking up
+from his evening paper, with a frown. "I have
+looked over Elsie's lessons, and there is nothing
+wrong there. She isn't studying any harder than
+a healthy girl of her age should. What's the
+matter, Elsie&mdash;don't you feel quite up to the
+mark?"</p>
+
+<p>He spoke kindly, but his tone was a trifle impatient,
+and before Elsie could reply, her mother
+began again.</p>
+
+<p>"She won't tell you; she insists there is nothing
+the matter, but she has not looked like herself
+for days. If she isn't better to-morrow I shall
+have the doctor see her, and give her a tonic."</p>
+
+<p>Mr. Carleton threw down his newspaper.</p>
+
+<p>"My dear Julia," he said, "I believe you consider
+a tonic a cure for every evil in the world.
+The girls are ready, so let us go down to dinner,
+and see if Elsie doesn't make up for her loss of
+appetite at luncheon."</p>
+
+<p>But Elsie did not make up for her lack of appetite
+at luncheon. She toyed with her food, and
+her color changed so often, from white to red,
+and back to white again, that by the time dinner
+was over even her father began to look at her
+curiously. But when Mrs. Carleton suggested
+that she should not go to Gertie Rossiter's, where<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_350" id="Page_350">[350]</a></span>
+the Club was to be held that evening, she protested
+that she was perfectly well, and was so decided
+in her determination to go, that, as usual,
+she had her way.</p>
+
+<p>The meeting was at eight, and Marjorie and
+Elsie were obliged to hurry away from the dinner
+table to join the two Randolphs, as the four
+were to go together in the Carletons' carriage.</p>
+
+<p>"Uncle George says we might have had his
+car as well as not," remarked Barbara, as they
+took their seats in the carriage. "He has come
+to spend the evening with Mother and Aunt Jessie,
+and won't need it."</p>
+
+<p>"Your uncle is very generous with his car,"
+said Marjorie, innocently. "He lent it to your
+mother and Aunt Jessie this afternoon, you know,
+and Aunt Jessie said they had a beautiful ride."</p>
+
+<p>"Oh, Uncle George would do anything in the
+world for Aunt Jessie," remarked Barbara, at
+which her brother smiled a rather mischievous
+smile, but said nothing.</p>
+
+<p>There was an unusually large gathering of the
+Club that evening, in honor of the president, who,
+with her family, was to sail for Europe the following
+day. As it was a gala occasion, no sewing
+was to be done, and the boys were invited to<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_351" id="Page_351">[351]</a></span>
+come with the girls, and devote the evening to
+dancing and games.</p>
+
+<p>"I'm afraid our sewing really hasn't amounted
+to very much," Winifred Hamilton remarked ruefully.
+"Mother says she's afraid the Blind
+Babies would be badly off if they had to depend
+upon us for clothes, but we've had an awfully
+jolly winter, and I'm sorry it's over, aren't you,
+Mr. Randolph?"</p>
+
+<p>"Well, summer is pretty jolly, too, you know,"
+answered Beverly, smiling. "I sha'n't be sorry
+to have vacation begin. We are going abroad as
+soon as college closes."</p>
+
+<p>"How nice," said Winifred, looking interested;
+"perhaps you'll meet the Bells. They expect
+to stay over till October. I really don't
+know how I shall manage to get on so long without
+Lulu."</p>
+
+<p>"Why don't you go, too?" Beverly asked,
+good-naturedly.</p>
+
+<p>"I should love to, but I couldn't leave Mother.
+Dr. Bell offered to take me, and Father and
+Mother said I might go if I liked, but I couldn't
+make up my mind to leave them. Perhaps some
+day we shall go ourselves," finished Winifred,
+trying to look hopeful.<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_352" id="Page_352">[352]</a></span></p>
+
+<p>"I'll let you into a little secret if you'll promise
+not to tell," said Beverly, who had a genuine liking
+for Winifred, despite the fact that she was
+"young for her age." "My mother is very anxious
+to have Marjorie go with us, provided her
+parents will consent. Miss Graham thinks they
+will, and Mother has written to ask them before
+speaking to Marjorie herself. Mind you don't
+tell, for it's a great secret. Even Babs doesn't
+know, for she and Marjorie are such chums she
+would be sure to let something out. Hello!
+what's up? Lulu is going to make a speech."</p>
+
+<p>There was a sudden hush as Lulu, with Elsie
+at her side, stepped forward, and rapped sharply
+on the table, to call the club to order.</p>
+
+<p>"Ladies and gentlemen," she began in what
+the girls called "her presidential tone," "I didn't
+expect to have any regular meeting this evening,
+but Miss Elsie Carleton has an announcement to
+make, and has asked me to tell you she would like
+to speak. As you all know Miss Carleton was
+your president until she resigned in favor of another,
+I am sure you will all be pleased to hear
+what she has to say. Go ahead, Elsie; everybody's
+listening."</p>
+
+<p>All eyes were turned in surprise upon Elsie, as
+she stood before them, very pale, but with a look<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_353" id="Page_353">[353]</a></span>
+of settled determination on her face. Twice she
+tried to speak, and stopped, and they could all see
+that she was very nervous. Then the words
+came, very low, but sufficiently audible to reach
+every ear in the room.</p>
+
+<p>"Girls," she began, looking straight before her,
+and clasping and unclasping her hands as she
+spoke, "girls and boys, too, for I want you all
+to hear. I have a confession to make. It's about
+something that happened at the first meeting of
+this Club&mdash;the night we were all initiated.
+That poem I wrote&mdash;some of you thought it was
+the best, and you made me president&mdash;it&mdash;it
+wasn't original; I learned it when I was a little
+girl, but I thought nobody would recognize it.
+I didn't mean to cheat at first, but I couldn't
+make up anything that I thought was good
+enough, and I hated to have the other poems better
+than mine. I haven't anything more to say
+except that I've been ashamed of myself ever
+since, and I can't have you go on thinking me
+cleverer than I am, any longer." And then,
+without waiting to note the effect of her startling
+announcement, Elsie turned and fled.</p>
+
+<p>Marjorie and Barbara found her upstairs in
+the dressing-room, crying as if her heart would
+break. Neither of them said a word, but Marjorie<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_354" id="Page_354">[354]</a></span>
+put her arms round her cousin's neck and
+hugged her.</p>
+
+<div class="figleft" style="width: 317px;">
+<img src="images/i-005.jpg" width="317" height="500" alt="&quot;It Takes a Lot of Pluck to Get up and Say a Thing like that.&quot;&mdash;Page 355." title="" />
+<span class="caption">&quot;<span class='smcap'>It Takes a Lot of Pluck to Get up and Say a Thing like that.</span>&quot;&mdash;Page 355.</span>
+</div>
+
+<p>"What are they saying about me?" whispered
+Elsie, burying her face on Marjorie's shoulder.
+"Do they all despise me?"</p>
+
+<p>"Not a bit of it," declared Marjorie, reassuringly.
+"They're all saying how plucky it was of
+you to confess. Lulu says she never liked you so
+much before in her life. As for me, I'm so
+proud of you I don't know what to do. Oh, Elsie
+darling, I'm so glad you did it!"</p>
+
+<p>"It was you who made me do it," sobbed
+Elsie, clinging to her cousin. "You were so
+splendid about it all. You knew, and yet you
+never told any one, not even Papa when he was
+provoked with you, because you wouldn't explain
+what the trouble between us was. Your brother
+knew too, Babs, and he has never said a word,
+but I know how he has despised me. I've despised
+myself too&mdash;oh, how I have despised myself!
+I've been selfish and conceited all my life,
+and I didn't care much, but one can't help feeling
+mean and ashamed beside girls like you, and
+brave, wonderful women like Aunt Jessie. I
+don't believe I've got one real friend in the
+world."</p>
+
+<p>"You've got lots," protested Marjorie and<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_355" id="Page_355">[355]</a></span>
+Barbara both together. "Just come downstairs
+and see if you haven't."</p>
+
+<p>It was a very quiet, subdued Elsie who re&euml;ntered
+the drawing-room, escorted by her two
+staunch friends, but the welcome she received
+was such that, before the evening was over, she
+found herself able to smile, and take a passing
+interest in life once more. Elsie had many
+faults, but she was not a bad girl, and she had
+learned a lesson that would last her all her life.
+One of the first to approach her and hold out his
+hand, was Beverly Randolph.</p>
+
+<p>"You're a trump, Elsie," he said, in his blunt,
+boyish way. "It takes a lot of pluck to get up
+and say a thing like that. Let's shake hands and
+be friends." And at that moment Elsie was happier
+than she had been in months.</p>
+
+<p>"I think I'll just stop a minute to say good-night
+to Aunt Jessie," remarked Marjorie, as
+they were going up to their apartment in the lift.
+"I don't believe she has gone to bed yet if Dr.
+Randolph is spending the evening. Tell Aunt
+Julia I'll be right up, Elsie."</p>
+
+<p>So Marjorie stepped out of the lift with the
+Randolphs, while Elsie went up another floor to
+her own apartment. Mrs. Randolph had insisted
+that Miss Graham should be her guest on leaving<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_356" id="Page_356">[356]</a></span>
+the hospital, and one of the most comfortable
+rooms in the apartment had been assigned to her.</p>
+
+<p>It was Mrs. Randolph herself who opened the
+door for the young people; she was smiling, and
+looked as if she were pleased about something.</p>
+
+<p>"Has Aunt Jessie gone to bed?" Marjorie
+asked.</p>
+
+<p>"No, dear, she is in the parlor with Uncle
+George, and I think she wants to see you."</p>
+
+<p>Barbara hurried her mother off to her room, to
+tell of the events of the evening, and Beverly
+followed, at a mysterious signal from Mrs. Randolph,
+so Marjorie was the only one to enter the
+cozy little parlor, where she found her aunt and
+the doctor sitting on the sofa side by side.</p>
+
+<p>"I just came in for a minute to say good-night,"
+she began. "I've had a lovely evening,
+and&mdash;and&mdash;" here Marjorie paused abruptly,
+struck by something unusual in the faces of her
+two listeners.</p>
+
+<p>"Is&mdash;is anything the matter?" she inquired
+anxiously.</p>
+
+<p>"Do we look as if there were?" inquired the
+doctor, and he smiled such a radiant smile that
+Marjorie's sudden anxiety melted into thin air.</p>
+
+<p>"No, not exactly, but Aunt Jessie looks so&mdash;so<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">[357]</a></span>
+different. Oh, Aunt Jessie darling, I know
+something has happened&mdash;is it good news?"</p>
+
+<p>"The very best news in the world for me,"
+said the doctor, laughing, while Aunt Jessie drew
+her niece into her arms, and hid her smiling,
+blushing face on Marjorie's shoulder. "Your
+aunt has promised to give me something that I
+want more than anything else. Marjorie, do you
+think you would like to have me for an uncle?"</p>
+
+<p>"And that was just the crowning happiness of
+all," said Marjorie, when she and Elsie were talking
+things over half an hour later. "I thought
+I was just as happy as any girl could be before,
+but when I saw that look on Aunt Jessie's face,
+and thought of all she had suffered, and how
+brave she had been, it seemed as if my heart
+would burst with gladness. It's just the most
+beautiful ending to a beautiful winter."</p>
+
+<p>"I wish I had done more to make the first part
+of the winter happy," said Elsie, with a remorseful
+sigh. "I don't see why you didn't hate me,
+Marjorie; I'm sure I deserved it."</p>
+
+<p>"Why, I couldn't," said Marjorie, simply,
+"you were my own cousin, you know."</p>
+
+<p>Elsie went up to her cousin, and put her arms
+round her. That was such an unusual proceeding<span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_358" id="Page_358">[358]</a></span>
+from cold, undemonstrative Elsie that Marjorie
+was speechless with astonishment.</p>
+
+<p>"I believe you are the best girl in the world,
+Marjorie," she said, unsteadily. "I'm not
+worthy of your friendship, but if you will really
+love me, and forgive me for all the mean, hateful
+things I've done, I will try to deserve it&mdash;I will
+indeed."</p>
+
+
+<div class='center'>THE END</div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_359" id="Page_359">[359]</a></span></p>
+<h2><span class='u'>DOROTHY BROWN</span></h2>
+
+<h3>By NINA RHOADES</h3>
+
+
+<div class='center'>
+<b>Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington Large 12mo</b><br />
+<b>Cloth $1.50</b><br />
+</div>
+
+<div class="figright" style="width: 191px;">
+<a href="images/i-ad-1-big.jpg"><img src="images/i-ad-1.jpg" width="191" height="250" alt="Dorothy Brown" title="" /></a>
+</div>
+
+<div class='cap'>THIS is considerably longer than the other
+books by this favorite writer, and with a
+more elaborate plot, but it has the same winsome
+quality throughout. It introduces the
+heroine in New York as a little girl of eight,
+but soon passes over six years and finds her at
+a select family boarding school in Connecticut.
+An important part of the story also takes place
+at the Profile House in the White Mountains.
+The charm of school-girl friendship is finely
+brought out, and the kindness of heart, good
+sense and good taste which find constant expression
+in the books by Miss Rhoades do not
+lack for characters to show these best of
+qualities by their lives. Other less admirable
+persons of course appear to furnish the alluring mystery, which is not
+all cleared up until the very last.</div>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><p>"There will be no better book than this to put into the hands of a girl in
+her teens and none that will be better appreciated by her."&mdash;<i>Kennebec Journal.</i></p></div>
+
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<h2><span class='u'>MARION'S VACATION</span></h2>
+
+<div class="figright" style="width: 177px;">
+<a href="images/i-ad-2-big.png"><img src="images/i-ad-2.png" width="177" height="250" alt="Marion's Vacation" title="" /></a>
+</div>
+<div class='center'><b>By NINA RHOADES</b><br />
+
+<b>Illustrated by Bertha G. Davidson 12mo Cloth $1.25</b><br />
+</div>
+
+
+
+<div class='cap'>THIS book is for the older girls, Marion
+being thirteen. She has for ten years
+enjoyed a luxurious home in New York with
+the kind lady who feels that the time has now
+come for this aristocratic though lovable little
+miss to know her own nearest kindred, who
+are humble but most excellent farming people
+in a pretty Vermont village. Thither Marion
+is sent for a summer, which proves to be a
+most important one to her in all its lessons.</div>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><p>"More wholesome reading for half grown girls
+it would be hard to find; some of the same lessons
+that proved so helpful in that classic of the last
+generation 'An Old Fashioned Girl' are brought
+home to the youthful readers of this sweet and
+sensible story."&mdash;<i>Milwaukee Free Press.</i></p></div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" /><p><span class='pagenum'><a name="Page_360" id="Page_360">[360]</a></span></p>
+<h2><span class='u'>Only Dollie</span></h2>
+<div class="figright" style="width: 180px;">
+<a href="images/i-ad-3-big.png"><img src="images/i-ad-3.png" width="180" height="250" alt="Only Dollie" title="" /></a>
+</div>
+<div class='center'>
+<b>By <span class="smcap">Nina Rhoades</span> Illustrated by Bertha Davidson<br />
+Square 12mo Cloth $1.00</b><br />
+</div>
+
+
+
+<div class='cap'><span class="smcap">This</span> is a brightly written story of a girl of
+twelve, who, when the mystery of her birth
+is solved, like Cinderella, passes from drudgery to
+better circumstances. There is nothing strained
+or unnatural at any point. All descriptions or
+portrayals of character are life-like, and the
+book has an indescribable appealing quality
+which wins sympathy and secures success.</div>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><p>"It is delightful reading at all times."&mdash;<i>Cedar
+Rapids (Ia.) Republican.</i></p></div>
+
+<div class="blockquot"><p>"It is well written, the story runs smoothly, the idea
+is good, and it is handled with ability."&mdash;<i>Chicago Journal.</i></p></div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<h2><span class='u'>The Little Girl Next Door</span></h2>
+
+<div class='center'>
+<b>By <span class="smcap">Nina Rhoades</span> Large 12mo Cloth Illustrated</b><br />
+<b>by Bertha Davidson $1.00</b><br />
+</div>
+
+
+<div class='cap'>A &nbsp; DELIGHTFUL story of true and genuine friendship between an
+impulsive little girl in a fine New York home and a little blind girl
+in an apartment next door. The little girl's determination to cultivate
+the acquaintance, begun out of the window during a rainy day, triumphs
+over the barriers of caste, and the little blind girl proves to be in every
+way a worthy companion. Later a mystery of birth is cleared up, and the
+little blind girl proves to be of gentle birth as well as of gentle manners.</div>
+
+
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+<h2><span class='u'>Winifred's Neighbors</span></h2>
+<div class="figright" style="width: 177px;">
+<a href="images/i-ad-4-big.png"><img src="images/i-ad-4.png" width="177" height="250" alt="Winifred&#39;s Neighbors" title="" />
+</a></div>
+<div class='center'>
+<b>By <span class="smcap">Nina Rhoades</span> Illustrated</b><br />
+<b>by Bertha G. Davidson Large</b><br />
+<b>12mo Cloth $1.00</b><br />
+</div>
+
+
+
+<div class='cap'>LITTLE Winifred's efforts to find some
+children of whom she reads in a book
+lead to the acquaintance of a neighbor
+of the same name, and this acquaintance
+proves of the greatest importance to Winifred's
+own family. Through it all she is just such a
+little girl as other girls ought to know, and
+the story will hold the interest of all ages.</div>
+
+<div class='center'>
+<i>For sale by all booksellers, or sent postpaid on receipt<br />
+of price by the publishers</i><br />
+<br />
+LOTHROP, LEE &amp; SHEPARD CO., BOSTON<br />
+</div>
+
+<hr style="width: 65%;" />
+
+<div class='tnote'><h3>Transcriber's Note:</h3>
+<p>Obvious punctuation errors were corrected.</p>
+
+<p>The remaining corrections made are indicated by dotted lines under
+the corrections. Scroll the mouse over the word and the original text
+will <ins title="Transcriber's Note: original reads 'apprear'">appear</ins>.</p></div>
+
+<p>&nbsp;</p>
+<p>&nbsp;</p>
+<hr class="full" />
+<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA***</p>
+<p>******* This file should be named 32417-h.txt or 32417-h.zip *******</p>
+<p>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:<br />
+<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/3/2/4/1/32417">http://www.gutenberg.org/3/2/4/1/32417</a></p>
+<p>Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.</p>
+
+<p>Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.</p>
+
+
+
+<pre>
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/license">http://www.gutenberg.org/license)</a>.
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS,' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://www.gutenberg.org/about/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit: http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+Each eBook is in a subdirectory of the same number as the eBook's
+eBook number, often in several formats including plain vanilla ASCII,
+compressed (zipped), HTML and others.
+
+Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks replace the old file and take over
+the old filename and etext number. The replaced older file is renamed.
+VERSIONS based on separate sources are treated as new eBooks receiving
+new filenames and etext numbers.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org">http://www.gutenberg.org</a>
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+EBooks posted prior to November 2003, with eBook numbers BELOW #10000,
+are filed in directories based on their release date. If you want to
+download any of these eBooks directly, rather than using the regular
+search system you may utilize the following addresses and just
+download by the etext year.
+
+<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/etext06/">http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/etext06/</a>
+
+ (Or /etext 05, 04, 03, 02, 01, 00, 99,
+ 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90)
+
+EBooks posted since November 2003, with etext numbers OVER #10000, are
+filed in a different way. The year of a release date is no longer part
+of the directory path. The path is based on the etext number (which is
+identical to the filename). The path to the file is made up of single
+digits corresponding to all but the last digit in the filename. For
+example an eBook of filename 10234 would be found at:
+
+http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/1/0/2/3/10234
+
+or filename 24689 would be found at:
+http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/2/4/6/8/24689
+
+An alternative method of locating eBooks:
+<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/GUTINDEX.ALL">http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/GUTINDEX.ALL</a>
+
+*** END: FULL LICENSE ***
+</pre>
+</body>
+</html>
diff --git a/32417-h/images/cover.jpg b/32417-h/images/cover.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..30d7c93
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/cover.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/emblem.png b/32417-h/images/emblem.png
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..19adf05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/emblem.png
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/frontis.jpg b/32417-h/images/frontis.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..bb8ddec
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/frontis.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-001.jpg b/32417-h/images/i-001.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..368d612
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-001.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-002.jpg b/32417-h/images/i-002.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0f9f03d
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-002.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-003.jpg b/32417-h/images/i-003.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2d54e1c
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-003.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-004.jpg b/32417-h/images/i-004.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..1bc2473
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-004.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-005.jpg b/32417-h/images/i-005.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3ced5fd
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-005.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-ad-1-big.jpg b/32417-h/images/i-ad-1-big.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..371d7c1
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-ad-1-big.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-ad-1.jpg b/32417-h/images/i-ad-1.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f52f78c
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-ad-1.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-ad-2-big.png b/32417-h/images/i-ad-2-big.png
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..850d7e8
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-ad-2-big.png
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-ad-2.png b/32417-h/images/i-ad-2.png
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6c58941
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-ad-2.png
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-ad-3-big.png b/32417-h/images/i-ad-3-big.png
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..158666e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-ad-3-big.png
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-ad-3.png b/32417-h/images/i-ad-3.png
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b26867c
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-ad-3.png
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-ad-4-big.png b/32417-h/images/i-ad-4-big.png
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..abb87c6
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-ad-4-big.png
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417-h/images/i-ad-4.png b/32417-h/images/i-ad-4.png
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..05c0c9e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417-h/images/i-ad-4.png
Binary files differ
diff --git a/32417.txt b/32417.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..cfcb7db
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,9095 @@
+The Project Gutenberg eBook, The Girl from Arizona, by Nina Rhoades,
+Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington
+
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+
+
+
+Title: The Girl from Arizona
+
+
+Author: Nina Rhoades
+
+
+
+Release Date: May 18, 2010 [eBook #32417]
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-646-US (US-ASCII)
+
+
+***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA***
+
+
+E-text prepared by Emmy, Darleen Dove, and the Project Gutenberg Online
+Distributed Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images
+generously made available by Internet Archive (http://www.archive.org)
+
+
+
+Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this
+ file which includes the original illustrations.
+ See 32417-h.htm or 32417-h.zip:
+ (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/32417/32417-h/32417-h.htm)
+ or
+ (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/32417/32417-h.zip)
+
+
+ Images of the original pages are available through
+ Internet Archive. See
+ http://www.archive.org/details/girlfromarizona00rhoarich
+
+
+
+
+
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA
+
+ * * * * *
+
+BOOKS BY NINA RHOADES
+
+ MARION'S VACATION. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth. $1.25
+ DOROTHY BROWN. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth. $1.50
+ VICTORINE'S BOOK. Illustrated. 12mo. Cloth. $1.25
+
+FOR YOUNGER READERS
+
+"THE BRICK HOUSE BOOKS"
+
+The sight of the brick house on the cover makes girl readers happy at
+once.--_Indianapolis News._
+
+Illustrated. Large 12mo. Cloth. $1.00 each
+
+ ONLY DOLLIE
+ THE LITTLE GIRL NEXT DOOR
+ WINIFRED'S NEIGHBORS
+ THE CHILDREN ON THE TOP FLOOR
+ HOW BARBARA KEPT HER PROMISE
+ LITTLE MISS ROSAMOND
+ PRISCILLA OF THE DOLL SHOP
+ BRAVE LITTLE PEGGY
+ THE OTHER SYLVIA
+ MAISIE'S MERRY CHRISTMAS
+ LITTLE QUEEN ESTHER
+
+ LOTHROP, LEE & SHEPARD CO.
+ BOSTON
+
+ * * * * *
+
+
+[Illustration: "AREN'T YOU GOING TO BE FRIENDS WITH ME?"--_Page 225._]
+
+
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA
+
+by
+
+NINA RHOADES
+
+Author of The "Brick House Books," "Marion's Vacation,"
+"Dorothy Brown," Etc.
+
+Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+[Illustration]
+
+Boston
+Lothrop, Lee & Shepard Co.
+
+Published, August, 1913
+
+Copyright, 1913, by
+Lothrop, Lee & Shepard Co.
+
+All Rights Reserved
+
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA
+
+Norwood Press
+Berwick & Smith Co.
+Norwood, Mass.
+U. S. A.
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+
+ CHAPTER PAGE
+ I MAKING THE BEST OF THINGS 1
+ II THE COMING OF UNDINE 13
+ III TRYING TO REMEMBER 29
+ IV A VISITOR FROM THE EAST 43
+ V UNCLE HENRY'S PROPOSITION 58
+ VI THE LAST EVENING 70
+ VII MARJORIE WRITES LETTERS 81
+ VIII AUNT JULIA AND ELSIE 91
+ IX MARJORIE TAKES A MORNING WALK 110
+ X NEW FRIENDS AND NEW FASHIONS 127
+ XI MARJORIE ENGAGES IN BATTLE 137
+ XII A MOTOR RIDE AND A FOOTBALL GAME 155
+ XIII MARJORIE SURPRISES HER RELATIVES 170
+ XIV THE POETRY CLUB 182
+ XV ELSIE TRIUMPHS 197
+ XVI THE THINGS THAT HURT 216
+ XVII BEVERLY SINGS "MANDALAY" 236
+ XVIII IN THE SUNNY SOUTH 254
+ XIX A VIRGINIA CHRISTMAS 266
+ XX MARJORIE SEES A PHOTOGRAPH 275
+ XXI UNDINE REMEMBERS 290
+ XXII UNDINE TELLS HER STORY 306
+ XXIII BREAKING THE NEWS 317
+ XXIV MARJORIE HAS HER WISH 331
+ XXV ELSIE REDEEMS HERSELF 341
+
+
+
+
+ILLUSTRATIONS
+
+
+ "Aren't you going to be friends with me?" (Page 225) _Frontispiece_
+
+ FACING PAGE
+ "Where in the world did you come from?" 20
+
+ With one quick movement she seized the whip handle 146
+
+ "Oh, Mother dear, I'm so sorry!" 244
+
+ "Land sakes, Missy! What is it?" 284
+
+ "It takes a lot of pluck to get up and say a thing like that" 354
+
+
+
+
+THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+MAKING THE BEST OF THINGS
+
+
+"MARJORIE."
+
+The clear call rang out, breaking the afternoon stillness of the ranch,
+but there was no response, and after waiting a moment Miss Graham gave
+her wheeled chair a gentle push, which sent it rolling smoothly across
+the porch of the ranch house, down the inclined plane, which served the
+purpose of steps, to the lawn. It was very hot, the sun was blazing down
+as only an Arizona sun can blaze, and not a breath of air was stirring.
+But Miss Graham was accustomed to the heat and the glare. She paused for
+a moment, gazing off over the vast prairie to the California mountains,
+nearly a hundred miles away. She generally paused on that same spot for
+one look, although the landscape was the only one she had seen in twelve
+years. Then she moved on again, across the lawn, now parched and dry
+from the long summer's heat, toward the stables and out-buildings. It
+was before the smallest of these out-buildings, a tiny log cabin, that
+she finally brought the chair to a standstill.
+
+"Marjorie, are you there?"
+
+There was a sound of some one moving inside, and a girl of fourteen,
+with a book in her hand, appeared in the doorway. She was a pretty girl,
+with soft light hair that curled over her temples, and bright, merry
+blue eyes, but just now the eyes were red and swollen, and there were
+unmistakable tear-marks on the girl's cheeks. At sight of the lady in
+the wheeled chair, however, Marjorie's face brightened, and she hurried
+forward, exclaiming remorsefully:
+
+"Oh, Aunt Jessie dear, did you come all this way by yourself? I'm so
+sorry. Do you want me to do something for you?"
+
+"You needn't be sorry," said her aunt, smiling. "The exercise will do me
+good, and I am quite proud of being able to manage this chair so easily.
+I called you from the porch, but you didn't hear. Your mother and
+Juanita are busy in the kitchen making jam, and I wasn't of any use
+there, so I thought I would come and see what you were about. I felt
+pretty sure of finding you in the old playhouse."
+
+"Come in," said Marjorie, eagerly. "You haven't been in the playhouse in
+ages; not since I grew too big to invite you to 'make-believe' tea, but
+the door is just wide enough for the chair; don't you remember? Let me
+help you in?" And springing to Miss Graham's side, Marjorie seized the
+handle of the chair, and carefully guided it through the narrow
+entrance, into the little house her father had built for her own special
+use, and which had always been known as the playhouse. It might still
+have been regarded as a playhouse, although its owner had grown too old
+to play there. A couple of battered dolls reposed upon a toy bedstead in
+one corner, and an array of china dishes, all more or less the worse for
+wear, adorned the shelves. Marjorie loved her few possessions dearly,
+and in a place where one's nearest neighbor lives five miles away, there
+are not many people on whom to bestow things which have ceased to be
+useful to one's self, and they are therefore likely to be preserved.
+
+"Now we're all nice and cosy," remarked Marjorie, seating herself
+comfortably on the floor at her aunt's feet. "There wouldn't be room for
+another person in here, even if there were anybody to come. What good
+times we used to have here when I was little, didn't we, Aunt Jessie?"
+
+Marjorie spoke fast and nervously, but there were pink spots in her
+cheeks, and Miss Graham was not easily deceived.
+
+"What's the matter, Marjorie?" she asked simply. She and her niece had
+no secrets from each other.
+
+Marjorie tried to laugh, but her lip quivered, and the tears started to
+her eyes.
+
+"There isn't anything the matter," she said, frankly. "I've been a
+goose, that's all. It was all the fault of the book I was reading."
+
+"What book was it?" Miss Graham inquired curiously, glancing at the
+volume Marjorie was still holding in her hand.
+
+"It's called 'The Friendship of Anne,' and it's one of those in that box
+Father had sent from Albuquerque. It's all about a big boarding-school
+full of girls, and the good times they had there, but somehow it set me
+thinking, and--and, I don't know why, perhaps because it's been so hot
+and still all day, but I began to feel as if I wanted to cry, and so I
+came out here to have it out." Suddenly Marjorie dropped her head in her
+aunt's lap, with a sob.
+
+For a moment Miss Graham was silent. She stroked the soft, fluffy hair
+with her thin fingers, and a look of comprehension came into her face.
+When she spoke her voice was very gentle.
+
+"I understand, little girl," she said tenderly. "You haven't said much
+about it, but I know it was a big disappointment that Father couldn't
+afford to send you to school at Albuquerque this winter. It was a
+disappointment to all of us, much as we should have missed you, but it
+is one of those things everybody has to bear sometimes."
+
+"I know it," said Marjorie, checking her tears, and making a great
+effort to speak cheerfully. "It wasn't poor Father's fault that so many
+of the cattle died this year, or that the drought spoiled the alfalfa
+crop. I try to think that perhaps it's all for the best, and that if I
+really left you all, and went away to school, I might have died of
+homesickness. But when I read that story, and thought of all the people
+and things there are in the world that I've never seen, it was just a
+little bit hard to feel cheerful. Mother teaches me all she can, and so
+do you and Father, but I'm fourteen and a half, and I hate to think of
+growing up without any real education. If I were well educated, I might
+teach, and be a real help to you all, but there isn't anything I can do
+now but just sit still and make the best of things."
+
+"Making the best of things is what we all have to do," said Miss Graham,
+smiling rather sadly. "You do it very well, too, Marjorie dear. Your
+father and I were talking last evening of how bravely you have borne
+this disappointment. We all realize what it has meant to you, but we are
+not a family who are much given to talking about our troubles."
+
+"I know we're not," said Marjorie, "and I'm glad of it. How
+uncomfortable it would be if you and Mother were always saying you were
+sorry for each other, and if Father looked solemn every time a cow died.
+I should hate to be condoled with, and treated as if I needed pity, but
+still I can't help wishing sometimes that I could do some of the things
+other girls do. Why, just think, Aunt Jessie, I've never had a friend of
+my own age in my life. I've never been on a train, or seen a city since
+I can remember."
+
+Miss Graham continued to stroke the fluffy hair, and a troubled look
+came into her eyes.
+
+"I understand, dear," she said, "and I don't blame you in the least. I
+know the feelings of loneliness and longing too well for that."
+
+"Do you really, Aunt Jessie?" questioned Marjorie, looking up in
+surprise. "I didn't suppose you ever longed for anything; you're such
+an angel of patience. I suppose it's wrong, but I can't help being glad
+you do, though, because it makes it so much easier to explain things to
+you. I can't bear to have Father and Mother think I'm not perfectly
+happy and contented; it makes Father look so sad, and I know Mother
+worries about my education. I never thought of it before, but you were a
+girl, too, when you first came here, weren't you?"
+
+Miss Graham smiled. She was only twenty-eight, and girlhood did not seem
+so much a thing of the past, but Marjorie was fourteen, and to her
+twenty-eight seemed an age quite removed from all youthful aspirations.
+
+"I was just sixteen when we came out here," she said, "and it seemed
+very strange at first to be away from all my friends, but girl-like I
+enjoyed the change, and it was not for a year or two that I began to
+realize what life on an Arizona ranch really meant. Your father and
+mother were very good to me, but they were absorbed in each other, and
+in their work, and you were too little to be any real company to me.
+There was plenty of work to be done, and I tried to do my share, but
+there were many lonely times when I rebelled bitterly against fate. I
+used to think of those times later on, after the accident, and then it
+seemed strange that I should ever have fretted over such foolish
+trifles, but they were very real to me once."
+
+Marjorie took her aunt's hand and kissed it. Demonstrations of affection
+were rather rare in the Graham family, but the girl could never think of
+that accident without a lump rising in her throat. She had heard the
+story dozens of times. She had even a dim recollection of the day it had
+happened--the day on which her pretty, merry young aunt had started for
+a canter over the prairie, on a wild young bronco, and had been carried
+home white and unconscious, never to ride, or even walk again. Just how
+it had all happened nobody ever knew. An Indian boy, coming suddenly out
+of a cabin, had shouted and waved his hands to a companion. The noise
+had frightened the bronco, and he had dashed off at full speed, and
+Jessie Graham, experienced horsewoman though she was, had lost her
+balance, and been thrown violently to the ground, striking her back
+against a sharp stone. That was eight years ago, and during all that
+time her life had been passed, first in bed, and then in a wheeled
+chair.
+
+Marjorie rose suddenly. There were some things it wasn't possible to
+make the best of, and it was wisest not to talk about them.
+
+"It's getting a little cooler," she said irrelevantly; "I think I'll
+saddle Roland, and go for a ride before supper. You're an angel, Aunt
+Jessie, and I'm glad you told me how you used to feel. I'm ashamed of
+myself, but it makes the disappointment easier to bear because you
+understand. Shall I wheel you back to the house, or is there anything
+else I can do for you before I go?"
+
+Fifteen minutes later, Marjorie mounted astride her bay pony, was
+trotting briskly out over the prairie. Her aunt watched her from the
+porch of the ranch house.
+
+"Poor little girl," she said, with a sigh, as horse and rider
+disappeared from view in a cloud of dust, "she bears her disappointment
+bravely, but it's hard--hard for her, and for us all."
+
+A footstep was heard, and her sister-in-law, Marjorie's mother, came out
+on the porch. Mrs. Graham had once been very pretty, but twelve years of
+hard work, and constant anxiety as to ways and means, had brought a
+careworn expression into the eyes that were so like Marjorie's, and the
+hand she laid on the back of Miss Graham's chair was rough and hardened
+from housework.
+
+"It's been a hot day, hasn't it?" she said, "but it's cooler now," and
+she smiled the brave, cheerful smile she had never lost through all
+their troubles and anxieties. "Juanita and I have put up six dozen jars
+of blackberries to-day; not a bad day's record, is it? Have you heard
+the whistle of the East Bound?"
+
+"I am not sure; I thought I heard a whistle about half an hour ago, but
+I have been with Marjorie in the playhouse. We have been having a talk."
+
+"Has she said anything about her disappointment?"
+
+"Yes, a little. She is bearing it splendidly, but it is a real grief to
+her, notwithstanding."
+
+Mrs. Graham sighed.
+
+"I was afraid it would be," she said. "It would almost have broken my
+heart to part from her, but Donald and I had made up our minds to let
+her go. It seemed the only way of giving the child a chance in life, and
+now this disease among the cattle has put an end to everything. Donald
+says we may be able to send her next year, but she will be nearly
+sixteen then, and time is precious. I wish I knew more myself, so that I
+could help my little girl, but, like so many other girls, I wasted my
+time at school. O dear! if children only realized what an education
+might mean to them some day, they wouldn't fritter away their time, as
+half of them do."
+
+"Susie," said Miss Graham, impulsively, "have you ever thought of
+writing to your brother Henry about Marjorie?"
+
+The sensitive color rose in Mrs. Graham's cheeks, and for a moment she
+looked almost as pretty as in the days when Jessie, in the rapturous
+devotion of her teens, had considered her "the loveliest sister-in-law
+in the world."
+
+"Yes, I have thought of it," she said, "but--but somehow I haven't been
+able to make up my mind to do it. You know my family never approved of
+Donald's coming out here. My brother offered him a position in his
+office in New York, but Donald said he had no head for business, and he
+loves this wild life, hard as it has been. I have never let my people
+know of our difficulties; they would have been kind, I daresay, but one
+hates to ask favors."
+
+"I know," said Miss Graham, comprehendingly; "still, for Marjorie's
+sake--"
+
+Mrs. Graham looked troubled.
+
+"Donald and I were talking about it only last night," she said. "It
+isn't right to deprive the child of advantages she might have, but think
+of sending her all the way to New York, even if Henry and his wife were
+willing to take her. Albuquerque would have been different; she could at
+least have come home for the holidays, but New York--why, think of it,
+Jessie, she has never been away from us for a night in her life!"
+
+Mrs. Graham paused abruptly, her face contracted with pain. The tears
+started to Miss Jessie's eyes, but her voice was still quite firm when
+she spoke again.
+
+"It would be very hard," she said, "harder for us perhaps than for
+Marjorie herself, and yet if it were the best thing to do--"
+
+Here the conversation was interrupted by Juanita, the Mexican maid of
+all work, who appeared with the startling announcement that the jam was
+boiling over on the stove, and Mrs. Graham hurried away to the kitchen,
+leaving her sister-in-law to her own reflections.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+THE COMING OF UNDINE
+
+
+IN the meantime, Marjorie, quite unconscious of the anxieties of her
+family regarding her future, was cantering away over the prairie on her
+bay pony. Having passed the last buildings of the ranch, and trotted
+through the Indian village, where more than one woman, and numerous
+copper-colored children smiled a friendly greeting, she turned her
+pony's head in the direction of the railroad. The nearest town was more
+than twenty miles away, but the line of the Santa Fe Railroad ran within
+a comparatively short distance from the ranch, and twice every day the
+stillness was broken by the whistles of the east and west bound trains,
+as they rushed by on their way across the continent, from Los Angeles to
+Chicago. To watch the trains go by had been one of the amusements of
+Marjorie's life, ever since she could remember. When she was a little
+girl, it had been a great treat to be taken by her father, on his big
+chestnut horse, and to have him draw rein in full view of the tracks,
+and wait to see the great iron horse come rushing by. As soon as she was
+old enough to ride out by herself, this spot had become one of her
+favorite afternoon excursions. There was a wonderful fascination in
+watching the long line of sleepers and day coaches, filled with people,
+and to wonder where they could all be going, and speculate as to what
+might be happening on the other side of those moving windows. Sometimes
+of late the longing to know more of the outside world, and to follow
+those ever moving cars, had become almost irresistible.
+
+"If I could only take one real journey I believe I should be happy
+forever," she would say to herself, and the hope of going to school at
+Albuquerque, two hundred miles away, had filled her with a wild kind of
+joy that was not unmixed with fear. But now that hope had been crushed,
+for the present at least, and Marjorie, who was a sensible little soul,
+had decided that it might be wiser to avoid watching the trains go by
+just now. For a week she had kept away from the line, at the hours when
+trains were likely to pass, but this afternoon she felt more cheerful.
+The little talk with her aunt had done her good, and she resolved to
+take Aunt Jessie's advice, and try to make the best of things. So when
+the pony manifested a desire to take the familiar turning, she let him
+have his way, and trotted on quite cheerfully toward the railroad.
+
+"I'm afraid we're too late to-day, Roland," she remarked aloud, as the
+pony plodded on bravely through the dust and heat. "I didn't hear the
+whistle, but I'm sure the East Bound must have passed, and the West
+Bound went through at two o'clock."
+
+Having very few people to talk to, Marjorie had formed the habit of
+talking to her live pets, of which Roland was her favorite. Her father
+had given him to her when he was only a month old, and she had trained
+him herself, as soon as he was old enough to bear the saddle, to say
+nothing of the many romps the two had enjoyed together in the days of
+his colthood. It seemed to her sometimes as if Roland must really
+understand some of the things she told him, and now, at her remark about
+the train, he slackened his pace to a leisurely trot, as if under the
+impression that there was no use in hurrying.
+
+"It is hot, isn't it, Roland?" said Marjorie, sympathetically. "You and
+I will be glad when winter comes, and we can have some fine gallops. I
+thought I might be going away to leave you this winter, but I'm not."
+
+Roland pricked up his ears, and quickened his pace.
+
+"What is it, Roland?" Marjorie inquired in surprise. "Oh, I see, it's
+Jose on his black bronco."
+
+Her face brightened, and she waved her hand in friendly welcome to the
+approaching figure of a small Mexican boy, mounted on an equally small
+pony.
+
+"Hello, Jose!" she called, as the two came within speaking distance of
+each other; "Do you know whether the East Bound has passed yet or not?"
+
+"See there," said the boy, pointing in the direction from which he had
+come. "Something wrong with engine. She been there three hours. My
+father tell me, and I go see."
+
+"How exciting!" cried Marjorie, everything else forgotten for the moment
+in the interest of this news. "Do you think she'll stay much longer?"
+
+Jose shook his head; he could not say. He was a rather dull boy, but
+Marjorie had known him all her life, as she had known every inhabitant,
+Mexican or Indian, who had made a home in that desolate region. She
+could speak Spanish almost as well as English, and could carry on a
+conversation in two Indian dialects. She did not wait for any more
+conversation with Jose on this occasion, however, but with a chirp to
+Roland to indicate that she wished to go faster, hurried the pony along
+at such a pace that in less than five minutes they came in sight of the
+waiting train.
+
+No, she was not too late. The long transcontinental express was standing
+still, and a number of the passengers had left the cars and were
+sauntering leisurely about. Marjorie's heart beat fast with excitement,
+and she drew the pony in sharply.
+
+"We mustn't go too near, Roland," she whispered. "Oh, look, isn't it
+interesting? See those girls in shirt-waists and straw hats. They look
+just about my age. How I should like to speak to them, but I suppose
+they would think it queer."
+
+The sight of a girl in a striped khaki skirt, with a sombrero on her
+head, sitting astride a bay pony, had quickly attracted the attention of
+some of the passengers, and Marjorie soon realized that she was being
+stared at in a manner that was slightly disconcerting. Not that she was
+in the least shy, but these strangers had a way of looking at her, as
+if they found something amusing in her appearance, and Marjorie did not
+like being stared at any more than any other girl.
+
+"I don't think we'll stay any longer, Roland," she said, conscious of
+the fact that her cheeks were burning uncomfortably. And turning the
+pony's head abruptly, she galloped away in the direction of home.
+
+But it was some minutes before her cheeks had regained their natural
+color.
+
+"I wonder why they stared so," she kept repeating to herself. "Was it
+the sombrero--I don't suppose girls wear sombreros in the East--or was
+it something else? Oh, there's the whistle; thank goodness they're off!"
+And Marjorie gave a sigh of relief, and let Roland drop into a trot.
+
+It was still early when she reached home, and having delivered Roland to
+the Indian boy, whose duty it was to look after him, and finding that
+her mother and aunt were both busy, she betook herself once more to the
+playhouse, intending to spend the hour before supper in learning more of
+the fortunes of Anne and her friends. But her ride in the heat had made
+her sleepy, and after turning a few pages rather listlessly, her eyes
+drooped, and letting the book slip into her lap, she rested her head
+against the wall of the cabin, and dropped off into an afternoon nap.
+
+How long she had been asleep she did not know, but she started up, wide
+awake, aroused by a sound close beside her. Then for a moment she sat
+staring stupidly at the apparition before her; for there, standing in
+the doorway, regarding her with big, hungry, brown eyes, was a girl--not
+a Mexican or an Indian, but a pale-faced, dark-haired girl of about her
+own age, in a faded linen dress, much too short in the skirt, and a
+battered straw hat, decidedly the worse for wear.
+
+"Goodness gracious me!" gasped Marjorie in amazement; "where in the
+world did you come from?"
+
+"I'm hungry," said the stranger, in a remarkably sweet voice; "Won't you
+please give me something to eat?"
+
+"Who are you?" demanded Marjorie, fully convinced that this was a dream.
+
+A frightened expression came into the big brown eyes, and the girl's lip
+began to tremble.
+
+"I don't know," she said; "I can't remember. Won't you please give me
+something to eat?"
+
+[Illustration: "WHERE IN THE WORLD DID YOU COME FROM?"--_Page 19._]
+
+"I know I'm dreaming," said Marjorie, and she pinched her arm, but
+though the pinch hurt considerably, she did not wake up. The strange
+girl continued to stand in the doorway.
+
+"How--how did you get here?" she repeated; "where did you come from?"
+
+"I got off the train. I've walked ever so far, and it was so hot. I
+thought there would be houses, but there weren't any. You won't be cross
+with me, will you? I'm afraid of cross people."
+
+"Why did you get off the train?" inquired Marjorie. If this were not a
+dream, then it was certainly the most extraordinary adventure she had
+ever had.
+
+The brown eyes filled with tears, and the stranger clasped her hands
+nervously.
+
+"Don't scold, ah, please don't," she pleaded; "I'm so tired of being
+scolded. I got off the train because Mrs. Hicks was so cross I couldn't
+stand it any longer. She said I was a lazy, good-for-nothing girl, and
+she wished she had never promised to take me to Kansas. I said I wished
+she hadn't either, and that I didn't want to go to Kansas or anywhere
+else with her, and then she said I was an impudent little wretch, and
+she wished she could get rid of me. She slapped me, too, and that made
+me furious, so when she sent me to the dining-car to get some milk for
+the baby, and the train was standing still, I just got off. I don't
+want to stay with people who don't like me, and I can't stand being
+slapped."
+
+"But think how frightened your friend must have been when the train
+started and you didn't come back," said Marjorie, reproachfully. She did
+not know quite what to make of this singular young person, who appeared
+to think nothing of deserting her friends, and wandering off by herself
+on the prairie.
+
+"Mrs. Hicks isn't my friend, and she won't care, anyway; she'll be glad
+to get rid of me. I heard her telling a woman on the train that I was an
+awful nuisance, and she couldn't think why she had ever promised her
+sister to take me to Kansas with her. She doesn't want me--nobody wants
+me, nobody in the whole world!" And suddenly this extraordinary visitor
+put both hands before her face, and burst into tears.
+
+Marjorie sprang to her feet, wide awake at last. She had not seen many
+people cry, and the sight always affected her deeply.
+
+"Oh, don't, please don't!" she cried, and almost without realizing what
+she was doing she had slipped an arm about the shaking shoulders. "We'll
+take care of you, of course we will, and you can tell us about
+everything. Oh, please do stop crying; you make me so very
+uncomfortable."
+
+But the brown-eyed girl did not stop crying. On the contrary, she cried
+all the harder, and buried her face on Marjorie's shoulder.
+
+"You're kind, oh, you're kind!" sobbed the poor child, clinging
+convulsively to her new friend. "Nobody was ever kind to me before
+except old Mr. Jackson, and now he's dead. I've been so miserable, and
+it's so dreadful not to remember anything, not even my name."
+
+"Your name?" repeated Marjorie stupidly; "do you mean you don't even
+know your own name?"
+
+The stranger shook her head mournfully as she searched for a missing
+pocket-handkerchief. Marjorie supplied the handkerchief from her own
+pocket, and sympathetically wiped her visitor's eyes.
+
+"But I don't understand," she said doubtfully; "I never heard of a
+person's not knowing her own name. Haven't you any relatives?"
+
+"I suppose I had once, but I can't remember them. The first thing I
+remember is waking up in a hospital. It was just after the earthquake in
+San Francisco, and they told me I was found in the street under some
+ruins. They thought a stone or something must have fallen on my head,
+and that was what made me forget everything. Nobody knew whom I belonged
+to, and I had only a nightgown on when I was found, so they couldn't
+trace me by my clothes. At first the doctors thought I would remember
+soon, and they used to ask me questions, but I never could answer any of
+them. They kept me at the hospital a long time, but I was always
+frightened because I couldn't remember anything. At last when I was
+strong again, and nobody came to look for me, they said they couldn't
+keep me there any longer. They sent me to the 'Home For The Friendless
+in Oakland,' but I had only been there a week when Miss Brent came to
+look for a girl to run errands, and carry home parcels. They told her
+about me, and she said she would take me, because I might have rich
+friends, who would come for me, and pay her well for taking care of me.
+So I went to live with her, and she put an advertisement about me in the
+newspapers. For a long time I kept hoping some one would come for me,
+but nobody ever did. Miss Brent was a dressmaker, and she had a lot of
+girls working for her, but I didn't like any of them, they were so
+rough, and they used to laugh at me, and call me 'loony.' Miss Brent
+called me Sally, but I know that isn't my real name. I got so tired
+running errands, and carrying the heavy boxes home made my back ache. I
+don't think I could have stood it if it hadn't been for Mr. Jackson. He
+boarded with Miss Brent, and lived in a little room on the top floor. He
+was very old, and nobody paid much attention to him, but I was sorry for
+him, and I used to carry up his meals, and he talked to me so kindly. He
+never made fun of me, because I couldn't remember, but he lent me books
+to read, and asked me questions like the doctors at the hospital. It's
+very queer, but I could always remember how to read. I can write, too,
+and I can even remember things in history, but I can't remember a single
+thing about myself. Mr. Jackson said he was sure my memory would come
+back some day, and then I would be able to find my friends. He died last
+winter, and after that it was dreadful. Miss Brent was always busy and
+cross, and the girls were worse than ever. A month ago Miss Brent told
+us she was going to be married, and give up the business, and that all
+the girls would have to leave. Most of them didn't mind, because they
+had homes, but Miss Brent said she didn't know what in the world to do
+with me. She didn't think any one would take me, because I wasn't
+strong enough to do hard work, and she was afraid I was too old to go
+back to the 'Home For The Friendless.'
+
+"The wedding was last week, and Mrs. Hicks came on from Kansas. She is
+Miss Brent's sister, and her husband has a big cattle farm. Mrs. Hicks
+brought her baby with her, and they got me to help take care of it, and
+then Miss Brent persuaded her sister to take me home with her. I didn't
+want to go, for I knew I shouldn't like Mrs. Hicks, but Miss Brent said
+I must. We started yesterday, and it was awful. Mrs. Hicks kept saying
+she knew I would never be any use to her, and the baby was so heavy, and
+cried all the time. I had just about made up my mind to run away when
+Mrs. Hicks slapped me, and that settled it. I never was slapped before,
+and I couldn't stand it."
+
+The brown eyes flashed indignantly, and there was a crimson spot in both
+the girl's cheeks. Marjorie had been listening to this strange story in
+breathless astonishment. It did not occur to her for a moment to doubt
+its truth. Before she could ask any more questions, however, she was
+brought back to a recollection of every-day life once more by the sound
+of her father's voice calling from the porch:
+
+"Supper's ready, Marjorie."
+
+Marjorie came down to earth with a rush, and hastily explaining to her
+new friend that she would be back in a minute, dashed away to the house,
+there to electrify her family with the astounding news that there was a
+strange girl in the playhouse, who had walked all the way from the
+railroad, and didn't know her own name.
+
+When Marjorie returned five minutes later, she was accompanied by an
+excited group, consisting of Mr. and Mrs. Graham, Miss Jessie, and the
+Mexican servant, Juanita. At sight of so many strangers the visitor
+shrank into a corner, and her eyes seemed to grow bigger and more
+frightened than ever, but when Mrs. Graham spoke to her in her kind,
+motherly voice, the pale face lighted up, and holding out both hands to
+Marjorie's mother, she exclaimed joyfully:
+
+"You're kind, too; I can see it in your face. Oh, please don't send me
+away; I'm so tired and hungry, and I don't know where else I can
+possibly go."
+
+"And what are we to call you, my dear?" Mrs. Graham inquired, late that
+evening, when the uninvited guest had been refreshed by a bath and a
+hearty supper, and was lying back comfortably in the big rocker in the
+living-room. "Did I understand Marjorie to say that you had been called
+Sally?"
+
+The stranger pouted. Now that her face was washed she was really very
+pretty.
+
+"I hate 'Sally,'" she said, impatiently; "it's not my name, and I don't
+see why I need be called by it. I wish you'd call me something pretty."
+
+Mrs. Graham looked a little doubtful, but Marjorie, who was regarding
+this singular young person in a kind of fascinated awe--half expecting
+to see her vanish at any moment as mysteriously as she had
+come--hastened to the rescue.
+
+"I've thought of a beautiful name for her, Mother," she said, eagerly.
+"Why can't we call her Undine--at least till she remembers what her name
+really is? She didn't come out of a fountain, but she really did come
+almost as mysteriously as Undine came to the fisherman's hut, in the
+story. Would you like to be called Undine, Sally?"
+
+"I should love it," declared the visitor in a tone of satisfaction and
+as Marjorie generally had her way, and Undine really seemed as good a
+name as any other, the matter was settled, and the new Undine fell
+asleep that night, happier than she had ever been since that strange
+waking in the California hospital, more than two years before.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+TRYING TO REMEMBER
+
+
+"AND so Undine went back into the fountain, carrying the knight,
+Hildebrand, with her, and nobody ever saw either of them again. I always
+wished it hadn't ended there, but had gone on to tell what became of the
+fisherman and his wife, and all the other people. That's the great
+trouble with stories; they are so apt to end just where you want to hear
+more. If I ever wrote a book I should put a chapter at the end, telling
+what became of all the characters afterward."
+
+The two girls were sitting together on the porch; Marjorie busily
+engaged in darning stockings; the new Undine patiently hemming a towel.
+It was a week since the arrival of "the mysterious stranger," as
+Marjorie called her, and she had already become an established member of
+the household. Marjorie accepted the mystery of a girl who didn't know
+her own name, and who apparently belonged to nobody, just as she would
+have accepted any other girl friend who might have come into her rather
+uneventful life. It had never even occurred to her to doubt the truth of
+Undine's strange story. The rest of the family had not been quite so
+easily satisfied, and for several days Mr. and Mrs. Graham had been
+inclined to regard the stranger with some doubt, even suspicion; but
+there was something very winning about this new Undine--she seemed such
+a simple, innocent child--so grateful for every kindness, and so eager
+to be of use in the household--that they gradually found themselves
+coming to believe in her, in spite of appearances.
+
+"I am sure the child is telling the truth as far as she knows it," Aunt
+Jessie had said to her sister-in-law that morning. "It all sounds very
+strange and incredible, I know, but I can't doubt the truth in those
+honest eyes of hers. I am really growing quite fond of her already." To
+which Mrs. Graham had replied, with a smile:
+
+"We shall know when Donald receives the answers to the letters he sent
+to the Home in Oakland and to the dressmaker."
+
+As Marjorie concluded her remarks on the story of Undine, she glanced
+critically at her friend's work.
+
+"You are hemming much better to-day," she said in a tone of
+satisfaction; "I am sure Mother will say you have improved."
+
+Undine's face brightened.
+
+"I hope she will--oh, I do hope so!" she said eagerly. "She is so dear,
+and I want to please her so much, but I'm afraid I'm very stupid."
+
+"You are not stupid at all," declared Marjorie loyally. "You are much
+cleverer than I am about lots of things. It isn't your fault if you've
+never been taught to sew."
+
+"There wasn't any time to learn at Miss Brent's," said Undine; "there
+were always such a lot of errands, and so many parcels to be carried
+home. I suppose if I had learned before the earthquake I shouldn't
+remember now."
+
+"I don't know," said Marjorie thoughtfully; "you must have learned to
+read, and you haven't forgotten that."
+
+"No, nor to write either. It's very queer about the things I remember
+and those I don't. Mr. Jackson used to asked me a great many questions,
+and he wrote down some of the things I told him, to show to a society he
+belonged to. Once a very funny thing happened. I had taken a dress home
+to a lady, and was waiting in the hall while she tried it on, to see if
+it had to go back for any alterations. There were some people in the
+parlor talking French. I don't know how I knew it was French, but I did,
+and I understood almost everything they said. I told Mr. Jackson, and he
+was so interested. He made me tell Miss Brent, too, and he wanted her to
+put another advertisement in the newspapers, but she said she hadn't any
+money to waste in advertising, and that if I had any relatives they
+would have come for me long ago."
+
+"It's the most interesting thing I ever heard of in my life," declared
+Marjorie. "Aunt Jessie says she is sure your friends must have been
+educated people, because you never make mistakes in grammar."
+
+Undine looked pleased.
+
+"I'm glad your aunt thinks that," she said. "I should hate to talk in
+the way some of the girls at Miss Brent's did. They used to laugh at me
+and call me stuck up, but I didn't want to be like them. I hate rough
+girls. I dream about my mother sometimes, and I know she would be sorry
+to have me grow up rough and coarse."
+
+"It seems so strange that you can't even remember your mother," said
+Marjorie, reflectively. "I can't imagine that anything could possibly
+happen to me that would make me forget Mother."
+
+A shadow crept into Undine's face, and the troubled, frightened look
+came back into her eyes.
+
+"I don't know," she said, wearily; "I don't know anything. Oh, Marjorie,
+it frightens me so sometimes."
+
+There was a quiver in the girl's voice, and kind-hearted Marjorie laid a
+protecting hand on hers.
+
+"Never mind," she said, soothingly; "don't think any more about it than
+you can help. Perhaps it will all come back some time; Father thinks it
+will. He thinks the stone, or whatever it was, that fell on you, must
+have given your brain a terrible shock. He says he heard of a man once
+who was very badly hurt in a railroad accident, and couldn't remember
+anything for a long time. His family thought he must be dead, but
+suddenly his memory all came back to him, and he went home, and gave
+them a great surprise. Perhaps it will be like that with you some day."
+
+"Miss Brent thinks all my people must have been killed in the
+earthquake," said Undine, with a sigh. "That might be the reason why
+nobody ever came to look for me. They say more people were killed than
+any one knew about. If I could only remember the very least thing that
+happened before, but I can't; it's just as if I came alive for the first
+time that day in the hospital. Oh, here comes your aunt; I'll go and
+help her with her chair." And dropping her towel on the floor of the
+porch, Undine darted into the house, whence she returned in a moment,
+carefully guiding Miss Graham's wheeled chair over the door-sill.
+
+"Thank you, dear," Miss Graham said, kindly. "You are a very helpful
+little girl, but when you are as accustomed to me and my chair as
+Marjorie is, you will realize that I can manage very well. I heard your
+voices, and thought I would come out here for a little while; it's so
+much cooler than in the house."
+
+"Won't you let me get your sewing, or your book, or something?" inquired
+Undine, hovering solicitously over the invalid.
+
+"No, thank you. I have been sewing all the afternoon; helping Mrs.
+Graham with the new parlor curtains, and I'm going to be lazy for a
+little while. I am afraid you dropped your own sewing, in your anxiety
+to help me."
+
+Undine blushed as she stooped to pick up the discarded towel.
+
+"I'm afraid I'm very careless," she said apologetically; "Miss Brent
+said I was, but I love to wait on people."
+
+Miss Graham laughed, and she had such a merry, contagious laugh that she
+was speedily joined by Marjorie, and even Undine herself.
+
+"It is very pleasant to be waited on," she said, "and I am sure you
+would make a capital nurse, Undine."
+
+Undine looked pleased.
+
+"I should like to be a nurse," she said. "I used to do lots of things
+for Mr. Jackson, and he liked to have me. I wish I could wait on you,
+because then I should feel that I was of some use, and that you weren't
+just keeping me because you were sorry for me."
+
+There was an unmistakable wistfulness in Undine's tone, and Miss Graham
+was touched.
+
+"My dear little girl," she said, "I am sure there are many ways in which
+you can make yourself useful if you stay with us. You will soon learn to
+be a great help to Mrs. Graham, and there will be many little things you
+can do for me as well."
+
+Marjorie gave her aunt a grateful glance, and Undine looked relieved.
+At that moment the afternoon stillness was broken by a sound of distant
+hoof-beats, and a clear tenor voice singing:
+
+ "'On the road to Mandalay,
+ Where the old flotilla lay.'"
+
+"It's Jim coming with the mail," cried Marjorie joyfully; "I should know
+his voice anywhere, and that's his favorite song. Oh, I wonder if there
+will be an answer to Father's letter to Miss Brent. What's the matter,
+Undine?"
+
+For Undine, who was still standing by Miss Graham's chair, had suddenly
+grown pale, and a strange, startled expression had come into her face.
+
+"Who's Jim?" she demanded sharply.
+
+"Only one of Father's men. He used to be a cow-puncher in Texas. I think
+you must have seen him; he's about the ranch a good deal."
+
+The hoof-beats were drawing nearer, and the rider had begun another
+verse of his song.
+
+ "'Er petticoat was yaller,
+ An' 'er little cap was green,
+ An' 'er name was Supy Yawler,
+ Jes' the same as Thebaw's queen.'"
+
+"I know that song," cried Undine excitedly, clasping and unclasping her
+hands, and she began reciting in a dreamy, far-away voice:
+
+ "'An' I see 'er first a smokin'
+ Of a whackin' big sheroot,
+ An' wastin' Christian kisses
+ On a 'eathen idol's foot.'
+
+"Somebody used to sing it. Who was it? Oh, tell me quick; I must
+remember, I must, I must!"
+
+She turned imploringly to Miss Graham and Marjorie, but the two blank,
+puzzled faces gave her no help, and with a low cry, the poor child
+covered her face with her hands, and began to sob. Marjorie's kind arms
+were round her friend in a moment, but it was no easy task to stem the
+torrent of Undine's grief.
+
+"Oh, help me to remember, please, please do help me!" she wailed,
+between hysterical sobs and gasps. "I almost remembered, and now it's
+all gone again. Oh, what shall I do--what shall I do?"
+
+"You'll remember it all some time, dear, I know you will," soothed
+Marjorie, crying herself from pure sympathy. "Do try not to mind quite
+so much, Undine. I know it must be terrible, but we're all so sorry for
+you, and we'll try to make you happy, indeed we will."
+
+By this time horse and rider had reached the ranch house, and Jim
+Hathaway, a freckled, red-haired youth, had sprung to the ground, and
+was regarding the scene in undisguised astonishment.
+
+"Have you brought us any letters to-day, Jim?" Miss Graham asked, by way
+of relieving the situation.
+
+"Yes'm; there's two for Mr. Graham, and some newspapers, and a
+magazine."
+
+"Ask him where he learned that song," whispered Undine to Marjorie. She
+was still trembling, and seemed very much agitated.
+
+"Where did you learn that song you were singing just now, Jim?" Marjorie
+inquired, eagerly; "the one about the 'Road to Mandalay,' you know?"
+
+Jim looked rather vague.
+
+"Blessed if I remember," he said. "I picked it up somewhere, but I
+couldn't rightly say where it was."
+
+"Won't you please try to remember?" said Undine, lifting her
+tear-stained face from Marjorie's shoulder. "I want very much to know. I
+am trying to remember something about it, and if you could tell me where
+you learned it it might help me."
+
+Jim stared at her rather stupidly; then his face brightened.
+
+"I guess I do remember, now I come to think of it," he said slowly. "It
+was in Texas. There was an English chap there, who was forever singing
+it. I picked it up from him. There were a lot of verses to it but I
+don't know 'em all."
+
+Undine shook her head hopelessly.
+
+"Thank you," she said; "I don't believe I was ever in Texas." And
+without another word, she turned and went into the house.
+
+It was more than an hour later when Mrs. Graham knocked softly at the
+door of the little room which had been given to the strange guest. She
+waited a moment, and then, receiving no answer, turned the handle and
+went in. Undine was lying on the bed, her face buried in the pillow. She
+was so still that Mrs. Graham thought she must be asleep, and was
+turning away again when there was a slight movement on the bed, and with
+a long sigh, the girl lifted her head.
+
+At sight of her hostess, Undine sprang to her feet, and began pushing
+the tumbled hair back from her eyes. She was very white, and there was a
+drawn, suffering look on her face, which went to Mrs. Graham's motherly
+heart.
+
+"I beg your pardon," said Undine, humbly. "I'm afraid you must all think
+me very silly and troublesome. I didn't mean to make a fuss, but when I
+heard that boy singing 'Mandalay' it seemed for just a minute as if I
+were going to remember something, and then it was all gone again. I
+thought that perhaps if I lay very still with my eyes shut tight, and
+thought as hard as I could, it might come again, but it didn't."
+
+"Sit down, dear," said Mrs. Graham, kindly, and seating herself on the
+edge of the bed, she drew Undine down beside her. "Does your head ache?"
+
+"It aches dreadfully," confessed Undine, pressing her hand to her
+forehead. "It always does when I try very hard to remember."
+
+"I was afraid so. It isn't good for you to try to remember in this way;
+it won't help things at all, and may make them much worse. You must
+promise me not to try to think so hard again. When your memory comes
+back it will come naturally, and without any forcing. Now I want to talk
+to you about something quite different. Mr. Graham has had a letter from
+the 'Home For The Friendless' at Oakland, and another from your friend
+Miss Brent, or Mrs. Rogers, as I believe she is now."
+
+"What did they say?" inquired Undine, languidly. She seemed too much
+exhausted to take much interest in letters.
+
+"Mrs. Rogers spoke kindly of you, and seemed pleased to know where you
+are. Her sister had telegraphed her of your disappearance. She said she
+hoped you would find a good home, for she was afraid nothing would
+induce Mrs. Hicks to take you back. They remembered you at the 'Home,'
+too, and are willing to have you there again if we will pay your
+expenses back to California."
+
+"But I don't want to go back there," protested Undine, lifting her head,
+and speaking more like her old self. "Oh, Mrs. Graham, must I go? Can't
+I stay here? I'll do anything you want me to, and I can work hard, just
+wait and see if I can't."
+
+Mrs. Graham smiled as she glanced at the soft little hands, which did
+not look as though their owner were capable of much hard work.
+
+"That is just what we have been talking about," she said. "I should be
+glad of a little extra help in the house; Juanita isn't as young as she
+once was, and I want to give Marjorie a little more time for study. So
+if you think you would really care to stay with us, and are willing to
+work for small wages--"
+
+"Wages!" cried Undine indignantly; "I don't want any money; I only want
+to stay with you, and work for my board. You're all so kind, and ... and
+I think you must be more like the people I used to live with than Miss
+Brent and Mrs. Hicks were. Oh, if I could only remember!"
+
+"There, there, we won't talk any more about remembering just now,"
+interrupted Mrs. Graham cheerfully. "You shall stay with us, at least
+for the present, and who knows what may happen in the future. Now lie
+down again, and try to take a nap before supper. You look very tired,
+and a good sleep will do your head more good than anything else." And
+yielding to a sudden impulse, Mrs. Graham stooped and kissed the flushed
+face on the pillow, almost as tenderly as if this strange, friendless
+little waif had been her own Marjorie.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+A VISITOR FROM THE EAST
+
+
+"OF all the different kinds of housework, I think pickling is the most
+disagreeable!"
+
+Marjorie made this remark as she came into her aunt's room one glorious
+October afternoon. Miss Graham's room was the prettiest and most
+luxurious in the ranch house. Every comfort which limited income and
+inaccessible surroundings could afford had been procured for the
+invalid, and to Marjorie, after a hard day's work of helping her mother
+and Juanita in the yearly pickling, it seemed a very haven of rest and
+comfort. Miss Graham herself, in a pretty pink wrapper, was lying on the
+sofa, while Undine read aloud to her. She was a very different Undine
+from the pale, timid girl of two months before. The thin cheeks had
+filled out wonderfully, and the big brown eyes had almost entirely lost
+their expression of frightened bewilderment, for Undine had found her
+place in the household and was happy. I have my doubts as to whether
+Undine would have proved of great use in the kitchen, her knowledge of
+any kind of housework being decidedly limited, but before she had been
+in her new home a fortnight Miss Graham was taken ill. It was not a
+serious illness, though a tedious and painful one, and almost from the
+first moment Undine had established herself as nurse. Her devotion was
+touching; it was with difficulty that she could be persuaded to leave
+the invalid's bedside even for the necessary rest and exercise, and she
+would gladly have worked night and day in the service of gentle Miss
+Graham, who almost unconsciously grew to love the girl, and to depend
+upon her more than she would have believed possible in so short a time.
+
+Now Miss Graham was better, and the task of nursing was almost at an
+end, but she was still weak, and Mr. and Mrs. Graham were thankful for
+the willing service of the girl whom they had taken into their home on
+account of her friendless condition and her big honest brown eyes.
+
+"You don't know what you two people have been spared to-day," continued
+Marjorie, throwing herself wearily into the rocking-chair. "Thank
+goodness, they're all done, and we shall have pickles enough to last
+another year."
+
+"We haven't been spared the smell," said Miss Graham, laughing. "I
+really felt at one time to-day that I would gladly forego pickles for
+the rest of my life."
+
+"What have you been reading?" Marjorie inquired, with a glance at the
+book Undine had put down on her entrance.
+
+"'Lorna Doone.' We have had a delightful afternoon. It is such a
+charming story, and Undine reads aloud remarkably well."
+
+Marjorie glanced out of the window, at the brilliant autumn sunshine.
+
+"I think I'll go for a ride, to get the smell of the pickles out of my
+nostrils," she said. "Mother says she won't need me any more to-day."
+
+"That's a good idea," said Miss Graham approvingly, "and suppose you
+take Undine with you? She has been indoors all day; the fresh air will
+do her good."
+
+"All right," assented Marjorie, well pleased. "Come along, Undine," she
+added, rising; "we'll have time for a good gallop before supper."
+
+Undine hesitated.
+
+"Are you sure you can spare me?" she asked, with an anxious glance at
+the pale face on the pillow.
+
+"Quite sure, dear. I shall not need anything, and even if I should Mrs.
+Graham and Juanita are both within call. So run along, you conscientious
+little nurse, and enjoy yourself for the rest of the afternoon."
+
+Undine blushed with pleasure at the compliment, and five minutes later
+she and Marjorie were on their way to the stables.
+
+It was one of those glorious autumn days, when the air is like a tonic,
+and every object stands out with almost startling clearness.
+
+"The mountains look so near to-day, it seems almost as if we might ride
+to them, doesn't it?" remarked Undine, as the two girls trotted out of
+the ranch gates on their ponies; Undine sitting as straight, and riding
+with almost as much ease as Marjorie herself.
+
+"They are nearly a hundred miles away," said Marjorie, with a glance in
+the direction of the great snow-tipped mountains, which certainly did
+look very near in that wonderful atmosphere. "We could go there, though,
+if we had an automobile. What wonderful things automobiles must be."
+
+"I suppose they are--there were plenty of them in California--but
+nothing could be half as nice as a gallop in this wonderful air. A pony
+like this is worth all the automobiles in San Francisco." And Undine
+bestowed an affectionate pat on the neck of the pretty brown horse she
+was riding.
+
+"I believe you love riding as much as I do," said Marjorie,
+sympathetically. "I wonder where you learned to ride. I shall never
+forget how astonished Father and I were that first day, when we made you
+get on a pony just for fun, and you took the reins, and started off as
+if you had been accustomed to riding every day of your life."
+
+There was a trace of the old shadow in Undine's face as she answered:
+
+"It's all very strange, and I can't explain it, but it seemed quite
+natural, and as if I had done it often before. Even when the pony
+jumped, and your father thought I would be frightened, I wasn't. I
+seemed to know just what to do, though I couldn't tell how I knew."
+
+"Perhaps you lived on a ranch once," Marjorie suggested. "That would
+explain it."
+
+Undine shook her head.
+
+"I don't think so," she said, "for when I first came here it was all
+quite strange, and though I'm not a bit afraid of horses, I'm horribly
+afraid of cows. A girl who had lived long on a ranch couldn't be afraid
+of cows, could she?"
+
+Marjorie assented, and the two girls rode on in silence for several
+minutes. Then Undine spoke again.
+
+"There's another curious thing that I haven't told you. That book I'm
+reading to your aunt--'Lorna Doone,' you know--I'm sure I've read it
+before. I know what is going to happen in every chapter."
+
+Marjorie looked much interested.
+
+"Have you told Aunt Jessie about it?" she asked.
+
+"No, I was afraid it might bother her. I don't think she or your mother
+like to have me talk about the things I remember."
+
+"That's only because they're afraid you will worry and make yourself
+ill," Marjorie explained. "You remember what a dreadful headache you had
+the day you heard Jim singing 'Mandalay.' They're really tremendously
+interested."
+
+"Are they?" said Undine, looking pleased. "I was afraid they thought me
+silly. At first I know they thought I was a fraud, and I'm sure I don't
+blame them. How could any one believe such a queer story? And yet it's
+all true, every word."
+
+"They believe it now, at any rate," said Marjorie, "and they're just as
+much interested as I am. Mother says she can't help worrying when she
+thinks of your friends, and how they may be grieving for you."
+
+"Miss Brent said she didn't believe I had any friends or they would have
+come to look for me," said Undine sadly.
+
+"But you must have belonged to somebody," persisted Marjorie, "and it
+isn't likely all your family were killed in the earthquake, even if some
+of them were. Then you do remember some things--there was the person who
+sang 'Mandalay.'"
+
+"But I can't remember who it was; I only know there was somebody who
+used to sing it. I almost remembered for a minute that day, but it was
+gone in a flash, and it has never come back since."
+
+"Well, don't let's talk any more about worrying things this glorious
+afternoon," broke in Marjorie, noticing the troubled sound in her
+friend's voice. "Let's have a good gallop, and forget everything else.
+Come along, Roland."
+
+Away flew Roland, admonished by a gentle tap from his mistress, and he
+was followed closely by Undine's pony. The next half hour was one of
+unalloyed enjoyment to both girls. The quick motion, the bright
+sunshine, the keen air, all conspired to banish thoughts of care or
+perplexity from Undine's mind, and to bring the bright color into her
+cheeks. Marjorie, glancing over her shoulder at her friend, suddenly
+realized what a very pretty girl Undine was. Even the khaki skirt and
+the sombrero, counterparts of Marjorie's own, could not detract from her
+beauty, and she sat on her pony with as much grace as any lady in the
+land.
+
+"There! wasn't that great?" exclaimed Marjorie, drawing Roland in at
+last, and turning to her friend, with sparkling eyes. "I don't believe
+you ever had a finer gallop than that in your life."
+
+"I don't believe I ever did," agreed Undine, straightening her sombrero,
+and pushing back the tumbled hair from her eyes. "Must we go back now?"
+
+"I'm afraid so. Father and Mother don't like to have me stay out after
+sunset. Look at the mountains; they seem just as near as ever, don't
+they? And yet we've been riding straight away from them all the time."
+
+"Isn't it still?" whispered Undine, with a deep breath. "I feel as if I
+ought to whisper, though I don't know why. I don't suppose there's
+another living soul within miles of us, and yet I'm not the least bit
+afraid."
+
+"There is, though," exclaimed Marjorie, in sudden astonishment. "Look at
+that man. Where can he be going?" And she pointed with her whip-handle
+to a solitary figure, carrying a suit-case, which was slowly advancing
+in their direction. "He isn't an Indian or a Mexican, either," she added
+eagerly; "he's a white man, and he must be on his way to the ranch.
+Nobody who isn't coming to the ranch ever takes this road."
+
+"Perhaps he's a tramp," suggested Undine nervously. "We'd better hurry
+home."
+
+But Marjorie scorned the suggestion.
+
+"Nonsense," she said indignantly. "The idea of wanting to run away!
+Besides, we can't; he's making signs to us to wait for him. He wants to
+speak to us."
+
+Undine did not feel at all sure of the wisdom of this proceeding, but
+there seemed nothing else to do, and in a few moments the stranger, who
+had quickened his pace at sight of the two girls, was within speaking
+distance. He was plentifully besprinkled with dust, and was looking
+decidedly warm and tired, but his appearance and manner were those of a
+gentleman.
+
+"Excuse me for detaining you," he said, apologetically, "but can you
+tell me how far I am from Mr. Donald Graham's ranch?"
+
+"I thought you must be coming to the ranch," said Marjorie, with a
+friendly smile; "it's about five miles from here."
+
+"Five miles," repeated the stranger in a tone of dismay, and he set down
+the heavy suit-case he was carrying, and wiped his forehead with his
+handkerchief.
+
+"Have you been walking far?" Marjorie inquired sympathetically.
+
+"Yes, I think I must have walked at least five miles already. My team
+broke down, one of the wheels came off, and the man who was driving me
+out to the ranch seemed to think the only thing to be done was to leave
+the wagon with my trunk on it by the roadside while he returned to town
+on horseback, to get another trap. He advised me to walk on, but I had
+no idea of the distance. Will you please tell me if this is the shortest
+way to the ranch?"
+
+"It's the only way," said Marjorie, smiling, and thinking that this
+tall, broad-shouldered man must certainly be "a tenderfoot." Her own
+father thought nothing of a ten-mile tramp over the prairie.
+
+"Then I suppose there is no help for it, but five miles--are you sure
+it's as much as five miles?"
+
+Marjorie nodded; she was trying to think of some way of helping the
+stranger out of his difficulty. But it was finally he himself who put
+into words the very suggestion she was going to make.
+
+"I wonder if by any chance you young ladies happen to be going as far as
+the ranch," he said, with a rather curious glance at the two figures,
+sitting astride their ponies.
+
+"We're going straight there now," said Marjorie, eagerly, "and if you
+don't mind waiting, I'll ask Father to send a horse for you."
+
+"You are very kind, but do you think he could possibly send a wagon as
+well? I am not much of a horseman."
+
+This certainly was a "tenderfoot," and no mistake, but Marjorie was too
+polite to laugh.
+
+"All right," she said, "I'll see about it, but it will take longer to
+wait for a team to be hitched up."
+
+"That can't be helped. I'm afraid I'm not equal to another five miles on
+foot. Do you know Mr. Graham?"
+
+Marjorie laughed.
+
+"Of course I do," she said in her frank, friendly way; "he's my father."
+
+"Your father!" repeated the gentleman, his face lighting up; "why, you
+don't mean to tell me you are little Marjorie?"
+
+"I'm Marjorie Graham, but I'm not very little. I'm five feet, three, and
+I was fourteen last March."
+
+"Well, you were about two feet, three when I last saw you," said the
+gentleman, smiling; "so you must forgive me for not recognizing you at
+once. Have you ever heard of your uncle Henry Carleton?"
+
+With a joyous exclamation, impulsive Marjorie sprang from her pony and
+leaving the faithful Roland to his own devices, rushed to her uncle's
+side, holding out both hands.
+
+"Of course I have!" she cried, lifting her radiant face for the expected
+kiss. "Oh, Uncle Henry, I'm so glad you've come to see us at last;
+Mother will be so happy."
+
+Although somewhat surprised by the warmth of this greeting, Mr. Carleton
+was not at all displeased. Indeed, he was smiling very pleasantly by the
+time he had given his niece the kiss she was evidently expecting, and
+his face softened as he regarded her more attentively.
+
+"I ought to have known you, Marjorie," he said, "for you are very like
+your mother."
+
+Marjorie flushed with pleasure.
+
+"I'm glad," she said; "I'd rather look like Mother than any one else. Is
+Elsie with you?"
+
+"Elsie? You know about my little girl, too, then?"
+
+"Oh, yes, indeed; I know she is just about my age. Mother has a
+photograph of her, taken when she was a baby, and I've always wished I
+could see her. Having a cousin of one's own age must be almost as good
+as having a sister. Oh, I do hope she's coming to the ranch!"
+
+Mr. Carleton shook his head.
+
+"Elsie and her mother were with me, but they have gone back to New York.
+We have been through the Canadian Rockies and the Yosemite together, and
+yesterday we stopped at the Grand Canyon. Your aunt and cousin have gone
+on in the train, but I thought I would like a few days with your mother,
+so I got off at the nearest station to the ranch, and was driving out. I
+suppose I should have written, but I thought I would rather enjoy giving
+your mother a surprise. I hope I sha'n't be in the way."
+
+"No, indeed, you won't," declared Marjorie heartily. "Mother and Father
+will be delighted, and so will Aunt Jessie. We so seldom have visitors,
+and it's such a treat, but I'm dreadfully sorry Aunt Julia and Elsie
+aren't coming, too. What a lucky girl Elsie is to have seen all those
+wonderful places! Father is going to take Mother and me to the Canyon
+some day when he can afford it. But I was so glad to see you that I
+forgot to introduce my friend. Undine, this is my uncle, Mr. Carleton.
+
+"Uncle Henry, this is my friend, Miss Undine--we don't know her other
+name."
+
+Undine--who had been watching proceedings with interest--smiled shyly,
+and held out her hand. She had also dismounted from her pony, and was
+holding him by the bridle.
+
+"Undine," repeated Mr. Carleton, looking amused, as he took the girl's
+hand, and regarded her curiously; "that is a rather unusual name, isn't
+it?"
+
+Undine blushed, and looked embarrassed, and Marjorie hastened to
+explain.
+
+"It isn't her real name, but she didn't like being called Sally, so we
+thought we would call her Undine until she remembers what her name is.
+It's a very interesting story, Uncle Henry, but I won't stop to tell it
+now, for it's getting late, and I must hurry home as fast as I can, and
+have Father send a team for you. I wish you could ride my pony; I
+wouldn't mind walking the five miles a bit."
+
+"That's a nice little girl of Susie's," Mr. Carleton remarked to
+himself, as the ponies and their riders disappeared in a cloud of dust.
+"She has her mother's eyes and friendly ways, but--well, perhaps it was
+just as well I couldn't persuade Julia to stop over at the ranch. I
+doubt if Marjorie and Elsie would hit it off very well together."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+UNCLE HENRY'S PROPOSITION
+
+
+MR. CARLETON received a hearty welcome at the ranch. Mr. and Mrs. Graham
+were not the sort of people to remember old grievances; Mrs. Graham was
+honestly glad to see her brother, and they were both quite willing to
+let bygones be bygones. So the visitor found the meeting with his sister
+and her husband a much less embarrassing one than he had expected, and
+the days at the ranch passed so pleasantly that he was easily persuaded
+to prolong his stay from a day or two to a week, and then to a
+fortnight. He and his sister had more than one long confidential talk,
+and although no word of complaint was uttered, Mr. Carleton was clever
+enough to read between the lines, and it was after one of these talks
+that he wrote a letter to his wife in New York, for an answer to which
+he was anxiously waiting.
+
+It was on an afternoon in the second week of his visit that Mr. Carleton
+sauntered out on to the porch, to find Marjorie alone, and busily
+engaged in trimming a hat.
+
+"Where are all the others?" he inquired, throwing himself rather wearily
+into the rocker by her side. "I've been writing letters all the
+afternoon, and haven't heard a sound in the house."
+
+"They are all out," said Marjorie. "Father wanted Mother to see some
+colts he is thinking of buying, and Aunt Jessie has gone with them, for
+the sake of the drive. Undine has gone, too."
+
+"And how does it happen that you were left behind, like Cinderella.
+Wasn't there room in the wagon?"
+
+"Oh, I could have squeezed in, or else ridden Roland, but I was too
+busy. I'm making a new hat, and that's always a very absorbing
+occupation. Don't you think it's going to be pretty?" And Marjorie held
+up the plain straw hat, trimmed with blue ribbon, for her uncle's
+inspection.
+
+"I have no doubt it will be most becoming," said Mr. Carleton, smiling,
+"but have you done it all yourself?"
+
+"Of course I have. I've trimmed all my hats since I was twelve. I make
+my shirt-waists, too, all but the cutting out; Mother does that. Doesn't
+Elsie make her own things?"
+
+"No, I'm afraid she doesn't; sewing isn't exactly in Elsie's line."
+
+"Perhaps she likes other kinds of work better," said Marjorie,
+cheerfully. "I suppose Aunt Julia is disappointed, though. Mother says
+she would be very sorry if I didn't like to sew; she thinks every girl
+should learn to make her own clothes."
+
+"I'm afraid your aunt isn't any more fond of sewing than Elsie is," said
+Mr. Carleton, with a rather peculiar smile.
+
+Marjorie secretly wondered who made Elsie's dresses, and who attended to
+the household mending, but fearing it might be impolite to ask, changed
+the subject by saying:
+
+"Undine could scarcely sew at all when she came, but Aunt Jessie has
+been teaching her, and she has improved very much. Don't you think it's
+tremendously interesting about Undine, Uncle Henry?"
+
+"It is certainly a most unusual case," admitted Mr. Carleton. "I was at
+first inclined to believe that Miss Undine was gifted with a vivid
+imagination, and was imposing on you all, but your father and mother
+believe her story."
+
+"Oh, yes, indeed, we all believe it," cried Marjorie, eagerly. "We know
+it's true, because Father wrote to the dressmaker where Undine worked
+for two years, and she said everything was just as Undine had told us."
+
+"Well, it is certainly a case for a brain specialist," said Mr.
+Carleton, "but unfortunately there are no specialists of any kind in
+this part of the world. I wish there were, for your aunt Jessie's sake."
+
+Marjorie's bright face was suddenly clouded.
+
+"You don't think Aunt Jessie ill, do you?" she asked, anxiously. "She
+seems so much better than she was two weeks ago."
+
+"I don't know that she is worse than usual, but she is a very different
+creature from the strong, active girl I remember. Poor child, she has
+had a terrible experience; I wish some good surgeon could see her."
+
+"You mean--oh, Uncle Henry, you mean you think a surgeon might possibly
+be able to help her!" Marjorie's hat had fallen into her lap, and she
+was regarding her uncle with eager, troubled eyes.
+
+"I don't know whether a surgeon could help her or not, but he could at
+least make an examination. I don't suppose there is even an ordinary
+physician in this neighborhood."
+
+"There is one at Lorton, but that's twenty miles away, and I've heard
+people say he wasn't very good. Father sent for a surgeon from
+Albuquerque when Aunt Jessie was hurt, and he said it was her spine that
+had been injured, and that she could never be cured. Do you think a
+doctor from the East might say something different?"
+
+"My dear child, don't get so excited. I really have not the slightest
+idea; I was only speculating on my own account. It seems such a pity
+that one so young--well, well, it can't be helped, I suppose, and there
+is no use in talking about it."
+
+Marjorie sighed as she took up her work again, and they were both silent
+for several minutes. Then Marjorie spoke again, and her voice was not
+quite steady.
+
+"If I thought there was any surgeon in the world who could cure Aunt
+Jessie, I believe I would go and find him myself, and bring him here, if
+it took me years to earn the money, and I had to work day and night to
+do it. She's the dearest, bravest--oh, Uncle Henry, you haven't any idea
+what Aunt Jessie is!"
+
+Marjorie broke off, with a half-suppressed sob, and dashed away some
+tears, which would come in spite of a brave effort to keep them back.
+Mr. Carleton's face softened as he watched her; he had grown to have a
+high opinion of this niece of his. He could not help wondering rather
+sadly whether there were any one in the world of whom his own little
+daughter would have spoken in such glowing terms.
+
+"You're a loyal little soul, Marjorie," he said kindly. "I wish Elsie
+had you for a friend."
+
+Marjorie smiled through her tears.
+
+"I wish I had her for my friend," she said. "Don't you think she would
+like to come out here and make us a visit some time? She might find it
+rather hot in summer, if she wasn't accustomed to it, but the winters
+are beautiful."
+
+"Elsie has her school in winter," Mr. Carleton said, "but perhaps she
+may come some day. Hark, who is that singing?"
+
+"Only Jim coming with the mail. He always sings when he rides. It's
+generally 'Mandalay,' but it's 'Loch Lomond' to-day."
+
+ "'Oh, you'll tak' the high road, and I'll tak' the
+ low road,'"
+
+sang the clear tenor voice, and Jim Hathaway, on his big brown horse,
+came galloping up to the door.
+
+"There's only one letter for you to-day, Uncle Henry," announced
+Marjorie, taking the handful of letters and papers from the boy. "It's a
+big fat one, though. Perhaps it's from Elsie; you haven't had one letter
+from Elsie since you came."
+
+"It is from your Aunt Julia," said Mr. Carleton, and immediately
+proceeded to make himself acquainted with its contents, while Jim
+galloped away to the stables, and Marjorie went on with her hat
+trimming.
+
+It was, as Marjorie had said, a "fat letter," and it took Mr. Carleton
+some time to read it. Indeed, he read some parts over more than once,
+before he finally put it in his pocket, and prepared to light a cigar.
+"Are Aunt Julia and Elsie well?" Marjorie inquired, politely. She could
+not help wondering why this aunt and cousin never sent any messages to
+her.
+
+"Oh, yes, they are very well, thank you. Your aunt says it has been
+rather warm for the season, and there hasn't been much going on."
+
+Mr. Carleton relapsed into silence, and Marjorie said no more. Her
+thoughts were filled by a new idea. What if a surgeon could really be
+found who would be able to cure Aunt Jessie? Such a possibility seemed
+almost too wonderful to be contemplated, and yet,--and yet--
+
+The whistle of a distant train broke the stillness, and Marjorie came
+down from her air castle to remark--
+
+"There goes the East Bound; two hours late to-day."
+
+"You seem as much interested in the hours of trains as if you were in
+the habit of traveling on one at least once a week," said Mr. Carleton,
+smiling. "How would you like to take a journey--to go to New York, for
+instance?"
+
+"I should love it better than anything in the world," said Marjorie
+frankly.
+
+"Well, perhaps it can be managed. What would you say to going East with
+me next week, and spending the winter in New York?"
+
+For the second time the hat Marjorie was trimming rolled unheeded into
+her lap, while she sat staring at her uncle with startled, wondering
+eyes. The proposal was so sudden--so undreamed of--that for the first
+moment she was speechless, and when words did come at last, they were
+only:
+
+"You mean to spend the winter with you and Aunt Julia?"
+
+"Yes, and to go to school with Elsie. I think your father and mother are
+rather anxious about your education."
+
+"I know they are," said Marjorie, eagerly. "They wanted to send me to
+school at Albuquerque this autumn, but the drought spoiled the alfalfa
+crop, and there was disease among the cattle, so Father didn't feel he
+could afford it. I should love to see New York more than anything I can
+think of, but to go so far away from them all for a whole winter--oh,
+Uncle Henry, you're very kind to suggest it, but I really don't believe
+I could."
+
+"Not if you knew your father and mother wished it very much, and that it
+would be a great relief to their minds?" Mr. Carleton spoke rather
+gravely, and Marjorie felt suddenly embarrassed.
+
+"Of course I would try to do what they wanted me to," she said meekly,
+"but I don't believe they would be willing to have me go as far away
+from them. Albuquerque was different; I could have come home for the
+vacations from there. It's awfully good of you, Uncle Henry, and I would
+love to see Aunt Julia and Elsie, but New York is so far away."
+
+"Only three days by train," said Mr. Carleton, smiling; "that ought not
+to seem much to you Westerners. You would find the life very different
+from that to which you have been accustomed, but I think you would
+enjoy it, and you must have an education, you know."
+
+Marjorie blushed, and her eyes drooped.
+
+"I want it very much," she said humbly. "If I were well educated, I
+might be able to teach, and to help Father and Mother in other ways.
+Uncle Henry, do you think it is my duty to go to New York?"
+
+"Yes, Marjorie, I do," said her uncle, with unusual gravity. "I think it
+is an opportunity that you should not miss. I have written your Aunt
+Julia about it, and her answer has just come. She agrees with me that it
+will be the best thing for you. Your home will be with us, of course,
+and you will go to school with Elsie. It is not a large school, only a
+class of a dozen girls, and the teacher is a charming woman. You will
+soon make friends, and I think you would be happy."
+
+"And I would be with Elsie," said Marjorie, beginning to look on the
+bright side, as she generally did. "It would be lovely to know my own
+cousin. Have you spoken to Mother about it, Uncle Henry?"
+
+"Not yet, but I intend doing so this evening. I have been waiting for
+your aunt's reply to my letter. I feel quite sure your mother will
+consent; she is too sensible a woman to do anything else. But it will
+be hard for her to let you go so far away, and I want you to be a brave,
+sensible girl, and not make it any harder than you can help."
+
+For a moment Marjorie was silent, and her uncle could see by her face
+something of the struggling that was going on within. Then she spoke,
+and her voice was clear and brave.
+
+"All right, Uncle Henry, I promise. If Father and Mother want me to go I
+will, and I'll try not to let them see how hard it is. After all, it
+won't be like going to stay with strangers, for I shall be with my own
+relations all the time, and it will be so nice to have a cousin of my
+own age. Here comes the wagon, so we can't talk any more now. Oh, Uncle
+Henry, there's just one question I want to ask. Are there many good
+surgeons in New York?"
+
+"Plenty of them," said her uncle, smiling. "Don't say anything of what
+we have been talking about, Marjorie, until I have a chance to explain
+to your mother."
+
+"No, I won't, and, Uncle Henry, please don't think me ungrateful because
+I couldn't be so glad just at first. It's beautiful of you and Aunt
+Julia to want me, and if I go I'll try not to give any more trouble
+than I can possibly help. Now I am going to my room for a few minutes. I
+don't want Aunt Jessie to see me till I've got my face straightened out.
+She knows me so well she says she can tell the moment there is anything
+the matter."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+THE LAST EVENING
+
+
+IT was settled. Marjorie was to go East with her uncle, and spend the
+winter in New York. Mr. Carleton felt that he could not leave his
+business much longer, and was anxious to start as soon as Marjorie could
+be ready. For a week Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie had sewed as they had
+never sewed before, and Marjorie and even Undine had worked so hard that
+there had been little time to think of anything else. Now it was the
+last evening, and the small leather trunk containing all Marjorie's
+simple possessions, stood packed, and ready to be taken early next
+morning, to the railway station twenty miles away.
+
+Mr. Carleton had been somewhat puzzled by all these elaborate
+preparations, and had ventured a gentle remonstrance to his sister.
+
+"Why take so much trouble, Susie? Julia will get the child everything
+she needs, and I'll attend to the bills. You needn't worry about
+Marjorie's being well-dressed; you know Julia has excellent taste."
+
+But Mrs. Graham was resolute. She knew well that her own ideas of dress
+and those of her New York sister-in-law were very different, but she was
+not without her share of family pride, and was not willing that Marjorie
+should appear before her Eastern relatives in clothes unfit for her
+position. But alas! It was twelve years since Mrs. Graham had left her
+New York home, and styles change a good deal in twelve years.
+
+Every one had kept up bravely during that busy week, and they had all
+been extremely cheerful. Marjorie never knew of the bitter tears shed by
+mother and aunt in the solitude of their own rooms, and Mrs. Graham's
+heart would have ached even more than it did had she known of the hours
+Marjorie lay awake, her head buried deep in the pillow, so that Aunt
+Jessie in the next room, should not hear her crying. Every one knew it
+was for the best. Even Marjorie, miserable as she was sometimes at the
+thought of the two thousand miles which must soon lie between herself
+and the people she loved best, would have been keenly disappointed if
+Uncle Henry had suddenly changed his mind, or Aunt Julia written that it
+would not be convenient to have her. All through that last day she had
+worked hard, trying not to think about to-morrow, but now everything was
+done and everybody was resting after their labors. Marjorie had sat on
+the porch for an hour with her mother and aunt, and they had all tried
+to talk cheerfully as usual, but it was of no use. There was a dreadful
+inclination on all their parts to drop into long silences, which nobody
+seemed able to break. They were alone, for Mr. Carleton and his
+brother-in-law had gone for a walk, and Undine was helping Juanita in
+the kitchen.
+
+At last, at the end of a longer silence than usual, Marjorie, feeling
+sure she shouldn't be able to hold out much longer, suddenly sprang up,
+explaining hurriedly:
+
+"I'll be right back; I'm just going to the stables for a moment to say
+good-by to Roland." And she was off across the lawn, biting her lip to
+keep back the sobs that must not come until she was out of sight and
+hearing of her dear ones.
+
+The bidding good-by to her pony was a rather lengthy proceeding. She was
+alone, for the men had all gone off to their suppers, so she had her cry
+out on Roland's neck, and whispered her last loving instructions into
+his faithful ears.
+
+"You are to be a good pony, Roland, and do just as you are told till I
+come home. Undine is to ride you whenever she likes, and Aunt Jessie
+thinks riding is so good for her that she's going to try to let her go
+out for an hour every day. You will miss me, I know, Roland dear, and I
+shall miss you terribly, but I've got to have an education, and after
+all one winter isn't so very long to be away."
+
+Whether Roland understood or not I cannot pretend to say, but he rubbed
+his soft nose against Marjorie's cheek, and snuggled up close to her as
+if he loved her, and she left the stable feeling somehow cheered and
+comforted.
+
+On the way back she passed the old playhouse, and could not resist the
+temptation of going in for one more last good-bye, although she knew it
+would mean another fit of crying. The sight of the old toys and picture
+books--relics of the childhood that would never come back--affected her
+even more than the parting with Roland had done, and sinking down on the
+bench where she had dozed on the afternoon of Undine's arrival, she gave
+herself up to a few minutes of quiet, undisturbed grief.
+
+She had just dried her eyes, and was wondering if she could manage to
+reach her own room, and wash her face, without being seen by any of her
+family, when the door, which had been partly closed, was pushed gently
+open, and Undine came in.
+
+At sight of her friend, Undine drew back, blushing.
+
+"I didn't know you were here," she said, apologetically; "I'll go away
+if you want to be alone."
+
+"Come in," said Marjorie, making room for her on the bench. "Were you
+looking for me?"
+
+Undine's eyes drooped, and the color deepened in her cheeks.
+
+"I came to cry," she said simply.
+
+"To cry?" repeated Marjorie in surprise; "what did you want to cry for?"
+
+"Because you're going away," Undine confessed, nestling closer to her
+friend.
+
+Marjorie slipped an arm round her. "I didn't know you cared so much,"
+she said. "You'll have Aunt Jessie, and you're so fond of her."
+
+"I shall miss you dreadfully," whispered Undine tremulously. "You've
+been so good to me, and--and you were the first one to believe in me.
+All the rest thought I was telling stories, even Miss Jessie."
+
+"I couldn't help believing you," said Marjorie, laughing. "When you
+looked at me with those big eyes of yours, and told me all those strange
+things, I felt sure they were true, though it was the queerest story I
+had ever heard. I think I should have to believe every word you ever
+told me."
+
+Undine smiled.
+
+"I don't think your uncle believes it all even yet," she said. "He looks
+at me so queerly sometimes that it makes me uncomfortable. I wish you
+were not going away with him."
+
+"Oh, he is very kind," said Marjorie, loyally. "It's so good of him to
+be willing to take me to New York, and send me to school for the whole
+winter. I'm sorry you don't like him, Undine."
+
+"Well, he may be kind, but he isn't nearly as nice as your father and
+mother. How do you know you are going to like New York?"
+
+"Oh, I am sure I shall like it, as soon as I get used to things there."
+Marjorie spoke with forced cheerfulness and choked down a rising lump in
+her throat. "You see, it isn't like going to live among strangers," she
+went on, as much for the sake of reassuring herself as her friend. "I
+shall be with my own uncle and aunt, and then there will be Elsie."
+
+"Perhaps you won't like Elsie; you've never seen her."
+
+"Why, of course I shall like her. She's my own cousin, and only three
+months older than I am. I have always thought that having a cousin was
+the next best thing to having a sister."
+
+"I wonder if I ever had a sister," Undine remarked irrelevantly.
+"Somehow I don't believe I had, for when I say the word 'sister' it
+never makes my heart beat the way it does when I say 'Mother.' I know I
+had a mother, and I think I must have loved her very much."
+
+"Perhaps that's because you've grown to love my mother," Marjorie
+suggested; "she may remind you of yours."
+
+Undine pressed her hand to her forehead, and the old bewildered look
+came back into her eyes.
+
+"I don't know," she said, with a sigh; "I don't know anything. Oh,
+Marjorie, do you think I shall ever remember?"
+
+"I'm sure you will," said Marjorie confidently, "and so is Aunt Jessie.
+She says she's sure when you get well and strong it will make a great
+difference, and that's why she wants you to be out in the air as much
+as possible. You are ever so much better now than when you came, and
+when you are better still, and have left off worrying, you'll wake up
+some morning remembering everything; just wait and see if you don't."
+
+Undine smiled, but the smile was rather sad.
+
+"I try not to worry," she said, "and I'm happier here than I ever was
+before, but I'm so frightened even now when I stop to think about it
+all." Undine's sentence ended with an involuntary shudder.
+
+"Look here, Undine," said Marjorie, with a sudden determination, "I'm
+going to let you in to a great secret. You must promise not to speak to
+any one about it, even Mother, for if it should never come to anything
+it would be such a dreadful disappointment to everybody."
+
+"I won't tell," promised Undine, beginning to look interested.
+
+"It's about Aunt Jessie. Uncle Henry was speaking of Aunt Jessie one
+day, and he thinks it such a pity a good surgeon couldn't see her. He
+says she might be helped a great deal. There are no good surgeons here,
+but Uncle Henry says there are a great many in New York, and I've been
+thinking--oh, Undine, I'm almost afraid to say it, it seems so
+presumptuous--but just suppose I should meet a surgeon in New York, and
+be able to persuade him to come here to see Aunt Jessie, and suppose he
+should cure her! It's the one hope that keeps me up every time I feel
+like breaking down at the idea of going so far away from everybody."
+
+"It would be perfectly beautiful," Undine agreed warmly, "but do you
+suppose any surgeon would be willing to come so far to see some one he
+didn't know?"
+
+Marjorie's face, which had brightened for a moment, grew very serious
+again.
+
+"I don't know," she said. "If he knew her I'm sure he would come--any
+one would--but if he had never even heard of her existence it would be
+different, of course. I don't know how I'm going to manage it; I only
+know it's the thing I want most in the whole world, and I'm going to try
+for it with all my might."
+
+There was a ring in Marjorie's voice, and a light in her eyes, which
+impressed her friend, and with a quick, affectionate impulse, Undine
+caught her hand and squeezed it.
+
+"I wish I could help," she said, "but there isn't anything I can do
+except pray about it. I will pray every night, just as hard as I do to
+remember, and if it really should happen I think I should be almost as
+happy as you."
+
+Just then the conversation was interrupted by the sound of approaching
+footsteps and voices, and with a whispered caution to Undine not to
+breathe a word to any one, Marjorie hurried away to join her father and
+uncle, who were returning from their walk.
+
+Everybody made a great effort to be cheerful at supper that evening.
+Even Mr. Carleton, who was usually rather quiet, threw himself manfully
+into the breach, and told funny stories that made them all laugh. After
+all, the evening wasn't as dreadful as Marjorie had feared it was going
+to be, but when bedtime came, and she had to say good-night to her
+family for the last time for eight whole months, she felt herself in
+immediate danger of breaking down.
+
+Mrs. Graham sat for a long time by her daughter's bedside that night,
+and they had what Marjorie called "a perfectly Heavenly talk." It was a
+serious talk, but not a sad one, and when it was over, and Marjorie
+flung her arms round her mother's neck, and did break down just a
+little, things did not seem nearly as hopeless as she had expected.
+
+"I don't believe any other girl in the world has such a perfect mother
+as I have," was Marjorie's last waking thought. "I don't deserve her,
+and never can, but I'm going to try not to disappoint her any more than
+I can possibly help. One winter can't last for ever, and when June
+comes, and I am at home again, how gloriously happy we shall all be!"
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+MARJORIE WRITES LETTERS
+
+
+
+ "October 28th, 19--
+
+ "MY OWN PRECIOUS MOTHER:
+
+ "The first letter must be to you, of course, and
+ the next to Aunt Jessie. Uncle Henry says if I
+ write now I can post my letter when we stop at
+ Albuquerque this afternoon. Oh, Mother darling,
+ was it only this morning that I said good-bye to
+ you all? It seems as if I had been away a month
+ already.
+
+ "I am writing this at the desk in the library car,
+ and the train shakes so I am afraid my writing
+ will be worse than ever. Uncle Henry says I shall
+ soon get accustomed to the motion, but just now it
+ makes my head ache, and the car feels very hot and
+ stuffy. I opened the window, but a great many
+ cinders came in, and a lady in the section next to
+ mine asked me to close it again, so I had to.
+
+ "I hope Father didn't tell you what a goose I was
+ at the station. I didn't mean to cry so much, but
+ when I thought of you and Aunt Jessie waving
+ good-bye to me from the porch, with such a
+ sorrowful look on both your dear faces, I just
+ couldn't help it. I am going to cheer up right
+ away, though, so please don't worry about me.
+
+ "It really was very exciting when the train
+ stopped at Lorton, and Uncle Henry and I got in.
+ When it began to move, and I realized that I was
+ actually on board, I gave a kind of gasp, and
+ would have liked to scream, if I hadn't been
+ afraid of shocking Uncle Henry. There are not many
+ people on the train, the colored porter says, and
+ Uncle Henry and I both have sections to ourselves.
+ I thought there would be regular beds to sleep in,
+ but there are not. The porter says they turn the
+ seats into beds at night, and there are curtains
+ to let down. I should think it would be very
+ uncomfortable sleeping so close to other people,
+ but I suppose one gets used to it when one has
+ traveled a good deal. Uncle Henry says Aunt Julia
+ won't travel unless she has a stateroom, but he
+ doesn't object to the sections. I looked into the
+ stateroom in this car, but it didn't look very
+ different from the sections, except that it was
+ larger and there was a place to wash.
+
+ "We had lunch at a little table in the dining-car.
+ It was delicious but my head ached a little, and I
+ wasn't very hungry. Uncle Henry talked politics
+ with a gentleman who sat at the same table with
+ us, but they didn't say much to me, so I looked
+ out of the window, and it was all very
+ interesting. We are in Mexico now, and to-morrow
+ we shall be in Kansas. Kansas makes me think of
+ Undine and Mrs. Hicks. Oh, how I do wonder if
+ Undine will ever remember!
+
+ "Uncle Henry says we shall be in Albuquerque in a
+ few minutes, so I must stop writing if I want to
+ post my letter there. Good-night, Mother darling;
+ I will write again to-morrow, and indeed, indeed,
+ I will try to remember all the things you said to
+ me last night, and to be always
+
+ "Your own loving
+ "MARJORIE."
+
+
+ "October 28th.
+
+ "DARLING AUNT JESSIE:
+
+ "I have been a whole night on the train, and when
+ I think of how far away from home we are, I can't
+ help being just a little frightened, though it is
+ all very interesting. I posted Mother's letter at
+ Albuquerque, where the train stopped half an hour.
+ Uncle Henry and I got out and walked up and down
+ the platform, and, oh, it was good to get a breath
+ of fresh air! I really didn't know that any place
+ could be quite so stuffy as this train. Everybody
+ seems afraid to have the windows open on account
+ of the cinders, but I think I should prefer even
+ cinders to stuffiness. There were some Indians
+ selling blankets and baskets, and a good many
+ people bought things. They crowded round us, and
+ made a good deal of fuss, and I heard one lady say
+ she was afraid of them. Just think of being afraid
+ of poor harmless Indians! I would have liked to
+ tell her how foolish she was, but was afraid Uncle
+ Henry might be displeased. I don't think he is a
+ very friendly person, for he hardly speaks to any
+ of the passengers on the train, and last night he
+ told me I talked too much to the black porter, who
+ was making up the sections. Oh, Aunt Jessie, it
+ was so curious to see him turning all the seats
+ into beds, but you have been on a sleeping car,
+ and know all about it.
+
+ "We had a very good dinner, which I enjoyed more
+ than lunch, because my head was better, and in the
+ evening we sat on the platform of the observation
+ car, and it was very pleasant. Uncle Henry was
+ kind, and talked to me a good deal--at least it
+ was a good deal for him. I asked him if he wasn't
+ very anxious to get home to see Aunt Julia and
+ Elsie, and he said of course he should be glad to
+ see them, but didn't seem nearly as excited as I
+ am sure Father would be about seeing us if he had
+ been away from us for three whole weeks. I think
+ Elsie must be very busy, for besides going to
+ school, she has music and German lessons in the
+ afternoons, and goes to a dancing class. Uncle
+ Henry said he hoped she and I would be good
+ friends, and I told him I was quite sure we
+ should. Imagine a girl not being good friends with
+ her own first cousin! Did you know we are to live
+ in a hotel all winter? Uncle Henry has a house on
+ Madison Avenue, but Aunt Julia is tired of
+ housekeeping, so he has rented it, and taken rooms
+ in a hotel instead. Uncle Henry calls the rooms an
+ apartment, and the name of the hotel is the
+ 'Plaza.' It is on Fifth Avenue, and right opposite
+ the park, which must be very pretty. I should
+ think it would seem very queer to live in a house
+ with a lot of other people, but then the people
+ who live in hotels must have a great many friends.
+
+ "At about nine o'clock Uncle Henry said he was
+ sleepy, so we went back to our car, and that was
+ when I talked to the porter while he made up the
+ beds. I thought at first that I should never be
+ able to sleep; the train shook so, and we were
+ going so fast. It was hard work undressing behind
+ the curtain, but I managed somehow, and even had a
+ wash, though I had to hold on to the side of the
+ car with one hand while I washed my face with the
+ other. I did cry a little after I was in bed, but
+ I don't think any one heard. It was my very first
+ night away from home, you know, Aunt Jessie dear,
+ but I tried to remember all the lovely, comforting
+ things you and Mother said to me, and I think I
+ must have been pretty tired, for before I realized
+ I was getting sleepy I was sound asleep, and I
+ never opened my eyes till it was broad daylight.
+
+ "To-day we are in Kansas, and it is very flat, and
+ not at all pretty. Uncle Henry says we won't have
+ any more fine scenery till we get to the Hudson.
+ The train seems stuffier than ever, and I am just
+ pining for fresh air and exercise. We sat on the
+ observation platform for a while this morning, but
+ Uncle Henry didn't like the cinders, and wouldn't
+ let me stay there by myself, so we came back to
+ our car. I don't think traveling on a train is
+ quite as pleasant as I thought it was going to be.
+ I am sure I should like an automobile better. We
+ saw automobiles at Topeka, where we stopped for
+ ten minutes this morning, and they looked very
+ queer, going all by themselves, without any
+ horses, but I think I should like a ride in one.
+ Uncle Henry says Aunt Julia is afraid of
+ automobiles, so she still uses a carriage.
+
+ "I talked to some people in the observation car--a
+ lady and a little boy, who are going to
+ Chicago--but I think most of the passengers on
+ this train are rather unsociable. They don't talk
+ much to each other but just read magazines and
+ newspapers when they are awake, and take naps
+ about every hour. I have watched the two ladies in
+ the section opposite mine, and they have been
+ asleep at least four times to-day. I heard one of
+ them say she never could sleep on a train; wasn't
+ that funny?
+
+ "We can post letters from Kansas City, where we
+ are due at half past eight to-night, so I can send
+ this on from there. We get to Chicago to-morrow
+ morning, and have three hours there; won't that be
+ exciting? Oh, I do hope Uncle Henry will take me
+ for a good long walk! I feel as if I could tramp
+ ten miles.
+
+ "Good-bye, you precious Auntie! I send a thousand
+ hugs and kisses to everybody. Tell Undine not to
+ forget Roland's sugar--he always has three
+ lumps--and to be sure the kittens in the barn have
+ their milk every night and morning. I am afraid I
+ forgot to tell her about the kittens; there were
+ so many other things to think of. I am so glad you
+ and Mother have Undine; she is such a dear, and I
+ know will try to take my place. I will write to
+ Father and Mother after I have been in Chicago.
+
+ "From your own little niece,
+ "MARJORIE."
+
+
+ "October 30th.
+
+ "MY OWN PRECIOUS FATHER AND MOTHER:
+
+ "This letter is for you both, and Aunt Jessie must
+ have a share in it, too, because it is the last I
+ shall be able to write on the train.
+
+ "I didn't write at all yesterday, it was such an
+ exciting day! We got to Chicago at about noon,
+ and, oh, what a big, noisy, wonderful place it is!
+ I know I could never describe it if I tried for a
+ week, so I will just tell you what we did. It was
+ raining, which was a great disappointment to me,
+ but Uncle Henry didn't seem to mind. He said we
+ would take a taxi and go to the 'Blackstone' for
+ lunch. I had no idea what a taxi was, but didn't
+ like to ask and when Uncle Henry called one what
+ do you suppose it was? One of those wonderful
+ automobiles! I was a tiny bit scared when we first
+ got in, but when we started, and went rushing
+ through those crowded, noisy streets, I just loved
+ it.
+
+ "It didn't take us long to get to the
+ 'Blackstone,' which is an enormous hotel, looking
+ out on the lake. The lake is wonderful; I never
+ saw so much water before, and though the fog was
+ thick, and we couldn't see very far, I should have
+ liked to stand and look at it for a long time, but
+ Uncle Henry said we must hurry. I never saw such a
+ wonderful place as the dining-room at the
+ 'Blackstone.' There were quantities of little
+ tables, and men waiters to bring you what you
+ wanted. I thought the bill of fare on the train
+ was long enough to satisfy any one, but the one at
+ the 'Blackstone' was simply endless. Uncle Henry
+ told me to choose what I wanted, but there were so
+ many things I couldn't possibly choose, so he
+ ordered a nice lunch, and all the time we were
+ eating music was playing in a gallery overhead.
+
+ "After lunch Uncle Henry took another taxi, and
+ told the driver to show us the city. It was all
+ very interesting, but so noisy and confusing that
+ I got very tired looking at so many things at
+ once, and I was really rather glad when Uncle
+ Henry said it was time to go back to the station.
+
+ "This train is called the 'Chicago Special,' and
+ is even grander than the one we were on before. It
+ goes very fast, but doesn't swing so much, because
+ the road-bed is smoother, Uncle Henry says. I was
+ so tired last night that I went to bed right after
+ dinner, and never woke once till morning. We are
+ due in New York this afternoon, and Uncle Henry
+ says I had better post my letter in Albany,
+ because after we leave there he wants me to see
+ the Hudson, which I believe is very beautiful. So
+ good-bye, you dear precious people! Oh, how
+ anxious I am for my first letters from home! Don't
+ forget to tell me about every single little thing
+ that happens. I am thinking of you all every
+ minute, and if I were going to any other people
+ but Aunt Julia and Elsie I would be so unhappy.
+ But of course going to one's own aunt and cousin
+ is very different from being with strangers, and
+ Uncle Henry is really very kind. Oh, I do wonder
+ if Elsie is as much excited about meeting me as I
+ am about meeting her!
+
+ "Uncle Henry says we shall be in Albany in ten
+ minutes, so good-bye again, with oceans of love
+ from
+
+ "YOUR OWN MARJORIE."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+AUNT JULIA AND ELSIE
+
+
+"ELSIE, my dear child, do you know what time it is? Nearly half past
+five, and you haven't started to dress. Your father will be so annoyed
+if you are not ready when he arrives."
+
+Mrs. Carleton, a small, fair woman, with a rather worried, fretful
+expression, paused in the doorway of her daughter's room, and regarded
+the delinquent with anxiety not unmixed with dismay. Elsie, arrayed in a
+pink kimono, was lying comfortably on the sofa, deep in the pages of an
+interesting story-book. At her mother's words she threw down her book,
+and rose with a yawn. She was a tall girl with dark eyes and hair, and
+she would have been decidedly pretty if she too had not looked rather
+cross.
+
+"Is it really so late?" she said, indifferently. "Why didn't Hortense
+call me? I had no idea what time it was."
+
+"But you ought to have known, dear," Mrs. Carleton protested gently. "I
+don't suppose Hortense knew you wanted to be called, but I will ring
+for her at once. You will hurry, won't you, darling? What excuse can I
+possibly make to your father if he asks for you and finds you are not
+ready?"
+
+"Oh, don't worry, Mamma. You know papa only scolds because he thinks it
+his duty; he doesn't really care. Besides, the train will probably be
+late; those Western trains always are."
+
+Mrs. Carleton rang the bell for the maid, whose room was in a different
+part of the hotel, and went to the closet in quest of her daughter's
+evening dress.
+
+"I will help you till Hortense comes," she said. "You really must hurry,
+Elsie. It is not as if your father were coming alone; he will expect you
+to be ready to greet Marjorie."
+
+Elsie shrugged her shoulders indifferently.
+
+"As if a girl who has been living on a cattle ranch in Arizona would
+care whether I were dressed or not," she said. "Probably where she comes
+from people wear kimonos all day long, and never even heard of dressing
+for the evening."
+
+Mrs. Carleton sighed, and the worried expression deepened in her blue
+eyes.
+
+"I really wish, darling, that you would try to be a little more gracious
+about this. Of course it is a trial, but your father has made up his
+mind that Marjorie shall spend the winter with us, and it isn't going to
+make things any pleasanter to be constantly finding fault about them."
+
+"I wasn't finding fault," retorted Elsie, who had by this time taken off
+the kimono, and begun brushing out her long hair. "I only said Marjorie
+Graham wouldn't care a fig what I had on, and I don't believe she will.
+I don't intend to be disagreeable to her, but you know what an awful
+nuisance it's going to be, and how I hate it. Think of having to take
+her about everywhere with me, and introduce her to all my friends."
+
+"My dear, she is your own first cousin. Besides, I am sure she is a nice
+child--your father speaks so affectionately of her in his letters--and
+her mother is a lovely woman. I was very fond of her when we were girls
+together."
+
+"Oh, I dare say she is all right," Elsie admitted grudgingly, "but that
+doesn't alter the fact of its being an awful bother to have her here for
+a whole winter. You know how papa fusses. He will be sure to get some
+idea in his head about my not paying Marjorie enough attention, and he
+will expect me to take her everywhere. Oh, I hate it, I just hate it!"
+And Elsie's voice actually trembled with vexation.
+
+Mrs. Carleton sighed again.
+
+"I am very sorry, dear," she began, but the entrance of the maid at this
+moment, put an end to the conversation, and she left the room, with a
+final admonition to her daughter to hurry as much as possible.
+
+But alas! it was too late for hurrying. Mrs. Carleton had only just
+entered the drawing-room, when she heard a key turned in the outer door
+of the apartment, followed by the sound of a familiar voice calling
+cheerfully--
+
+"Julia, Elsie, where are you? Here we are, safe and sound!"
+
+With a rapidly beating heart Mrs. Carleton hurried forward to greet her
+husband and his niece.
+
+"My dear Henry, your train must have been just on time," she exclaimed
+rather nervously. "We had scarcely begun to expect you yet. And so this
+is Marjorie. I am very glad to see you, dear; I hope you are not quite
+worn out after that dreadful journey."
+
+"I am not the very least bit tired," returned a fresh young voice, and
+Marjorie returned her aunt's kiss so heartily that Mrs. Carleton was
+rather startled.
+
+"We were twenty minutes late," Mr. Carleton said, in answer to his
+wife's remark, but he kissed her affectionately before putting the
+question she was dreading.
+
+"And where is Elsie?"
+
+"She will be here in a few moments," Mrs. Carleton explained hurriedly.
+"Now do come in and have some tea, or is it too late for tea? I am so
+glad to have you back, Henry dear; we have missed you terribly. I am
+sure you must be tired even if Marjorie isn't."
+
+"Not so tired as hungry; we had a very poor lunch on the train. It is
+rather late for tea, though; we can have an early dinner instead. Where
+is that little witch, Elsie? Isn't she coming to see us?"
+
+"Oh, certainly, dear; I told you she would be here in a few moments. Now
+I will take Marjorie to her room; she will be glad to wash off some of
+those horrid cinders, I am sure." She glanced as she spoke at Marjorie's
+linen shirt-waist, and the straw hat, which certainly did not look as if
+it had come from a New York milliner.
+
+"Am I not to have the same room with Elsie, Aunt Julia?" Marjorie
+inquired, in a tone of some disappointment, as Mrs. Carleton led the
+way down a long, narrow entry, with doors on both sides.
+
+"Oh, no, dear; you are to have a nice little room all to yourself. It
+was so fortunate that we had this extra room in the apartment. We
+intended using it for guests, but when your uncle wrote that he was
+bringing you home with him, we decided to give it to you."
+
+"Oh, I hope I am not going to be in the way," said Marjorie, blushing.
+"I had no idea I was to have a room to myself, especially when Uncle
+Henry told me you were living in a hotel. I wouldn't in the least mind
+rooming with Elsie."
+
+"But you are not at all in the way," said Mrs. Carleton, kindly. "We
+seldom have guests staying with us, and shall not need the extra room.
+This is Elsie's room; yours is just opposite."
+
+At that moment Elsie's door opened, and that young lady emerged,
+followed by the French maid, who was still fastening her dress. At sight
+of her cousin Marjorie sprang forward, and before Elsie at all realized
+what was happening to her, two eager arms were round her neck, and she
+was being hugged in a manner that fairly took away her breath.
+
+"Oh, Elsie, I am so glad!" cried Marjorie rapturously. "Isn't it too
+wonderful and beautiful that we should really meet at last? Do let me
+look at you; I want to see if you are like what I pictured you." And
+Marjorie held her astonished cousin off at arms' length, and surveyed
+her critically.
+
+"What did you expect me to be like?" Elsie inquired, not without some
+curiosity, as she gently extricated herself from Marjorie's embrace. She
+had taken in every detail of her cousin's appearance in one glance.
+
+"I don't exactly know--at least it is rather hard to describe," said
+Marjorie, with an embarrassed laugh. Something in Elsie's expression was
+making her vaguely uncomfortable. "I didn't think you would be quite so
+grown up as you are."
+
+"I am nearly fifteen," said Elsie, as if that fact alone were quite
+sufficient to account for her "grown up" appearance. "Is Papa in the
+drawing-room, Mamma?"
+
+"Yes, darling; run and speak to him; he is expecting you. This is your
+room, Marjorie; I hope you will find it comfortable."
+
+"It's a beautiful room," declared Marjorie, heartily, "only--only, are
+you quite sure you want me to have it, Aunt Julia?"
+
+"Quite sure," said Mrs. Carleton, smiling. "I suppose your trunk will be
+here before long. Hortense will unpack for you, and help you to dress
+for dinner."
+
+Marjorie's eyes opened wide in surprise, and she glanced at the
+white-capped French maid, who still lingered in the background.
+
+"You are very kind, Aunt Julia," she said politely, "but I don't need
+any help; I always do everything for myself."
+
+Mrs. Carleton looked a little embarrassed.
+
+"You may go, Hortense," she said, turning to the maid; "Miss Marjorie
+will ring if she wants you. You mustn't let her think you don't need
+her, dear," she added in a lower tone, as the maid left the room. "She
+is rather inclined to be lazy, and she will take advantage of you if you
+are too easy with her."
+
+Marjorie said nothing, but she was both puzzled and uncomfortable. Mrs.
+Carleton, however, did not appear to notice that anything was wrong.
+
+"I will leave you for a little while now," she said. "You must make
+yourself at home; your uncle and I want you to be very happy here."
+
+The quick tears started to Marjorie's eyes, and she impulsively held out
+her hand to her aunt. But Mrs. Carleton did not notice the gesture, and
+in another moment she had left the room, closing the door after her. In
+the entry she encountered Elsie returning from the interview with her
+father. Elsie was not in the best of spirits.
+
+"Papa has sent me to stay with Marjorie," she said in a discontented
+whisper. "He says he is afraid she is homesick. Oh, Mamma, did you ever
+see such clothes?"
+
+"Never mind about the clothes, dear," said her mother, with forced
+cheerfulness; "we shall soon fit her out with new ones. I think she will
+really be quite pretty when she is properly dressed."
+
+Elsie shrugged her shoulders, but made no further remarks, and the next
+moment she was tapping at her cousin's door.
+
+"Oh, I'm so glad you've come!" was Marjorie's joyful greeting. "Now we
+can have a nice talk before my trunk comes. Sit down in this comfortable
+chair and I'll take the little one. Isn't this a lovely room, and wasn't
+it sweet of your mother to say she hoped I should be happy here? Oh, I
+wonder if you can possibly be one half as glad to see me as I am to see
+you."
+
+Elsie was puzzled, but she was a little flattered as well. She was not a
+general favorite among her companions, and to find a cousin who had
+evidently been longing to make her acquaintance was rather an agreeable
+experience. So her face brightened considerably, and her voice was quite
+pleasant as she remarked, sinking into the comfortable arm-chair
+Marjorie had indicated--
+
+"It is very interesting to meet you. I have often heard papa speak of
+you and your mother and father."
+
+"Why, of course you have," laughed Marjorie, wondering in her simple way
+whether all New York girls of fifteen were as "grown up" as Elsie. "I
+don't believe though that you have thought half as much about me as I
+have about you. You see, it's different in Arizona. There aren't very
+many people, and they all live a long way from each other. Ever since I
+can remember I have longed for a girl friend. But with you it must be
+very different, going to school and living in a big city. I suppose you
+have lots of friends."
+
+"Oh, yes, I have a good many," said Elsie, with her little society air.
+"I am not very fond of them all, though; some girls are so stupid."
+
+"I hope you will like me," said Marjorie, a little wistfully. "We ought
+to be even more than friends because we are cousins, and I have always
+thought that a cousin must be the next best thing to a sister. Don't you
+often long for a sister?"
+
+"Why no, I don't," Elsie admitted. "Indeed, I am not sure that I should
+care for one at all. I think being an only child is very pleasant,
+though of course having an older brother would have its advantages. He
+would introduce one to his friends and bring them to the house. Are you
+fond of boys?"
+
+"Oh, yes, I like them very well, but I have never known many. In fact, I
+haven't known many people of any kind except Indians and Mexicans."
+
+"Indians and Mexicans!" repeated Elsie in a tone of dismay. "How
+perfectly awful! You don't mean that you make friends of those dreadful
+people we saw on the train coming home from California, do you?"
+
+"They are not all dreadful creatures," said Marjorie, flushing. "They
+are not quite like white people, of course, but some of them are very
+good. I know a Mexican boy who is just as bright and clever as he can
+be. His father is going to send him to college next year. Then there is
+Juanita; she has lived with us for years, and we are all very fond of
+her."
+
+"Oh, I didn't know you were talking about servants," said Elsie. "I
+thought you meant friends. Hadn't you any real friends?"
+
+"Not the kind of friends you mean. I had Father and Mother and Aunt
+Jessie, but until last August when Undine came, I had never spoken to a
+white girl of my own age."
+
+"Undine, what a queer name. Is she a Mexican or an Indian?"
+
+"She isn't either," said Marjorie, laughing, "and Undine isn't her real
+name. We only call her that because we don't know what her name is. It's
+a very interesting story, and I'll tell you all about it, but here comes
+my trunk, and I suppose I had better unpack and change my dress before
+dinner."
+
+In spite of Marjorie's reiterated assurances that she didn't need any
+help, Hortense reappeared, and insisted on making herself useful. She
+was very polite and talked volubly in broken English about
+Mademoiselle's being _fatiguer_ and how glad she, Hortense, would be to
+assist her in every way, but Marjorie could not help feeling
+uncomfortable, and wishing that the well-intentioned maid would go away
+and leave her to unpack by herself. But what made her still more
+uncomfortable was the fact that Elsie also lingered, and regarded every
+article that came out of that modest leather trunk, with a keen,
+critical eye.
+
+"What are you going to wear down to dinner?" she inquired anxiously as
+the last things were being stowed away in the bureau drawers.
+
+"I don't know," said Marjorie; "I hadn't thought about it. I suppose my
+gray flannel suit, or else a clean shirt-waist and duck skirt."
+
+Elsie clasped her hands in horror.
+
+"Oh, you can't, you can't possibly!" she cried in real dismay. "Those
+things will do very well for breakfast and luncheon, but everybody
+dresses here in the evening. Let me see what you can wear. You haven't
+got much, but I suppose that white muslin will do."
+
+"But that is my very best dress," protested Marjorie, her cheeks
+crimsoning from embarrassment and distress. "I don't think Mother would
+like to have me wear it the first evening. I won't have anything left
+for really grand occasions if I do."
+
+"Oh, yes, you will," said Elsie, confidently. "Mamma is going to buy you
+a lot of new clothes; that was all arranged before you came. It would
+never do to have you going about everywhere in these things."
+
+Marjorie glanced at her cousin's stylish, well fitting blue chiffon and
+her heart was filled with dismay. Was it possible that all her mother's
+and aunt's stitches had been taken in vain? It was very kind of Aunt
+Julia to wish to buy her pretty clothes, but she did not like to have
+her present wardrobe spoken of as "those things." Before she had time to
+say any more on the subject, however, Mrs. Carleton appeared, to tell
+them to hurry, as her husband was impatient for his dinner.
+
+That first dinner in the big crowded hotel restaurant was a wonderful
+revelation to Marjorie. The bright lights, the gay music, the ladies in
+their pretty evening dresses, it was all like a vision of fairyland, and
+for the first few minutes she could do nothing but gaze about her and
+wonder if she were awake.
+
+"And do you really know all these people?" she whispered to Elsie, when
+they were seated at one of the small tables, and a waiter had taken
+their order.
+
+"Good gracious, no," laughed Elsie, who was beginning to find this
+unsophisticated Western cousin decidedly amusing. "We don't know one of
+them to speak to."
+
+Marjorie's eyes opened wide in astonishment.
+
+"How very strange," she said. "I supposed people who lived in the same
+house always knew each other. We know everybody at home, even if they
+live ten miles away."
+
+"Well, this isn't Arizona, you know," said Elsie, shrugging her
+shoulders, and Marjorie, feeling as if she had somehow been snubbed,
+relapsed into silence.
+
+Just then a lady and a gentleman and a boy of eighteen or nineteen came
+in, and took their seats at an opposite table. Elsie, who had appeared
+quite indifferent to all the other guests, instantly began to show signs
+of interest.
+
+"There they are," she said eagerly, addressing her mother. "The
+gentleman is with them again to-night, too. I forgot to tell you, Mamma;
+I've found out their name, it's Randolph."
+
+"How did you find out?" Mrs. Carleton asked, beginning to look
+interested in her turn.
+
+"Lulu Bell told me to-day walking home from school. That boy passed us
+on the Avenue, and I asked her if she didn't think he was handsome. She
+said she knew who he was, though she had never met him. His uncle is a
+Dr. Randolph, and a friend of her father's. This boy and his mother are
+from Virginia, and are spending the winter here. He is a freshman at
+Columbia, and his mother doesn't want to be separated from him, because
+she is a widow, and he is her only child. Lulu says Dr. Randolph has
+asked her mother to call on his sister-in-law. He said they had taken an
+apartment at this hotel for the winter. I made Lulu promise to introduce
+me if she ever had the chance, but she may never even meet him. She is
+such a queer girl; she doesn't care the least bit about boys."
+
+"A very sensible young person, I should say," remarked Mr. Carleton,
+dryly. "How old is your friend Lulu?"
+
+"Nearly fourteen; quite old enough to be interested in something besides
+dolls, but she's dreadfully young for her age."
+
+"I wish some other little girls were young for their age," said Mr.
+Carleton; "it doesn't appear to be a common failing in these days."
+
+Elsie flushed and looked annoyed.
+
+"That boy really has a very nice face," put in Mrs. Carleton, anxious to
+change the subject, "and his devotion to his mother is charming. I
+suppose her husband must have died recently; she is in such deep
+mourning."
+
+While the others were talking, Marjorie, whose eyes had been wandering
+rapidly from one group to another, had finally fixed themselves upon the
+party at the opposite table. They certainly looked attractive; the
+gentleman with the strong, clever face, and hair just turning gray; the
+pretty, gentle little mother in her black dress, and the handsome
+college boy, with merry blue eyes. It was quite natural that Elsie
+should want to know them, but why in the world didn't she speak to them
+herself without waiting to be introduced? It seemed so strange and
+inhospitable to live in the same house with people and not speak to
+them. So when her aunt had finished her remarks about the Randolph
+family, she turned to Elsie and inquired innocently:
+
+"If you want to know that boy so much why don't you tell him so?"
+
+There was a moment of astonished silence; then Elsie giggled.
+
+"You are the funniest girl I ever met, Marjorie," she said. "Why don't
+you do it yourself?"
+
+"Elsie," said her mother in a tone of shocked reproof, and turning to
+Marjorie, she added gravely:
+
+"When you have been in New York a little longer, my dear, you will learn
+that it is not the proper thing for young girls to speak to strangers
+to whom they have not been introduced."
+
+There was no doubt about the snub this time, and poor Marjorie was
+horribly embarrassed. She cast an appealing glance at her uncle, but he
+appeared to be absorbed, and finding no help from Elsie either, she
+relapsed into silence, and did not speak again for at least five
+minutes.
+
+After all, that first evening could scarcely be called a success. Mr.
+and Mrs. Carleton were very kind, and Elsie seemed disposed to be
+friendly, but Marjorie was conscious of a sensation of disappointment
+for which she could scarcely account even to herself. She struggled
+bravely against the homesickness which threatened every moment to
+overwhelm her, and tried to take an interest in all her new relatives'
+conversation, but when dinner was over, and they had gone upstairs
+again, she was not sorry to avail herself of Aunt Julia's suggestion
+that she must be "quite worn out," and slip quietly off to bed. It was
+not easy to dispense with the services of Hortense, who showed an
+alarming tendency to linger and offer to assist, but even she was
+finally disposed of, and with a sigh of intense relief, Marjorie closed
+her door, switched off the electric light, and crept into bed. Then
+followed a good hearty cry, which somehow made her feel better, and
+then, being young and very tired as well, she fell into a sound, healthy
+sleep, from which she did not awaken until it was broad daylight.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+MARJORIE TAKES A MORNING WALK
+
+
+WHEN Marjorie opened her eyes the next morning, she lay for some minutes
+thinking over the events of the previous day, and listening to the
+unusual noise in the street. There was so much noise that she began to
+fear it must be very late, and jumping out of bed, she went to look at
+the clock. It was only just half-past six. She had forgotten to ask at
+what hour the family breakfasted, but seven o'clock was the usual
+breakfast time at the ranch, so she decided that it might be well to
+dress as speedily as possible. She felt very wide awake indeed this
+morning, and suddenly remembered that she had not had a walk or ride
+since leaving home.
+
+"I'll get Elsie to come with me for a good long tramp after breakfast,"
+she said to herself. "If she can't go on account of school, I'll ask
+Uncle Henry to let me walk with him to his office, and I can come back
+by myself."
+
+Greatly to Marjorie's relief, no Hortense appeared with offers of
+assistance, and she performed her morning toilet in peace. She put on
+the gray flannel suit, which Elsie had pronounced "good enough for
+breakfast and luncheon," and then once more glancing at the clock,
+discovered that it was still only five minutes past seven.
+
+"If they breakfast at seven I shall be only five minutes late," she
+said, with a feeling of satisfaction; "I should have hated to be late
+the first morning. Perhaps they won't have it till half-past, and then I
+shall have time to write a few lines to Mother first."
+
+She opened her door, and crossed the hall to the drawing-room, where her
+aunt had told her the family usually breakfasted, in preference to going
+downstairs to the restaurant, but somewhat to her surprise, she found
+the room just as she had left it on the previous evening, and the whole
+apartment seemed very quiet. She went to one of the windows and looked
+out.
+
+"What a lot of people there are in the street," she remarked
+reflectively, "and they all seem in such a hurry. I wonder where they
+are going. How pretty the park is. Oh, how I should love a gallop on
+Roland before breakfast."
+
+The door behind her opened, and a woman with a duster in her hand came
+in. She looked very much surprised at finding the room occupied.
+
+"Good morning," said Marjorie, with her friendly smile; "it's a lovely
+day, isn't it?"
+
+"It's very pleasant," returned the chambermaid, still looking surprised.
+"You are up early, Miss," she added politely.
+
+"Am I?" said Marjorie, surprised in her turn. "I didn't know I was. At
+what time do my aunt and uncle generally have breakfast?"
+
+"Never before half-past eight, and sometimes later. Mrs. Carleton
+generally has her breakfast in bed, but Mr. Carleton and the young lady
+have theirs in here."
+
+"Half-past eight," repeated Marjorie in dismay, "and it's only a little
+after seven now. I should say I was early."
+
+The maid smiled, and began dusting the ornaments without making any
+further remarks. She did not appear to be a very communicative person,
+and Marjorie decided that she might as well go back to her room, and
+write the letter to her mother, which could now be a much longer one
+than she had at first intended. But on the way she suddenly changed her
+mind.
+
+"I can write later just as well," she decided, "and it really is much
+too beautiful to stay indoors. I'll go and have a walk in that lovely
+park. I shall feel much more like breakfast when I've had some fresh air
+and exercise."
+
+Marjorie had not the least idea that she was doing anything unusual as
+she ran lightly down the broad marble stairs five minutes later, and
+stepped out through the open street door into the fresh morning air. The
+Carleton's apartment was on the fifth floor, but Marjorie scorned to use
+the lift, which had struck her the evening before, as a very wonderful
+but unnecessary invention.
+
+Several people in the hall looked at her curiously, and a man in brass
+buttons asked her if he should call a cab.
+
+"Oh, no, thank you," said Marjorie, pleasantly; "I'm going for a walk,"
+and she passed out, without another backward glance.
+
+It really was a glorious morning, and Marjorie drew in long deep breaths
+of the keen autumn air, as she crossed the broad avenue and entered the
+park. She was not disappointed in her first impression that the park was
+beautiful, and the further she walked among the trees and broad asphalt
+paths, the more attractive it became. It was the last of October, but
+the autumn had been a warm one, and the grass was almost as green as in
+summer. To Marjorie, accustomed all her life to the arid prairie, where
+trees and flowers were practically unknown, it all seemed very
+wonderful, and she enjoyed every step. She walked rapidly on for some
+distance, paying no particular attention to the direction she was
+taking. The possibility of getting lost never once entered her mind. She
+met very few people, and they all seemed in a hurry, and looked like men
+and women on their way to their day's work. Once she passed a
+forlorn-looking man asleep on a bench, and remembered what Undine had
+once said about a tramp. This must be a tramp, she felt sure, and she
+paused to regard him with interest as a new specimen of humanity.
+
+Suddenly she came to a standstill and looked about here. She was in a
+quiet path, with rocks on both sides, and there was not a soul in sight.
+
+"I must turn back," she said, with an uncomfortable recollection of the
+passing of time. "I was enjoying my walk so much I never realized how
+far I was going, but I'm afraid I shall have to hurry now if I don't
+want to be late for breakfast."
+
+Accordingly she turned her steps in the direction from which she had
+come, and walked on rapidly for several minutes. But alas! she had
+taken more than one turn since entering the park, and going back was no
+such easy matter as she had imagined. The more she tried to remember the
+way she had come, the more bewildered she became.
+
+"I declare, I believe I am lost!" she said at last, with a feeling of
+amused dismay. "I must be more careful to notice where I am going next
+time. Oh, there is one of those men in uniform, that Uncle Henry said
+were policemen. He will be able to tell me if I'm going right."
+
+She quickened her steps, and approaching the officer, inquired politely:
+
+"Will you please tell me if this is the way to the entrance?"
+
+"Which entrance?" inquired the policeman, regarding her curiously.
+
+"I don't know," said Marjorie; "the entrance I came in--are there more
+than one?"
+
+"A good many more; which avenue do you want?"
+
+Marjorie's heart was beginning to beat rather fast. For the moment she
+could not remember; even the name of the hotel--which she had only heard
+once or twice--had escaped her recollection.
+
+"I have forgotten the name of the street," she said helplessly, "but
+it's the entrance opposite the big hotel."
+
+The policeman looked uncertain, but at that moment a young man riding a
+bicycle appeared upon the scene, at sight of whom Marjorie's face
+brightened, and she uttered a little gasp of relief.
+
+"That young gentleman knows," she exclaimed joyfully, and, quite
+forgetful of her aunt's snub of the evening before, she darted forward,
+and hailed the youth on the bicycle quite as if she had been an old
+friend.
+
+"Oh, please excuse me for stopping you," she cried, eagerly, "but you
+know where I want to go, and I have forgotten the name of the hotel."
+
+The young man brought his bicycle to a standstill; sprang to the ground,
+and snatched off his cap. He was evidently very much surprised, but too
+polite to show it.
+
+"I beg your pardon," he said in a very pleasant voice; "can I be of any
+assistance to you?"
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie, frankly. "I saw you in the hotel dining-room last
+night, and I heard my cousin say you lived there. I came out for a walk
+before breakfast, and--it's very stupid I suppose--but I can't find my
+way back to the entrance where I came in."
+
+A look of comprehension came into the young man's pleasant face, and he
+regarded Marjorie with interest not unmixed with amusement.
+
+"I understand," he said; "you are staying at the 'Plaza,' and want to go
+back there."
+
+"Yes, that is the name," said Marjorie, looking much relieved; "will you
+please show me the way to the gate?"
+
+"Certainly," said her new acquaintance, smiling, and he at once began to
+lead the way, pushing his bicycle along beside him.
+
+"Oh, don't you want to get on your wheel again?" Marjorie inquired
+anxiously. "I can easily follow if you don't go too fast."
+
+The young man protested that he had ridden quite long enough, and would
+be glad of a little walk.
+
+"You are very kind," said Marjorie, heartily. "It was very stupid of me
+to lose my way; I never was lost before."
+
+"And do you often walk here in the park?" her new friend inquired,
+politely.
+
+"Oh, no, I was never here before. I only came to New York yesterday; my
+home is in Arizona."
+
+"You have come a long distance," he said. "And how do you like New
+York--that is to say as much as you have seen of it?"
+
+"I think it is very noisy and rather smoky, but the hotel is beautiful,
+and so is this park. I haven't seen much of New York yet, but I am going
+to spend the winter here."
+
+"I quite agree with you as to the noise and smoke," said her companion,
+smiling, "but New York is a pretty jolly place notwithstanding. It isn't
+my home either; I am from Virginia."
+
+"Yes, I know you are," said Marjorie, innocently. "You came here to go
+to college, and your mother is with you. My cousin told us all about it
+last evening at dinner."
+
+The young man laughed outright. It was such a merry laugh that Marjorie
+could not help joining in it, and after that they were excellent
+friends.
+
+"Now I wonder if you would mind telling me how your cousin obtained her
+information," Marjorie's new friend said when he had recovered his
+gravity. "I haven't met her, have I? What is her name?"
+
+"Elsie Carleton. No, she hasn't met you yet, but she wants to very much.
+A friend of hers has promised to introduce you if she has a chance. Your
+name is Randolph, isn't it?"
+
+"Yes, Beverly Randolph, at your service. I shall be very glad to meet
+your cousin, I am sure. Perhaps you will introduce us."
+
+"Of course I will if you like. It seems very queer not to know a person
+who lives in the same house with one, but Elsie says they don't know any
+of the people at the hotel. It was all so different at home."
+
+Then Beverly Randolph asked some questions about Arizona, which set
+Marjorie off on a description of the ranch, and her life there, which
+lasted until they reached the Fifth Avenue entrance.
+
+"That's the gate I came in," exclaimed Marjorie. "I wasn't so far away,
+after all. Would you mind telling me what time it is?"
+
+Beverly Randolph took out his watch.
+
+"Ten minutes past nine," he said, looking somewhat dismayed in his turn;
+"I had no idea it was so late. Luckily it is Saturday, so there are no
+recitations to miss."
+
+"O dear! I am afraid I am terribly late for breakfast," said Marjorie,
+feeling very much ashamed of herself. And without another word, they
+hurried across the avenue, and entered the hotel, where the very first
+person Marjorie saw in the entrance hall was her uncle.
+
+"Oh, Uncle Henry, I am so sorry to be late!" she cried remorsefully,
+springing to Mr. Carleton's side. "I hope you and Aunt Julia aren't
+annoyed with me."
+
+"Where in the world have you been, Marjorie?" her uncle demanded,
+ignoring the latter part of her remark. He was looking decidedly annoyed
+as well as worried.
+
+"Why, I got up early," Marjorie explained, "and the girl who was dusting
+said you never had breakfast before half-past eight, so I thought I
+would go for a walk in the park. I got lost, and couldn't remember the
+name of the hotel, but fortunately, just as I was beginning to be a
+little frightened, I met Mr. Beverly Randolph, and he brought me home."
+
+"And who is Beverly Randolph? I had no idea you had friends in New
+York."
+
+"Oh, he isn't exactly a friend--at least he wasn't till this morning.
+You know who he is, Uncle Henry; that nice-looking boy Elsie was talking
+about at dinner last night. Wasn't it fortunate I recognized him. He is
+just as nice as he can be, and I'm going to introduce him to Elsie."
+
+"Come upstairs at once," said Mr. Carleton, a trifle less sternly. "We
+have been very anxious about you; you must never do such a thing
+again."
+
+Marjorie was dumb with astonishment. Beyond being late for breakfast she
+had no idea that she had done anything wrong. She followed her uncle in
+silence, and did not utter another word until they had reached their own
+apartment, where they found Mrs. Carleton in a condition bordering on
+hysteria, and Elsie trying to look solemn, but secretly rather enjoying
+the situation. "I should really think, Marjorie, that you might have
+known," said Mrs. Carleton in a tone of deep reproach, when she had
+heard her niece's explanation, "your own common sense should have told
+you that to go wandering off by yourself in a strange city at seven
+o'clock in the morning, was a most extraordinary thing to do. You must
+never again go out alone at any hour. Elsie has never been out without a
+maid."
+
+Marjorie's eyes opened wide in amazement.
+
+"Not go out alone?" she repeated stupidly. "Why I've always gone
+everywhere by myself ever since I was a little girl."
+
+"Well, you are not to do it here, whatever you may have done in
+Arizona," said Mrs. Carleton, crossly. "As for speaking to a strange
+young man, and getting him to bring you home, I really never heard of
+anything so outrageous. We have been frightened to death about you."
+
+"There, there, Julia," put in Uncle Henry, "don't you think you have
+said enough? I am sure Marjorie will never do such a thing again; she
+will soon be accustomed to New York ways. Now suppose you let the child
+have some breakfast; she looks about ready to drop."
+
+But it was not want of food that had driven the color from Marjorie's
+cheeks and the light from her eyes. Indeed, she had but small appetite
+for the tempting breakfast that was set before her, and it was only by a
+mighty effort that she was able to keep back the burst of homesick tears
+which threatened every moment to overpower her.
+
+At the same moment that Mrs. Carleton was administering her reproof to
+Marjorie, Beverly Randolph was giving his mother an account of the
+morning's adventure, as they sat together at breakfast in their pleasant
+sitting-room on the floor below.
+
+"I know you would like the little girl, Mother," he ended; "she is such
+a natural, jolly sort, and there isn't one bit of nonsense about her."
+
+Mrs. Randolph smiled as she poured her son's coffee, and regarded him
+with proud, loving eyes.
+
+"You never have admired the 'sort' with nonsense about them, have you,
+dear?" she said rather mischievously.
+
+"I haven't any use for them," said Beverly with decision. "I like girls
+well enough when they behave decently, but the silly giggly ones get on
+my nerves. This one--Marjorie Graham she says her name is--is all right,
+though. I think I know the cousin by sight, and I don't feel so sure
+about her."
+
+"You mustn't be too fastidious, Beverly," said his mother, laughing. "I
+dare say they are both nice little girls. By the way, I have received an
+invitation from that charming Mrs. Bell, who called the other day,
+asking us both to dine with her next Tuesday. Her husband is an old
+friend of Uncle George's, you know. Mrs. Bell told me she had a daughter
+of thirteen or fourteen, so that will be another acquaintance for you."
+
+"Well, if she is like most of the New York girls I've seen I sha'n't
+care much about her," declared Beverly. "I prefer the ones that come
+from Arizona. Honestly, Mother, I want you to meet that little girl. I
+don't know what it was about her, but she reminded me of Babs."
+
+A look of pain crossed Mrs. Randolph's sweet face, but her voice was
+still quite cheerful as she answered--
+
+"Very well, dear, be sure to introduce her to me; I want to know all
+your friends."
+
+As soon as she could escape from her relatives after breakfast, Marjorie
+fled to her own room, there to have her cry out, and pull herself
+together, before starting on a shopping expedition with her aunt. Elsie
+was going to lunch with a schoolmate, but Aunt Julia had ordered the
+carriage and told Marjorie that she intended devoting the day to
+shopping.
+
+"You are to begin school on Monday," she explained, "and I must get you
+some decent clothes as soon as possible."
+
+Marjorie supposed she ought to be grateful, but she could not help
+resisting the fact that her aunt evidently did not consider her present
+wardrobe "decent," and this, added to her other troubles, resulted in a
+very unhappy half-hour. But Marjorie was a plucky girl, and she had
+plenty of common sense.
+
+"I won't write a word about all this to Mother or Aunt Jessie," she
+decided as she dried her eyes. "It wouldn't do any good, and they would
+be so sorry. I am sure Aunt Julia means to be kind, and I suppose I did
+frighten them, but it does seem so silly not to be allowed to go out for
+a walk by one's self."
+
+She had just bathed her red eyes, and was sitting down to write the
+deferred letter to her mother, when the door opened, and Elsie came in.
+
+"Mamma says you are to be ready to go out with her in fifteen minutes,"
+she began, then paused, regarding her cousin curiously. "You look as if
+you'd been crying," she said abruptly. "Mamma did pitch into you pretty
+hard, but it was an awfully queer thing to go out by yourself at seven
+o'clock in the morning."
+
+"I'm very sorry I did what was wrong," said Marjorie, "but I had no idea
+any one would object. I often go for a gallop on my pony before
+breakfast at home."
+
+"Oh, I daresay you do, but that is very different. I think it was too
+funny that you should have met Beverly Randolph. Do tell me what he is
+like."
+
+"He is very nice indeed," said Marjorie, frankly; "I liked him ever so
+much."
+
+"You'll be sure to introduce us, won't you? It will be such fun to tell
+Lulu Bell I've met him first; not that she'll care much, she's such a
+baby. Mamma thinks she may call on Mrs. Randolph to thank her."
+
+"What does she want to thank her for?" inquired Marjorie, innocently.
+
+"Why, for her son's bringing you home, and being so kind to you. You
+might have been lost for hours if he hadn't done it."
+
+"But his mother had nothing to do with that," persisted Marjorie.
+"Besides, he was on his way home, anyway. He was very nice, but I don't
+see what there is to thank his mother for."
+
+Elsie reddened, and looked a little annoyed.
+
+"Oh, well, it doesn't matter," she said carelessly. "Mamma would like to
+call on Mrs. Randolph, and this makes a good excuse, that's all. She
+says the Randolphs of Virginia are a very old family. Now hurry and get
+ready; the carriage will be here in a few minutes."
+
+Marjorie said no more on the subject, but she was puzzled. It was only
+natural that Aunt Julia should wish to make the acquaintance of a lady
+who lived in the same house with her, but why was it necessary to have
+an excuse for doing so? She was beginning to think that there were going
+to be a great many new things to learn in New York.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+NEW FRIENDS AND NEW FASHIONS
+
+
+
+ "November 6th.
+
+ "DEAREST AUNT JESSIE:
+
+ "I am at home alone this evening; Uncle Henry and
+ Aunt Julia have gone out to dinner, and Elsie is
+ at a party. I am going to write you a long, long
+ letter, and try to tell you every single thing
+ that has happened.
+
+ "I have been here just a week, and I think I am
+ beginning to get more accustomed to things. It is
+ all very interesting, but some of it does seem a
+ little queer, and, oh, how I do wish I could have
+ a good talk with Mother or you, and ask you to
+ explain the things I don't understand. Aunt Julia
+ is very kind, but I could never talk to her as I
+ do to you and Mother. The things that puzzle me
+ most are what it is proper to do and what isn't.
+ For one thing, they say it isn't proper to speak
+ to people unless one has been introduced. At home
+ we always speak to every one whether they are in
+ the 'Social Register' or not. The Social Register
+ is a book, and Elsie says the names of all the
+ nice people are in it, and when her mother wants
+ to find out who people are, and whether or not she
+ wants to have Elsie know them she just looks for
+ their names in the Social Register, and if she
+ finds them there she knows they are all right.
+ Then it isn't considered proper for girls to go
+ out by themselves in New York. I have seen some
+ nice-looking girls alone in the streets, but Elsie
+ says they can't be the kind one wants to know.
+ Hortense, the French maid, always goes out with
+ Elsie and me, and even carries our books to school
+ for us. Hortense is very nice, but it is rather a
+ bother having her always about, and she wants to
+ do a great many more things for me than I really
+ need. But the greatest difficulty of all is that
+ Elsie isn't fond of walking, and I do miss my
+ tramps dreadfully. We walk to school and back
+ every day, but it isn't far, and in the afternoon
+ Elsie is always having engagements. So I go
+ driving with Aunt Julia, and, oh, but it does seem
+ slow! Aunt Julia hates to drive fast, and I
+ sometimes feel as if I would give anything to jump
+ out of the carriage and have one good run. I know
+ I could easily keep up with those horses if it
+ were only proper to run behind the carriage, but
+ of course it isn't.
+
+ "I ought not to object to going out with Aunt
+ Julia, for she has been very good to me. She is
+ having some perfectly lovely dresses made for me,
+ and has bought me two simply wonderful hats. I am
+ not sure whether Mother would quite approve of all
+ my new clothes. Some of them do look very
+ grown-up, but then the girls here are all much
+ more grown-up than I had any idea they would be.
+ Elsie puts up her hair, and wanted me to put mine
+ up, too, but I knew Mother wouldn't like it, and
+ Uncle Henry said I was right.
+
+ "I have been at school every day since Monday, and
+ like it very much indeed. It is not a large
+ school, only a class of twelve girls. The
+ teacher's name is Miss Lothrop, and Elsie and
+ several of the other girls have been going to her
+ since they were quite little. Miss Lothrop is
+ lovely, and all the girls have been very kind and
+ polite to me. The two I like best are Lulu Bell
+ and Winifred Hamilton. Elsie says they are both
+ very young for their age, and I think perhaps that
+ is the reason I like them better than some of the
+ others. Winifred is only thirteen, but she is just
+ as sweet as she can be, and Lulu is awfully
+ pretty, and a great favorite. Carol Hastings is
+ another girl in the class, and Elsie's most
+ intimate friend. She is only fourteen, but seems
+ much older. I wonder why New York girls seem to
+ care so much about boys. I like a nice boy ever so
+ much myself, but I can't see the use of giggling
+ and looking silly every time his name is
+ mentioned. Carol Hastings came here to dinner last
+ night, and when Beverly Randolph came over to our
+ table to speak to us, she was so silly I was
+ really ashamed of her. I spoke to Elsie about it
+ afterwards, and she said Carol was a goose, but I
+ think she is a little bit silly herself sometimes.
+ I wrote Mother all about Beverly Randolph, and how
+ much I liked him. I would give anything to have a
+ brother just like him. He adores his mother, and I
+ don't wonder, for she is lovely. He says she is so
+ jolly, and is always interested in everything he
+ is interested in; even the college games. His
+ father died when he was little, and I suppose this
+ is one reason why he and his mother are so much to
+ each other. There is an uncle, who is a doctor,
+ but he only comes to dine with them sometimes, and
+ lives somewhere else. Mrs. Randolph has one of the
+ sweetest faces I have ever seen--yours and Mothers
+ excepted--and she looks very young to be the
+ mother of a big boy of eighteen. She dresses in
+ black, and looks rather sad sometimes, but I
+ suppose that is when she is thinking of her
+ husband.
+
+ "Elsie is very clever, and Aunt Julia admires her
+ tremendously. She says Elsie has always been the
+ brightest girl in her classes and that she recites
+ Shakespeare quite wonderfully. I haven't heard her
+ recite yet, but she plays the piano very well, and
+ takes music lessons twice a week. She speaks
+ French, too, and is beginning to study German. Of
+ course I am not nearly as far advanced as she is,
+ but Miss Lothrop says I am not backward for my
+ age, and that makes me very happy. I was so proud
+ when she asked me if I had a governess at home,
+ and I told her Father and Mother had taught me
+ everything I knew. I don't think Elsie liked my
+ saying that; she says I mustn't talk about our
+ being poor, but I am sure I can't see why she
+ should object. However, I have promised to try not
+ to say anything she doesn't like; they have all
+ been so good to me that I do want to please them
+ if I can.
+
+ "Last Tuesday was Aunt Julia's birthday, and she
+ gave a family dinner party. She has a good many
+ relatives, and they all came. I should think Elsie
+ would love having so many cousins, but she says
+ she doesn't care very much about many of them.
+ Aunt Julia's two sisters were here, and I thought
+ the oldest one--Mrs. Lamont--was lovely. Her
+ daughter, Miss Annie, came with her, and she was
+ awfully nice and jolly. She is quite old--about
+ twenty-five I think--and she works downtown in a
+ settlement. I didn't know what a settlement was,
+ but Elsie explained that it is a place where
+ ladies go to live among very poor ignorant people,
+ and try to help them. She and her mother send some
+ of their old clothes to Miss Lamont, and she gives
+ them to the poor women at the settlement. Aunt
+ Julia's other sister is Mrs. Ward. She is quite
+ stout, and talks a great deal about what is good
+ for her to eat and what isn't. She was nice, but I
+ didn't like her as much as the Lamonts. Her
+ husband is fat, too, and is always saying funny
+ things that make people laugh. They have two
+ little girls, but they were not allowed to come
+ because Tuesday was a school night, and they are
+ never allowed to go out anywhere except on Fridays
+ and Saturdays. Elsie can go out any night she
+ likes, because she is so clever that Aunt Julia
+ says it doesn't matter whether she misses her
+ lessons one day or not. There is a Ward boy, too,
+ but he is at Yale. Elsie likes him best of all her
+ cousins, and she says he is very fond of her,
+ too. Aunt Julia says all the boys admire Elsie
+ very much, but I think she is mistaken about
+ Beverly Randolph. He has such an honest face that
+ he can't hide his feelings, and when Elsie and
+ Carol giggled so much that night, and talked so
+ very grown-up, I am sure he was trying not to
+ laugh.
+
+ "You can't begin to imagine how glad I was to get
+ your and Mother's precious letters. I read them
+ over and over until I almost knew them by heart,
+ and slept with Mother's first one under my pillow
+ all night. Father's letter was splendid too, and I
+ was so interested to hear all about the new colts.
+ I am so glad Undine is proving such a comfort. I
+ knew you couldn't help loving her, she is such a
+ dear, and she promised to try to take my place. I
+ told the girls at school about her, and they
+ thought it the most interesting thing they had
+ ever heard. Lulu Bell says she is going to tell
+ her aunt, who is an authoress, about it, and ask
+ her to put Undine in a book. Won't it be too
+ interesting if she really does?
+
+ "O dear! there is the clock striking ten, and I
+ have been writing ever since half-past eight. I
+ must stop now, and go to bed, or I shall be sleepy
+ to-morrow morning. Ten o'clock at night used to
+ seem very late indeed at home, but it seems quite
+ early here. Elsie doesn't expect to get home from
+ her party before half past eleven. Uncle Henry
+ doesn't approve of late hours for school-girls,
+ but Aunt Julia says everybody in New York keeps
+ them, so it can't be helped. I forgot to say the
+ party is at Bessie Winston's. She is one of the
+ girls at Miss Lothrop's, and one of Elsie's
+ intimate friends. I was invited, too, but Aunt
+ Julia wouldn't let me accept, because my new
+ dresses haven't come home yet. Elsie says I
+ wouldn't have enjoyed it, anyway, because I can't
+ dance. She goes to a dancing class every Saturday
+ morning, and Aunt Julia says she may have me go
+ too after Christmas. I think I should like
+ dancing, for the sake of the exercise if nothing
+ else. Oh, how I do long for exercise! Elsie rides
+ in summer, but her pony is at their country place
+ on Long Island, and they don't think it worth
+ while to bring it in to New York. Aunt Julia says
+ Elsie has so many other things to do in winter she
+ has no time for riding. What wouldn't I give for
+ one good canter on Roland! I can't help envying
+ the girls I see riding in the park, though none of
+ them look as if they were enjoying it as much as I
+ should. They all ride side-saddle, and I don't
+ believe it can be nearly as pleasant as riding
+ astride, but Aunt Julia told me not to say so,
+ because it isn't considered the thing to ride
+ astride here. I saw Beverly Randolph riding in the
+ park this afternoon, and he really did look as if
+ he enjoyed it. His home is in Virginia, and he
+ says the people there are very fond of horses.
+ Lulu says Mrs. Randolph owns a large plantation,
+ and I suppose a plantation is something like a
+ ranch.
+
+ "Now I really must stop writing, for my hand is
+ getting tired, and I have made two big blots on
+ this page. So good night, Auntie darling. If I
+ could send all the love that is in my heart, I am
+ afraid no postman would be able to carry the
+ letter, it would be so heavy. So you must just
+ imagine it is there. I am really very happy,
+ though I can't help feeling homesick sometimes,
+ especially at night. I am going to work hard, and
+ try to learn so much this winter that you will all
+ be proud of me when I come home. I have already
+ begun counting the weeks; there are just
+ twenty-eight and a half till the first of June. A
+ winter does seem a very long time, but this week
+ has gone by faster than I expected. I will write
+ to Mother on Sunday, and your next letters ought
+ to be here by Monday. Letters are the best thing
+ in the world when one is so far away from home, so
+ please all write just as often as you can to
+
+ "Your own loving
+ "MARJORIE."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+MARJORIE ENGAGES IN BATTLE
+
+
+"THE most glorious thing is going to happen, Marjorie," announced Elsie,
+as her cousin came into the drawing-room to breakfast one November
+morning, about two weeks after the writing of that long letter to Aunt
+Jessie.
+
+"What is it?" inquired Marjorie, regarding Elsie's radiant face and
+sparkling eyes, with interest. Elsie was not, as a rule, a very
+enthusiastic young person.
+
+"The most delightful invitation you ever heard of," Elsie explained with
+a glance at the letter her mother was reading. "It's from my cousin
+Percy Ward. You know he's a sophomore at Yale, and he wants Mamma and me
+to come to New Haven for the football game next Saturday. It's the big
+Yale-Harvard game, you know, and I've been simply crazy to go, but it's
+almost impossible to get tickets. It really was angelic of Percy to get
+two for us, and he wants us to come up on Friday afternoon so we can go
+to the dance that evening. He has engaged a room for us at the hotel."
+
+"It must be wonderful to see a great match like that," declared
+Marjorie, with hearty appreciation of her cousin's good fortune. "I have
+seen pictures of the college games, and Father always reads the football
+news in the papers. He is a Harvard man himself, you know, and used to
+be on the team."
+
+"I'm sorry you can't go with us," said Elsie, regretfully, "but of
+course Percy couldn't get more than two tickets. Perhaps you wouldn't
+enjoy it much, though. It can't be much fun unless you know a lot of the
+boys. Percy is such a dear; he is sure to introduce me to all his
+friends."
+
+"I wish your father had not gone to Washington on that tiresome business
+just now," remarked Mrs. Carleton, laying down her nephew's letter, and
+looking a little worried. "I should have liked to consult him before
+answering Percy."
+
+"Why, Mamma, you surely don't think he would object!" cried Elsie in
+dismay. "What possible reason could he have for not wanting us to go?"
+
+"Oh, no reason whatever, of course, dear. I was only thinking of
+Marjorie. I am not sure that he would like the idea of her being left
+here alone while we are away."
+
+"Oh, bother! Marjorie won't mind--will you, Marjorie? Besides, she
+needn't be alone; Hortense can sleep in my room, and it's only for one
+night."
+
+"Please don't worry about me, Aunt Julia," said Marjorie, blushing. "I
+shall get on all right, I am sure, and it would be terrible to have you
+and Elsie miss the game on my account. I can have my meals up here while
+you are away, and go out with Hortense."
+
+But Mrs. Carleton did not look quite satisfied.
+
+"You are very sweet and unselfish, dear," she said, "but I wish Percy
+had bought another ticket; then we could have taken you with us. I
+cannot bear to disappoint Elsie, so I suppose I shall have to accept the
+invitation, though I dislike the idea of leaving you behind, especially
+at a time when your uncle is away, too."
+
+So the matter was settled, and as soon as breakfast was over Mrs.
+Carleton sat down to write her note of acceptance, while the two girls
+started for school, accompanied as usual by Hortense. Elsie was in high
+spirits, and entertained her cousin with a vivid description of the
+delight and excitement of a college football match.
+
+"Not that I have ever seen one myself," she explained. "Papa hates
+crowds, and has always said it was too difficult to get tickets, and
+last year Percy couldn't get any either, being only a freshman. Carol
+Hastings has been, though, and she told me she was never so excited in
+her life. The Bells are going this year, and have invited Winifred
+Hamilton and Gertie Rossiter to go with them. I can't see why they want
+to take Winifred; she is such a baby, and I don't believe a boy will
+notice her; but she and Lulu are such chums, one never seems able to go
+anywhere without the other."
+
+"Beverly Randolph and his mother are going, too," said Marjorie, who was
+making a great effort to keep down the feeling of envious longing, and
+to show a real interest and sympathy in her cousin's anticipations. "He
+told me so yesterday. His uncle, Dr. Randolph, is going to take them in
+his automobile."
+
+"Yes, I know; I heard him talking about it. I must be sure to tell him
+Mamma and I are going, so he will look us up. Oh, here come Bessie and
+Carol; I must tell them the good news."
+
+Percy Ward's letter arrived on Wednesday morning, and on Friday
+afternoon soon after luncheon, Mrs. Carleton and Elsie departed for New
+Haven. Mr. Carleton had been called to Washington on business, and was
+not expected home before Saturday night. Aunt Julia was very kind, and
+kissed Marjorie with more affection than usual.
+
+"I really hate to leave you," she said regretfully. "If it were not for
+the disappointment it would have been to Elsie, I would never have
+accepted. I hope you will not be very lonely."
+
+"Oh, no, I won't," promised Marjorie cheerfully. She was really touched
+by her aunt's solicitude, and had almost, if not quite, succeeded in
+banishing the feelings of envy and disappointment. "I've got some hard
+lessons for Monday, and I want to have them all perfect, so I can write
+Mother that I haven't missed in any of my classes for a week. Then
+Hortense says she likes walking, so we can have some fine long tramps.
+To-morrow night will be here before I've begun to realize that you are
+away."
+
+But despite her cheerful assurances, Marjorie's heart was not very light
+when she accompanied her aunt and cousin to the lift, and saw them
+start, Elsie's face wreathed in smiles, and even Aunt Julia looking as
+if she had not altogether outgrown her interest in a football game. She
+went slowly back to her own room, and taking up her Greek history,
+determined to forget present disappointment, and spend the next hour
+with the Greek heroes. But to make up one's mind to do a thing, and to
+carry out one's good intentions are two very different matters. Marjorie
+conscientiously tried to fix her thoughts on "The Siege of Troy," but
+the recollection of Elsie's radiant face kept obtruding itself between
+her eyes and the printed page, and at the end of half an hour she threw
+down her book in despair.
+
+"There isn't any use," she said to herself, with a sigh; "I can't
+remember a single date. I'll ring for Hortense, and ask her to take me
+for a walk. Perhaps by the time we come back my wits will have left off
+wool-gathering, and I shall have a good long evening for studying and
+writing letters."
+
+Hortense was quite ready for a walk, and really the afternoon was much
+less forlorn than Marjorie had anticipated. The French maid had taken a
+fancy to the little Western girl, who was always kind and friendly in
+her manner, and did not--as she told a friend--treat her as if she were
+"_seulement une machine_." Elsie never talked to Hortense during their
+walks, but this afternoon Marjorie was longing for companionship, and
+she and the maid chatted together like old friends. They were both young
+and far away from home, and perhaps that fact had a good deal to do
+towards drawing them together. Marjorie was always glad to talk of her
+life on the ranch, and Hortense told in her turn of the little French
+village, where she had spent her childhood, and of the widowed mother
+and little brothers and sisters, to whom she sent more than half of her
+earnings. She spoke in broken English, with here and there a French
+expression thrown in, but Marjorie had no difficulty in understanding,
+and her interest and sympathy for the plucky little French girl, who had
+left home and friends to earn her own living, grew rapidly.
+
+They took a long walk, for Hortense was almost as fond of tramping as
+Marjorie herself, and it was almost dusk when they at last came in sight
+of the big hotel. Then Hortense suddenly remembered an errand she had to
+do for Mrs. Carleton, and Marjorie--who was not in the least
+tired--declared her intention of accompanying her.
+
+"It is not far," the maid explained; "only to Sixth Avenue. We shall not
+be more than a quarter of an hour."
+
+The errand accomplished they turned their steps in a homeward direction,
+and were about half way up Fifty-seventh Street, on their way to the
+Plaza, when Marjorie's attention was attracted by a horse and cart,
+which had come to a standstill only a few feet in front of them. The
+cart was loaded with boxes and packages, and the horse, which was a mere
+skeleton, and looked as if his working days had long been over, had
+evidently completely given out. The driver, a boy of sixteen or
+seventeen, had sprung down from his seat, and was endeavoring to
+discover the cause of the trouble.
+
+"Oh, look, Hortense," cried Marjorie, her quick sympathies instantly
+aroused, "look at that poor horse. He isn't strong enough to drag that
+heavy wagon, with all those boxes in it. Oh, what a shame! That boy
+mustn't beat him so--he mustn't!" And before the horrified maid could
+interpose, impulsive Marjorie had sprung forward to remonstrate.
+
+"Stop beating that horse," she commanded, with flashing eyes; "can't you
+see he isn't able to go any farther with that load? You ought to be
+ashamed to load a poor creature like that in such a way!"
+
+The boy stared at her for a moment in stupid amazement; then an ugly
+look came into his face. He gave one quick glance up and down the
+street, to make sure there was no policeman in sight; and turned on
+Marjorie with rough fury.
+
+"You leave me alone, will you? It ain't none of your biz what I do with
+this here horse." And before the indignant Marjorie could protest he had
+again laid the whip lash, sharply across the poor animal's back.
+
+Then for one moment Marjorie forgot everything--forgot that she was in
+the streets of a big city--forgot all Aunt Julia's lectures and Elsie's
+warnings--and with one quick movement she seized the whip handle, trying
+with all her strength to drag it away from the boy. She was strong, but
+her antagonist was stronger, and the end of that momentary struggle was
+a sharp cry of pain from Marjorie, a muttered imprecation from the
+driver, and in another second he had sprung into his seat, and horse and
+wagon were clattering away down the street.
+
+"Oh, Mademoiselle, Mademoiselle," gasped Hortense, seizing Marjorie's
+arm, and fairly trembling with fright and horror; "how could you do such
+a terrible thing? A young lady to fight with a _canaille_! Oh, what will
+Madame say when she hears?"
+
+[Illustration: WITH ONE QUICK MOVEMENT SHE SEIZED THE WHIP
+HANDLE.--_Page 145._]
+
+"He is a wicked, cruel boy," panted Marjorie; "he ought to be arrested.
+He is killing that poor old horse."
+
+"Yes, I know, he is cruel, a beast, but young ladies must not interfere
+with such things. You might have been hurt. Let us go home quickly; I am
+near to faint. Thank Heaven no one saw. Madame would never forgive such
+a disgrace."
+
+"But some one ought to interfere," protested Marjorie, her wrath
+beginning to cool, "and there wasn't anybody else to do it. I would have
+taken that whip away from him if I could, but he was so strong, and he
+has hurt my wrist."
+
+"Hurt your wrist! Let me see. Ah, but it is red. How could you have held
+on so tight? Come home quickly, and we will bathe it with arnica. How
+fortunate that Madame and Mademoiselle Elsie are away! Ah, here comes
+the young gentleman, Mademoiselle Elsie's friend from the hotel; he must
+not know that anything is wrong."
+
+But Marjorie had no intention of keeping her indignation to herself, and
+she turned to greet Beverly Randolph with eyes that flashed and cheeks
+that tingled.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Randolph," she exclaimed, as the young man smilingly took off
+his hat, and paused beside her, "the most dreadful thing has
+happened. A cruel, wicked boy has been ill-treating a poor old horse.
+The poor creature had a terribly heavy load, and when he refused to go
+any further, the boy beat him, and--"
+
+"Where is he?" inquired Beverly, his own eyes beginning to flash. "I'll
+report the case to the Society for the Prevention of Cruelty to
+Animals."
+
+"He has gone," said Marjorie, regretfully. "He gave the horse a dreadful
+cut with the whip, and it was so frightened it started, and then he
+jumped into the wagon and went off. I tried to get the whip away from
+him, but he was terribly strong, and he hurt my wrist so much I had to
+let go."
+
+Beverly Randolph's face was a mixture of astonishment, amusement and
+horror.
+
+"You don't mean that you tackled the fellow yourself?" he demanded
+incredulously.
+
+Marjorie nodded. Now that the excitement was over she was beginning to
+feel a little startled at what she had done.
+
+"I had to," she said humbly; "there wasn't any one else to do it.
+Hortense thinks it was very unladylike, but I don't see what else I
+could have done. I couldn't just stand by and do nothing while that
+poor horse was being ill-treated."
+
+"No, I don't suppose you could," said Beverly, smiling. "I don't think I
+would do it again, though; you might get hurt. Hello! what's the
+matter?--don't you feel well?"
+
+For Marjorie had suddenly grown very pale, and leaned against the
+lamp-post.
+
+"It's--it's my wrist," she faltered; "it hurts dreadfully, and--and I
+think I feel a little faint."
+
+Without a moment's hesitation Beverly drew the girl's arm through his.
+
+"Come along," he said, peremptorily, and without another word he
+conducted the wounded soldier back to the hotel. Marjorie, too, was
+silent; the pain in her wrist was very bad, and she had to bite her lips
+hard to keep back the rising tears. Hortense, still covered with shame
+and confusion, followed close behind. At the door of the lift Beverly
+paused.
+
+"Is your aunt at home?" he inquired.
+
+"No," said Marjorie, unsteadily; "she and Elsie have gone to New Haven
+for the football game."
+
+"To be sure they have; I had forgotten. Your cousin told me they were
+going this afternoon. Well, I think I will take you to our apartment.
+My mother is used to sprains and bruises, and will know what to do for
+your wrist."
+
+Marjorie protested that she could not think of disturbing Mrs. Randolph,
+but Beverly, who appeared to be accustomed to having his own way,
+remained firm, and in the end his companion was forced to yield, much to
+the distress and horror of Hortense, who considered that the story was
+already known to more persons than Mrs. Carleton would approve.
+
+Mrs. Randolph and her brother-in-law were having tea in the former's
+pretty sitting-room, when the door was unceremoniously flung open, and
+Beverly appeared on the threshold, leading in a trembling, white-faced
+girl, who immediately collapsed into the nearest chair, and looked as if
+she were about to faint.
+
+"It's Miss Marjorie Graham, Mother," Beverly explained, "and she has
+hurt her wrist. Her aunt is away, so I brought her in here. Oh, here's
+Uncle George; what luck! This is my uncle Dr. Randolph, Miss Marjorie;
+he is a surgeon, you know, and he'll fix you up in no time."
+
+"To be sure I will if I can," said a pleasant voice, not unlike
+Beverly's. "Let me see what the trouble is. Ah, this is the hand, isn't
+it?" And Marjorie felt her wrist taken in firm, kind fingers. She
+winced at the touch, but the doctor's next words were reassuring.
+
+"I see; only a slight sprain, nothing serious. Have you some arnica,
+Barbara, and some linen that I can use for a bandage?"
+
+"How did it happen, dear?" Mrs. Randolph inquired sympathetically, as
+Marjorie leaned back in her chair, with a sigh of intense relief, and
+the doctor applied a cooling lotion to her aching wrist.
+
+Marjorie's cheeks were crimson again, but not for a moment did she
+hesitate about telling the truth. Beverly had gone off to his own room,
+having left his charge in safe hands.
+
+"I am afraid it was my own fault," she said, honestly. "I saw a boy
+ill-treating a poor old horse, and tried to stop him by getting the whip
+away from him, but he was much stronger than I, and in the struggle I
+suppose he must have twisted my wrist. I am afraid your son and my
+aunt's maid both think I was very unladylike."
+
+Mrs. Randolph and the doctor exchanged amused glances, and the latter
+said kindly:
+
+"I wish more people were moved by the same spirit, though I don't know
+that I should advise young girls to attack rough drivers. I imagine you
+have not been very long in New York or you would be accustomed to such
+sights."
+
+"No," said Marjorie, much relieved. "I have only been in New York three
+weeks. My home is on a ranch in Arizona, but I have been accustomed to
+horses all my life. I think my father would almost kill any boy who
+dared to treat one of ours like that."
+
+"I daresay he would. Your father raises horses, I suppose?"
+
+"Yes, and cattle, too. I have lived on the ranch ever since I was two
+years old, and New York seems very strange in some ways."
+
+"It must," said Dr. Randolph gravely, but his eyes twinkled, and
+Marjorie felt sure he was trying not to laugh. "There, I think the wrist
+will do nicely now. You can wet this bandage again in an hour, and if I
+am not mistaken the pain will be gone by that time. I must be going now,
+Barbara; I have two patients to see before dinner. I'll call for you and
+Beverly in the car at nine to-morrow morning; that will give us plenty
+of time to make New Haven before lunch." And with a hurried leave-taking
+the doctor departed, leaving Mrs. Randolph and Marjorie alone together.
+
+The next half-hour was a very pleasant one. Mrs. Randolph would not
+allow the girl to go back to her own apartment until the pain in her
+wrist had subsided, and she made her lie on the sofa, and petted her in
+a way that recalled Mother and Aunt Jessie so strongly that Marjorie had
+some difficulty in keeping back the homesick tears. Almost before she
+knew it, she was chatting away to this new acquaintance as if they had
+been old friends.
+
+"I hope I shall get accustomed to New York ways soon," she said humbly.
+"I am afraid I make a great many mistakes, and they distress my aunt and
+cousin very much. You see, it is all so different on the ranch. I
+suppose your son told you how I spoke to him that morning in the park,
+and asked him to take me home. It seemed quite a natural thing to do,
+because I knew he lived in this hotel, but Aunt Julia was dreadfully
+shocked."
+
+Mrs. Randolph laughed.
+
+"Beverly was not at all shocked," she said. "He and I have rather
+old-fashioned ideas about some things; we like little girls to be
+natural."
+
+"I am so glad you think me a little girl still," said Marjorie in a
+sudden burst of confidence. "All the girls here seem so grown-up, and I
+don't want to grow up just yet; I am only fourteen."
+
+"My little girl would have been just about your age if she had lived,"
+said Mrs. Randolph, with a rather sad smile. "I am sure I should not
+have begun to think of her as grown-up yet."
+
+Marjorie was interested. She would have liked to ask Mrs. Randolph about
+her little girl, but feared the subject might be a painful one, and just
+that moment Beverly came back, and the conversation turned on other
+matters. In a little while Marjorie rose to go.
+
+"You have been very kind to me," she said to Mrs. Randolph. "My wrist
+feels ever so much better already. I do hope I haven't been a bother."
+
+"Not a bit of it," Mrs. Randolph declared, laughing. "On the contrary, I
+have enjoyed your call very much, and I hope you will come often, for I
+am very fond of little girls. By the way, what are you going to do
+to-morrow?"
+
+"Oh, I don't know," said Marjorie; "walk and read and study, I suppose.
+Aunt Julia said I might drive in the afternoon, but the horses go so
+slowly I always feel as though I should like to get out of the carriage
+and run. Galloping over the prairie is much more fun."
+
+Mrs. Randolph and her son both laughed, and Beverly remarked rather
+indignantly:
+
+"It's a shame you couldn't have gone to the game with the others."
+
+"Oh, that wasn't Aunt Julia's fault," said Marjorie, loyally. "Her
+nephew only sent two tickets, and Elsie says it's almost impossible to
+get extra ones. They were very kind about it, and Aunt Julia hated to
+leave me behind."
+
+Beverly and his mother exchanged a significant glance, and then Beverly
+offered to accompany the visitor as far as her own apartment for the
+purpose of carrying the arnica bottle, which Mrs. Randolph insisted she
+should keep in case of necessity. Marjorie protested, but Beverly was
+firm, and the two young people left the room together, after Mrs.
+Randolph had kissed the girl, and told her she must come again very
+soon.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+A MOTOR RIDE AND A FOOTBALL GAME
+
+
+"I THINK your mother is perfectly lovely," declared Marjorie, the moment
+the door of the Randolph's apartment had closed behind them. "Is she
+always so kind to strangers?"
+
+"Mother's a brick," said Beverly, heartily. "She's kind to everybody,
+and always doing things for people. She's a good sport, too. I really
+believe, she is looking forward to the game to-morrow almost as much as
+I am. It's because she's so unselfish; she never stops to think of
+herself so long as other people are having a good time."
+
+"My aunt is like that," said Marjorie, with shining eyes. "She is a
+great invalid, and suffers very much most of the time, but she never
+complains, and is always interested in everything we do. Is your uncle a
+surgeon?"
+
+"Yes," said Beverly, rather surprised by the abruptness of the question;
+"he is a very fine surgeon, I believe. Why do you want to know? Aren't
+you satisfied with the way your wrist is bandaged?"
+
+"Oh, it isn't that," said Marjorie, blushing; "it was only something I
+was thinking of that made me ask the question. This is our apartment;
+now I can take the bottle, and not bother you any more. Oh, there's a
+letter in the box; perhaps it's for me!" And forgetting everything else
+in her eagerness for home news, Marjorie sprang forward to possess
+herself of the contents of the letter-box.
+
+"It is for me!" she cried joyfully, glancing at the postmark. "It's from
+Undine; the first one I've had from her."
+
+"Undine," repeated Beverly, his eyes beginning to twinkle; "I had no
+idea you counted water sprites among your acquaintances."
+
+"She isn't a water sprite," laughed Marjorie. "She's just a girl like
+anybody else. We call her Undine because nobody knows what her real name
+is. It's a very strange story indeed. She was found under some ruins in
+the streets of San Francisco right after the earthquake, and we think a
+stone or something must have fallen on her head, for she was unconscious
+for a long time, and now she can't remember anything that happened
+before the earthquake, not even her own name. She isn't crazy, or
+anything like that, but she has simply forgotten everything. Did you
+ever hear of a case like that before?"
+
+"I think I have read of such cases, but I imagine they are rather rare.
+It is very interesting, but if you don't mind, Miss Marjorie, please
+don't mention it to my mother. Any mention of the San Francisco
+earthquake is very painful to her. My little sister was killed there."
+
+"No, indeed I won't," promised Marjorie, "but how very sad about your
+sister. Would you mind telling me how it happened? Don't talk about it,
+though, if you would rather not."
+
+"I don't mind in the least," said Beverly, "but it was such a frightful
+shock to my mother that we don't like to have her dwell on it any any
+more than can be helped. My sister Barbara was in San Francisco with my
+aunt at the time of the earthquake. She had been very ill with scarlet
+fever in the winter, and the doctor had ordered a change for her. My
+aunt was going to California for a few weeks, and offered to take
+Barbara with her. Mother couldn't leave home, for she was taking care of
+my grandmother, who was ill at the time, and I was away at school. So it
+ended in my aunt and Barbara going by themselves. My aunt intended
+taking a maid, but the one she had engaged disappointed her at the last
+moment, and as all the railroad accommodations had been secured, she
+decided to start, and trust to finding a suitable maid in San Francisco,
+which was to be their first stopping place. They reached San Francisco,
+and my aunt wrote my mother that she had engaged a very satisfactory
+girl, and two days later came the earthquake."
+
+Beverly paused abruptly, and Marjorie, her face full of sympathy, laid a
+kind little hand on his arm.
+
+"Don't tell me any more," she said, gently; "it must have been very
+terrible."
+
+"It was," said Beverly, sadly. "Part of the wall of the hotel where they
+were staying fell in, and they were both instantly killed. We feared for
+a time that my mother would never recover from the shock."
+
+"And was the maid killed, too?" Marjorie asked. She was longing to hear
+more, but did not like to ask too many questions.
+
+"We never knew; you see, she was a stranger to us. My uncle advertised
+in all the California papers, in the hope of finding her, and perhaps
+learn more particulars, but no answer ever came. She was probably
+killed, poor thing."
+
+"Your mother spoke of her little girl this afternoon," said Marjorie;
+"she said she would have been just about my age."
+
+"Yes, she would have been fifteen this January. It is rather odd, but
+when I saw you that first morning in the park you somehow reminded me of
+Babs. She was such a jolly little girl. She was four years younger than
+I, but there were only we two, and we were always chums."
+
+There was a look of such genuine sorrow on the boy's face that impulsive
+Marjorie held out her hand.
+
+"I'm so sorry," she said and that was all, but Beverly understood, and
+he went back to his mother's apartment with a very kindly feeling for
+the little girl from Arizona.
+
+Once in her own room Marjorie speedily forgot the Randolphs and their
+troubles in the delight of a letter from home. Undine's handwriting was
+rather immature for a girl of her age, but the letter itself was most
+interesting and satisfactory.
+
+
+ "November Fifteenth.
+
+ "DEAR MARJORIE:
+
+ "Your aunt thinks you would like to have a letter
+ from me, and although I can't see how you can
+ possibly care about hearing from such a stupid
+ person, I am very glad to write.
+
+ "You have no idea how much I have missed you. If
+ your mother and aunt had not been so very kind I
+ don't think I could have borne it, but, oh,
+ Marjorie dear they are so good; I do hope I can
+ deserve just a little of all they are doing for
+ me. Your mother is making me a new dress--isn't it
+ sweet of her? She sent to Albuquerque for the
+ material; it is dark blue serge with a little
+ stripe in it, and just as pretty as it can be. I
+ take a sewing lesson every day from Miss Jessie,
+ but I know as well as can be that I shall never
+ learn to make things as you do.
+
+ "Another thing that makes me very happy is that
+ your mother is giving me lessons, and letting me
+ recite to her every evening. Even if I am stupid
+ and can't remember my own name, I don't want to
+ grow up ignorant. We are reading English history
+ together, and it is very strange, but I almost
+ always know what is coming next. Mrs. Graham says
+ she feels sure I must have learned the same things
+ before.
+
+ "A very strange thing happened to me one day last
+ week; I think I almost remembered. It was the day
+ your long letter to Miss Jessie came, and she was
+ reading it aloud to us when it happened. It was
+ just like the day I heard Jim singing 'Mandalay'
+ for the first time. It seemed to me just for one
+ minute that I was going to remember everything,
+ and I was so excited I screamed, and frightened
+ Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie. Then in a flash it
+ was all gone again, and I was so unhappy I
+ couldn't help crying. I am afraid I gave them a
+ good deal of trouble, but they were so kind!
+ Afterward Miss Jessie talked to me for a long
+ time, and made me promise to try not to worry any
+ more about not remembering. She said some lovely
+ comforting things about my being helpful and
+ trying to take your place, and they made me very
+ happy, although I am afraid I didn't really
+ deserve them.
+
+ "I ride almost every afternoon, and I think Roland
+ is beginning to like me. I never forget his sugar,
+ and I am teaching him to put his nose in my pocket
+ for it. I think I must have taught another horse
+ that some time, it seemed so natural, but I am not
+ sure. I have promised your aunt not to talk about
+ the things I think I used to do.
+
+ "I had such a beautiful dream last night. I
+ thought some one came and told me I was very rich,
+ and I was so happy, because I would have the money
+ to pay a surgeon to come and see Miss Jessie. I
+ was just planning out how I was to do it when I
+ woke up. I have thought a great deal about what
+ you told me that last evening, but of course I
+ have never mentioned it to any one. I don't
+ suppose you have had time to meet a surgeon yet.
+
+ "I must stop writing now, and study my history.
+ Everybody is well, and they all send heaps of love
+ and kisses. Your mother says 'don't let Marjorie
+ know how much we miss her,' but I am sure you know
+ that without any telling. I don't want to be
+ selfish, but I should just love a letter all to
+ myself some time. New York must be a very
+ interesting place, and your letters telling about
+ it all are wonderful.
+
+ "With a heart full of love, I am
+ "Your true but nameless friend,
+ "UNDINE."
+
+Marjorie spent a busy evening over her lessons, and went to bed at nine
+o'clock instead of writing the home letters she had intended.
+
+"They would be so sorry to know I was here all by myself while the
+others were off having a good time," she thought, resolutely crushing
+down that troublesome little feeling of envy. "If I wrote to-night I
+should have to mention it, but if I wait till Sunday when Aunt Julia
+and Elsie are back again, I won't have to say anything about their
+having been away. I promised Mother to let her know about all the
+things, but some of them will keep till I get home and can tell her
+myself."
+
+But in spite of the throbbing pain in her wrist, and the disappointment
+in her heart, Marjorie soon feel asleep, and did not wake until it was
+broad daylight, and Hortense, with a note in her hand, was standing by
+her bedside.
+
+"It is only seven," the maid said apologetically, as Marjorie sat up in
+bed, and rubbed her eyes. "I would not have called you so early, but the
+hall boy has brought this note, and waits for an answer."
+
+"What in the world can it be?" exclaimed Marjorie in astonishment, as
+she tore open the envelope, but at the first glance at the contents her
+face brightened, and she uttered a joyful little cry. This is what she
+read.
+
+ "MY DEAR MARJORIE:
+
+ "I know you won't object to my calling you
+ Marjorie, because you say you like being a little
+ girl. I am writing to ask if you will go with us
+ to New Haven to-day. We are going in my
+ brother-in-law's car, and are to be ready to start
+ at nine o'clock. The friend we expected would go
+ with us has been prevented at the last moment,
+ which gives us an extra seat in the car as well as
+ a ticket for the game, and we should be delighted
+ to have you with us. I am sure your aunt would not
+ object, and I will explain everything to her
+ myself. I would have written you last evening, but
+ it was after ten when we learned that the friend
+ we had expected would be unable to go. We have
+ ordered breakfast for eight o'clock, and would be
+ glad to have you take it with us. Be sure to wrap
+ up well, for it may be a cold ride, and we shall
+ not get back till late.
+
+ "Hoping that you will be able to join us, I remain
+
+ "Sincerely your friend,
+ "BARBARA RANDOLPH."
+
+Marjorie was out of bed almost before she had finished the last line.
+Her eyes were dancing, and her heart pounding with excitement.
+
+"Tell the boy to say I shall be delighted to go," she cried. "There
+isn't time to write a note; I shall have to hurry. Oh, Hortense, did you
+ever hear of anything quite so splendid?"
+
+It was a very radiant Marjorie who presented herself at the Randolphs'
+apartment an hour later, and Beverly and his mother felt fully repaid
+for the kindly impulse which had prompted the invitation. The breakfast
+that followed was a very pleasant one, and Marjorie chatted away to her
+new friends as if she had known them all her life, and enjoyed herself
+more than she had done at any time since coming to New York.
+
+"I really didn't know how disappointed I was about not going till your
+mother's note came," she said to Beverly, when breakfast was over, and
+Mrs. Randolph had gone to put on her hat. "I have always longed to see a
+football game. My father was on the team at Harvard."
+
+"You seemed to take your disappointment rather cheerfully," said Beverly
+with characteristic bluntness.
+
+Marjorie blushed.
+
+"It was just one of the things that couldn't be helped," she said
+simply. "My aunt says there are some things every one has to make the
+best of."
+
+"Your aunt must be a sensible woman," remarked Mrs. Randolph, who had
+returned just in time to hear Marjorie's last sentence. Thereupon
+Marjorie launched forth into an account of Aunt Jessie's bravery and
+cheerfulness, in which both her companions seemed interested.
+
+Marjorie was sure she would never forget the delight of that motor ride
+to New Haven. It was her first ride in an open touring car, and the
+bright sunshine, the keen frosty air, and the swift motion, all combined
+to render the trip a truly enjoyable one. She sat in the tonneau,
+between Mrs. Randolph and the doctor, and Beverly occupied the front
+seat with the chauffeur.
+
+"It's the most heavenly motion I ever imagined," murmured Marjorie, as
+they bowled swiftly out of the park and along the grand boulevard. "I
+always thought riding was the most delightful thing in the world, but I
+believe motoring is even better."
+
+The doctor laughed.
+
+"You must be an accomplished horsewoman," he said. "Beverly tells me you
+have spent a good part of your life on a ranch."
+
+"I rode my first pony before I was five, and helped Father train a colt
+when I was nine," said Marjorie. "I suppose that is one reason why I
+love horses so much, and can't bear to see one ill-treated."
+
+"I have no doubt of it, but if I were you I think I would leave the
+punishment of cruel drivers in future to the Society for the Prevention
+of Cruelty to Animals. By the way, how is the wrist this morning?"
+
+"Oh, it's ever so much better," said Marjorie, blushing at the memory of
+her escapade. "I don't believe I have thought of it once since Mrs.
+Randolph's note came. I have been so anxious to see a real college
+football match. My father was on the team at Harvard."
+
+"Indeed!" said the doctor, looking interested. "I am a Harvard man
+myself, and there was a Graham on the team in my time; a splendid
+chap--what is your father's name?"
+
+"Donald, and he was in the class of 1890," said Marjorie, eagerly. "Oh,
+I wonder if you can really have known Father."
+
+"I certainly did. Ninety was my class, too, and I remember Donald Graham
+very well, though we have never met since the old college days."
+
+"How perfectly delightful!" cried Marjorie, with sparkling eyes. "Father
+will be so interested when I write him about it."
+
+Dr. Randolph was really pleased to hear of his old classmate, forgotten
+for nearly twenty years, and he and Marjorie were soon in the midst of
+an animated conversation; she telling of her father's busy life on the
+Arizona cattle ranch, and he relating college stories, and growing young
+again himself in recalling those old merry days.
+
+That was a wonderful ride, and Marjorie enjoyed every moment. Dr.
+Randolph told her the names of all the towns they passed through, and
+Beverly and his mother were so kind and so merry. It was noon when they
+reached New Haven, where they found the streets crowded with people and
+automobiles, and many of the buildings decorated with flags and Yale
+colors.
+
+"Have all these people come to see the game?" Marjorie asked
+breathlessly.
+
+"Yes, and a good many more as well," Dr. Randolph told her. "There is
+always a big crowd for these games; the railroads run special trains on
+purpose. We are going to have lunch now, and then go out to Yale Field."
+
+"I wonder if we shall meet Aunt Julia and Elsie," said Marjorie. "How
+surprised they will be to see me if we do. Aunt Julia will be pleased, I
+know, for she hated to leave me at home."
+
+"We shall meet the Bells and their party at any rate," said Beverly.
+"They came yesterday by train, and are saving a table for us at the
+restaurant. You know Lulu Bell, don't you, Marjorie?"
+
+"Yes, she is in my class, and I like her ever so much. I like Winifred
+Hamilton, too, and she is to be with the Bells, I believe."
+
+At that moment they drew up before the hotel where they were to lunch,
+and Mrs. Randolph and Marjorie hurried away to the dressing-room to
+remove wraps and motor veils, while the doctor and his nephew went to
+order luncheon.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+MARJORIE SURPRISES HER RELATIVES
+
+
+"I REALLY don't know when I've been so pleased about anything!"
+exclaimed Lulu Bell, a pretty, bright-faced girl of fourteen, as she and
+her friends greeted Marjorie in the restaurant. "We were all so glad
+when Beverly Randolph told us you were here. Won't Elsie be surprised?
+She hadn't the least idea you were coming. Come here and sit between
+Winifred and me."
+
+"I don't believe any one can be much more surprised than I am myself,"
+said Marjorie, laughing, as she took the proffered seat, and received
+the kindly greeting of her other schoolmates. "Wasn't it just heavenly
+of the Randolphs to bring me with them?"
+
+"It was nice," Winifred Hamilton agreed heartily. "This is my first
+football game, too, and I'm almost too excited to eat. Did you ever see
+such a crowd in your life?"
+
+"No, never," said Marjorie, with a glance round the packed restaurant.
+"I wonder if they will really have lunch enough for all these people.
+Do you suppose Aunt Julia and Elsie are here?"
+
+"No, I don't think so," said Winifred. "We saw Elsie at the dance last
+night, and she said they were going to lunch with some friends of her
+cousin's. She will be at the game, of course, and perhaps you may see
+her there."
+
+"I think it was real mean of Elsie to come without you," chimed in
+Gertie Rossiter, who was not noted for tact. "I should have hated to go
+off for a good time and leave my cousin at home alone."
+
+"Oh, Elsie couldn't help it," protested Marjorie; "her cousin could only
+get two tickets."
+
+"Nonsense!" retorted Gertie indignantly. "He could have gotten an extra
+one as well as not if he had known in time; he told me so last night. I
+know Percy Ward very well, and he's an awfully nice boy. He felt
+dreadfully sorry when he heard about your being left behind. He said it
+was just like Elsie."
+
+"Isn't Mrs. Randolph pretty?" broke in Winifred, anxious to change the
+subject before Gertie made any more uncomfortable revelations. "She
+looks awfully young to be that big boy's mother."
+
+"She is perfectly lovely," declared Marjorie, and Lulu added, by way of
+keeping the conversation in safe channels:
+
+"Papa knows her brother-in-law, Dr. Randolph, very well, and he says she
+is the bravest woman he has ever met. You've heard about her little
+girl, haven't you?"
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie, "it was very sad; I don't see how poor Mrs.
+Randolph ever got over it."
+
+"She didn't," said Lulu. "Dr. Randolph says it nearly killed her, and
+even now she can't bear to speak of it, but she doesn't think it right
+to sadden her son's life, and so she is always bright and cheerful. If I
+ever write a book I shall make my heroine just that sort of person."
+
+At this moment Beverly, who had gone to speak to some friends at another
+table, joined the party, and the subject of his family was dropped. The
+luncheon was a very merry one. They were a large party, for besides
+Lulu's father and mother and the three girls, there were a couple of
+Yale students, friends of the Bells, and everybody seemed in excellent
+spirits. Marjorie felt a little shy at first, but soon thawed under the
+genial atmosphere, and before the meal was over she was chatting and
+laughing as merrily as any of the others.
+
+"Isn't Marjorie a nice girl?" whispered Winifred to Lulu, as they were
+leaving the restaurant. "I'm so glad she got the chance to come, but I
+do wonder what Elsie will say."
+
+It seemed to Marjorie that the next three hours must be the most
+exciting period of her life. To most girls a college football game is
+looked upon as a rather important event, but to Marjorie, fresh from her
+Arizona home, it was an experience never to be forgotten. It was on the
+whole a peaceful game, and there were no serious accidents to mar the
+general enjoyment and as the sun continued to shine, and the day was
+comfortably warm, there were not even the usual discomforts of weather
+to be endured. Marjorie and her friends were about equally divided in
+their championship; Lulu, Winifred and Gertie being for Yale, while
+Beverly and Marjorie herself favored Harvard, and joined in the cheers
+and rejoicing when the "Crimson" at last carried off the honors of the
+day, although Yale ran so close behind that at one time fears had been
+entertained that the game would be a tie.
+
+"Are you tired, Marjorie?" Beverly asked, as they were making their way
+through the dense throng to the waiting motor-car.
+
+"I don't know whether I am or not," said Marjorie, laughing. "It has
+all been so wonderful, and I don't feel as if I could quite realize it
+yet. Oh, there they are!"
+
+"Who?" demanded Beverly, looking round in surprise. "Oh, I see, your
+aunt and cousin--do you want to speak to them?"
+
+"Yes, of course I do; they'll be so surprised. Why, Elsie is staring at
+me as if she didn't know me."
+
+To say that Mrs. Carleton and her daughter were surprised would be but a
+mild way of expressing their feelings. They were for the moment
+literally speechless with astonishment. Elsie was the first to recover
+her power of articulation.
+
+"Is it really and truly you, Marjorie?" she demanded, regarding her
+smiling cousin with round-eyed amazement.
+
+"Yes, it really and truly is," laughed Marjorie. "I've been trying to
+find you all the afternoon, but there was such a crowd. I knew you'd be
+surprised."
+
+"Surprised!" echoed Elsie, looking from Marjorie to her tall companion,
+"I was never so surprised in my life. But how did it happen--who brought
+you?"
+
+"Mr. Randolph and his mother," said Marjorie, "wasn't it perfectly
+lovely of them?" And she proceeded to give her aunt and cousin an
+account of recent events.
+
+"I am sure it was extremely kind of Mrs. Randolph," Mrs. Carleton said,
+when Marjorie had finished her story. "I only hope this little girl
+hasn't been a trouble to your mother, Mr. Randolph."
+
+"Indeed she hasn't," declared Beverly, not without some indignation in
+his tone. "We've had a splendid time, haven't we, Marjorie?" To which
+Marjorie, who felt suddenly as if a pail of ice water had been dashed
+over her, answered rather meekly:--
+
+"It was beautiful. I never had such a good time in my life."
+
+"I am afraid that we must hurry along, Mrs. Carleton," said Beverly. "My
+mother and uncle have gone ahead, and will be waiting for us at the
+entrance. Don't worry about Marjorie; we'll take good care of her, and
+bring her home safely. We may be a little late, as my uncle doesn't like
+to run his car fast after dark."
+
+"Oh, I shall not worry," said Mrs. Carleton, with her sweetest smile. "I
+know Marjorie is in excellent hands, and between ourselves, I think she
+is a very fortunate little girl."
+
+Marjorie was rather silent during the long ride back to New York that
+evening. Mrs. Randolph and the doctor thought she was tired after all
+the excitement of the day, and kindly left her alone, but Beverly was of
+a different opinion, and his feelings towards Marjorie's aunt and cousin
+were not of the kindest.
+
+"I suppose your aunt was very much surprised to see you," Mrs. Randolph
+said kindly, merely for the sake of conversation.
+
+"Very much indeed," said Marjorie, in a tone that was not altogether
+steady. "Oh, Mrs. Randolph, I do hope I haven't been a trouble to you."
+
+"A trouble! My dear child, what nonsense. It has been perfectly
+delightful to have you with us, and you have added greatly to our
+pleasure. I hope we may have many more little trips together before the
+winter is over. You know I am very fond of little girls."
+
+Marjorie was much relieved, but her heart was not as light as it had
+been all day.
+
+"Be sure to remember me to your father when you write," were Dr.
+Randolph's parting words to Marjorie, as they drew up before the big
+hotel at ten o'clock that night. "Tell him he mustn't forget to look me
+up when he comes to New York."
+
+"Indeed I will," promised Marjorie; "he will be so interested. I don't
+suppose--" with sudden eagerness--"that you ever go to Arizona?"
+
+"I have never been there as yet, but nobody knows what may happen. If I
+ever go to Arizona, though, I shall certainly call on my old college
+friend, Donald Graham."
+
+"Isn't your uncle a dear?" remarked Marjorie to Beverly, as her friend
+was taking her upstairs to the Carletons' apartment.
+
+"He's a brick," was the young man's hearty rejoinder. "I'm glad you like
+him, for I know he likes you. He doesn't take to everybody, but he's
+been awfully good to Mother and me, and he was very fond of my little
+sister. Here's your door, so I'll say good-night. Hasn't it been a jolly
+day?"
+
+"It has been one of the loveliest days I've ever had," said Marjorie
+earnestly. "I'm sorry Aunt Julia thought I might have been troublesome,
+but your mother said I wasn't."
+
+"Troublesome! I should say not. Don't bother about what your aunt says;
+she doesn't know anything about it, and it's all nonsense, you know."
+
+Elsie had already gone to bed, and Mr. Carleton had telegraphed that he
+was taking the midnight train from Washington, and would not reach home
+till the following morning. But Aunt Julia was still up and dressed, and
+awaiting her niece's return.
+
+"My dear child, how late you are," was the rather reproachful greeting.
+"Do you know it is nearly half-past ten? Elsie went to bed more than an
+hour ago; she was quite worn out, poor child, as indeed I am myself, but
+I couldn't make up my mind to undress until I knew you were safely at
+home. I am horribly afraid of those automobiles."
+
+"I'm so sorry you worried about me, Aunt Julia," said Marjorie,
+regretfully. "I think we were quite safe, though; Dr. Randolph's
+chauffeur seems very careful, and they don't like going fast. I wasn't a
+bit frightened."
+
+"No, I don't suppose you were; children seldom realize danger. Sit down,
+Marjorie; I want to have a little talk with you before you go to your
+room."
+
+Marjorie complied, drawing a chair close to the fire, and stretching her
+cold hands out to the welcome blaze. She was longing to tell all about
+the day's pleasures, and was glad of the prospect of a little chat with
+Aunt Julia before going to bed.
+
+"Now my dear," began Mrs. Carleton, speaking fast and rather nervously,
+"I don't want you to let what I am going to say make you unhappy. I am
+not in the least displeased with you, because I am sure you had no
+intention of doing anything wrong; I have told Elsie so. But, Marjorie
+dear, it is not quite the proper thing for a girl of your age to accept
+invitations from strangers without first consulting the people under
+whose care she has been placed."
+
+"Oh, Aunt Julia," cried Marjorie, clasping her hands in dismay, while
+all the brightness died suddenly out of her face, "I am so sorry! I had
+no idea you would object to my going with the Randolphs; I thought you
+would be pleased because you were so sorry about leaving me at home.
+Mrs. Randolph said she was sure you wouldn't mind."
+
+Mrs. Carleton moved uneasily in her chair, and her eyes did not meet
+Marjorie's honest, astonished gaze.
+
+"I am sure it was very kind of Mrs. Randolph to think of giving you so
+much pleasure," she said. "I am not displeased with you either,
+Marjorie; I am only warning you not to make such a mistake another time.
+The Randolphs are merely slight acquaintances of ours, and one doesn't
+like being under obligations to strangers, you know. Elsie feels this
+quite as strongly as I do."
+
+"Elsie," repeated Marjorie, with a start, "why does she care? Didn't she
+want me to go to the game?"
+
+"Nonsense, dear; of course Elsie wanted you to go. She would have been
+delighted if only the circumstances had been a little different. Don't
+look so distressed, Marjorie; there is really nothing tragic in the
+situation. You have done nothing wrong, and I am glad you have had such
+a pleasant day, but don't accept another invitation without consulting
+either your uncle or me. Now kiss me good-night; I am tired to death and
+simply cannot sit up another minute."
+
+Marjorie cried herself to sleep that night for the first time in weeks.
+In spite of the memories of her happy day, she was more homesick than
+she had been at any time since coming to New York. She was so anxious to
+do right; to please her uncle and aunt in every way, and show them how
+grateful she was for all they were doing for her. And now, without
+having the slightest idea of having done anything wrong, she had annoyed
+Aunt Julia. She was thankful Hortense had not mentioned the episode of
+the cruel driver, and that her wrist no longer required a bandage. What
+would her aunt say if she knew of this delinquency as well as the other?
+But Marjorie was a very honest, truthful girl, and she decided to make a
+clean breast of everything to Uncle Henry when he came home. There was
+only one thing she could not understand, and that was why Elsie should
+have objected to her going to New Haven with the Randolphs.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+THE POETRY CLUB
+
+
+THERE was a marked coolness in Elsie's manner to her cousin the next
+morning, which Marjorie found decidedly uncomfortable as well as
+perplexing, but even Elsie was not proof against the weakness of
+curiosity, and after a few veiled hints, which Marjorie quite failed to
+understand, she finally softened, and demanded a full account of
+yesterday's doings, which her cousin was only too glad to give.
+
+"Tell me about Lulu Bell," said Elsie, when Marjorie had reached the
+part of her story where they had arrived at New Haven, and gone to lunch
+at the hotel restaurant. "Did Beverly Randolph pay her a lot of
+attention?"
+
+"Why, no, I don't think so," said Marjorie, innocently, "at least not
+any more than he paid to any of us. He was very polite to everybody, and
+I think he's the nicest boy I've ever met."
+
+"Probably that is because you have never met many people except
+Mexicans and Indians," remarked Elsie sarcastically.
+
+Marjorie, who had a quick temper of her own, flushed angrily, and was
+just going to say something sharp when Mrs. Carleton called them to get
+ready for church. Sunday was always a homesick day with Marjorie; there
+was not so much to do as on week-days, and she generally wrote a long
+home letter in the afternoon. Mr. Carleton had returned in time for
+breakfast, but it was not until after luncheon that Marjorie succeeded
+in getting him to herself. Then he proposed taking a walk, and asked the
+girls to accompany him. Elsie protested that she was too tired after the
+exertions of yesterday, but Marjorie gladly accepted her uncle's
+invitation, and it was during that walk that she told her little story,
+concealing nothing not even the battle royal with the brutal driver. Mr.
+Carleton could not help smiling over his niece's account of that affair,
+although he grew grave again in a moment, and told Marjorie she must
+never interfere in such a case. But he saw nothing wrong in her having
+accepted Mrs. Randolph's invitation.
+
+"I daresay your aunt is right in wishing you to consult her before
+accepting invitations as a rule," he said, "but in this case I really
+don't see how you could have acted differently. The Randolphs are
+charming people, and it was very kind of them to offer to take you with
+them. It would have been scarcely courteous to refuse."
+
+Marjorie returned from her walk with a much lighter heart, and in
+writing a long and detailed account of the game to her father, she quite
+forgot to worry over Elsie's sulks, or Aunt Julia's warnings.
+
+When the two girls arrived the next morning at the building where Miss
+Lothrop held her daily classes, they found several of their classmates
+gathered in an eager group, all talking fast and earnestly.
+
+"The most interesting thing is going to happen," announced Gertie
+Rossiter, pouncing upon the two new arrivals. "Lulu is getting up a
+club, and she wants us all to join."
+
+"What sort of a club?" inquired Elsie, doubtfully.
+
+"Oh, an awfully nice one. It's to meet at our different houses on Friday
+evenings, and we are to sew for the poor for the first hour, and dance
+and play games the rest of the evening."
+
+"I don't believe I should care to join," said Elsie, indifferently, as
+she took off her hat, and smoothed out her crimps; "I hate sewing."
+
+"So do I, but the sewing is only for the first hour, and the rest will
+be such fun. The boys will be invited to come at nine and stay till
+half-past ten."
+
+"Boys!" repeated Elsie her face brightening; "are there to be boys in
+the club, too?"
+
+"Yes, but of course they can't sew, so Lulu is going to put them on the
+amusement committee. My brother Rob is going to be asked, and Bessie's
+two cousins, and any others we can think of. You'll be sorry if you
+don't join, Elsie; it's going to be splendid."
+
+"I never said I wasn't going to join," said Elsie loftily, and
+sauntering over to the window where Lulu Bell and several other girls
+were still in earnest conversation, she inquired with an air of would-be
+indifference:
+
+"What's all this about a club somebody is getting up?"
+
+"It's Lulu," said Winifred Hamilton, proudly; "she thought of it
+yesterday and we all think it's such a good idea."
+
+"The first meeting is to be held at my house next Friday evening," Lulu
+explained, "and every member has got to read an original poem."
+
+"What for?" demanded Elsie, beginning to look rather blank. "I don't
+see what poems have to do with a sewing club."
+
+"Oh, we all have to be initiated," said Lulu, "the way college boys are,
+you know, and the way we are going to initiate is to make everybody
+write a poem. It needn't be more than eight lines, and it doesn't matter
+what it's about, so long as it's poetry. It will be such fun reading the
+poems and deciding which is the best. The one who writes the best poem
+is to be president of the club. It will be decided by vote."
+
+"I think the club sounds very interesting," said Elsie, with a little
+air of condescension, "but if I were you I would give up the initiation;
+it's so silly."
+
+"Oh, the initiation is half the fun!" cried Lulu and Bessie both
+together, and Lulu, who was not very fond of Elsie, added with decision:
+
+"Any one who isn't willing to take the trouble to write a poem can't
+join the club."
+
+"I am sure I have no objection to writing a poem," said Elsie, shrugging
+her shoulders. "It's perfectly simple; I could write one every week if I
+chose, but it's so foolish."
+
+Bessie and Gertie looked at each other, and Gertie formed the word
+"brag" with her lips, but did not say it aloud. Marjorie saw the look
+that passed between the two girls, and her cheeks grew suddenly hot.
+
+Elsie was certainly very clever, but she could not help feeling that it
+would be better taste on her cousin's part not to talk about it.
+
+"I wish I found it easy to write a poem," said Winifred, mournfully. "I
+never made a rhyme in my life, but Lulu says I've got to try. She made
+me write a story once when we were little girls, and it was the most
+awful nonsense you ever heard. Have you ever written a poem, Marjorie?"
+
+"Only a few silly doggerels. One of my aunt's favorite games is capping
+verses, and we used sometimes to play it on winter evenings."
+
+Just then more girls arrived, and in a few moments Miss Lothrop rang her
+bell, and school began.
+
+"Well, Marjorie, what do you think of the idea of the club?" Elsie
+inquired of her cousin, as the two were walking home from school
+together that day.
+
+"I think it will be splendid," declared Marjorie, heartily. "Lulu must
+be a clever girl to have thought of such a plan, especially of the
+initiation. I am sure the poems will be great fun."
+
+"They won't amount to anything," said Elsie, with her superior smile.
+"Nobody will write a decent poem, and I do hate poetry that isn't really
+good. Papa would never allow me to learn anything but the classics."
+
+"Lulu says we mustn't read our poems to any one until the night of the
+initiation," said Marjorie. "I know yours will be splendid, Elsie; you
+are so clever."
+
+Elsie smiled, well pleased by the compliment, and added rather
+irrelevantly:
+
+"I asked Lulu why she didn't invite Beverly Randolph to join the club.
+He hasn't many friends in New York and might enjoy it. She says he is
+older than any of the other boys, but she would be glad to have him if
+he cares to join, so I am to ask him and let her know to-morrow. The
+boys are not to be initiated, because they are only the amusement
+committee, but they are all to come to the first meeting, and vote on
+the poems."
+
+Nothing more was said on the subject just then, but Elsie was careful to
+deliver the message to Beverly that evening, and the invitation was
+readily accepted.
+
+"The girl who writes the best poem is to be president, you know," Elsie
+explained, with her sweetest smile. "You must be sure to come to the
+first meeting and vote for the one you like best."
+
+"I am afraid I'm not very well up on poetry," said Beverly, laughing.
+"It's a lucky thing the boys aren't expected to write poems as well as
+the girls; I am sure I should disgrace myself hopelessly if I were to
+attempt anything original."
+
+"Oh, no, you wouldn't," Elsie protested. "You have no idea how easy it
+really is. Of course some of the poems will be dreadfully silly, but you
+don't have to vote for them."
+
+It was Thanksgiving week, so school closed on Wednesday, not to open
+again till the following Monday. Elsie had several invitations for the
+holidays, but Marjorie, whose New York acquaintances were still limited
+to the girls at Miss Lothrop's, had only the first meeting of the Club
+on Friday evening to which to look forward. She wrote her poem on
+Wednesday evening, while Elsie was at a theater party, and although far
+from satisfied with it, decided that it would have to do, as she had
+several hard lessons to prepare for Monday, and there was no more time
+for writing poetry.
+
+"Of course it won't be nearly as good as Elsie's," she told herself
+cheerfully. "She is sure to be voted president."
+
+She had asked her cousin that evening if she had written her poem, and
+Elsie had replied carelessly that there was plenty of time, and she
+would probably do it to-morrow.
+
+"It really isn't worth bothering about," she had added, with some scorn;
+"it won't take me half an hour."
+
+The next day was Thanksgiving, and the Carletons and their niece were
+invited to a family dinner at Mrs. Lamont's. Elsie spent a long time in
+her room that afternoon, and came out looking rather cross. Marjorie,
+going into her cousin's room for something later in the day, noticed
+that the waste-paper basket was full of torn papers.
+
+"I wonder if she can be having trouble with her poem," Marjorie thought
+innocently, but when she questioned Elsie on the subject, that young
+lady colored angrily, and replied that of course she wasn't, and she did
+wish people would stop talking about that silly Club; she was sick of
+the subject and had a great mind not to join at all.
+
+The dinner at the Lamonts was very pleasant, and Marjorie could not help
+being conscious of the fact that she looked unusually well in her new
+dress. Every one was kind to the little Western girl, and she liked Mrs.
+Lamont and her daughter better than ever. The Ward family were also of
+the party, and Marjorie was introduced to the Yale boy, Percy, whom she
+found most agreeable, though not, as she wrote her mother afterward,
+quite so nice as Beverly Randolph.
+
+"Why didn't you tell me what a jolly girl Marjorie Graham was?" Percy
+demanded of Elsie, when the cousins were alone together for a moment
+after dinner.
+
+Elsie flushed.
+
+"I didn't know you'd like her," she said, evasively. "She's dreadfully
+young for her age, and not a bit like the New York girls."
+
+"Well, she's all right anyway," maintained Percy. "I only wish I'd known
+about her in time to get another ticket for the game last Saturday. But
+she went with some other friends, didn't she?"
+
+"Oh, yes, she went," said Elsie, with a rather sarcastic smile. "She got
+some people at the hotel to take her in their car. You needn't worry
+about Marjorie; she knows how to take care of herself."
+
+Elsie spent another hour in her room on Friday morning, and was so cross
+and disagreeable at luncheon, that Marjorie wondered more and more what
+the matter could possibly be. But in the afternoon Elsie cheered up, and
+her cousin came to the conclusion that whatever the trouble had been, it
+was evidently over.
+
+The meeting was to begin at eight o'clock, so immediately after an early
+dinner, the two girls, accompanied as usual by Hortense, started in the
+carriage for Lulu's home, which was on Madison Avenue, only a few blocks
+away.
+
+Lulu was a charming little hostess, and gave her friends a cordial
+greeting, explaining that her mother and aunt would come down later, but
+it had been a stipulation with some of the Club members that nobody
+grown up was to hear the poems or take part in the initiation. Several
+of Miss Lothrop's girls had already arrived, and there were also present
+a few more young people, particular friends of Lulu's, who had been
+invited to join the Club.
+
+"I want you to meet my friend, Betty Randall," Lulu said to Marjorie, as
+Elsie turned away to speak to other friends. "She's English, and just as
+nice as can be. She and her mother and brother are visiting us. She
+can't be a member, because they are all going back to England next week,
+but she and Jack are the special guests of the evening, and they are
+both to be allowed to vote on the poems."
+
+Betty Randall was a quiet, sweet-faced girl of fifteen, and Marjorie
+liked her at once.
+
+"Have you been in this country long?" she asked, when Lulu had left them
+together, and gone to greet other arriving guests. She could not help
+feeling a good deal interested in meeting "a real English girl."
+
+"Only since September," Betty answered, "but we used to live in New
+York. My mother is English, but she and my father came to this country
+when they were married, and my brother and I were both born in New York.
+We lived here until four years ago, when my uncle took us back to
+England to live with him."
+
+"I should think it would be wonderfully interesting to live in England,"
+said Marjorie. "I suppose of course you have been in London, and seen
+the Tower and Westminster Abbey?"
+
+"Oh, yes," said Betty, smiling. "One of my uncle's places is quite near
+London, and we often motor into town. I like America, though; it always
+seems more like home. Do you know the names of all these girls?"
+
+"I know most of them; we go to the same school, but I haven't been in
+New York nearly as long as you have. My home is in Arizona, and I have
+only come here to spend the winter, and go to school with my cousin."
+
+Betty looked a little disappointed.
+
+"Then I suppose you can't tell me something I want to know very much,"
+she said. "Lulu told me Dr. Randolph's nephew was to be here, and I do
+want to see him."
+
+"Oh, I can point him out to you," said Marjorie. "He lives at the Plaza,
+where my uncle has an apartment, and Elsie and I know him very well.
+There he is, that tall boy, who has just come in. Isn't he handsome?"
+
+"Yes, very," agreed Betty, regarding the new arrival with considerable
+interest. "I never met him, but his uncle was such a good friend to us
+once."
+
+"I know Dr. Randolph, too," said Marjorie; "he took us to New Haven in
+his car to see the game last Saturday. He is very kind."
+
+"Kind!" repeated Betty, with shining eyes; "he is more than kind, he is
+wonderful. He cured my brother, and made him walk, when he had been a
+cripple all his life."
+
+Marjorie gave a little gasp, and some of the color went out of her face.
+
+"Tell me about it," she said, clasping her hands, and regarding her new
+acquaintance with such an eager expression in her eyes, that Betty was
+quite startled.
+
+"It was before we went back to England," she said. "We were living here
+in New York, and Winifred Hamilton and her father and mother had an
+apartment in the same house. My mother was taken very ill, and Winifred
+went for Lulu Bell's father, whom you know is a doctor. He was very good
+to us, and while attending mother he became very much interested in my
+brother, who was nine years old then, and had never walked a step since
+he was born. He brought Dr. Randolph to see Jack, and he felt sure
+something could be done for him, and persuaded Mother to let him be
+taken to a hospital. Mother consented, and Dr. Randolph performed a
+wonderful operation."
+
+"And does your brother walk now?" Marjorie asked almost breathlessly.
+
+"There he is," said Betty, smiling, and pointing to a tall boy of
+thirteen, who was standing near the door, talking to Winifred Hamilton.
+"You would never believe that he was a helpless cripple only four years
+ago, would you?" she added proudly.
+
+"No, indeed," said Marjorie; "it seems very wonderful. Do you suppose
+Dr. Randolph often performs such operations?"
+
+"I think so. Dr. Bell says he is one of the finest surgeons in the
+country. Why are you so much interested? Do you know some one who is a
+cripple, too?"
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie, with a sigh. "It's my aunt; she had a terrible
+accident eight years ago, and has never walked since. But she is away in
+Arizona; we could never ask Dr. Randolph to go all that distance to see
+her."
+
+"No, I suppose not," Betty admitted regretfully, "but couldn't your aunt
+be brought here to him? I know people come from all parts of the country
+to consult him. There was a little girl at the hospital when Jack was
+there, who had been brought all the way from Texas."
+
+Marjorie thought of the long three-days journey, and of her father's
+desperate struggle to make both ends meet, but before she could answer,
+Lulu, as mistress of ceremonies--rapped sharply on the table, and the
+Club was called to order.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+ELSIE TRIUMPHS
+
+
+"LADIES and gentlemen," began Lulu, speaking in the tone she had heard
+her mother use when conducting a meeting of a charitable board of which
+she was president, "I think every one is now here, and I must request
+you all please to keep quiet during the reading of the poems. After the
+reading, votes will be taken as to the best poem, and the girl who gets
+the most votes will be elected president of this Club. The boys are
+particularly requested not to laugh at any of the poems. The first to be
+read is by Miss Winifred Hamilton, and is called 'Ria and the Bear.'
+Miss Hamilton wishes me to explain that she has never heard the name
+Ria, but chose it because it was the only word she could think of that
+rhymed with fear."
+
+There was a general titter from the audience, followed by a burst of
+applause, as Winifred, very red, and looking as if she were being led to
+execution, rose and announced:
+
+"It's perfectly awful, but it's the first poem I ever wrote in my life,
+and I want to say that I sha'n't be in the least offended if everybody
+laughs." Then, unfolding a small sheet of paper, she began to read very
+fast.
+
+ "RIA AND THE BEAR.
+
+ "The sky was of the darkest hue,
+ The grass beneath was wet with dew,
+ And through the trees the wind did howl,
+ Causing the hungry bears to growl.
+
+ "All were protected from the storm,
+ All but one wee, shivering form,
+ She stood beneath an old elm tree,
+ The boughs of which from leaves were free.
+
+ "A big bear darted through the wood,
+ His instinct told him where she stood.
+ Soon the monster came close to Ria,
+ But the child showed no sign of fear.
+
+ "As the big bear drew very close,
+ She gave a pat to his cold nose,
+ At this touch the bear did cease to growl,
+ And for response a joyful howl.
+
+ "Then these two friends lay down together,
+ Quite heedless of the raging weather,
+ Upon the hard and frozen ground,
+ The two friends slept, both very sound.
+
+ "But one of the two never awoke;
+ Long, long after the wind storm broke,
+ She was discovered lying there,
+ Where she had died beside the bear."
+
+"Bravo! Winifred, that's fine!" shouted Jack Randall, and then followed
+a shout of laughter, in which everybody joined, Winifred herself as
+heartily as any of the others.
+
+"I told you it was awful," she said between gasps, "but Lulu said no one
+could be a member who didn't write a poem, so I had to do my best."
+
+"I should die of mortification if I were laughed at like that,"
+whispered Elsie to Carol, who sat next to her. To which her friend
+replied sympathetically:
+
+"Of course you would, but then everybody isn't a genius like you."
+
+"The next poem," announced Lulu, when order had been restored, "is by
+Miss Marjorie Graham of Arizona. Get up, Marjorie."
+
+Marjorie's heart was beating rather fast as she rose, but there was a
+merry twinkle in her eye, and if her voice shook a little when she began
+to read, it was more from suppressed laughter than from fear.
+
+
+ "THE BORING LIFE OF NEW YORK.
+
+
+ "Some think it delightful to live in New York,
+ But with them I do not agree;
+ 'Tis nothing but hustle and bustle and talk,
+ All very distasteful to me.
+
+ "I love all the pleasures the country can give,
+ The beautiful flowers and the birds;
+ The city produces not one of these things,
+ Only traffic and crowds by the herds.
+
+ "The city is good as a workshop for men,
+ Who in parks idle moments may pass,
+ But the pleasure for children e'en there is quite spoiled,
+ When a sign bids them 'Keep off the Grass.'"
+
+A burst of genuine applause followed this production, and Marjorie sat
+down again quite covered with confusion.
+
+"It's splendid; I couldn't have written anything half so good,"
+whispered Betty encouragingly. "I am rather glad I am not to be a member
+of the Club, for I know I could never have written two lines that
+rhymed."
+
+"The next poem," continued Lulu, in her business-like tone, "is by Miss
+Gertrude Rossiter," and Gertie, looking very much embarrassed, rose, and
+began:
+
+
+ "THE STORM AT SEA.
+
+ "The waves did beat on a rocky shore;
+ The noise resounded more and more;
+ A little craft was tossed on the sea,
+ And all knew that saved she might not be.
+
+ "The crew were gathered on the deck,
+ Awaiting the crash of the awful wreck;
+ Many hearts stopped beating as the time drew near
+ To bid good-bye to their children dear.
+
+ "The babies and children all did shriek,
+ And now their voices grew very weak.
+ The staunch big men grew white with fear,
+ At the thought of death that was so near.
+
+ "But all at once the winds did cease,
+ The waves stopped tossing, and there was peace,
+ The children stopped crying; with joy they all laughed,
+ And gladness prevailed on that safe little craft."
+
+There was more applause, mingled with laughter, and Elsie whispered to
+Carol, quite loud enough to be heard by several others:
+
+"Did you ever hear anything so silly? Even the meter is wrong; there are
+too many words in some lines, and not enough in others."
+
+"Read yours next, Lulu," said Winifred, before her friend could make
+another announcement. "Lulu writes beautiful poetry," she added in a
+lower tone to Jack Randall; "I'm crazy to know what she's written this
+time."
+
+Lulu protested that as hostess her turn should come last, but several
+other girls joined their entreaties to Winifred's, and she was forced to
+yield. Blushing and smiling, she took a sheet of paper from her pocket,
+and began to read:
+
+ "THE FIRE.
+
+ "The forest trees were waving in the wind;
+ The sun was slowly sinking o'er the hill,
+ The clouds in purple, gold and blue outlined,
+ Were mirrored in the still pond by the mill.
+
+ "The birds were twittering their last good-night;
+ The dainty flow'rets closing up their eyes,
+ When all at once a fearful lurid light
+ Shone in the many-colored sunset skies.
+
+ "Quickly that awe-inspiring fire spread,
+ And many a tall and stately tree there fell.
+ The timid animals and birds all fled,
+ And naught but charred remains were left the tale to tell.
+
+ "At morn when in his glory rose the sun,
+ Over the blackened, devastated hill,
+ The scene that there the traveler looked upon
+ Seemed to his inmost heart to send a chill."
+
+"Isn't she wonderful?" whispered Winifred excitedly to Jack. "I told you
+hers would be the best."
+
+"It's very pretty," Jack admitted, "but I think I like the one about Ria
+and the Bear the best of all."
+
+"The next poem," announced Lulu, when the applause had subsided, "is by
+Miss Elsie Carleton."
+
+There was a little flutter of excitement as Elsie rose--as the brightest
+girl in the school, a good deal was expected of her. Some of the girls
+noticed with surprise, that Elsie had grown rather pale, but her voice
+was as calm and superior as ever, when she unfolded her paper, and
+began:
+
+ "GOD KNOWS.
+
+ "Oh, wild and dark was the winter's night
+ When the emigrant ship went down,
+ But just outside the harbor bar,
+ In the sight of the startled town.
+ And the wind howled, and the sea roared,
+ And never a soul could sleep,
+ Save the little ones on their mothers' breasts,
+ Too young to watch and weep.
+
+ "No boat could live in that angry surf,
+ No rope could reach the land--
+ There were bold, brave hearts upon the shore;
+ There was many a helping hand;
+ Men who strove, and women who prayed,
+ Till work and prayer were vain;
+ And the sun rose over that awful void,
+ And the silence of the main.
+
+ "All day the watchers paced the sand;
+ All day they scanned the deep;
+ All night the booming minute guns
+ Echoed from steep to steep.
+ 'Give up thy dead, oh cruel sea!'
+ They cried athwart the space,
+ But only a baby's fragile form
+ Escaped from its stern embrace.
+
+ "Only one little child of all,
+ Who with the ship went down,
+ That night while the happy babies slept
+ All warm in the sheltered town.
+ There in the glow of the morning light
+ It lay on the shifting sand,
+ Pure as a sculptor's marble dream,
+ With a shell in its dimpled hand.
+
+ "There were none to tell of its race or kin--
+ 'God knows,' the pastor said,
+ When the sobbing children crowded to ask
+ The name of the baby dead.
+ And so when they laid it away at last,
+ In the churchyard's hushed repose,
+ They raised a slab at the baby's head,
+ With the carven words 'God knows.'"
+
+There was a general murmur of admiration, as Elsie sat down again, in
+the midst of a burst of applause louder than had greeted any of the
+other productions.
+
+"Wasn't it lovely?" whispered Winifred to Jack, as she wiped her eyes.
+"I do love those sad pieces, don't you?"
+
+"They're all right," said Jack, a little doubtfully, "but don't you like
+the funny ones that make you laugh, better? Ria and the Bear was so
+funny."
+
+"That poem is really beautiful," declared Betty Randall, turning to
+Marjorie, and speaking in a tone of hearty admiration. "She must be an
+awfully clever girl to have written it; it's quite good enough to be
+published."
+
+But Marjorie did not answer. She had given one violent start when Elsie
+began the first line of her poem, and at the same moment she had caught
+the expression on Beverly Randolph's face. After that she had sat quite
+still, with crimson cheeks, and a heart that was beating so loudly she
+was almost afraid people must hear it. In her mind was a mild confusion
+of feelings; astonishment, mortification, and incredulity, and, worst of
+all, the knowledge that at least one other person in the room besides
+herself knew. When the burst of applause came she was conscious of a
+momentary sensation of relief. At least no one was going to speak yet.
+She cast an imploring glance at Beverly, but his face expressed nothing
+beyond amusement and a sort of indifferent contempt.
+
+There were more poems read; some funny, some sentimental; but Marjorie
+scarcely heard them. In her thoughts there was room but for one thing.
+Even the wonderful story Betty had told about her brother and Dr.
+Randolph was swept away in the shock of the discovery she had made.
+Several times she glanced at Elsie, fully expecting to see some
+expression of shame or remorse but that young lady was looking the
+picture of smiling content.
+
+When the poems had all been read, there was a general move, and pencils
+and bits of paper were handed around.
+
+"One of the boys will pass round a hat," Lulu explained, "and you must
+all drop your votes into it." Then, with a sudden generous impulse, she
+went up to Elsie and held out her hand.
+
+"Yours was ever so much the best, Elsie," she said, frankly; "you
+certainly deserve to be president."
+
+Elsie just touched the outstretched hand with the tips of her fingers,
+and for one moment her eyes dropped and her color deepened.
+
+There was a moment of dead silence while the names were being written,
+then Gertie Rossiter's brother passed round the hat, and each girl and
+boy dropped a bit of paper into it.
+
+"I shall vote for Elsie Carleton, sha'n't you?" whispered Betty to
+Marjorie, but Marjorie shook her head.
+
+"I am going to vote for Lulu Bell," she said shortly.
+
+It was an exciting moment when Beverly Randolph and Rob Rossiter--the
+two oldest boys present--counted the votes and announced the results:
+"Elsie Carleton, thirteen. Lulu Bell, nine. Marjorie Graham, five.
+Gertie Rossiter, three, and Winifred Hamilton, one."
+
+The presidency of the Club was unanimously accorded to Elsie.
+
+Then came an hour of games and dancing, followed at half-past nine, by
+light refreshments. But although Marjorie entered into the gayety with
+the rest, her heart was very heavy, and she did not join in the
+congratulations which were being showered upon the new president, in
+which even Lulu's mother and aunt, who had come downstairs as soon as
+the initiation was over, joined heartily. Beverly Randolph was a general
+favorite, and devoted himself in turn to almost every girl in the room,
+but he, too, held aloof from the new president. He and Marjorie had no
+opportunity for private conversation till the refreshments were being
+served, when he approached her corner, with a plate of ice-cream.
+
+"Your 'Boring Life of New York' was fine," he remarked, pleasantly,
+taking the vacant chair by her side. "I quite agree with your sentiment.
+I voted for you."
+
+"You are very kind," said Marjorie, blushing, "but it wasn't nearly as
+good as several of the others. Lulu's was splendid. You--you didn't like
+Elsie's?"
+
+"No, I didn't," said Beverly bluntly, "and you didn't, either."
+
+Marjorie's cheeks were crimson, but she made one desperate effort to
+save her cousin.
+
+"It was a beautiful little poem," she faltered, "only--only I
+thought--but perhaps I was mistaken--I'm sure Elsie wouldn't have done
+such a thing; it must have been a mistake."
+
+Beverly said nothing, but he did not look convinced.
+
+"Where--where did you see it before?" Marjorie went on desperately.
+
+"In an old volume of 'St. Nicholas' at home. My mother used to take the
+magazine when she was a little girl, and has all the volumes bound. I
+used to be very fond of some of the old stories, and so was my sister
+Barbara. I remember she learned that poem once to recite to Mother on
+her birthday."
+
+Marjorie's heart sank like lead. Well did she remember the old worn
+volumes of St. Nicholas--relics of her own mother's childhood--over
+which she had pored on many a rainy day at home. She cast an appealing
+glance at Beverly.
+
+"You won't tell?" she said unsteadily.
+
+"Of course I won't; I'm not a cad. And look here, Marjorie; I wouldn't
+bother my head about it if I were you. Miss Elsie is quite able to fight
+her own battles."
+
+"But she is my cousin," said Marjorie in a very low voice, "and I'm so
+ashamed."
+
+Beverly's face softened, and his voice was very kind when he answered:
+
+"You're a brick, Marjorie; lots of girls wouldn't care. But don't let it
+make you unhappy. If I were you I'd have it out with Elsie; perhaps
+she'll have some excuse to offer."
+
+Before Marjorie could answer Lulu came up to ask Beverly to come and be
+introduced to Betty Randall, who was particularly anxious to meet him,
+and he was obliged to hurry away.
+
+"What were you and that English girl talking about so long?" Elsie
+inquired, as she and Marjorie were driving home together half an hour
+later.
+
+Marjorie roused herself from uncomfortable reflections with a start.
+
+"Oh, nothing in particular," she said, "at least nothing you would be
+interested in. She was telling me about her brother, who used to be a
+cripple till Beverly Randolph's uncle cured him. He is a fine,
+strong-looking boy now--did you notice him?"
+
+"Yes. Did you know their uncle was a lord?"
+
+"Is he?" said Marjorie indifferently, and once more relapsed into
+silence. Elsie regarded her cousin in evident surprise.
+
+"What's the matter, Marjorie?" she inquired curiously. "You seem to be
+in the dumps, and I'm sure I can't see why. You really danced much
+better than I supposed you could. You're not jealous, are you?"
+
+"Jealous," repeated Marjorie, stupidly, "what about?"
+
+"Why, your poem, of course, because you didn't get more votes. It really
+wasn't bad; I heard several of the girls say so."
+
+"Of course I wasn't jealous," said Marjorie, indignantly. "I never
+dreamed of getting many votes. I think people were very kind to vote for
+me at all; it was just silly doggerel."
+
+"Well, you needn't fly into a temper even if you're not jealous,"
+laughed Elsie. "Do you know you never congratulated me on my poem. I
+think people thought it rather queer, when every one was saying how much
+they liked it."
+
+"I couldn't," said Marjorie in a low voice.
+
+"Why not?" demanded Elsie, sharply. She was evidently startled but
+beyond a slightly heightened color, she showed no sign of embarrassment.
+
+"I'll tell you when we get home," whispered Marjorie, with a glance at
+Hortense, who was sitting in the opposite seat.
+
+Not another word was spoken until the carriage drew up before the big
+hotel. Mr. and Mrs. Carleton were out, and the girls went at once to
+their rooms, without exchanging the usual good-nights. Marjorie's heart
+was beating painfully fast, and her cheeks were burning, but she did not
+waver in her determination to "have it out" with Elsie before they went
+to bed. So instead of beginning to undress, she sat down to wait until
+Hortense should have finished waiting on her cousin and gone away. She
+had, with some difficulty, at last succeeded in convincing the maid that
+she did not require assistance herself.
+
+"Elsie will be terribly angry," she told herself mournfully, "and it
+will be very horrid and uncomfortable, but it wouldn't be honest not to
+let her know I recognized that poem. Perhaps she can explain--oh, I do
+hope she can--and then I can tell Beverly, and everything will be all
+right again."
+
+She heard the outer door close behind Hortense, and was just about to go
+to her cousin's room, when her door was pushed unceremoniously open and
+Elsie herself came in. Elsie's cheeks were flushed, and her eyes were
+flashing, but whether with anger or excitement Marjorie could not tell.
+
+"Well," she began in a tone which she evidently intended to be quite
+cheerful and indifferent, "I've gotten rid of Hortense. She seemed to
+think she ought to stay till Papa and Mamma came home, but I told her we
+didn't need her. Now you can tell me what you said you would when we
+got home. Do be quick about it, though, for I'm awfully sleepy, and I
+want to go to bed."
+
+Before answering Marjorie went over to her cousin's side, and laid a
+timid hand on her shoulder.
+
+"Elsie," she said gently, "I'm so sorry; I hate to say it, but I've got
+to. It's--about that poem; I've read it before. You didn't think you
+really made it up, did you?"
+
+With an angry gesture Elsie pushed away her cousin's hand.
+
+"Of course I made it up," she said angrily; "how dare you say I didn't?
+I don't believe you ever saw a poem like it before in your life; you
+only say so because you're jealous."
+
+"Oh, Elsie, how can you say such dreadful things?" cried poor Marjorie,
+clasping her hands in her distress, and on the verge of tears. "How
+could I possibly be jealous of any one so much cleverer than myself?
+I've been so proud of you, Elsie--indeed, indeed I have--but I read that
+poem in an old 'St. Nicholas' at home. I remembered it because it was so
+pretty. Beverly Randolph remembers it, too; he--"
+
+"Beverly Randolph!" cried Elsie, her eyes flashing ominously; "so you
+told him about it, did you? That accounts for his not congratulating me
+when all the others did. Marjorie Graham, you are the meanest, most
+contemptible girl I have ever known. To think of your doing such a thing
+after all Papa and Mamma have done for you! But if you suppose for one
+moment that any one is going to take your word against mine, you'll find
+yourself very much mistaken. I shall write a note to Beverly Randolph
+to-morrow. A nice opinion he must have of you already--boys hate
+sneaks."
+
+"I'm not a sneak," retorted Marjorie, her own eyes beginning to flash.
+"I wouldn't have told Beverly Randolph or any one else such a thing for
+the world; I would have been ashamed to have them know. He recognized
+the poem, too. I saw he did the minute you began to read--and afterwards
+he spoke of it. But he won't tell; he promised not to, and--oh, Elsie I
+thought you might be able to explain it in some way."
+
+"There isn't anything to explain," said Elsie, obstinately. "If you and
+that horrid Randolph boy choose to say wicked things about me you can,
+but you are not everybody, and when my friends hear about it I think
+they'll have something to say." And without another word, Elsie walked
+out of the room, slamming the door behind her, and her cousin was left
+to cry herself to sleep undisturbed.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+THE THINGS THAT HURT
+
+
+MARJORIE awoke the next morning with a very heavy heart. Although
+Elsie's companionship had not proved quite all she had anticipated,
+still they had hitherto been perfectly good friends. Marjorie had looked
+upon her clever cousin with genuine admiration, and if in some things
+Elsie had disappointed her, she had explained the fact to herself by
+remembering how different life in New York was from life in Arizona.
+
+"Elsie has so many friends," she had told herself over and over again;
+"of course I can't expect her to be as fond of me as I am of her."
+
+But last night's discovery had been a cruel disappointment, and her
+cousin's parting words had hurt more than perhaps Elsie herself fully
+realized. She had lain awake a long time, hoping--almost expecting--that
+Elsie would come back to tell her she was sorry. She was so ready to
+forgive, herself, and even to make allowances, but no sound had come
+from the adjoining room, and she had fallen asleep at last, still
+hoping that morning might bring about the longed-for reconciliation.
+
+It was still very early, but accustomed all her life to the early hours
+of the ranch, she had not yet learned to sleep as late as the other
+members of the family. She tossed about in bed for half an hour, vainly
+trying to go to sleep again, and then suddenly determined to get up.
+
+"If I could only have a canter on Roland, or a good long tramp before
+breakfast," she thought, with a regretful sigh, "I know it would clear
+the cobwebs from my brain, and I should feel ever so much better. But
+since that is out of the question, I may as well answer Undine's letter.
+She will like a letter all to herself, and I shall have plenty of time
+to write before the others are up."
+
+Accordingly, as soon as she was dressed, she sat down at her desk, and
+began a letter, which she was determined to make as bright and cheerful
+as possible.
+
+
+ "NEW YORK, November 28th.
+
+ "DEAR UNDINE:
+
+ "I was delighted to get your nice letter last
+ week, but this is the very first spare moment I
+ have had in which to answer it. It is still very
+ early--only a little after six--and nobody else is
+ up, but I can't get accustomed to the queer New
+ York hours. Just think, nobody has breakfast much
+ before half past eight, and instead of dinner at
+ twelve or one, we don't dine till half past seven.
+ I thought I should be dreadfully hungry when I
+ first heard at what hour New York people dined,
+ but really luncheon--which they have in the middle
+ of the day--is almost the same as dinner. I have
+ eaten so much since I came here that I am sure I
+ must have gained pounds already.
+
+ "I wrote Father all about the football game, and
+ what a wonderful day I had. Since then we have had
+ Thanksgiving, and that was very pleasant too,
+ though of course not as exciting as the football
+ match and the motor ride. We all dined with Aunt
+ Julia's sister, Mrs. Lamont. Mrs. Lamont's son,
+ who is an artist, and very clever, drew funny
+ sketches on all the dinner cards, and his sister
+ made up the verses. I think my card was lovely; it
+ had a picture of a girl riding a horse, and the
+ verse underneath was:
+
+ "'Welcome, Western stranger
+ To our Thanksgiving board,
+ May you have a jolly time,
+ And not be very bored.'
+
+ "Miss Annie says she isn't a poet, and I don't
+ suppose any of the verses were really very good,
+ but they made everybody laugh. It was funny to
+ have 'board' and 'bored' in the same verse, but
+ Miss Lamont said she got hopelessly stuck when she
+ had written the first two lines, and had to end up
+ with 'bored,' because it was the only word she
+ could think of to rhyme with 'the Thanksgiving
+ board.' I sat next to Mr. Ward--Aunt Julia's other
+ sister's husband--and he was very kind, and told
+ funny stories all the time. After dinner we had
+ charades, and played old-fashioned games, which
+ were great fun.
+
+ "Lulu Bell, one of the girls at school, has gotten
+ up a Club, which is to meet every Friday evening
+ at the different girls' houses. We had the first
+ meeting last night, and every girl had to write a
+ poem in order to become a member. Some of the
+ poems were very clever, and some very funny. One
+ girl made 'close' rhyme with 'nose.' My poem was
+ silly, but I am going to send it to Aunt Jessie,
+ because she likes to keep all my foolish little
+ things.
+
+ "I am so glad you are happy, and are growing so
+ fond of Mother and Aunt Jessie. The more people I
+ meet, the more convinced I am that they are the
+ two of the very best in the world. I am glad,
+ too, that you are trying not to worry about the
+ things you can't remember. I have told the girls
+ at school about you, and they all think you are
+ the most wonderful person they have ever heard of.
+ The lady who took me to the football game had a
+ little girl who was killed in the San Francisco
+ earthquake. Her brother told me about it, and it
+ is a very sad story. He asked me not to mention
+ you to his mother, because it always distresses
+ her to hear anything about the earthquake. She is
+ perfectly lovely, and so bright and jolly that it
+ seems hard to realize she has had such a great
+ sorrow, but her son says that is because she is so
+ unselfish, and is always thinking of other people.
+ Isn't it wonderful how many brave, unselfish
+ people there are in the world?
+
+ "I have met a surgeon. He is the gentleman in
+ whose car we went to New Haven last Saturday, and
+ he is just as nice and kind as he can be. He is
+ very clever too, and has performed some wonderful
+ operations, but oh, Undine dear, I am afraid I
+ shall never have the courage to speak to him about
+ Aunt Jessie. Arizona is so far away, and it would
+ be so terribly presumptuous to even suggest the
+ possibility of a great surgeon's taking such a
+ journey to see a person he didn't even know.
+ Still, if it could only happen--I pray about it
+ every day.
+
+ "I must stop writing now, and study a little
+ before breakfast. Be sure to write again very
+ soon, and don't forget to give me every scrap of
+ news about every one and everything. Kiss Roland's
+ dear soft nose for me, and tell him not to forget
+ his old mistress. Heaps of love and kisses for
+ everybody, with a good share for yourself thrown
+ in, from
+
+ "Your true friend,
+ "MARJORIE GRAHAM."
+
+When Elsie entered the sitting-room, she found her uncle and cousin
+already at the breakfast table. Mrs. Carleton had a headache, and was
+breakfasting in bed. Mr. Carleton's morning greeting was as pleasant and
+affectionate as usual, but Elsie merely vouchsafed a slight nod, and a
+muttered "good-morning," and then kept her eyes steadily on her plate,
+as though to avoid any friendly overtures on Marjorie's part.
+
+"What are you little girls going to do to-day?" Mr. Carleton inquired
+pleasantly, as he rose from the table.
+
+"I'm going to dancing-school this morning," said Elsie, "and then to
+lunch with Carol."
+
+Mr. Carlton glanced inquiringly at Marjorie.
+
+"And you?" he asked kindly--"are you going to dancing-school, too?"
+
+Marjorie hesitated, and her color rose. It had been suggested that she
+should accompany Elsie to the dancing class that morning, and that Aunt
+Julia should make arrangements about having her admitted as a regular
+pupil, but after what had happened last night she did not feel at all
+sure that Elsie would desire her society.
+
+"I'm--I'm not quite sure," she faltered; "I think Aunt Julia may want me
+to go out with her."
+
+Mr. Carleton looked a little troubled, and when he left the room he
+beckoned his daughter to follow him.
+
+"Elsie dear," he said in a rather low voice, as he put on his overcoat
+in the entry, "I wish you would try to do something to give Marjorie a
+good time to-day. She is looking rather down-hearted this morning, and
+I'm afraid she may be a little homesick. Can't you arrange to take her
+out to luncheon with you?"
+
+Elsie shrugged her shoulders.
+
+"She hasn't been invited," she said, shortly. She did not think it
+necessary to add that Carol Hastings had proposed that Marjorie should
+make one of the party, but that she herself had opposed the plan,
+declaring that they would have a much pleasanter time by themselves.
+
+Mr. Carleton frowned.
+
+"I should think you knew Carol Hastings well enough to ask her if you
+might bring Marjorie with you," he said impatiently. "Remember, Elsie,
+what I have told you several times before; I won't have Marjorie
+neglected."
+
+Now it was rather unfortunate that Mr. Carleton should have chosen just
+this particular time for reminding his daughter of her duty. As a rule,
+his words would have produced the desired effect, for Elsie stood
+considerably in awe of her father, but just at present she was very
+angry with Marjorie, and this admonition only made her angrier still.
+
+"Marjorie is all right," she said, sulkily; "she manages to have a good
+time wherever she goes. If you knew as much about her as I do you
+wouldn't worry for fear she might be neglected."
+
+Mr. Carleton did not look satisfied, but he had an appointment to keep,
+and there was no time for argument, so, after giving his daughter a
+good-bye kiss, and telling her to be an unselfish little girl, he
+hurried away, and had soon forgotten the incident in the interest of
+more important matters.
+
+Elsie did not go back to the parlor, but went at once to her mother's
+room, where she remained for some time with the door closed. Marjorie,
+having finished her breakfast, wandered aimlessly over to the window,
+where she stood looking down at the crowds of people and vehicles in the
+street below. It was a lovely morning and, early as it was, the park
+seemed full of children. Some had already mounted their ponies, and
+others were on roller skates or bicycles. How Marjorie longed to join
+them, but going out alone was strictly forbidden. She was feeling very
+unhappy, and more homesick than at any time since coming to New York.
+
+"I must get something to do or I shall make a goose of myself and begin
+to cry," she said desperately, and picking up the first book she found
+on the table, she plunged into it haphazard, and when Elsie returned she
+found her cousin to all appearances quite absorbed in "The Letters of
+Queen Victoria."
+
+Elsie did not speak, but seating herself at the piano, began practicing
+exercises as if her life depended on it. Marjorie closed her book, and
+sat watching her cousin in silence for several minutes; then she spoke.
+
+"Elsie."
+
+"Well, what is it?" inquired Elsie, wheeling round on the piano stool.
+
+"Aren't you going to be friends with me?"
+
+"I certainly am not unless you intend to apologize for the outrageous
+things you said to me last night. I've been telling Mamma about it, and
+she is very angry."
+
+Marjorie rose.
+
+"I can't apologize, Elsie; you know I can't," she said, steadily, and
+without another word she turned and left the room.
+
+When Mrs. Carleton entered her niece's room an hour later, she found
+Marjorie curled up in a little disconsolate heap on the bed, her face
+buried in the pillows. Aunt Julia was still in her morning wrapper, and
+was looking decidedly worried.
+
+"Marjorie," she began in a rather fretful tone, as she closed the door,
+and sank wearily into the arm-chair, "I am very much distressed by what
+Elsie tells me. I have come to ask you what it all means."
+
+Marjorie raised a swollen, tear-stained face from the pillows.
+
+"What has Elsie told you?" she inquired anxiously.
+
+Mrs. Carleton pressed her hand to her forehead.
+
+"O dear!" she sighed, "my head aches so this morning, and I do dislike
+all these quarrels and arguments. I did hope you and Elsie would get on
+together without quarreling."
+
+"I don't want to quarrel," protested Marjorie; "what does Elsie say
+about me?"
+
+"She says you have been very unkind and unjust to her. She won't tell me
+what it is all about. I tried to make her tell, but Elsie is so
+honorable; she hates tale-bearing. But I know you have hurt her pride,
+and made her very unhappy."
+
+Marjorie was silent; what could she say? And after a moment her aunt
+went on in her fretful, complaining voice.
+
+"I don't believe you have the least idea what a noble, splendid girl
+Elsie is. It was rather hard for her at first when she heard you were
+coming to spend the winter, for of course it couldn't help making some
+difference. She has never had to share anything with any one else
+before. But she was so sweet and unselfish about it, and I did hope
+things might go on as they had begun. But now you have begun to
+quarrel, and I suppose there will be nothing but trouble and
+unpleasantness all winter."
+
+"She was so sweet and unselfish about it!" How those words hurt
+Marjorie, and all the time she had been thinking that Elsie had looked
+forward to meeting her almost, if not quite as much, as she had looked
+forward to knowing the cousin who was "the next best thing to a sister."
+It was only by a mighty effort that she managed to choke back the flood
+of scalding tears, which threatened to overwhelm her.
+
+"I'm very sorry, Aunt Julia," she said tremulously; "I didn't mean to
+quarrel with Elsie. If she had told you what it was about perhaps you
+would have understood."
+
+"Well, she wouldn't tell," said Mrs. Carleton, crossly, "so there is no
+use in talking about that. All I want to say to you is that I am very
+much annoyed, and sincerely hope nothing so unpleasant will happen
+again. Elsie has gone to dancing-school, and Hortense has gone with her,
+as my head was so bad. Now I am going back to my room to lie down for a
+while; perhaps I may be better by luncheon time."
+
+That was the most unhappy day Marjorie had ever spent in her life. It
+seemed to her as if the morning would never end, and when her aunt
+appeared at luncheon she still wore an air of injured dignity, and
+entertained Marjorie during the meal, with a long account of Elsie's
+many accomplishments, a subject of which her niece was becoming heartily
+tired, although she would scarcely have admitted the fact even to
+herself. Soon after luncheon Mr. Carleton telephoned to say that he
+would come uptown in time to drive with his wife, and Aunt Julia
+proposed that Marjorie should go for a walk with Hortense. The girl's
+own head was aching by this time, and she was glad of a brisk walk in
+the keen, frosty air, but she was so unusually silent and preoccupied,
+that the maid asked her anxiously if she "had the homesickness."
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie, with a catch in her voice, "I've got it badly
+to-day."
+
+"Ah, I understand," murmured Hortense, softly, "Mademoiselle is like
+me--I, too, often have the homesickness."
+
+Elsie did not reach home till after five, as Carol's mother had taken
+the two girls to the theater, and even then she took no notice of
+Marjorie, but went at once to her mother's room, where Marjorie heard
+her giving a long and animated account of the play she had seen.
+
+"By the way," remarked Mr. Carleton at dinner that evening, "I forgot to
+ask about the Club--how did the poems turn out?"
+
+There was a moment's embarrassed silence, and Marjorie's heart began to
+beat very fast; then Elsie spoke.
+
+"They were all very silly," she said, indifferently. "I told Lulu it was
+nonsense having all the girls write poems."
+
+"Whose poem was the best?" Mr. Carleton asked.
+
+"They made me president of the Club," said Elsie, her eyes bent on her
+plate; "my poem got the most votes."
+
+"I was sure it would," murmured Mrs. Carleton, with an adoring glance at
+her clever daughter. "Why didn't you tell us about it before,
+darling--you knew how interested we would be?"
+
+"Let me see the poem," said Mr. Carleton, good-naturedly; "I should like
+to judge its merits for myself."
+
+"I can't; I've torn it up." Elsie tried to speak in a tone of complete
+indifference, but her cheeks were crimson, and her father watched her
+curiously.
+
+"My darling child, how very foolish!" remonstrated Mrs. Carleton. "You
+know your father and I always want to see everything you write. Why in
+the world did you tear it up?"
+
+"Oh, it wasn't any good," said Elsie, with an uneasy glance at Marjorie;
+"some of the girls thought Lulu's poem was better."
+
+"I don't believe it was, though," Mrs. Carleton maintained with
+conviction. "Wasn't Elsie's poem much the best, Marjorie?"
+
+It was a dreadful moment for poor Marjorie. She had never told a lie in
+her life, and yet how could she offend her uncle and aunt, who were
+doing so much for her, and who both adored Elsie? She cast an appealing
+glance at her cousin, and remained silent.
+
+"Oh, you needn't ask Marjorie," remarked Elsie, with a disagreeable
+laugh; "she doesn't like my poem. She only got five votes herself, so I
+suppose it's rather hard for her to judge of other people's poetry."
+
+Mr. Carleton frowned, and Mrs. Carleton looked distressed, but no more
+was said on the subject, for which Marjorie felt sincerely thankful.
+
+The next day was Sunday, and the most unhappy, homesick day Marjorie had
+spent in New York. Her uncle was the only member of the family who
+continued to treat her as usual. Elsie scarcely spoke to her, and Aunt
+Julia, though evidently making an effort to be kind, showed so plainly
+by her manner that she was both hurt and displeased, that poor
+Marjorie's heart grew heavier and heavier. They all went to church in
+the morning, and in the afternoon Elsie went for a drive with her
+mother, and Mr. Carleton retired to his own room to read and write
+letters. Marjorie began her usual home letter, but had not written half
+a page when she broke down, and spent the next half hour in having a
+good cry, which was perhaps the most satisfactory thing she could have
+done under the circumstances.
+
+She had just dried her eyes, and having made a brave resolution not to
+be so foolish again, was sitting down with the intention of going on
+with her letter, when she heard her uncle's voice calling her from the
+sitting-room.
+
+"Come here, Marjorie," said Mr. Carleton, kindly, as his niece appeared
+in answer to his summons. "Sit down and let us have a little talk before
+the others come home."
+
+Marjorie complied. She hoped devoutly that her uncle would not notice
+that she had been crying, but perhaps Uncle Henry's eyes were sharper
+than his family always suspected.
+
+"Marjorie," he said abruptly, "I want you to tell me what this trouble
+is between you and Elsie."
+
+Marjorie gave a little gasp, and her cheeks grew pink.
+
+"I--I'm afraid I can't tell you, Uncle Henry," she faltered; "you had
+better ask Elsie."
+
+"I have asked her, and so has your aunt, but she refused to tell us
+anything except that you have quarreled about something, and that you
+have treated her rather unkindly."
+
+Marjorie's eyes flashed indignantly, and she bit her lips to keep back
+the angry words.
+
+"Now I happen to know a good deal about these little quarrels of
+Elsie's," Mr. Carleton went on quietly. "She is a good girl, and a
+clever one, too, but she has her faults and I have no reason to suppose
+that you are any more to blame than she in this case. All I want is a
+clear account of what happened, and then I can settle this tempest in a
+teapot, which I can see has been making you both unhappy for the past
+two days."
+
+By this time Marjorie had succeeded in controlling her temper, and her
+voice was quite clear and steady as she answered--
+
+"I am very sorry, Uncle Henry, but if Elsie hasn't told you what the
+trouble is, I am afraid I can't tell either. Please don't be angry, or
+think me disrespectful, but I can't tell; it wouldn't be fair."
+
+Mr. Carleton was evidently displeased.
+
+"Very well," he said, turning away coldly, and taking up a book, "I have
+no more to say on the matter. I am sorry, for I hoped you would have
+sufficient confidence in your aunt and me to trust us, and confide in
+us. I do not wish to force you to tell us anything against your will,
+but you must remember that your mother has placed you under our care."
+
+The tears rushed to Marjorie's eyes.
+
+"Oh, Uncle Henry!" she began, then checked herself abruptly, and, with a
+half suppressed sob, turned and fled back to her own room.
+
+It was more than an hour later when Elsie presented herself at her
+cousin's door.
+
+"May I come in, Marjorie?" she inquired in a rather conciliatory tone.
+
+Marjorie looked up from the letter she was writing; her face brightening
+with sudden hope.
+
+"Of course you may," she said, heartily.
+
+"Oh, Elsie, do let us make up; I can't stand not being friends with
+people I love."
+
+Elsie advanced slowly into the room and closed the door.
+
+"Papa has been talking to me," she said, "and I have promised him to
+forgive you for what you said to me the other night. You--you didn't
+tell him anything, did you?"
+
+"No," said Marjorie indignantly, "of course I didn't. He asked me, but I
+wouldn't tell. I'm afraid I made him angry."
+
+Elsie looked much relieved.
+
+"That's all right," she said, speaking more pleasantly than she had done
+since the meeting of the Poetry Club. "We won't say any more about it.
+I've torn up that silly poem, and nobody is going to remember it. If
+Beverly Randolph should ever say anything to you, you can tell him it
+was just a joke. Now come into my room, and I'll tell you all about the
+good time Carol and I had yesterday."
+
+But although Marjorie accepted the olive branch, and she and Elsie were
+apparently as good friends as ever that evening, her confidence in her
+cousin had been cruelly shaken, and she told herself sadly that she
+could never feel quite the same towards Elsie again. Still, it was a
+great comfort to be on good terms once more, and to see the worried
+expression disappear from Aunt Julia's face, even though she could not
+help feeling a slight shock on hearing her aunt remark in a low tone to
+her uncle at the dinner table:
+
+"Isn't Elsie sweet? I really think she has the most lovable, forgiving
+disposition I have ever known."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII
+
+BEVERLY SINGS "MANDALAY"
+
+
+IT was a stormy December afternoon, about ten days later, and Marjorie
+was alone in her room preparing her lessons for the next day. Elsie had
+gone shopping with her mother, and Hortense had been sent on an errand.
+Marjorie was aroused from the intricacies of a difficult mathematical
+problem by a ring at the bell, and on going to the door, found Beverly
+Randolph standing on the threshold.
+
+It was the first time the two had been alone together since the evening
+of the Initiation, and in spite of herself, Marjorie felt her cheeks
+growing hot as she asked the visitor to come in. But Beverly had no
+intention of referring to unpleasant bygones.
+
+"I'm so glad to find you at home," he said, with his pleasant smile and
+in the voice that always put people at their ease. "My mother sent me to
+ask if you would come and sit with her for a while this afternoon,
+provided you have nothing more important to do. She is laid up with a
+cold, and is feeling rather blue and forlorn."
+
+"I should love to come," said Marjorie, her face brightening at the
+prospect. "I was afraid your mother might not be well when I didn't see
+her at luncheon. I hope she isn't really ill."
+
+"Oh, no; nothing but a disagreeable cold, that has kept her in the house
+for the past two days. I'm glad you can come, for I'm sure it will cheer
+her up."
+
+"All right," said Marjorie; "I'll come in just a minute. I must leave a
+note for Aunt Julia in case she should get home before I do."
+
+Marjorie found Mrs. Randolph sitting in an arm-chair by the fire,
+looking rather pale and tired, but her greeting to the girl was just as
+kind and cheerful as usual, and Marjorie hoped that it was only in her
+imagination that she saw that sad, wistful expression in her kind
+friend's eyes.
+
+"Now sit down and tell me about all you have been doing," said Mrs.
+Randolph, when the first greetings had been exchanged. "I love to hear
+about the things girls are interested in. My little Barbara used to tell
+me of all her good times as well as her troubles. I am so glad you have
+brought your work--what are you making?"
+
+"A shawl for my aunt's Christmas present; one of the girls at school
+taught me the stitch, and I think it's going to be very pretty. I shall
+have to work hard, though, to finish it in time. Do you like the color?"
+
+"Very much," said Mrs. Randolph. "I suppose this will be your first
+Christmas away from home?"
+
+A shadow crossed Marjorie's bright face. "I try not to think of it," she
+said. "It's going to be pretty hard, but every one has been so kind, and
+Uncle Henry and Aunt Julia are doing so much for me, that it wouldn't be
+right to be unhappy. I think perhaps if I keep very busy I shall manage
+to get on all right. Aunt Jessie says that's a good way of making the
+best of things that can't be helped."
+
+Mrs. Randolph said nothing, but the look she gave Marjorie was such an
+understanding one that the girl's heart warmed towards her more and
+more. The next half-hour slipped away very pleasantly. Mrs. Randolph was
+one of those rare people who have the power of drawing others out, and
+Marjorie chatted away to her of school and school-friends, and all the
+little unimportant happenings of her New York life, with almost as much
+freedom as she would have talked to her mother or aunt. Then Mrs.
+Randolph asked her if she liked reading aloud, and when Marjorie
+assured her that she had read a great deal to Aunt Jessie, she explained
+that, owing to a cold in her eyes, she had not been able to read herself
+for several days. Marjorie was delighted to be of real use, and they
+were soon deep in an interesting story. Marjorie read aloud very well,
+and it was an accomplishment of which she was rather proud.
+
+At five o'clock Beverly, who had gone to his room to "cram," as he
+expressed it, returned, and his mother rang the bell for tea.
+
+"Marjorie and I have had a delightful afternoon," she said; "she seems
+to be almost as fond of reading aloud as I am of listening. I am going
+to be very selfish and ask her to come again to-morrow, provided she can
+spare the time. The doctor doesn't want me to use my eyes much for
+several days."
+
+"I shall just love to come," declared Marjorie eagerly, "and I can
+easily manage it. My lessons aren't very hard, and I always have a good
+deal of time to myself every day."
+
+"Don't you and your cousin ever go off together in the afternoons?"
+Beverly inquired bluntly.
+
+Marjorie blushed.
+
+"Not very often," she admitted reluctantly. "You see, Elsie has so many
+more friends than I have, and they are always doing things together. I
+like the girls at school ever so much, and they are all very nice and
+kind to me, but of course they don't know me very well yet."
+
+"How did the last meeting of the Club come off?" Beverly asked. "I was
+sorry I couldn't go, but I had another engagement."
+
+Marjorie was conscious of a sensation of embarrassment at this mention
+of the Club, for she had not forgotten the secret that she and Beverly
+shared together, but she tried to answer quite naturally.
+
+"Oh, it was very pleasant. The girls have decided to sew for the little
+blind children at the 'Home For Blind Babies.' We sewed for three
+quarters of an hour, and then Carol said we might as well stop, and
+begin to get ready for the boys. They weren't invited till nine, but
+some of the girls seemed to think it would take some time to get ready
+for them, though there really wasn't anything in particular to do. I
+hope they'll sew a little longer next time, for if they don't I'm afraid
+the Club won't accomplish very much."
+
+Mrs. Randolph and Beverly both laughed, and then Beverly sauntered over
+to the piano, and began to drum.
+
+"Sing something, dear," said his mother. "Are you fond of music,
+Marjorie?"
+
+"I think I should be if I had a chance of hearing much," said Marjorie,
+smiling, "but until I came to New York I had scarcely ever heard any
+music except the boys singing on the ranch. Mother used to play a little
+when she was a girl, but we haven't any piano. I love to hear Elsie
+play."
+
+"Well, I think you will like to hear Beverly sing; you know he is on the
+college Glee Club. Sing that pretty Irish ballad, 'She Is Far From the
+Land,' Beverly; I am sure Marjorie will like that."
+
+Beverly laughingly protested that he had no voice whatever, and was sure
+Marjorie would want to run away the moment he began to sing, but
+good-naturedly yielded to his mother's request, and after striking a few
+preliminary chords, began in a clear tenor voice--
+
+ "'She is far from the land where the young hero lies.'"
+
+Marjorie--who had a real love for music--was much impressed, and at the
+close of the ballad, begged so earnestly for more, that Beverly could
+not help being flattered, and his mother beamed with pleasure.
+
+Beverly sang several more ballads, and one or two college songs, and
+then, after strumming idly on the piano for a moment, as if uncertain
+what to sing next, he suddenly broke into an air Marjorie knew.
+
+ "'In the old Mulniam pagoda,
+ Lookin' eastward to the sea;
+ There's a Burma gal a-waitin',
+ And I know she thinks of me;
+ For the wind is in the palm-trees,
+ And the Temple bells they say,
+ Come you back, you British soldier,
+ Come you back to Mandalay.
+
+ "'Come you back to Mandalay,
+ Where the old flotilla lay,
+ Can't you 'ear their paddles chunkin'
+ From Rangoon to Mandalay?
+ On the road to Mandalay,
+ Where the flyin' fishes play,
+ And the sun comes up like thunder,
+ Outer China 'cross the bay.'"
+
+Marjorie turned with a start, arrested by the sound of a low,
+half-suppressed sob. Mrs. Randolph had covered her face with her hands,
+and was crying softly. At the same moment Beverly also turned, and, with
+an exclamation of dismay, hastily sprang to his feet, and hurried to
+his mother's side.
+
+"Oh, Mother dear, I'm so sorry!" cried the boy, dropping on his knees,
+and trying to draw Mrs. Randolph's hands down from her face. "I never
+thought; it was very careless. Oh, Mother darling, please don't
+cry--please forgive me!"
+
+At the sound of her son's voice, Mrs. Randolph looked up, and tried to
+smile through her tears.
+
+"Never mind, dear," she said, gently, "it was very foolish of me, but
+that song--you know how fond she was of it."
+
+"Yes, Mother, I know; I was a brute to have forgotten." And Beverly put
+his strong young arms tenderly round his mother. Mrs. Randolph laid her
+head on his shoulder for a moment, as if she found comfort in the touch,
+and then she roused herself with an effort, dried her eyes, and turned
+to Marjorie.
+
+"You must excuse me for being so foolish, dear," she said, "but that was
+my little Barbara's favorite song; she was always asking Beverly to sing
+it. I don't think I have heard it since--since she went away."
+
+There were tears of sympathy in Marjorie's eyes, and although she said
+nothing, the look she gave her friend touched Mrs. Randolph, and
+perhaps comforted her more than any words would have done.
+
+[Illustration: "OH, MOTHER DEAR, I'M SO SORRY!"--_Page 243._]
+
+Beverly did not sing again, but quietly closed the piano, and for the
+rest of the afternoon his merry boyish face was unusually grave.
+
+"You have given me a great deal of pleasure," Mrs. Randolph said, when
+Marjorie at last rose to go. "I hope you will come again to-morrow. It
+is very tiresome to have to stay in the house all day, especially when
+one hasn't the solace of reading."
+
+Marjorie said she would surely come again, and then she hurried back to
+their own apartment, where she found her aunt and cousin, who had come
+in some time before.
+
+Mrs. Carleton had read Marjorie's note, and had no objection to the
+girl's spending as much time with the invalid as she liked.
+
+"Was Beverly at home?" Elsie inquired, anxiously, following her cousin
+to her room.
+
+"He was there some of the time," said Marjorie; "he had lessons to do at
+first, but he came in for tea. Mrs. Randolph asked him to sing--he has a
+beautiful voice."
+
+"You certainly have a way of getting what you want," remarked Elsie
+in a rather dissatisfied tone; "I wonder how you manage."
+
+"Manage what?" demanded Marjorie in amazement; "what in the world do you
+mean, Elsie?"
+
+Elsie shrugged her shoulders.
+
+"Oh, I guess you know," she said, sarcastically, and walked out of the
+room, leaving Marjorie very much puzzled, and more than a little
+uncomfortable.
+
+Mrs. Randolph did not recover from her cold as quickly as she had hoped,
+and she was confined to the house for nearly a week. Her eyes, too,
+continued troublesome, and reading and sewing were strictly forbidden.
+So it came to be quite a natural thing that Marjorie should spend an
+hour every afternoon in the Randolphs' apartment, and the girl grew to
+look forward to those hours as the pleasantest of the whole day.
+
+"You remind me more of my little Barbara every day," Mrs. Randolph said
+to her once, and Marjorie felt that she had received a great compliment.
+She was growing to feel a deep interest in this Barbara, whose tragic
+death had cast such a shadow of sorrow over her mother's life, but she
+had too much tact, and was too kind-hearted, to show undue curiosity on
+a painful subject, and so, though there were many questions she would
+have liked to ask about this unknown Barbara, she refrained from asking
+one, and was fain to content herself with the stray bits of information
+that Mrs. Randolph or Beverly occasionally let fall.
+
+When Mrs. Randolph was well again Marjorie greatly missed the daily
+chat, and pleasant hour of reading aloud. The drives with Aunt Julia,
+shut up in the brougham, with only one window open, proved a most
+unsatisfactory substitute, but her aunt was very kind, and showed so
+much real interest in the Christmas box she was preparing for her dear
+ones at home that Marjorie reproached herself bitterly for not finding
+Aunt Julia's society as agreeable as Mrs. Randolph's. But Christmas was
+drawing near, and there were times when Marjorie fought desperately
+against the homesickness, which seemed almost greater than she could
+bear.
+
+To add to everything else, she caught a feverish cold, and Mrs.
+Carleton, who was always nervous about illness, insisted on her
+remaining in the house; a state of affairs hitherto unknown to healthy
+Marjorie, who had never in her life spent a day in bed.
+
+It was on the second afternoon of headache and sore throat that Mrs.
+Randolph came to the rescue. Marjorie had come to the end of her
+resources. She had read till her eyes ached, and sewed on Christmas
+presents until she felt that she couldn't take another stitch. The
+longing for fresh air and exercise was almost beyond her endurance, and
+yet she dared not even open a window, for fear of incurring her aunt's
+displeasure. Mrs. Carleton and Elsie were out, but Hortense had been
+left in charge, with strict injunctions to see that Mademoiselle
+Marjorie kept out of draughts, and took her medicine regularly. Marjorie
+was just wondering in her desperation whether a walk up and down the
+steam-heated hotel corridor would be regarded in the light of an
+imprudence, when there was a ring at the bell, and Hortense announced
+Mrs. Randolph.
+
+"I have only just heard you were ill," the visitor said kindly, taking
+Marjorie's hand in hers, and looking with sympathetic interest into the
+pale, woe-begone face. "Your aunt told Beverly at luncheon that you had
+a bad cold. You should have let me know sooner; I can't have my kind
+little friend laid up without trying to return some of her goodness to
+me."
+
+"It wasn't goodness at all," said Marjorie, flushing with pleasure; "it
+was just having a lovely time. I was thinking only yesterday, what a
+very selfish girl I must be, for I couldn't help being sorry you didn't
+need me any more, it's so pleasant to be needed."
+
+Marjorie's voice trembled a little, for she was feeling rather weak and
+forlorn, and Mrs. Randolph drew her down beside her on the sofa.
+
+"I think I always need you, dear," she said. "I have missed your visits
+very much, and reading to myself doesn't seem half as pleasant as having
+a nice little girl read aloud to me. Still, I am glad to have the use of
+my eyes again, especially as we are going away next week."
+
+"Going away!" repeated Marjorie, and her face expressed so much dismay
+that Mrs. Randolph could not help smiling.
+
+"We are not going for good," she explained, "but Beverly's vacation
+begins next Wednesday, and he is anxious to spend Christmas at our
+Virginia home. We shall only be away about ten days."
+
+Marjorie looked much relieved.
+
+"I was afraid you meant you were going to Europe, or somewhere far
+away," she said, "and that I shouldn't see you any more. I don't know
+what I should do without you."
+
+"And I should miss you very much, too," said Mrs. Randolph, "but nothing
+so unpleasant is going to happen, I hope. What are your plans for the
+holidays?"
+
+"Oh, nothing in particular. Elsie and I are invited to several parties,
+and Aunt Julia's sister, Mrs. Ward, is having a tree on Christmas night.
+I can't help wishing the holidays were over. It will be my first
+Christmas away from home, you know."
+
+"I suppose your family will miss you as much as you miss them," Mrs.
+Randolph said, sympathetically.
+
+"Yes, I know they will, and that is one of the hardest things to bear. I
+had a letter from Undine to-day, and she says they are all very sad,
+though they are trying hard to be brave and cheerful."
+
+"Who is Undine?"
+
+"Oh, haven't I told you about her? She's a girl who lives at the ranch,
+and we call her Undine, but it isn't her real name."
+
+Mrs. Randolph looked interested.
+
+"What is her real name?" she asked, anxious to cheer Marjorie by talking
+of home and friends.
+
+Marjorie opened her lips to explain, but suddenly remembered something
+Beverly had told her. It would be scarcely possible to tell Undine's
+story without mentioning the fatal subject of the earthquake, so she
+only said:
+
+"We don't know her real name, but the people she lived with before she
+came to the ranch called her Sally. She didn't like Sally, and asked us
+to call her something else, and I suggested Undine."
+
+Mrs. Randolph laughed. "A rather romantic name for a flesh and blood
+girl," she said; "how old is your Undine?"
+
+"About fifteen, we think, but we are not sure, and she doesn't know
+herself. Lulu Bell says you have a beautiful home in Virginia. I suppose
+you will be glad to go there for the holidays."
+
+"Yes, we all love it very much. It is a dear old place; my husband's
+family have lived there for generations, and my old home, where I lived
+before I married, is only a couple of miles away."
+
+"I have always thought Virginia must be a very interesting place," said
+Marjorie. "I have read ever so many books about the early settlers in
+Jamestown. Have you read 'To Have and to Hold,' and 'White Aprons'?"
+
+"Yes, I have read both. Our home is on the James River, not far from
+Jamestown--would you like to see it?"
+
+"I should love it," said Marjorie, heartily. "I don't suppose I ever
+shall though," she added, with a sigh.
+
+"I don't see why not," said Mrs. Randolph, smiling. "How would you like
+to go home with us for the holidays?"
+
+Marjorie was speechless. For the first moment she could scarcely believe
+that her friend was in earnest.
+
+"I came this afternoon on purpose to propose it," Mrs. Randolph went on,
+convinced by the girl's flushed cheeks and sparkling eyes that there was
+no doubt about her wanting to accept the invitation. "Beverly and I were
+speaking of it last evening. We shall be alone except for Dr. Randolph,
+who is going with us, but we have some pleasant young people in the
+neighborhood, and there is generally a good deal going on at Christmas.
+I think you would have a pleasant time."
+
+"It would be the next best thing to going home," declared Marjorie,
+"but, oh, dear Mrs. Randolph, are you sure you really want me?"
+
+"Quite sure," said Mrs. Randolph, kissing her. "It will make us all
+very happy to have our nice little friend with us."
+
+"If only Aunt Julia will let me go," said Marjorie, with a vivid
+recollection of her aunt's rebuke on the evening after the football
+game.
+
+But, contrary to Marjorie's expectations, Mrs. Carleton made no
+objection to the plan, beyond hoping that the Randolphs would not find
+her niece too much care. Neither did Elsie make any of the unpleasant
+remarks her cousin expected. Since the first meeting of the Poetry Club,
+Beverly and she had not had much to say to each other. Beverly was
+always polite, but Elsie could never feel quite comfortable in his
+society, and the knowledge that he was not to share in any of the
+holiday gayeties was something of a relief. She and Marjorie were
+apparently very good friends, but there was a look in Marjorie's eyes
+sometimes when they rested on her cousin, which Elsie did not like. So
+when Mrs. Carleton consulted her daughter on the subject of Marjorie's
+going to Virginia with the Randolph's, Elsie said good-naturedly:
+
+"Oh, let her go, Mamma; she'll have a much better time than she would
+here. It would be such a bother to have to take her everywhere, and see
+she had partners at the dances, and all that. Papa would be sure to ask
+questions and make a fuss if she didn't have a good time."
+
+So the invitation was accepted, and Marjorie wrote a long, joyful letter
+to her mother, and went to bed that night, feeling happier than she had
+done since coming to New York.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII
+
+IN THE SUNNY SOUTH
+
+
+"IT'S the most beautiful place I've ever even imagined!" Marjorie spoke
+with conviction, and drew in a long, deep breath of the fresh morning
+air.
+
+She and Beverly were standing on the wide veranda at Randolph Place
+gazing off over the wide landscape, of low Virginia hills, with the wide
+river less than half a mile away. It was a glorious morning, and the
+peace and quiet seemed indescribably delightful after the noisy, stuffy
+night on the train. Beverly was very proud of his Southern home, but boy
+like, he tried not to show it.
+
+"It's pretty enough," he admitted, "but this isn't the season to see it
+at its best; you ought to come here in the spring."
+
+"It's perfect just as it is," declared Marjorie. "I've read about such
+places, but never expected to see one myself. Is that river really the
+James, and did your great-grandfather truly live in this very house?"
+
+"He most certainly did," said Beverly, laughing; "my people have lived
+here for over a hundred years. You should have heard some of my father's
+war stories. He was only a boy at the time of the war, but he had some
+exciting experiences. When I was a little chap I used to wish I had been
+alive then, too."
+
+"Oh, I love war stories!" cried Marjorie, rapturously; "are there any
+people here now who can tell them?"
+
+"Yes, indeed, plenty. I'll introduce you to old Uncle Josh. He was my
+grandfather's body servant, and went all through the war with him. He's
+over seventy now, and doesn't work any more, but he and his wife live in
+a cabin down at the quarters."
+
+"It all sounds just like a story-book," said Marjorie, with a little
+sigh of utter content. "I should think you would be tremendously proud
+of your home."
+
+"I like it all right," said Beverly, "but now hadn't you better come in
+and have some breakfast? I hear Mother and Uncle George in the
+dining-room, and I should think you'd be hungry, for it's after nine,
+and you were up before six."
+
+"Of course I was," laughed Marjorie; "I was much too excited to sleep. I
+wasn't going to miss the first sight of Virginia."
+
+The dining-room at Randolph Place was very large, and the walls were
+lined with portraits. Marjorie was so much interested in the portraits
+of great-grandfather and great-grandmother Randolph, that she came near
+forgetting to eat her breakfast, although the fried eggs and bacon, and
+waffles with maple syrup, were certainly the most delicious she had ever
+tasted. Mrs. Randolph and the doctor watched her with kindly amusement.
+Her eyes were sparkling with excitement, and there was a bright color in
+her cheeks; she seemed quite a different creature from the pale, subdued
+girl of a week before.
+
+"I declare, Barbara, I had no idea that little girl was so pretty," Dr.
+Randolph remarked in a low tone to his sister-in-law, when Marjorie and
+Beverly were in the midst of an animated discussion about Captain John
+Smith and Pocahontas.
+
+"She is charming," Mrs. Randolph answered, smiling. "It is strange how
+much environment has to do with appearance."
+
+"And now I am going to take you to your room, Marjorie," said Mrs.
+Randolph as they rose from the breakfast table. "You will want to
+unpack and wash up a little after that dusty journey. I have asked some
+cousins of ours, the Pattersons, to luncheon, and perhaps this afternoon
+you and Beverly will like to go for a ride. I needn't ask if you are
+accustomed to riding; every girl brought up on a ranch must be."
+
+"I have ridden ever since I can remember," said Marjorie, her eyes
+sparkling at the prospect of the coming pleasure. "I would rather ride a
+horse than do anything else in the world."
+
+Mrs. Randolph laughed, and led the way up a broad oak staircase, and
+along a wide hall, to the prettiest little room imaginable, all
+furnished in pink and white; a typical girl's room, as Marjorie saw at
+the first glance.
+
+"I have put you here because this room is next to mine," Mrs. Randolph
+explained. "I thought you would like it better than being away down at
+the other end of the hall. This was my little Barbara's room," she added
+softly; "no one has slept here since she left it, and nothing has been
+changed."
+
+"Oh, Mrs. Randolph," cried Marjorie, gratefully, "how very good you are
+to me, but are you sure you really want me to have this room?"
+
+"Yes, dear, I am quite sure I do. If my Barbara were alive I know she
+would love you, and I like to think I shall have a little girl next to
+me again to-night."
+
+With a sudden impulse, Marjorie flung her arms round Mrs. Randolph's
+neck and hugged her. She did not speak--words did not come easily just
+then--but Barbara's mother understood, and the kiss she gave in return
+was a very tender one.
+
+When Marjorie was left alone, her first occupation was to look about the
+room, and examine all its details. It was very simple, but everything
+was in perfect taste, and the girl admired it all, from the pretty china
+ornaments on the bureau, to the row of books on a shelf over the
+writing-desk. She took down one of the books reverently; it seemed
+almost like sacrilege to touch these things that had belonged to another
+girl, whose death had been so very sad. It was "Lorna Doone," and on the
+fly-leaf Marjorie read, "To Barbara Randolph, from her affectionate
+cousin, Grace Patterson." Then she examined the framed photographs on
+the mantelpiece; Mrs. Randolph and Beverly, and a gentleman whom she
+supposed must have been Barbara's father. There were other photographs
+as well, one in particular of a girl with curly hair, and a very
+friendly expression, and Marjorie wondered if she could be the cousin,
+who had given Barbara "Lorna Doone." It was strange how intimate she was
+beginning to feel with this Barbara, who had died nearly three years
+ago.
+
+Marjorie had just finished her unpacking when there was a tap at her
+door, and in answer to her "Come in," a girl of about her own age
+presented herself. One glance was sufficient to assure Marjorie that she
+was the same curly-haired, friendly-faced girl, whose photograph, in a
+silver frame, stood in a prominent place on the writing-desk.
+
+"I'm Grace Patterson," announced the visitor, in a voice as friendly as
+her face. "Cousin Barbara told me to come right up; my brother and I
+have come over especially to see you."
+
+"I'm very glad to meet you," said Marjorie, shaking hands, and drawing
+forward a chair for her guest. "I've just been looking at your picture,"
+she added, smiling.
+
+Grace Patterson glanced about the room, and a shade of sadness crossed
+her bright face.
+
+"It seems so strange to be in this room again," she said; "I haven't
+been here since poor Babs--you've heard about Babs, of course?"
+
+Marjorie nodded.
+
+"She was my chum," said Grace, with a little catch in her voice, "and
+one of the dearest girls that ever lived. We were almost the same age,
+and as neither of us had any sisters, we were together a great deal.
+Babs had a governess, and my younger brother and I used to come over
+here every day for lessons. Our place is only two miles away, and my
+mother and Cousin Barbara are great friends. It nearly killed poor
+Cousin Barbara."
+
+"I know," said Marjorie. "It was lovely of Mrs. Randolph to let me have
+this room. I have been so interested in Barbara ever since I first heard
+about her, but I don't like to talk to her mother or brother about her."
+
+"You know how it happened, I suppose?"
+
+"Oh, yes; Beverly told me that. It must have been a frightful shock to
+you all."
+
+"Frightful! I should say it was. Even Beverly has never been quite the
+same since. He was devoted to Babs, and they were such chums. I don't
+think it would have been quite so terrible if they could have recognized
+her afterward, but she was so frightfully injured--oh, I can't bear to
+talk about it! They recognized Miss Randolph, Bab's aunt, but poor Babs
+was completely crushed, and--oh, let's come downstairs. I can't stand it
+up here; it gives me the horrors."
+
+There were more questions Marjorie would have liked to ask, but the
+subject was evidently a very painful one to her new acquaintance, for
+Grace had grown rather pale, and there was a look of horror in her eyes.
+So she said no more, and the two girls went downstairs, where they found
+the family assembled, and where Marjorie was introduced to Harry
+Patterson--Grace's brother--a pleasant-faced boy of seventeen.
+
+The Pattersons stayed to luncheon, and Marjorie liked them immensely.
+Grace soon recovered from the momentary depression, caused by recalling
+painful memories, and Marjorie was quite ready to endorse Beverly's
+opinion that "she was one of the jolliest girls going." They had a very
+merry morning, and after luncheon it was proposed that Marjorie and
+Beverly should ride home with the Pattersons, who had come over on their
+ponies.
+
+"Marjorie is pining for a gallop, I know," said Beverly, laughing; "she
+is as wild about horses as you are, Grace, and trained a colt when she
+was nine."
+
+"How jolly!" cried Grace; "you and I can have some fine rides together,
+Marjorie. I haven't had a girl to ride with since--" Grace did not
+finish her sentence, but Marjorie knew by her suddenly heightened
+color, and the glance she gave Beverly, that she was thinking of her
+cousin Barbara.
+
+"I declare they've brought Nelly Gray for you to ride!" whispered Grace
+to Marjorie, as the two girls stood on the veranda, waiting to mount. "I
+didn't know any one rode her now."
+
+"She's a beauty," said Marjorie, with an admiring glance at the handsome
+little chestnut mare, which was being led up to the door by a groom.
+
+"Oh, she's a love! She was Babs's pony, and Babs loved her dearly. I
+remember she taught her to take sugar out of her pocket."
+
+Nelly Gray certainly was "a love" and Marjorie enjoyed that ride as she
+had enjoyed few things since leaving her Western home. It was a
+beautiful afternoon, and Nelly herself appeared to enjoy it almost as
+much as her rider. They took the longest way round to the Patterson
+home, and when they had left their friends, Beverly proposed that they
+should ride a few miles farther, and come home by a different road.
+
+"I think I could ride all night without getting tired," laughed
+Marjorie. "This is an adorable pony."
+
+"She was my sister's pony," said Beverly.
+
+"Yes, I know, your cousin told me. It was awfully good of you and your
+mother to let me ride her."
+
+Beverly said nothing, and they rode on for a few moments in silence,
+both young faces unusually grave. Marjorie was the first to speak.
+
+"I wish I could make your mother understand how much I appreciate all
+she has done for me," she said, impulsively. "Do you know she has given
+me your sister's room?"
+
+"Yes, she told me she was going to. Mother is very fond of you, and she
+says she thinks Babs would have loved you, too."
+
+"I know I should have loved her," said Marjorie, earnestly. "Grace has
+been telling me about her, and I have been looking at all her things."
+
+"She was almost as fond of riding as you are," said Beverly. "She was
+such a plucky little girl; never afraid of anything. She rode better
+than any girl in the neighborhood."
+
+Beverly's voice sounded a little husky, and Marjorie thought it might be
+best to change the subject, so she launched into an account of a "round
+up" she had once seen, and the rest of the ride was a very merry one.
+
+"Will you mind if I stop for a moment to speak to my old mammy?"
+Beverly asked, as they were on their way home. "She lives in one of
+these cabins, and I know she'll be on the lookout for me."
+
+"Of course I won't mind," said Marjorie, promptly; "I shall love it.
+I've never seen a real colored mammy, but I've often read about them in
+stories."
+
+"Well, you shall see one now. Ours was the genuine article, though
+people pretend to say the old-fashioned darky is a thing of the past.
+She was devoted to Babs and me, although she was a firm believer in the
+efficacy of the rod. We loved her dearly, and minded her better than we
+minded Mother. She was put on the pension list several years ago, and
+now has a cabin to herself. Here it is, and there's Mammy on the watch
+for us, as I was sure she would be. Hello, Mammy, here's your bad boy
+back again!"
+
+Beverly sprang to the ground, and the next moment was being rapturously
+hugged by a very stout old negress, with a turban on her head. She was
+so exactly Marjorie's idea of what a mammy ought to be, that the girl
+was delighted, and sat looking on with deep interest, while Beverly and
+his old nurse exchanged greetings. Then Marjorie herself was introduced,
+and Mammy begged them both to tie their horses, and come in for a cup
+of tea. But Beverly declared it was too late, and they finally made
+their escape, having promised to come another day, for a feast of the
+waffles, for which it appeared Mammy was famous.
+
+"It has been one of the loveliest days I've ever had," Marjorie
+declared, as they rode up the avenue at Randolph Place, in the light of
+the setting sun. "I shall never forget it as long as I live, and I shall
+have so much to write home in my next letter, that I believe it will
+fill a volume."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX
+
+A VIRGINIA CHRISTMAS
+
+
+
+ "Randolph Place,
+ "December 26th.
+
+ "DARLING AUNT JESSIE:
+
+ "Christmas is over, and it really wasn't half as
+ bad as I thought it was going to be. But before I
+ begin writing about anything else, I must tell you
+ how happy I was to get all your dear home letters.
+ Uncle Henry was so kind about forwarding them as
+ soon as they reached New York, and I had them all
+ on Christmas Eve. Aunt Julia wrote me the box has
+ come, too, but she will have to keep that until I
+ get back the end of next week. How I shall adore
+ every single thing in it!
+
+ "I sent mother a few lines the morning I got here,
+ but that was before I had found out how beautiful
+ it all is. It is just like the Southern
+ plantations one reads about in stories, and
+ everything is very interesting. There is even a
+ dear old black mammy, who lives in a cabin, and
+ has asked Beverly and me to come and have waffles
+ some afternoon. All the servants are black, and
+ the butler has lived in the family nearly forty
+ years. Then the neighbors are just the kind one
+ reads of, so kind and hospitable, and always
+ having good times. I think I like Southerners
+ better than New Yorkers; they make me feel much
+ more at home. I have met a good many of them, for
+ we went to a Christmas dance at the Pattersons',
+ on Christmas Eve, and I had a perfectly gorgeous
+ time. The Pattersons are cousins of the
+ Randolphs', and Grace, the girl, is just my age,
+ and awfully nice; but then everybody here is nice,
+ and I am having the very best time that it is
+ possible for a girl to have.
+
+ "The riding is the greatest pleasure of all.
+ Beverly and I have been out for a ride every day,
+ and he enjoys it almost as much as I do. They have
+ given me the dearest little chestnut to ride, and
+ it is a great honor, because she belonged to
+ Beverly's sister, who was killed in the San
+ Francisco earthquake, and scarcely any one has
+ ridden her since. She is very gentle, and so
+ friendly that she will take sugar out of my
+ pocket. Beverly says his sister taught her to do
+ that.
+
+ "But if I go on chattering like this, I shall
+ never get to Christmas, which was the most
+ interesting of all. The Virginians seem to think a
+ great deal of Christmas, and nearly all the day
+ before we were busy dressing a tree for the little
+ negroes on the plantation. Mrs. Randolph had
+ brought presents from New York for all of them,
+ and for the fathers and mothers as well. Beverly
+ says she has done the same thing every Christmas
+ since her little girl died; it is a sort of
+ memorial, I suppose. We all hung up our stockings,
+ even Mrs. Randolph and the doctor, who is just as
+ nice and jolly as he can be, though Grace
+ Patterson says some people are afraid of him. It
+ was late when we got back from the Pattersons'
+ party on Christmas Eve, but after I was in bed I
+ heard Mrs. Randolph going about softly, filling
+ the stockings, which were all hung outside our
+ doors.
+
+ "I was so tired after the party, that I didn't
+ wake till after seven, and then the very first
+ thing I did was to run and look at my stocking. It
+ was stuffed full of good things; oranges, candy,
+ figs and dates, and just as I thought I had
+ reached the bottom, I felt something hard away
+ down in the toe. What do you think it was? You
+ will never guess, so I may as well tell you right
+ away; it was a little velvet box, and inside was
+ a ring, a beautiful gold ring, with two adorable
+ little pearls in it! That was Mrs. Randolph's
+ Christmas present, and the loveliest thing I have
+ ever had in my life. I was so happy when I saw it
+ that I cried; I know it was dreadfully silly, but
+ I couldn't help it. Oh, how I wish I could show it
+ to you this minute, but you will see it when I
+ come home next June, and all my other presents,
+ too, for the ring wasn't the only one. When I came
+ down to breakfast there were more parcels beside
+ my plate; two nice books from Beverly, and a gold
+ bracelet from the doctor. Just think of it, two
+ pieces of jewelry in one day! I am sure I didn't
+ deserve such beautiful things, but when I told
+ them so, and tried to thank them, they only
+ laughed.
+
+ "In the morning we went to church, and the
+ Christmas music was lovely. We met the Pattersons
+ at church, and they all came home with us to
+ dinner. Oh, such a dinner! I don't see how any one
+ could possibly ever eat so many things. There were
+ more dishes than I have ever imagined possible for
+ one meal, and every single one was delicious.
+
+ "After dinner came the tree for the children, and
+ that was the best fun of all. I quite lost my
+ heart to some of the piccaninnies, and one little
+ chap, as black as coal, was so adorable that I
+ wanted to hug him. The children all had a
+ beautiful time, and screamed with delight over
+ their presents. How I wished you and Mother could
+ have seen Mrs. Randolph going about among them,
+ speaking so pleasantly to every one, and making
+ them all feel at home. After the tree had been
+ stripped they all had ice cream, and I got hold of
+ my little black boy, and made him sit on my lap
+ while I fed him until I don't believe he could
+ have swallowed another mouthful. Then the old
+ butler, who is just like a negro servant in a
+ book, proposed three cheers for Mrs. Randolph, and
+ you should have heard those darkies yell!
+
+ "The Pattersons left as soon as the fun was over,
+ and we all went upstairs to our rooms to rest. But
+ I wasn't a bit tired, and was afraid that if I sat
+ down to think I might be homesick, so I thought I
+ would go for a walk. I was just starting when I
+ saw Mrs. Randolph come out from the greenhouse,
+ with her hat on, and her hands full of beautiful
+ roses, and I stopped to ask if she were going for
+ a walk, too, and if I might go with her. She
+ hesitated for a minute, and then said I might come
+ if I liked, but she was afraid I would find it
+ sad; she was going to the cemetery to put flowers
+ on her little girl's grave. She said it quite
+ calmly, but there was such a sad look in her eyes,
+ and I was horribly embarrassed, for I was afraid I
+ ought not to have suggested going with her. But
+ she assured me she would really like to have me,
+ if I didn't mind, so of course I went, and, oh,
+ Aunt Jessie, I am so glad I did. It was all
+ beautiful and sacred--almost too sacred to write
+ about, even to you and Mother. The cemetery was
+ such a lovely, peaceful place, and as it was quite
+ warm and pleasant, we sat down by Barbara
+ Randolph's grave, and her mother talked to me
+ about her. It was the first time she has ever told
+ me much about Barbara, and I was so interested in
+ all she said. I don't think I shall ever be afraid
+ of dying again; Mrs. Randolph spoke so beautifully
+ about it. She says she can never feel that her
+ little girl is far away, and she is quite sure
+ they will be together again some day. I think
+ Barbara must have been an awfully nice girl; every
+ one seems so fond of her. Grace Patterson was her
+ chum, and she can hardly speak of her without
+ crying. As for Beverly, he just can't bear to talk
+ about her at all, and I don't dare ask him a
+ single question. Grace says he was devoted to her,
+ and she adored him. I wish I could see a picture
+ of Barbara, but there are no photographs of her
+ about. Mrs. Randolph wears a little gold locket,
+ and I am sure there is a miniature of Barbara
+ inside, but I have never had the courage to ask
+ her to show it to me. I was just making up my mind
+ to do it yesterday, when we heard footsteps, and
+ there was Beverly himself, bringing more flowers.
+ He didn't know we were there, and looked horribly
+ embarrassed when he saw us. Boys always hate to
+ show their feelings, and I think he would have
+ gone away again without speaking to us, if his
+ mother hadn't called him. She was so pleased to
+ see him, and after the first minute I don't think
+ he really minded. I thought they might like to be
+ alone, so I slipped away as quietly as I could,
+ and on the way home I met the doctor, and he asked
+ me to go for a walk with him. I know you would
+ like Dr. Randolph; he is so clever, and has
+ traveled almost all over the world. He told me
+ such an interesting story about a Christmas he
+ once spent in Jerusalem. It is so pleasant that he
+ met Father at Harvard, and remembers all about
+ him. He says Father was a very handsome boy, and a
+ great favorite with the girls. Doesn't it seem
+ queer to think of Father's going to dances and
+ flirting with girls! He looks so much older than
+ Dr. Randolph, and yet I suppose they must be about
+ the same age.
+
+ "Mrs. Randolph and Beverly were quite cheerful
+ when they came home, and I noticed that Beverly
+ was very gentle with his mother all the evening.
+ He is always nice to her, and that is one of the
+ reasons why I like him so much. One of the things
+ that has surprised me most of all in New York, is
+ the way some of the girls and boys speak to their
+ fathers and mothers. I really don't know what
+ Mother would do to me if I were ever to answer her
+ back the way Elsie sometimes answers Aunt Julia,
+ but her mother doesn't seem to mind.
+
+ "We had a quiet evening at home, but it was
+ pleasant, for we were all a little tired. Mrs.
+ Randolph and the doctor played cribbage, and
+ Beverly sang; he has a lovely voice, but he won't
+ often sing. Altogether my Christmas was a very
+ happy one, and if I did 'weep a little weep' after
+ I was in bed, it was only natural, considering it
+ was my first Christmas away from you all. Oh, Aunt
+ Jessie, darling, I am having a beautiful visit,
+ but I never forget you, or Father or Mother, a
+ single minute! I love your letters better than
+ anything else, and I am just longing to get my
+ hands on that precious Christmas box. I hope you
+ will all like the presents I sent. Uncle Henry was
+ so kind; he gave me twenty-five dollars to spend
+ for Christmas presents. I never had so much money
+ in my life, but Aunt Julia helped me select the
+ presents, which was a great relief, for I should
+ never have known what to buy without her. Things
+ seem to cost so much more than one expects them
+ to.
+
+ "I felt sure you and Mother would want something I
+ had made myself, and I hope you will like the
+ color of the shawl; Mrs. Randolph thought it very
+ pretty. I chose the little daisy pin for Undine,
+ because I liked it so much myself. I am so glad
+ you have all grown so fond of her, and that she is
+ happy, and doesn't worry so much about not
+ remembering.
+
+ "Beverly is calling me to go for a ride, so I must
+ stop writing. Heaps of hugs and kisses for
+ everybody from
+
+ "Your own
+ "MARJORIE."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX
+
+MARJORIE SEES A PHOTOGRAPH
+
+
+"DON'T you think there is always something very sad about last days in
+places?"
+
+Beverly laughed, and cast an amused glance at his companion's sober
+face. He and Marjorie were trotting leisurely along a road where the
+trees met overhead in summer, although now the boughs were leafless, and
+there was a light covering of snow on the ground. It was their last
+afternoon in Virginia, and they were making the most of it, despite a
+lowering sky, and a frostiness in the air, which threatened more snow
+before night.
+
+"Just think," Marjorie went on mournfully, "I sha'n't have another ride
+for five whole months. School doesn't close till the first of June."
+
+"Why don't you ride in the park? Lots of girls do, you know. Ask your
+uncle to hire a horse for you from the riding academy."
+
+Marjorie blushed.
+
+"I don't like to," she said, frankly. "Uncle Henry and Aunt Julia are
+doing so much for me already, I don't think I ought to ask for anything
+more. Elsie doesn't ride in New York."
+
+"Well, I have no doubt she could if she wanted to. I imagine Miss Elsie
+generally gets what she wants."
+
+"You don't like Elsie, do you?" The words were out before Marjorie
+realized she had uttered them. The next moment she wished she had not
+asked the question.
+
+"No, I don't," said Beverly, honestly.
+
+"I'm sorry; I wish you did; she's so clever, and--and there are lots of
+nice things about her. You see, she is an only child, and her father and
+mother worship her. I suppose she can't help being a little spoiled."
+
+"Well, you are an only child, too, and I have no doubt your family are
+as fond of you as Elsie's are of her, but you are not spoiled."
+
+Marjorie was silent. She felt that loyalty to her cousin required her to
+say something in Elsie's defence, and yet what could she say? After a
+moment's silence Beverly went on.
+
+"I should like your cousin a lot better if she resigned from being
+president of that Club."
+
+"She--she tore up the poem," faltered Marjorie. "She said it was trash.
+I don't think she meant to do anything mean, but she is so clever, she
+couldn't bear to have any other poem better than hers."
+
+"You're a loyal little soul, Marjorie," said Beverly, approvingly, "but
+all you can say won't alter the fact that your cousin did a mean,
+contemptible thing. She knows I found her out, and she hasn't looked me
+straight in the face since. I don't like sneaks in girls any better than
+in boys."
+
+Marjorie felt the conversation had gone far enough. She did not wish to
+discuss Elsie even with Beverly Randolph, although the two had become
+great friends during the past ten days, so after a little pause, she
+changed the subject by asking her companion if he did not think they had
+better be turning towards home.
+
+Beverly glanced at his watch.
+
+"I suppose we'd better," he said, reluctantly. "I hate to cut our last
+ride short, but Mammy will be heart-broken if we keep her waffles
+waiting."
+
+"I'm so glad we are going to Mammy's cabin," Marjorie said, as they
+turned the horses' heads in a homeward direction. "It makes me think of
+so many things I have read. Don't you remember in 'Uncle Tom's Cabin,'
+how George Selby used to slip away from the big house, and go down to
+Uncle Tom's for waffles and fried chicken? Mammy is such an old dear; I
+do want to hear her talk again."
+
+"She certainly is a character," said Beverly, laughing. "We'll get her
+to tell some anecdotes about Barbara and me. According to Mammy I must
+have been a pickle."
+
+Marjorie was conscious of a feeling of relief at having successfully
+turned the conversation away from Elsie and her affairs, and she and
+Beverly chatted on pleasantly until they reached Mammy's cabin, where
+they dismounted and Beverly tied the horses to the hitching post. Mammy
+was on the watch for them, and gave them a hearty welcome.
+
+"Now you jes lay off yo' tings, and set down by de fiah," she commanded,
+placing chairs for the visitors, "an' I'll have dem waffles done in a
+jiffy. Lor', Mas'r Bev'ly, it jes' does my heart good to see you settin'
+heah in my kitchen, like you used to do when you an' Miss Babs--now
+Mas'r Bev'ly, don't you tease my Josephus; he mighty 'telligent cat, he
+is. He won't stan' no foolin'."
+
+"He's a beauty," said Marjorie, stooping to stroke the big maltese, who
+responded to the caress by springing on the arm of her chair.
+
+Mammy beamed with satisfaction.
+
+"Josephus likes you fust rate, Missy," she said, approvingly. "He don't
+make friends with mos' folks; he's too 'ristocratic. He knows what's
+what, Josephus does."
+
+"Mammy is the most delicious snob," laughed Beverly; "she only allows
+Josephus to associate with aristocratic cats. All the unfortunate
+plebeian cats in the neighborhood are driven away with a stick."
+
+"Cose dey is," declared Mammy, indignantly. "What yo s'pose I want
+common, no-'count cats botherin' round heah for? Ain't I always lived in
+de most 'ristocratic Virginia fam'lies, and wasn't my paw own
+body-servant to ole General Putnam, an' my maw bought by Mas'r
+Randolph's father when she weren't more'n ten years old, an' brought up
+in de house, to be maid to de young ladies? I'se lived in de fust
+fam'lies, I has, and I'm proud of it, too."
+
+"What a perfectly heavenly place!" whispered Marjorie to Beverly, with a
+glance round the neat little kitchen, as the old negress bustled away
+intent on household duties.
+
+"You must get Mammy to show you the family photographs before we go,"
+said Beverly; "she has quite a gallery, and can give you the separate
+history of each picture. Ah, here come the waffles. Nobody can beat you
+on waffles, Mammy."
+
+The old woman grinned.
+
+"Cose dey cyan't," she said, placidly. "Dere cyan't nobody in dese parts
+beat me on waffles and corn-bread. Folks comes askin' for my recipes,
+but it ain't de recipe dat does it, it's de light hand. Now Mas'r
+Bev'ly, don't you take de whole dishful; dere's plenty more comin'. Lor'
+sakes, Missy, you jes' oughter seen de way dat boy would go in for
+waffles an' maple syrup when he was little. Do you 'member de day, Mas'r
+Bev'ly, when yo maw was havin' lot of comp'ny for tea, an' yo' an' Miss
+Babs sneaked into de pantry, and eat up all de lobster salad 'fo' de
+comp'ny got a chance to have it? What a swattin' I did give de two of
+you' for dat!"
+
+"Yes, indeed I remember it," said Beverly, laughing. "I deserved the
+'swatting' more than Babs did, for she was only four and I was eight."
+
+"Dat's true; but yo' bofe deserved it bad enough. Lordie! How dat chile
+Babs could stuff! Notin' ever hurted her, and de wust of it was, she
+didn't mind castor oil no more'n if it was molasses. Have some more
+syrup, Missy; waffles ain't no good without plenty of syrup. You was
+forever gettin' Miss Babs into mischief, Mas'r Bev'ly. I'll never forget
+de day I dressed de two of you in yo' best white suits, cause yo'
+grandmother Randolph was comin' on a visit, an' de minute my back was
+turned you was bofe off to de swamp. My, what sights you was when I
+found you! Miss Babs had tumbled in, an' yo' two faces was as black as
+mine, and you was all over black mud. You bofe got a good whippin', an'
+was put to bed in de middle of de day, but Lordie! What good did it do?
+Miss Babs was sound asleep in ten minutes, and never woke up till nex'
+mornin'. Nottin' ever upset her fo' long; God bless her."
+
+The old woman's voice grew very gentle and Beverly, who had been smiling
+over the childish reminiscences, grew suddenly grave. But Mammy was a
+cheerful soul, and she did not intend to sadden the young people's
+visit.
+
+"Well, de Lord has his reasons, I s'pose," she said, with a sigh, "but
+dey does seem hard to make out sometimes. Jes' 'scuse me one minute; I
+got some hot ones on de fiah."
+
+When Marjorie and Beverly had eaten so many waffles that they felt as
+though they should not require anything more in the way of food for
+days, Mammy reluctantly desisted from her hospitable efforts to force
+another plateful upon her visitors, and the hospitably entertained young
+people rose to go.
+
+"I've had a lovely time," declared Marjorie, heartily. "It was dear of
+you to let me come, Mammy; I shall never forget it."
+
+"Any frien' of de Randolph fam'ly is always welcome to my cabin," said
+Mammy, with the air of a queen dispensing hospitality to her subjects.
+"Would you like to see de fam'ly pictures 'fo' you go?"
+
+Marjorie said she would like nothing better, and while Beverly went out
+to untie the horses, she followed Mammy into her tiny bedroom, the walls
+of which were literally covered with photographs.
+
+"Dis," announced Mammy, pausing in the doorway, and pointing to a
+gentleman in uniform, "is Mas'r Will Randolph, Mas'r Bev'ly's
+gran'father, took in de clothes he wore when he went to de wah. Dis lady
+is his wife, de mis' Randolph dat brought up my maw; a gran' lady she
+was too. Dis is Mas'r Bev'ly's father when he went away to school, jes
+after de wah was over. Dis one is Mas'r Bev'ly's maw in her first ball
+dress. Dat's Mas'r Bev'ly when he was a baby, and here's Miss Babs in
+her fust short clothes. Over on dis side is Mas'r Bev'ly when he was
+seven, and dis is--oh, good Lordie, Missy, whatever is de matter?"
+
+Marjorie--who had been following Mammy from one photograph to another,
+with amused interest--had suddenly uttered a sharp cry of astonishment,
+and was staring blankly at the photograph of a girl of twelve, which was
+occupying the place of honor over Mammy's bed.
+
+"Who--who is that?" she gasped, seizing the old woman's arm, and
+beginning to tremble with excitement.
+
+"Dat Miss Babs, took jes' 'fo' she went away to Californy," said Mammy,
+sadly. "Land sakes, Missy! What is it? You jes' sit right down heah, an'
+I'll go call Mas'r Bev'ly."
+
+When Beverly appeared in answer to Mammy's hasty summons, he found
+Marjorie ghastly white, and shaking from head to foot.
+
+"Good gracious, Marjorie!" exclaimed the boy, springing to her side,
+"what's the matter? Don't you feel well--is it the waffles?"
+
+"It's--it's Undine!" faltered Marjorie, with shaking lips, and she
+pointed to the photograph on which her eyes still rested, in a wild,
+incredulous stare.
+
+[Illustration: "LAND SAKES, MISSY! WHAT IS IT?"--_Page 283._]
+
+"'Undine,'" repeated Beverly, stupidly, "who is Undine? That is the
+picture of my sister Barbara."
+
+"It's Undine," repeated Marjorie, with obstinate persistence; "it's
+exactly like her; I would know her anywhere."
+
+"But who is Undine? I never even heard of her?"
+
+"Yes, you did; I told you about her once, and you said I mustn't mention
+her to your mother, because she was hurt in the earthquake. We called
+her Undine, because she couldn't remember her real name, or anything
+that happened to her before the earthquake. That's her photograph,
+Beverly, I tell you it is--it is!"
+
+Beverly had grown very pale, but he made a great effort at self-control.
+
+"Don't talk nonsense, Marjorie," he said, almost angrily; "I tell you
+that is my sister's photograph. I can show you another just like it at
+home."
+
+"Beverly," cried Marjorie, clasping her hands, and speaking in a tone of
+sudden conviction, "I am not talking nonsense. That is the picture of
+the girl who has been at the ranch since last August. She was found
+in the street just after the earthquake, half buried under some ruins.
+She was unconscious, and they took her to a hospital. She has never been
+able to remember anything about herself since. Your sister was in the
+earthquake, too; you think she was killed, but perhaps--oh, Beverly
+dear, let us go home quick, and tell your uncle all about it."
+
+Mrs. Randolph was in the library reading. Twice she had put down her
+book, and gone to the window to look out. It was growing dark, and had
+begun to snow.
+
+"How late they are," she said to herself, with an anxious glance at the
+clock. "They ought to be back by this time, but I suppose they have
+stayed listening to Mammy's stories, and forgotten the time."
+
+She sat down again by the fire, and took up her book. But she was
+feeling restless and nervous that afternoon, though she could not have
+told why, and after reading a page, she closed the book again.
+
+"I wish they would come," she said, impatiently. "No one knows what may
+have happened; they may never have reached Mammy's cabin. I think I will
+go and speak to George. He will laugh at me for worrying, but that will
+be better than sitting here by myself. There's the clock striking six;
+they should have been in an hour ago."
+
+She rose, and was moving towards the door when she heard an approaching
+footstep, and in another moment her brother-in-law himself came into the
+room.
+
+"I was just coming to look for you, George," she said; "I am getting a
+little anxious about the children."
+
+"The children are all right," said the doctor, quietly, sinking into the
+arm-chair by the fire; "they came in half an hour ago, and have gone to
+their rooms. Marjorie was feeling a little upset, and I advised her to
+go and lie down till dinner-time."
+
+Mrs. Randolph turned towards the door again.
+
+"I think I will go and see if there is anything I can do for her," she
+said. "It isn't like Marjorie to give up; I'm afraid she isn't well."
+
+But Dr. Randolph held out a detaining hand.
+
+"Sit down, Barbara," he said, "I want to talk to you. There is nothing
+the matter with Marjorie or Beverly either. They have had a long ride,
+and stopped at Mammy's for waffles. I want to ask you a favor. I have
+just received some important news, which will necessitate my going West
+at once, and I want you to let Beverly go with me."
+
+Mrs. Randolph was very much surprised.
+
+"But, George dear," she remonstrated gently, "college begins again on
+Monday--do you think it wise to take the boy away just now?"
+
+"I shall not be gone more than a week, and I want Beverly for company.
+He has never seen much of his own country, and this trip to Arizona will
+do him an immense amount of good. As for college, a few days more or
+less won't make any material difference, and he can make up for lost
+time when he gets back."
+
+Mrs. Randolph still looked doubtful, but the doctor was Beverly's
+guardian, and since her husband's death she had been accustomed to
+depend upon his judgment and advice. So instead of arguing the point,
+she only said:
+
+"Of course he may go if you think best, George, only it does seem
+foolish to take him away so soon again after his holidays."
+
+"I do think it best, Barbara," said the doctor, decidedly. "I want the
+boy with me very much. I must start as soon as possible. Do you think
+you could persuade Emma Patterson to go home with you and Marjorie
+to-morrow, and stay till Beverly and I come back?"
+
+"I can try," said Mrs. Randolph, who was still unconvinced of the wisdom
+of this sudden whim of her brother-in-law's, and a little uneasy as
+well. "Emma has promised to visit us later; perhaps she would be willing
+to come now instead. You know, George dear, I never ask you about your
+cases, but this seems so very sudden--are you going to see a patient?"
+
+"Yes," said the doctor, quietly. "I may be able to tell you more about
+the case when I come back, but I cannot now."
+
+Mrs. Randolph regarded him anxiously.
+
+"I am afraid you are not well, George," she said, "you are dreadfully
+pale. Is that why you don't want to take this long journey alone?"
+
+"Not exactly. I am perfectly well, but--well, the fact is, this may
+prove a very trying business, and I want the boy with me."
+
+"Then you shall certainly have him," said Mrs. Randolph, with decision.
+"Have you spoken to Beverly on the subject?"
+
+"Yes, and he is most anxious to go. Now I must make arrangements about
+accommodations on the train, for I want to be off early in the morning,
+if possible. Wouldn't it be a good idea to telephone Emma Patterson at
+once, and see if she can be ready to go with you and Marjorie?"
+
+Mrs. Randolph stood for a moment, looking after her brother-in-law as he
+left the room.
+
+"There is something wrong," she said: "I never saw George so agitated
+before. I wish I knew what it was, but doctors don't like to be
+questioned. I hate to have Beverly lose a whole week of college, but if
+his uncle needs him, I have nothing more to say." And, with a resigned
+sigh, she went away to telephone to her cousin, Mrs. Patterson.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI
+
+UNDINE REMEMBERS
+
+ "'A Highland laddie lives over the lea;
+ A laddie both noble and gallant and free,
+ Who loved a lassie as noble as he--
+ A bonnie sweet lassie; the maid of Dundee.'"
+
+
+MRS. GRAHAM glanced up from her sewing, with a smile.
+
+"What a sweet voice that child has," she said; "with training I believe
+she would sing remarkably well."
+
+"I love to hear her singing about the house," said Miss Jessie, also
+pausing to listen to the clear young voice; "I wonder where she learned
+all those old songs. I remember that ballad, but I haven't heard it
+since I was a child."
+
+"She probably picks them up from Jim," Mrs. Graham suggested; "he is
+always singing about the place."
+
+"I don't think I ever heard Jim sing this one," said Miss Jessie,
+reflectively. "Susie, I do wish we could find out something about the
+child's family. I feel sure she has been brought up among people of
+refinement."
+
+"She is a very attractive girl," Mrs. Graham agreed, "but if she has
+relatives it seems incredible that they should never have made the
+slightest effort to find her. Donald and I were talking about her last
+night. He thinks that any relatives she had must have been killed in the
+earthquake. It seems the only explanation. There is nothing for us to do
+but wait patiently in the hope that Undine may some time be able to tell
+us everything herself. I confess I should be very sorry to part with
+her; she has been a great help and comfort since Marjorie went away."
+
+"She has indeed," said Miss Jessie, heartily. "I have grown very fond of
+her, and I think she cares for us, too. We should have another letter
+from Marjorie by this time."
+
+"Yes, Jim has gone for the mail; he may bring one this afternoon. It
+does my heart good to know the dear child is having such a happy
+holiday. I would like to write and thank Mrs. Randolph for all her
+kindness to Marjorie; she must be a lovely woman."
+
+"I am sure she is, and the son must be a nice boy, too, judging from
+what Marjorie says. Our little girl has made some good friends, as I
+felt sure she would."
+
+Mrs. Graham rose, and began folding up her work.
+
+"I must go to the kitchen to look after Juanita," she said. "It is a
+lovely afternoon. Why don't you get Undine to wheel you out in the sun
+for an hour?"
+
+"I think I will," said Miss Jessie, with a glance out of the windows at
+the cloudless sky and brilliant winter sunshine. "Ah, here comes Undine.
+Undine dear, I think I will go out for a little while."
+
+The bright-faced, rosy-cheeked girl who entered the room at this moment
+was a very different being from the pale, timid, little waif of four
+months earlier. She had grown at least two inches, and the clothes which
+had hung loosely about her in her first days at the ranch had now become
+a tight fit. At Miss Jessie's request she smiled, and came hurrying to
+the side of her kind friend.
+
+"It's a glorious day," she said; "it makes one happy just to be alive.
+I've had such a wonderful ride. I went as far as the railroad, and saw
+the West Bound pass; it was two hours late. I'll get your warm coat and
+some wraps and we'll sit behind the playhouse. You won't feel the wind
+there, and it will be heavenly."
+
+"Undine," said Miss Graham suddenly, when the two were comfortably
+established in one of their favorite nooks; the invalid in her chair,
+and her companion on a rug spread on the ground; "where did you learn
+the song I heard you singing when you came in from your ride just now?"
+
+"I forget which it was," said Undine, looking puzzled. "Oh, yes, I
+remember--'A Highland Laddie Lived over the Lea.' I don't know where I
+learned it--isn't it one of Jim's songs?"
+
+"I don't think so, dear, but we can ask him. I never heard you sing it
+before."
+
+Something of the old, troubled, far-away look crept into Undine's face.
+
+"I don't know how I remember things," she said, slowly; "they just come
+into my head sometimes. Now that I think of it, I don't believe I have
+ever heard Jim sing that song. I must have heard it somewhere, though."
+
+Miss Graham said nothing, and there was a short pause, which Undine
+broke.
+
+"You and Mrs. Graham don't like to have me talk about the things I can't
+remember," she said, a little wistfully.
+
+"Only because we don't want you to distress yourself and try to force
+your brain. I have always told you I was sure the memory would come back
+some day."
+
+"I think it is coming soon," said Undine, softly. "I keep having dreams.
+I dreamt of my mother last night."
+
+There was a quiver in the girl's voice, and Miss Jessie leaned forward
+and laid a kind hand on her shoulder.
+
+"Tell me about it, dear," she said, gently.
+
+Undine drew a deep breath that was almost a sob.
+
+"It was a beautiful dream," she said. "My mother and I were in a dear
+little room, all furnished in pink and white. I don't know where it was,
+but it seemed quite familiar in the dream. I was unhappy about
+something, and my mother kissed me, and put her arms round me. She had
+such a dear, beautiful face. Oh, Miss Jessie, do you suppose my poor
+mother was killed in that dreadful earthquake?"
+
+"My dear little girl, we cannot possibly know that; we must have
+patience. Have you had other dreams?"
+
+"Yes. The other night I dreamt I was playing with a boy in a swamp.
+There was a black woman in the dream, too; she scolded us, but I wasn't
+a bit afraid of her. Do you think perhaps they were people I used to
+know?"
+
+"I don't know, dear; it may be possible, but you mustn't let these
+things worry you. You are happy here with us, are you not?"
+
+"Happy!" cried the girl, with sparkling eyes, "I never expected to be so
+happy anywhere. As long as I live I shall never forget all you and Mr.
+and Mrs. Graham have done for me, but I can't help wanting to remember."
+
+"Of course you can't; that is quite natural. We all want you to
+remember, too, but we must have patience. The more you strain your
+brain, the longer it may take for the memory to come back. You have been
+a great comfort to us since Marjorie went away; I told her so in my last
+letter."
+
+"I am so glad," said Undine, smiling. "I promised Marjorie I would try,
+but of course I knew I could never take her place. Oh, Miss Jessie, you
+said I might read Marjorie's last letter. It came when I was out, you
+know, and I didn't hear you read it to Mrs. Graham."
+
+"So I did, I am glad you reminded me, for I had forgotten all about it.
+It was written from the place in Virginia where she has been spending
+the holidays, and tells all about their Christmas festivities. It is in
+the right-hand drawer of my desk--you may read it whenever you like."
+
+Undine glanced at the book in Miss Graham's lap.
+
+"If you don't want me for anything, and are going to stay here for a
+while, I think I will go and read it now," she said; "I love Marjorie's
+letters."
+
+"Very well, dear; I want to finish this book before we begin the one we
+are going to read together. It won't take me more than fifteen minutes."
+
+Undine scrambled to her feet.
+
+"All right," she said; "I'll be back before that. Oh, Miss Jessie, isn't
+the air glorious to-day? It makes me feel so happy and excited; just as
+if something were going to happen."
+
+Undine tripped away to the house, and Miss Graham, as she opened her
+book, heard the clear young voice singing:
+
+ "'A Highland laddie lives over the lea;
+ A laddie both noble and gallant and free.'"
+
+The song died away in the distance, and Miss Jessie became absorbed in
+her story. It was very still, and not a sound came to disturb her until
+she had turned the last page. Then she closed the book, and looked up in
+surprise.
+
+"How long Undine takes to read that letter!" she said to herself, in
+some surprise.
+
+Another ten minutes slipped away, but Miss Jessie was accustomed to
+waiting patiently--she had done little else for the past eight years.
+
+"Susie must have kept the child for something," she decided, and settled
+comfortably back in her chair to await Undine's return.
+
+But it was not like her sister-in-law to detain Undine without sending
+some explanation; neither was it like the girl to remain away so long.
+At the end of another ten minutes Miss Jessie began to be a little
+curious.
+
+"What can be the matter?" she said uneasily, her thoughts reverting to a
+possible accident to her brother, who had gone to try some new horses
+that afternoon. "I think I'll wheel myself back to the house and find
+out."
+
+But at that moment she caught sight of her sister-in-law coming towards
+her across the lawn. Mrs. Graham was looking cheerful and serene as
+usual, and carried some sewing in her hand.
+
+"I thought I would come and join you," she said, as soon as she was
+within speaking distance. "It's much too lovely to stay in doors.
+Where's Undine?"
+
+"I don't know," said Miss Jessie, "I thought she was with you. She went
+in half an hour ago, to read Marjorie's last letter, which I had
+forgotten to show her, and hasn't come back since."
+
+"I haven't seen her," said Mrs. Graham, looking a little annoyed, "but
+then I have been in the kitchen with Juanita. Undine ought not to go off
+like this, and leave you alone so long."
+
+"She never did such a thing before," said Miss Jessie, anxiously. "I
+wish you would go and see where she is, Susie."
+
+"Oh, she is all right, I am sure," Mrs. Graham maintained, but she
+turned back towards the house, nevertheless, for it had also occurred to
+her that it was unlike Undine to neglect her duty.
+
+There was not a sound to be heard when Mrs. Graham reached the house and
+although she called Undine several times, she received no answer.
+
+"Where can the child be?" she said, beginning to feel a little
+frightened, and she hurried to Undine's room. The door was open, and her
+first impression was that the room was empty. She was turning away
+again, more and more puzzled by the girl's mysterious disappearance,
+when her eye was caught by a heap of something white lying on the floor
+by the window, and in another moment she had hurried forward, with an
+exclamation of dismay, and was bending over Undine, who lay, white and
+unconscious on the floor, with Marjorie's letter clasped convulsively in
+her hand.
+
+When Undine opened her eyes she was lying on her bed, and Mrs. Graham
+was bathing her forehead, while the faithful Juanita plied a palm-leaf
+fan and held a bottle of smelling-salts to her nose. For a moment the
+girl gazed about her in a kind of dull bewilderment; then a look of
+recollection came into her eyes, and she started up, with a sharp cry.
+
+"I'm not dead, I'm not dead! Oh, tell them it isn't true! I'm not; I'm
+not!"
+
+"Lie down, dear," said Mrs. Graham in a tone of gentle authority. "Of
+course you are not dead; you fainted, that is all. You are better now,
+and if you lie still for a few minutes you will be all right."
+
+"But the letter said I was dead," persisted Undine, wildly, and she
+fixed her big, terrified eyes on Mrs. Graham's astonished face. "It
+said Barbara Randolph was dead, and her mother put flowers on her
+grave."
+
+Mrs. Graham was beginning to be seriously alarmed for the girl's reason,
+but she made an effort to appear calm.
+
+"My dear child," she said, soothingly, "you don't know what you are
+saying. Barbara Randolph is the daughter of the lady with whom Marjorie
+has been staying; she died long ago; she had nothing to do with you."
+
+"But she didn't die, I know she didn't!" cried Undine, sitting up,
+despite all Mrs. Graham's efforts to keep her quiet. "I knew it when I
+read the letter. For one minute I remembered something horrible. I don't
+remember it any more now, but I was so frightened, and--oh, Mrs. Graham,
+I was so terribly frightened!" And the poor child burst into a fit of
+wild, hysterical sobbing, and clung passionately to her kind friend's
+neck.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+Miss Jessie pushed her wheeled-chair out onto the porch, and strained
+her eyes in the gathering dusk, in the vain hope of seeing some
+approaching figure. Fortunately the January evening was warm, but even
+if it had been cold she would scarcely have been aware of the fact. She
+was very anxious, and this long suspense of waiting was hard to bear.
+It was more than two hours since Undine had regained consciousness, and
+in all that time the girl had scarcely uttered an intelligible word. She
+had passed from one hysterical fit into another, and Mrs. Graham and
+Juanita were at their wits' end. For almost the first time in twelve
+years Miss Jessie realized the awful loneliness of their lives. "Donald
+must surely be back soon," she told herself, trying to be patient, "and
+Jim will be here with the mail before long. Oh, that poor child--what
+can it all mean?"
+
+There was a slight sound behind her, and Mrs. Graham, too, stepped out
+on the porch. She was looking pale and distressed.
+
+"How is she now?" Miss Jessie whispered, anxiously.
+
+"I think she has fallen into a doze; she must be quite exhausted, poor
+child. She has had a terrible shock of some kind."
+
+"Do you think it can have been caused by anything in Marjorie's letter?
+She must have been reading it when she fainted."
+
+"I don't know what to think," said Mrs. Graham, clasping her hands
+nervously. "She spoke of that Randolph girl--the little girl who was
+killed in the earthquake, you know. Oh, Jessie, you don't suppose--"
+Mrs. Graham did not finish her sentence, but the two women looked at
+each other in the dusk, and both their faces were pale and startled.
+
+"I must go back," said Mrs. Graham in a hurried whisper; "I dare not
+leave her long. When she wakes she may remember; I think her memory is
+coming back. I am afraid you will take cold out here."
+
+"I am not cold, but I will come in soon. I am waiting for Donald and
+Jim. I must warn them not to speak loud; it might startle her again."
+
+Mrs. Graham made no further objection, but went back into the house and
+Miss Jessie folded her hands and waited.
+
+Five, ten minutes passed, and then came the sound of distant hoofs. With
+a sigh of intense relief, Miss Jessie sent the wheeled-chair gliding
+smoothly off the porch, and across the lawn. The hoof-beats drew nearer,
+and now she heard voices. Was it her brother or Jim, and who were the
+others, for she distinctly heard more than one voice?
+
+"Is it you, Donald?" she called, and in the still, clear air, her voice
+was audible an eighth of a mile away.
+
+"No, Miss, it ain't Mr. Graham, it's me," came the answer in Jim's
+well-known voice. "I've got some folks with me."
+
+Miss Jessie waited in silence while the hoofs and voices drew nearer. It
+was no uncommon thing for strangers to stop at the ranch, where they
+were always sure of a hospitable reception and a night's lodging. She
+was glad Jim was not alone. Perhaps the visitors, whoever they were,
+might be able to help, but how she could not imagine. It was nearly
+dark, and the first few stars were beginning to glimmer in the evening
+sky.
+
+The horses were very near now, and she could distinguish three figures,
+one was Jim Hathaway, the other two were strangers.
+
+"I beg your pardon, Madame." It was the elder of the two strangers who
+spoke; he had sprung from his horse, and taken off his hat. Even in the
+dim light Miss Jessie could see that he was a gentleman. His companion
+she noticed was much younger, scarcely more than a boy indeed, and he,
+too, was regarding her with eager, questioning eyes.
+
+"I must introduce myself," the gentleman went on, courteously. "I think
+you may have heard Marjorie speak of me. I am Dr. Randolph, and this is
+my nephew Beverly."
+
+Miss Jessie gave a little joyful cry, and held out both hands.
+
+"Is it about Undine?" she whispered breathlessly. "Have you come for
+her, and is it really true that the child is your niece?"
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It was some time before Undine awoke from the heavy sleep of exhaustion
+into which she had fallen. She opened her eyes, gazed about her vaguely,
+and murmured, "Mother! I want Mother."
+
+"Yes, dear, I know," said Mrs. Graham, softly kissing the girl's hot
+forehead. "Your mother isn't here, but she is safe and well, and you
+shall go to her very soon."
+
+Undine smiled faintly, and then a troubled look came into her face.
+
+"I forgot her," she said, dreamily, "I forgot my mother for a long time,
+but I remember now, and I want her--oh, I want her." And she stretched
+out her arms in helpless longing.
+
+Then Mrs. Graham moved aside, and some one else bent over her.
+
+"Babs," said a low, tremulous voice, "Babs darling, don't you know me?
+It's Beverly."
+
+With a great cry of joy Undine started up, and in another second she was
+clinging convulsively round her brother's neck.
+
+"Beverly," she sobbed, "oh, Beverly, I remember; I remember everything.
+It's all come back; poor Aunt Helen, that dreadful, dreadful time! You
+thought I was dead, and you and Mother put flowers on my grave; but I
+wasn't dead, I had only forgotten. Hold me, Beverly, hold me tight; I'm
+so afraid I'm going to forget again."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII
+
+UNDINE TELLS HER STORY
+
+
+BUT Undine did not forget again, although it was some time before she
+was able to give any coherent account of what she could remember.
+Indeed, she was in such a feverish, hysterical condition, that Dr.
+Randolph would not allow any attempt at questioning her that night.
+
+"She has had a terrible shock, poor child," he said to Mrs. Graham. "The
+reading of that letter must have brought everything back with a rush and
+the knowledge that she had been mourned as dead for nearly three years
+was almost more than she could bear. But she is young and strong, and a
+good night's sleep will do wonders for her. When I think of what we owe
+to you and your--" The doctor's voice broke suddenly, and he impulsively
+held out his hand.
+
+"I think our obligations are mutual," said Mrs. Graham, smiling, though
+there were tears in her eyes. "According to Marjorie's last letter, you
+and Mrs. Randolph have been making our little girl very happy, while
+your niece has been a great comfort to us. It is all so strange and
+wonderful that I can scarcely realize yet that it isn't a dream."
+
+It was pitiful to see Undine cling to her brother; she could not bear to
+have him out of her sight for a moment, and Beverly himself, almost
+stunned by the great shock of the discovery that Undine and Barbara were
+really one and the same, coming at the end of four days of almost
+unendurable suspense, could do little beyond hovering over his sister,
+in joy and thankfulness too deep for words.
+
+"Does Mother know, Beverly?" Undine whispered, late that evening, when
+the two were alone together.
+
+"No, Babs, she doesn't know yet, but we are going to take you home just
+as soon as we can. We couldn't let Mother even suspect until we were
+sure ourselves. Marjorie was certain she recognized your photograph, but
+Uncle George and I couldn't believe it was true; it seemed so
+impossible."
+
+"Poor, poor Mother," sighed Undine; "oh, Beverly, how unhappy she must
+have been!"
+
+"Don't talk about it, Babs; you know Uncle George doesn't want you to
+talk. You must try to go to sleep, so as to be able to start for home as
+soon as possible."
+
+"I'm afraid to go to sleep," protested Undine, feverishly. "Perhaps when
+I wake I shall have forgotten everything again. Oh, Beverly, don't let
+me forget again."
+
+"Of course we won't let you," said Beverly, putting a strong arm around
+her, protectingly. "You are quite safe now, you know, Babs darling,
+Uncle George and I are here, and we're going to take you home to
+Mother."
+
+Undine breathed a deep sigh of relief, as she nestled in her brother's
+arms, and when she fell asleep at last it was with Beverly's hand
+clasped fast in hers.
+
+But after a long night's sleep, and a joyful waking, to find that she
+had not forgotten again, Undine was quite a different creature, and
+during the morning that followed she was able to give her uncle and
+brother a fairly clear account of her adventures.
+
+"I remember it all quite well now," she said. "Aunt Helen was ill that
+night, and she said she would have the maid sleep in her room, in case
+she might need something. I slept in the maid's room, which was just
+across the hall. I was very tired, and I think I must have gone to
+sleep as soon as I was in bed, for I don't remember anything until I
+woke hearing a terrible noise. The whole hotel seemed to be rocking, and
+I saw some of the things on the bureau fall over, and a picture came
+down off the wall. I think I was too frightened to move, for I lay quite
+still, thinking every minute that Aunt Helen would come and tell me what
+had happened. In a few moments the shaking stopped and then I heard
+people screaming and running about in the halls.
+
+"Aunt Helen didn't come, or the maid either, and at last I got up, and
+went to look for them. I was in my nightgown and bare feet, but I was
+too frightened to stop to put any clothes on. I ran out into the hall,
+intending to go to Aunt Helen's room, but something frightful had
+happened; there wasn't any room, only a great pile of bricks and mortar,
+and I heard people say one of the chimneys had fallen in. Oh, it was
+terrible--I can't talk about it!" And the poor child began to shiver
+convulsively.
+
+"Never mind about that part of the story, dear," Dr. Randolph said,
+soothingly, while Beverly put his arm round her.
+
+"I called and called to Aunt Helen," Undine went on in a voice scarcely
+above a whisper, "but nobody answered, and then the house began to
+shake again and people screamed that the walls were falling.
+
+"The next thing I remember is being out in the street. I don't know how
+I got there, but I was running along in my bare feet, in the midst of a
+great crowd. I don't know how far I ran or where I went. I think I must
+have been crazed with fright. I tried to speak to people, but nobody
+took any notice of me. I heard them saying there had been a terrible
+earthquake, and that the whole city had been destroyed. At last I got
+very tired, and I think I must have been faint too, for everything grew
+black, and I was so cold. I remember going inside a doorway, and
+thinking I would rest there for a few minutes, and then the stone must
+have fallen on my head, for I don't remember anything more till I woke
+up in the hospital, and didn't even know my name."
+
+"Of course it must have been the poor maid who was killed," said
+Beverly. "We never dreamed of that, because we felt so sure you and Aunt
+Helen had roomed together. But Babs dear, did you never remember
+anything at all--not even the least little thing?"
+
+Undine shook her head.
+
+"I used to have little gleams of memory sometimes," she said, "but they
+were gone again in a minute. I had one the first time I heard Jim sing
+'Mandalay,' and for one second I think I almost remembered you, Beverly.
+Another time I almost remembered was when Mrs. Graham was reading a
+letter from Marjorie, in which she mentioned your name for the first
+time. I kept saying 'Randolph, Randolph' over and over to myself for a
+long time, but after the first minute the words didn't seem to mean
+anything to me. It wasn't till yesterday when I read that letter, and
+saw all your names together--Mother's and yours, and Uncle George's and
+then that part about going to Barbara's grave--that it all came back
+with a rush, and I was so frightened that I fainted."
+
+Later in the day Undine--or Barbara, as I suppose we must call her
+now--had a long talk with her uncle. Dr. Randolph had insisted on
+Beverly's going out for a walk. The boy was utterly worn out from
+excitement and suspense, and his uncle feared he would be really ill if
+precautions were not taken. So he was sent off for a long tramp over the
+ranch with Mr. Graham, and the doctor sat down by his little niece's
+bedside, and tried to draw her thoughts away from painful memories, by
+talking of Marjorie, and of her own life on the ranch.
+
+"They have all been so good to me here, Uncle George," Barbara said, the
+grateful tears starting to her eyes. "If you could have seen me when I
+first came! I am sure I looked like a tramp, and I was so miserable I
+didn't care much what became of me. I don't think many people would have
+believed my crazy story, but they took me right in without a word, and
+have treated me just as if I belonged to them ever since. Aren't Mrs.
+Graham and Miss Jessie lovely?"
+
+"They are indeed," said the doctor, heartily. "We owe them a debt of
+gratitude that can never be repaid. Miss Graham has one of the sweetest
+faces I have ever seen. Has she been a cripple all her life?"
+
+Barbara caught her breath as a sudden recollection flashed into her
+mind.
+
+"Uncle George," she cried excitedly, "aren't you a great surgeon?"
+
+"I am a surgeon certainly," said her uncle, smiling, "but I don't know
+just what you would call a great one; why do you want to know?"
+
+"Because," said Barbara, clasping her hands, and regarding the doctor
+with shining eyes, "now Marjorie can have her wish--the thing she wants
+more than anything else in the world, and that she and I have been
+praying for all winter."
+
+And in a few rapid words she told the story of Miss Graham's accident,
+and of Marjorie's hopes.
+
+Dr. Randolph said nothing, but he looked much interested, and when
+Beverly returned from his walk, he left the brother and sister together,
+and went in quest of Mrs. Graham, with whom he had a long talk. Then
+Miss Jessie was taken into their confidence, and all through the long
+afternoon Barbara and Beverly waited in eager anxiety for their uncle's
+return.
+
+Mr. Graham was obliged to ride some distance to another ranch that
+afternoon, in order to see a man on business, and it was late in the
+evening when he returned, and found his old classmate waiting for him on
+the porch.
+
+"Well, and how are things going?" he inquired cheerfully, when Jim had
+taken away his horse. "I trust our little friend is better."
+
+"She is much better, thank you," Dr. Randolph answered. "She is fast
+recovering from the shock, and I hope we may be able to start for home
+by the day after to-morrow. Her mother must be told as soon as possible,
+and Barbara herself can scarcely wait to get home. I am going to make
+arrangements to leave on the first available train for the East
+and--Graham, I want to ask you a favor."
+
+"I am sure I shall be glad to do anything in my power," Mr. Graham said,
+smiling; "what is it?"
+
+"I want you to let me take your wife and sister back to New York with
+us."
+
+"My wife and sister!" repeated Mr. Graham in amazement. "Why, my dear
+boy, my poor sister hasn't left her wheeled-chair for eight years. I am
+sure that she could not stand such a journey."
+
+"I think she could," said the doctor, quietly. "I should take a
+compartment for her, of course, and she could lie down during the whole
+trip. As for the drive to the station, I think that could also be
+managed without much discomfort. She tells me she often takes fairly
+long drives with you and your wife. Barbara is still very much shaken,
+and will need a woman's care on the journey. Your wife can be of great
+assistance to us, and as to your sister--well, the fact is, Graham, I
+made an examination this afternoon, with her and Mrs. Graham's consent,
+and I see no reason why an operation cannot be performed. I can't
+promise an absolute cure, but I have strong hopes."
+
+Mr. Graham did not speak, but he grasped his old friend's hand in
+gratitude too deep for words, and the doctor went away well satisfied,
+to carry the good news to his niece and nephew.
+
+"Oh, how happy Marjorie will be!" cried Barbara, with sparkling eyes.
+"When she wrote me that she had met a great surgeon, but would never
+have the courage to speak to him about her aunt, how little either of us
+dreamed--oh, what a wonderful, beautiful thing it all is! To think that
+in five days I shall be with Mother. You don't think the shock will make
+her ill, do you, Uncle George?"
+
+"I hope not, dear, but we must be very careful how the news is broken to
+her. Now I want Beverly to go to bed, and you must try to sleep, too,
+Barbara, for you will need all your strength for the journey, and the
+meeting with your mother."
+
+But it was a long time before Barbara fell asleep that night. Old
+memories were trooping back thick and fast, and there was so much that
+was happy as well as sad to remember. She breathed more than one little
+prayer of thankfulness to the dear Heavenly Father, who had watched
+over her through all her trials and dangers, and brought her back at
+last to home and friends. And when sleep came at last, it was a
+peaceful, refreshing sleep, untroubled by feverish dreams.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII
+
+BREAKING THE NEWS
+
+
+"DO sit down, Marjorie; you haven't been still for five minutes since
+luncheon." Elsie spoke in a tone of weary exasperation, as she laid down
+the book she had been trying to read, and regarded her cousin's flushed
+cheeks and sparkling eyes, with a half amused, half annoyed expression.
+
+Marjorie laughed nervously.
+
+"I'm sorry I've been so restless," she said, "but how can I help it.
+Just think, they'll be here this very day, and Mrs. Randolph doesn't
+know a single thing yet."
+
+"Of course I know it's the most exciting thing that ever happened,"
+Elsie admitted, with resignation, "but one can't help getting tired even
+of exciting things when one has heard of nothing else for a whole week.
+It will be a week to-morrow since you got that telegram, and I don't
+believe you've thought of another thing since."
+
+"I don't believe I have," agreed Marjorie, "but then how could I? Oh,
+Elsie, I'm so happy when I think it has all come about through my
+recognizing that photograph! Just suppose Beverly and I hadn't gone to
+Mammy's cabin that afternoon. I might never have seen a picture of
+Barbara, and the Randolphs might never have known."
+
+"I wonder how they are going to break the news to Mrs. Randolph,"
+remarked Elsie, without heeding her cousin's last observation. "I should
+think it would be dreadfully dangerous; the shock might kill her."
+
+Marjorie's bright face clouded.
+
+"I can't help worrying about it," she said, "but I am sure Dr. Randolph
+will find a way of doing it. It's wonderful to see her so calm, just
+doing every-day things, and talking as if nothing unusual were
+happening, when we are all so excited and nervous."
+
+"I really don't see how you managed to keep her from suspecting when you
+were on the way home," said Elsie; "I'm afraid I should have let out
+something without intending to."
+
+"I couldn't do that," said Marjorie, gravely. "Think how terrible it
+would have been if Mrs. Randolph had hoped and then been disappointed.
+I was sure myself, but neither Dr. Randolph nor Beverly believed it
+could be true. I shall never forget that last evening in Virginia.
+Beverly and I were both almost ill from excitement, and yet we had to
+act just as if nothing unusual had happened. Fortunately the doctor and
+Beverly were to start the first thing in the morning, so we all went to
+bed early. I don't believe any of us slept a wink; I know I didn't. The
+day on the train wasn't quite so bad, because Mrs. Patterson was with
+us, and she hadn't been told anything, and could be natural without
+trying. I pretended to be very much interested in a book, so as not to
+have to talk much, but I couldn't tell you what it was about. And all
+the time Mrs. Randolph was just as sweet and calm as possible, and
+worried about me because my hands were cold, and I couldn't eat."
+
+"I think you were very plucky," said Elsie.
+
+The bright color rushed into Marjorie's cheeks; this was the first
+compliment Elsie had ever paid her.
+
+"I wasn't at all plucky," she said, modestly; "any one else would have
+done the same thing. I'm glad you think I was, though, for I do want you
+to like me."
+
+"Of course I like you," said Elsie, reddening in her turn. "There's the
+door-bell; I wonder if it's Mamma."
+
+"Perhaps it's a letter," cried Marjorie, springing to her feet; "I ought
+to have a letter from home to-day. I haven't heard a word since that
+little note from Aunt Jessie the morning after Barbara was found."
+
+But it was not a letter. Neither was it Mrs. Carleton, who had gone
+driving with a friend. In a moment the faithful Hortense appeared with a
+message.
+
+"Madame Randolph has sent to inquire if Mademoiselle Marjorie will come
+to her apartment for a short time. Her friend has been obliged to go
+out, and she is alone."
+
+Marjorie clasped her hands in dismay, and turned a little pale.
+
+"Send word you're very busy, and can't possibly come," suggested Elsie.
+But Marjorie shook her head.
+
+"I shall have to go," she said, with a little gasp. "Mrs. Randolph has
+been so good to me; she would think it so strange if I didn't come when
+she sent for me. Say I will be there in a few minutes, Hortense."
+
+"You really are a wonder, Marjorie," remarked Elsie, with involuntary
+admiration, as Hortense left the room with the message. "I'm sure I
+should never be able to do it."
+
+"Yes, you would," said Marjorie, smiling and without another word she
+followed Hortense out of the room.
+
+Marjorie's heart was beating very fast when she rang Mrs. Randolph's
+bell five minutes later, but when that lady herself opened the door, and
+greeted her guest with her usual serene cheerfulness, the girl pulled
+herself together with a mighty effort, and her friend noticed nothing
+unusual in her manner, except that her cheeks were flushed and her eyes
+shining.
+
+"I am so glad you could come this afternoon," Mrs. Randolph said,
+leading the way to the sitting-room. "I haven't seen you for days, and
+was beginning to feel quite neglected." She spoke playfully, but
+Marjorie felt the gentle reproach in her tone, and her heart beat faster
+than ever.
+
+"Indeed I didn't mean to neglect you," she said, eagerly, "but--but you
+see I have had a good deal to do since I came home; school began on
+Monday."
+
+"I understand, dear," said Mrs. Randolph, smiling, "and I am not blaming
+you in the least, but I have missed you very much."
+
+"You have had Mrs. Patterson," said Marjorie, as she took the seat her
+friend indicated beside her on the sofa.
+
+"Oh, yes, and she has been a great comfort, for I have missed Beverly
+terribly. He and the doctor will be at home this afternoon, you know."
+
+"Yes," said Marjorie; "Mrs. Patterson told us at luncheon. She said you
+had a headache; I hope it's better."
+
+"Much better, thank you, dear. I didn't come down to luncheon because I
+wanted to be quite bright and well this evening when Beverly is here.
+This is always a rather sad day for me; it is my little Barbara's
+birthday."
+
+Marjorie's heart gave one big jump, and began throbbing so fast she
+could scarcely breathe. She could not have spoken had her life depended
+on it, but fortunately Mrs. Randolph did not appear to expect an answer.
+
+"My little girl would have been fifteen to-day," she said, sadly. "It
+seems hard to realize; she was such a child when she went away. I have
+missed Beverly so much to-day; he and I always talk of Barbara on her
+birthday."
+
+"Would you like to talk to me about her, Mrs. Randolph?" said Marjorie,
+in a voice that was scarcely above a whisper.
+
+"I should like it very much. Indeed, that is why I sent for you. Mrs.
+Patterson has gone out. I offered to go with her, but she said she had
+some important business to attend to, and would rather go alone. I am
+afraid something is troubling her, and she doesn't want to worry me
+about it."
+
+Marjorie, who knew that Mrs. Patterson had gone to the station to meet
+the travelers, in answer to an urgent telegram from Dr. Randolph, said
+nothing. Mrs. Patterson, being a nervous, excitable little woman, had
+been purposely kept in ignorance of the real reason of her cousins'
+Western trip, and it was in order to break the news to her that the
+doctor had wired her to meet him at the station, and to say nothing on
+the subject of her errand to Mrs. Randolph. Consequently, the poor
+little lady had been filled by apprehensions of something dreadful
+having happened to one or both of the travelers, and had departed in a
+state of perturbation well calculated to arouse Mrs. Randolph's
+suspicions that something was troubling her.
+
+There was a moment's pause, and then Mrs. Randolph went on.
+
+"I never talk of my little girl to strangers--it is all too sacred for
+that--but you are not a stranger any more. I have loved you dearly ever
+since we stood together at my Barbara's grave, and you showed me by your
+silent sympathy how well you understood."
+
+Marjorie could not speak, but she took her friend's hand, and stroked it
+softly, while Mrs. Randolph went on, calmly, though with a quiver in her
+voice:
+
+"I used to try to make the children's birthdays as happy as possible; I
+thought they would be pleasant memories for them when they were older.
+Even the year after my husband died, when my heart was very sad, I
+wanted them to have a merry time. Little children's lives should never
+be saddened. I think you would have loved my little girl, Marjorie; she
+was very sweet."
+
+"I know I should," said Marjorie, with a sob, that was half hysterical.
+
+"I am afraid she was a sad rogue sometimes," said Mrs. Randolph,
+smiling; "Beverly and I often laugh even now over the memory of some of
+her pranks. I want him to remember all the bright, pleasant things, and
+not dwell too much on the sadness."
+
+"Mammy told me about some of Barbara's pranks," said Marjorie, "she
+showed me her photograph, too."
+
+Mrs. Randolph unfastened a small gold locket from a chain she always
+wore about her neck, and opened it. Inside was the miniature of a
+merry-faced girl of twelve--the same face that had looked at Marjorie
+from the photograph in Mammy's cabin.
+
+"That was taken only a few weeks before my little girl went away," she
+said. "She was just twelve then. I suppose she would look older now, but
+I can never think of Babs as growing up."
+
+Then Marjorie had an inspiration. How it came she never knew, but she
+had yielded to it before giving herself time to think.
+
+"That picture reminds me of some one I know," she said, and the moment
+the words were out she would have given everything she possessed to have
+left them unsaid.
+
+"Who is it?" Mrs. Randolph asked, her eyes still resting lovingly on the
+face of the miniature.
+
+"A girl who has been at my home since last summer," said Marjorie, who
+was beginning to feel cold and sick with excitement and apprehension,
+but was determined to go on now that she had begun. "She came to the
+ranch one day all by herself. She had walked all the way from the
+railroad. It was a very strange case; she had had an accident, and
+forgotten everything about herself, even her own name."
+
+"Forgotten her name!" said Mrs. Randolph, incredulously. "What a curious
+thing--are you sure her story was true?"
+
+"Oh, yes, quite sure. She was such a dear girl, we couldn't doubt her.
+Besides Father wrote to the people she had lived with since her
+accident, and they said everything Undine had told us was true. We
+called her Undine because it was pretty, and we didn't know her real
+name."
+
+"Poor child," said Mrs. Randolph, closing the miniature as she spoke.
+"Has she never remembered anything about herself since?"
+
+"She hadn't a week ago," said Marjorie, wondering how her shaking lips
+formed the words, "but perhaps she may some time. Oh, Mrs. Randolph,
+suppose she should remember, and it should turn out that she had
+relatives--brothers and sisters, and--and perhaps a mother, who had been
+mourning her as dead! Can you think how her mother would feel? Can you
+even imagine it, Mrs. Randolph?"
+
+"I think such joy would be more than any mother could bear," said Mrs.
+Randolph, softly. "But such strange, romantic things don't often happen
+in this world, Marjorie dear. The poor child's mother is probably dead,
+or she would have found her long ago. How did the accident happen?"
+
+Marjorie gave a great gasp.
+
+"We--we are not quite sure," she said. "Undine says the people at the
+hospital told her a stone must have fallen on her head. She was found in
+San Francisco under some ruins, after--after the earthquake."
+
+"After the earthquake," repeated Mrs. Randolph in a strange, startled
+tone, and she grew suddenly pale. "Oh, poor, poor child! At least my
+little Barbara was spared those horrors. Why have you never told me
+about this girl before, Marjorie?"
+
+"Because Beverly said it made you sad to have any one speak of the
+earthquake, and I couldn't have told Undine's story without mentioning
+it. It was dreadful, of course, but she was saved. Think of it, Mrs.
+Randolph, she was saved, and perhaps some time--" poor Marjorie's
+over-strained nerves gave way, and she burst into tears.
+
+Mrs. Randolph had grown very white; she was trembling, too, but she
+laid a firm hand on the girl's shoulder.
+
+"Marjorie," she cried sharply, "what does this mean? Why are you telling
+me all this? Something has happened, I know it has--oh, Marjorie, for
+God's sake tell me what it is! My little girl is dead; they brought her
+home to me, though they would not let me see her dear face. Marjorie,
+why do you cry so? You must tell me at once, do you hear? I say at
+once."
+
+"Oh, Mrs. Randolph, darling Mrs. Randolph, it isn't anything sad, indeed
+it isn't," sobbed Marjorie, with her arms about her friend's neck. "It's
+something beautiful; more beautiful and wonderful than you can ever
+imagine. I can't say any more, but Beverly will be here very soon, and
+he will tell you. Try to think of the very greatest joy that could
+possibly come to any one, and perhaps you will begin to have an idea
+what it is."
+
+Marjorie paused, conscious of the fact that some one had entered the
+room. In their excitement neither she nor Mrs. Randolph had noticed the
+opening of the door, or the sound of an approaching footstep. But now as
+she lifted her face from her friend's shoulder, Marjorie saw two figures
+standing on the threshold; they were Dr. Randolph and Beverly. At the
+same moment Mrs. Randolph also recognized them, and held out her arms to
+her son.
+
+"Beverly," she cried, "tell me what it is! You know, I see it in your
+face. Oh, Beverly, my darling, it isn't--it can't be news of Barbara?"
+
+"Yes, Mother, it is!" cried the boy, gathering her in his strong arms.
+"Can you bear a great shock, Mother--a great joyful shock?--because if
+you can, Uncle George and I have something to tell you."
+
+Marjorie waited for no more; such scenes were not for other eyes to see
+or other ears to hear. With a bound, she was out of the room, and flying
+across the corridor. In her flight she darted by two other figures
+without even seeing them; a trembling, white-faced girl clinging
+nervously to an older woman, whose face was scarcely less white than her
+own. She had but one thought: to reach her room before the burst of
+hysterical excitement completely overpowered her. A frantic ring at the
+Carletons' bell, and then the door was thrown open, and she was clinging
+to some one--presumably Hortense--crying and laughing both together.
+
+"Oh, Hortense, Hortense," she wailed, "I've told her, and they've come!
+You don't think the shock will kill her, do you?"
+
+But it was not Hortense who answered, or who held the hysterical child
+in loving, motherly arms.
+
+"Marjorie, my dear little Marjorie, don't tremble so! Everything will be
+all right, my darling, I know it will, and here are Aunt Jessie and I
+come all the way from Arizona to give you a big surprise."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV
+
+MARJORIE HAS HER WISH
+
+
+MARJORIE declared afterwards that she was sure that was the happiest
+moment of her life, but at the time the joyful surprise, coming so soon
+after the nervous strain of the past hour, proved almost too much for
+her, and she could do nothing for some time but hold her mother tight,
+and cry as if her heart would break.
+
+"It's the one thing I've been wishing for every day, and praying for
+every night since I came to New York," Marjorie said to her aunt, late
+that evening, when Miss Graham was in bed, and her niece was sitting
+beside her, holding her hand. "But I never dared hope it would really
+happen, even when I knew Dr. Randolph had gone to Arizona. We were all
+so excited about Barbara; it didn't seem as if he or Beverly would be
+able to think of anything else."
+
+"It was all Undine's doing," said Miss Jessie, smiling. She was looking
+pale and tired, but very happy and Marjorie gazed at her aunt, with
+shining eyes.
+
+"You know it was Undine who told her uncle about my accident," the
+invalid went on. "Dr. Randolph made an examination, and he hopes that I
+may be much helped by an operation. He is going to bring another surgeon
+to see me to-morrow, and if they agree in their opinion, I am to go to a
+hospital."
+
+Miss Graham spoke cheerfully, but there was a slight tremor in her
+voice, and Marjorie grew suddenly grave. They were both silent for a
+moment, and then Marjorie said:
+
+"Isn't Beverly a dear, and don't you like Dr. Randolph ever so much,
+too?"
+
+"I do indeed," said Miss Jessie, heartily. "I shall never forget their
+kindness during that long journey. As for Undine, she could not have
+been more devoted to me if she had been my own little niece. It has been
+a wonderful experience, Marjorie; I never expected to see the East
+again."
+
+Marjorie bent and kissed her.
+
+"Beautiful things do happen in the world as well as sad ones, don't
+they?" she said, softly. "When I think of you and Mother being here, and
+of Mrs. Randolph having found her Barbara, my heart is so full it seems
+as if it must surely burst. Here comes Mother; perhaps she will be able
+to tell us how Mrs. Randolph has borne the shock."
+
+Mrs. Graham's news was most reassuring.
+
+"I have seen Beverly," she said, "and he says his mother is quite calm
+now. At first they were anxious about her, but only for a little while.
+Beverly says his uncle thinks it was a fortunate thing you were able to
+prepare her a little before they came, Marjorie; otherwise it would have
+been more difficult to break the news to her."
+
+Marjorie gave a long sigh of relief.
+
+"I'm so glad it wasn't wrong," she said. "I was horribly frightened
+after I had begun, but when Mrs. Randolph showed me that picture, it
+came to me all at once to tell her about Undine. I thought that if she
+heard of one girl who was saved from the earthquake, she might be able
+to believe that another girl was saved, too."
+
+Mrs. Graham and Miss Jessie both smiled, and then Mrs. Graham said she
+must obey the doctor's instructions, and see that her sister-in-law was
+kept quiet, and went to sleep early.
+
+Marjorie and her mother had a long talk that night, after Aunt Jessie
+was asleep, and the girl opened her heart as she had not done since
+leaving home, and Mrs. Graham learned of many things that she had not
+been told in letters.
+
+"I think Elsie really does like me now," finished Marjorie, when she had
+told of the many heartaches caused by the fear that her cousin did not
+like her. "She has been very sweet since I came back from Virginia, and
+just as kind and sympathetic as she could be."
+
+Mrs. Graham looked pleased.
+
+"Elsie has been spoiled," she said, "but I believe she has the right
+stuff in her, after all. I am glad you have told me all these things,
+dear, although I understand your reasons for not writing them. You have
+had a harder time than I suspected, but I don't think it has done you
+any harm. Do you know, Marjorie, I am inclined to be rather proud of my
+little girl?"
+
+Those last words of her mother's filled Marjorie's cup to the brim, and
+I doubt if in all the great city that night, there were two happier
+beings than she and Barbara Randolph.
+
+But it was not all happiness for Marjorie during the next few days.
+There followed hours of keen anxiety about Aunt Jessie, and for a time
+she forgot everything else while she waited in suspense for the verdict
+of the two great surgeons.
+
+It was on an afternoon three days later, that she and Barbara sat
+together in the Randolphs' parlor, waiting for the news, which was to
+tell them whether Jessie Graham was to go through life a helpless
+cripple, or be restored to health and strength once more. The day before
+she had been taken to a private hospital, and the girls knew that an
+operation was to be performed that afternoon. They were alone, for Mrs.
+Graham was with her sister-in-law, and Mrs. Randolph--almost as anxious
+as the others--had gone to the hospital for news, promising to return as
+soon as possible. So Marjorie and Barbara sat together side by side on
+the sofa, holding each other's hands, and waiting in almost breathless
+suspense.
+
+"Mother will be sure to let us know just as soon as there's anything to
+tell," whispered Barbara, anxious to cheer her friend. "She says Uncle
+George told her he was very hopeful."
+
+"I know," said Marjorie, "he told us all so, but I can't help being
+frightened when I think of all it means to Aunt Jessie. She doesn't say
+much, but I know how she must feel. Just think how we would feel if we
+hadn't walked a step for more than eight years."
+
+"Where is your cousin this afternoon?" inquired Barbara, by way of
+changing the subject. She was almost as anxious as Marjorie, but she
+had been living at high pressure for so long, it was a relief to get
+down to commonplaces.
+
+"I don't know," said Marjorie; "she was going out, but it rained so hard
+Aunt Julia wouldn't let her go, on account of her cold. Aunt Julia is
+very fussy about colds."
+
+"Don't you think she would like to come in here with us?" suggested
+Barbara. "She may be lonely all by herself."
+
+"I don't believe she is lonely," said Marjorie, doubtfully, "but if you
+think she might like to come--"
+
+A ring at the door-bell brought Marjorie's sentence to an abrupt end,
+and both girls sprang to their feet.
+
+"I'll see who it is," said Barbara; "it may be a message from Mother."
+And she flew to open the door, while Marjorie sank back in her seat,
+feeling suddenly cold and sick with fear.
+
+But it was not a message from Mrs. Randolph; it was Elsie.
+
+"I just came to ask if you had heard anything yet," she said, looking
+rather embarrassed, as she noticed the expression of disappointment on
+Barbara's face.
+
+"No, we haven't," Barbara answered; "we thought it might be a message
+when we heard the bell. Won't you come in?"
+
+Elsie hesitated.
+
+"Do you really want me?" she asked, doubtfully; "I thought perhaps you
+would rather be by yourselves."
+
+"Of course we want you," declared Barbara, heartily, while Marjorie--in
+the background--gave a little gasp of astonishment. Such humility from
+the proud Elsie was something that had never entered her imagination.
+
+Elsie made no remark, but she came in, and followed Barbara to the
+sitting-room, where Marjorie smiled a welcome which appeared to set her
+cousin more at her ease.
+
+"I am sure you must be almost as anxious as we are," said Barbara,
+"though of course you don't know Miss Jessie as well. No one could help
+loving her."
+
+"No, they couldn't," agreed Elsie, in a rather low voice, and then she
+walked over to the window, and stood with her back to the others,
+looking out at the falling rain.
+
+Nobody talked much during the next half-hour. Marjorie and Barbara both
+had lumps in their throats, and words did not come easily. Elsie, too,
+was unusually silent. There was another little excitement when the bell
+rang again, and Beverly came in. Beverly had been through a great deal
+during the past two weeks, but boys of eighteen cannot live on high
+pressure for very long without a reaction setting in. Beverly was a very
+natural, healthy-minded boy, and the reaction in his case took the form
+of unusually high spirits.
+
+"Don't all have such long faces," he remarked, cheerfully, surveying the
+solemn little group. "Just make up your minds everything is coming out
+all right, and you'll see it will. I've got more faith in Uncle George
+than in any other surgeon in the country. Think of what he did for that
+English boy we met at the Bells'."
+
+"I know Uncle George is wonderful," said Barbara, a trifle more hopeful,
+"but even he may not be able to cure everybody. You would be just as
+anxious as Marjorie and I, Beverly, if you knew dear Miss Jessie as well
+as we do."
+
+"I didn't say I wasn't anxious. I only said I didn't see any use in such
+long faces before you know whether there was anything to be mournful
+about. How do you do, Miss Elsie? I haven't seen you in a week of
+Sundays."
+
+In his present exuberant spirits, Beverly was quite ready to forget past
+unpleasantness, but Elsie had not forgotten, as her heightened color
+and embarrassed manner plainly showed.
+
+Beverly went to the piano, and began playing rag-time, with the cheerful
+desire of raising the drooping spirits of the party. He proposed they
+should sing college songs, but nobody felt inclined for singing and the
+attempt proved a dismal failure.
+
+"What a very uncomfortable thing suspense is," remarked Barbara, as the
+clock struck five.
+
+"You would say so if you had been through the suspense Marjorie and I
+have," her brother said. "We know something of what suspense means,
+don't we, Marjorie?"
+
+"Indeed we do," said Marjorie, rousing herself from present anxieties
+with an effort. "Oh, Beverly, those awful days when you and your uncle
+were on your way to Arizona, and I couldn't be absolutely sure I hadn't
+made a mistake about that photo after all. Suppose I had been mistaken,
+and you had had that terrible disappointment!"
+
+"Well, you were not mistaken, you see," broke in Beverly, who felt that
+the recollection of those days was still too vivid to bear discussion.
+"Come and sit by me, Babs," and he made room for his sister on the piano
+stool.
+
+But all suspense, however long, must come to an end at last, and just as
+the clock was striking half past five, there was another ring at the
+bell, followed by a simultaneous rush to the door. Only Marjorie
+remained behind. Until that moment she had scarcely realized how great
+her anxiety was, and her knees shook so that she could not rise from her
+chair. She heard all the others talking at once, apparently asking some
+question, and then Mrs. Randolph's voice, but she could not hear her
+words.
+
+"Marjorie, Marjorie, where are you?" cried Barbara joyfully; "here's
+Mother!"
+
+"I'm here," said Marjorie, faintly, and the next moment Mrs. Randolph
+was beside her, holding both her cold hands. Marjorie's eyes asked the
+question her lips refused to form, and Mrs. Randolph bent and kissed
+her.
+
+"Marjorie dear," she said in a voice that was not quite steady, though
+she was smiling, "your mother wanted me to tell you that the operation
+is over, and that Dr. Randolph feels almost certain it has been
+successful."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV
+
+ELSIE REDEEMS HERSELF
+
+
+"DO you know, Aunt Jessie, that to-morrow will be the first of May? It's
+nearly four months since you and Mother came to New York."
+
+Miss Graham was leaning back in a comfortable arm-chair by an open
+window, through which the bright spring sunshine was pouring, flooding
+every corner of the pleasant hotel bedroom. She was still looking rather
+frail and delicate, but there was an expression of hope and joy in her
+face, that had never been there in the old days at the ranch. A crutch
+stood at her side, but there was no wheeled-chair to be seen. At
+Marjorie's words she looked round with a smile.
+
+"Time has certainly flown," she said. "Have you had a pleasant ride?"
+
+"It was glorious. Beverly and I had a splendid gallop. I hope you
+enjoyed your drive."
+
+"Yes, it was lovely," said Miss Jessie, secretly thinking that Marjorie
+had grown very pretty lately. She looked so well in her perfectly
+fitting riding habit, with her rosy cheeks and sparkling eyes. "I
+wasn't at all tired when I came home either, which Dr. Randolph
+considers a distinct gain. He says I am one of his star patients. Have
+you finished your lessons for to-morrow?"
+
+"Haven't any; it's Saturday, you know. I shall have plenty of time to
+study between now and Monday. I came to have a little chat with you
+before I dress. I'm going out this evening, you remember. It's the last
+meeting of the Club, and quite an important occasion. The Bells are
+sailing for Europe to-morrow, and Lulu is our president."
+
+"I thought you wrote me that Elsie was elected president," said Miss
+Graham, who seldom forgot anything Marjorie told her.
+
+"She was at first," said Marjorie, hoping her aunt would not notice her
+suddenly heightened color. She drew a low chair to Miss Jessie's side,
+and settled herself for a comfortable chat.
+
+"Why did she give it up?" Miss Graham inquired, with interest.
+
+"I--I don't exactly know. It was after I came back from Virginia and
+Barbara came home. She said she would rather not be president any more,
+and asked Lulu to take her place."
+
+"I like Elsie," said Miss Jessie. "She is very clever, and has been
+rather spoiled in consequence, but there is much that is fine about her.
+She will make a noble woman, I am sure."
+
+Marjorie looked pleased.
+
+"Elsie likes you," she said, "and I don't think she is really fond of
+many people. She hasn't nearly as many friends as most of the girls at
+school have, but I love her dearly, and so does Babs."
+
+"I had a letter from your father this afternoon," Miss Jessie said,
+after a little pause; "I am keeping it for you to read. He says things
+are looking up at the ranch, and he is hoping for a better season than
+last. He thinks he may possibly be able to come East for us himself next
+month. I do hope he can, for it would be such a treat for him."
+
+"I suppose he is thankful to get Mother back," said Marjorie, "but, oh,
+how we do miss her, don't we, Aunt Jessie?"
+
+"Yes, indeed, but it wouldn't have been fair to have kept her any longer
+when she was so anxious to get home to your father. After all, she had a
+good long rest, and your father declares she is looking ten years
+younger in consequence."
+
+"What a wonderful winter it has been," said Marjorie, reflectively,
+resting her knee against her aunt's knee. "When I left home last
+October, how little any of us dreamed of all the strange, beautiful
+things that were going to happen. Those first weeks were pretty hard; I
+was a good deal more homesick than I let any of you know, but I knew
+everybody meant to be kind and I did try hard to make the best of
+things. Then came the Randolphs' invitation to spend the holidays in
+Virginia, and the wonderful discovery about Undine. And then--as if that
+wasn't happiness enough--Dr. Randolph saw you, and brought you and
+Mother back to New York with him. The operation was pretty dreadful, but
+ever since Dr. Randolph told us he was sure it had been a success,
+everything has been simply heavenly."
+
+Miss Jessie said nothing, but softly stroked Marjorie's hair, and there
+was such a look of joy in her eyes, that the girl could not help being
+struck by it.
+
+"Aunt Jessie," she said, laughing, "do you know, I never realized before
+how young you are. I used to think of you as quite a middle-aged lady,
+but I don't know how it is, you look different now somehow--almost like
+a girl."
+
+"I was twenty-nine last week," said Miss Jessie, smiling; "I suppose
+twenty-nine may seem middle-aged to fifteen."
+
+"But it doesn't," protested Marjorie; "not a bit; I think I must have
+been a goose ever to have thought such a thing. Beverly calls you a
+perfect trump, and he wouldn't say that about any one he considered
+middle-aged; it wouldn't be respectful."
+
+"I am very much obliged to Beverly for his good opinion," said Miss
+Jessie, laughing and blushing in such a very girlish manner that her
+niece regarded her in growing astonishment.
+
+"I believe it's the thought of being well and strong again that has made
+all the difference," she said. "Oh, Aunt Jessie darling, think of it,
+you'll never have to sit in that dreadful wheeled-chair again! What
+walks and rides we'll have together. Are you sure Dr. Randolph will let
+you go back to the ranch in June?"
+
+"He says I shall be quite strong enough for the journey by that time,"
+Miss Graham answered, but she did not meet Marjorie's direct gaze as she
+spoke. "I feel that I ought not to trespass on the Randolphs'
+hospitality any longer than is necessary. Think of what they have done
+for me, Marjorie. First all those weeks at the hospital, and then
+insisting on my coming here, and all of it just because we were kind to
+Undine."
+
+"I don't think that is the only reason," said Marjorie, eagerly. "That
+was the beginning of it, of course, but now they all love you for
+yourself. Babs says her mother loves you dearly, and she and Beverly
+were both so pleased because you said they might call you 'Aunt Jessie.'
+As for the doctor, I'm sure he likes you ever so much."
+
+"There's some one at the door; go and see who it is, Marjorie."
+
+Marjorie rose obediently, wondering what could have possibly caused her
+aunt's sudden embarrassment, and when she returned she was followed by
+Barbara, who had also dropped in for a little chat, Miss Jessie's room
+being a favorite rendezvous with all the young people.
+
+"Well, and what have you been doing this afternoon?" Miss Graham asked
+pleasantly, as Barbara settled herself for a comfortable half-hour.
+
+"I went for a walk with Elsie and Hortense. We had a nice time, but I
+don't think Elsie felt very well, she was so quiet. I asked her if her
+head ached, and she said no, but I'm afraid it did."
+
+"I don't think Elsie has seemed quite like herself for several days,"
+said Miss Jessie, a little anxiously. "Perhaps she is studying too hard;
+her mother tells me she is so very ambitious."
+
+Neither of the girls had any explanation to suggest, and they all
+chatted on pleasantly on various subjects until it was time to go away
+and dress for dinner. Barbara was also going to the Club that evening,
+having been admitted as a guest of honor some months before. Indeed, she
+was quite the heroine of the hour, for the romantic story had quickly
+spread from friends and acquaintances to strangers, and she had even
+been written about in several newspapers, a circumstance which had
+filled the breasts of some other girls with envy. For several weeks
+there was not a girl in the city so much talked about as Barbara
+Randolph, the child who had been mourned as dead by her family for
+nearly three years, and then reappeared under conditions sufficiently
+interesting and romantic to fill the pages of a thrilling story-book.
+The Randolphs disliked the publicity, but Barbara was pursued by
+reporters and photographers until Beverly lost his temper, and
+positively refused to allow any member of the family to grant another
+interview.
+
+"How does it feel to know that everybody in New York is talking about
+you, and all the papers asking for your picture?" Elsie had asked one
+day, to which Barbara had answered, with a laugh:
+
+"I don't know that I have any particular feelings about it. I am too
+happy at being at home again with Mother and Beverly to care for
+anything else in the world."
+
+Elsie was nowhere to be seen when Marjorie returned to her uncle's
+apartment, and the cousins did not meet till they were both dressed for
+the evening, and had joined Mr. and Mrs. Carleton in the drawing-room.
+Then Mrs. Carleton's first words were an anxious question.
+
+"Are you sure you are feeling quite well this evening, Elsie darling?
+You are very pale."
+
+"Of course I'm all right," said Elsie, crossly. "I do wish you wouldn't
+fuss so much about me, Mamma."
+
+Mrs. Carleton sighed.
+
+"I am sure I don't intend to fuss," she said, plaintively, "but how can
+I help worrying when I see you looking so badly, especially when you
+will insist on studying so hard?"
+
+"Nonsense," said Mr. Carleton, looking up from his evening paper, with a
+frown. "I have looked over Elsie's lessons, and there is nothing wrong
+there. She isn't studying any harder than a healthy girl of her age
+should. What's the matter, Elsie--don't you feel quite up to the mark?"
+
+He spoke kindly, but his tone was a trifle impatient, and before Elsie
+could reply, her mother began again.
+
+"She won't tell you; she insists there is nothing the matter, but she
+has not looked like herself for days. If she isn't better to-morrow I
+shall have the doctor see her, and give her a tonic."
+
+Mr. Carleton threw down his newspaper.
+
+"My dear Julia," he said, "I believe you consider a tonic a cure for
+every evil in the world. The girls are ready, so let us go down to
+dinner, and see if Elsie doesn't make up for her loss of appetite at
+luncheon."
+
+But Elsie did not make up for her lack of appetite at luncheon. She
+toyed with her food, and her color changed so often, from white to red,
+and back to white again, that by the time dinner was over even her
+father began to look at her curiously. But when Mrs. Carleton suggested
+that she should not go to Gertie Rossiter's, where the Club was to be
+held that evening, she protested that she was perfectly well, and was so
+decided in her determination to go, that, as usual, she had her way.
+
+The meeting was at eight, and Marjorie and Elsie were obliged to hurry
+away from the dinner table to join the two Randolphs, as the four were
+to go together in the Carletons' carriage.
+
+"Uncle George says we might have had his car as well as not," remarked
+Barbara, as they took their seats in the carriage. "He has come to spend
+the evening with Mother and Aunt Jessie, and won't need it."
+
+"Your uncle is very generous with his car," said Marjorie, innocently.
+"He lent it to your mother and Aunt Jessie this afternoon, you know, and
+Aunt Jessie said they had a beautiful ride."
+
+"Oh, Uncle George would do anything in the world for Aunt Jessie,"
+remarked Barbara, at which her brother smiled a rather mischievous
+smile, but said nothing.
+
+There was an unusually large gathering of the Club that evening, in
+honor of the president, who, with her family, was to sail for Europe the
+following day. As it was a gala occasion, no sewing was to be done, and
+the boys were invited to come with the girls, and devote the evening to
+dancing and games.
+
+"I'm afraid our sewing really hasn't amounted to very much," Winifred
+Hamilton remarked ruefully. "Mother says she's afraid the Blind Babies
+would be badly off if they had to depend upon us for clothes, but we've
+had an awfully jolly winter, and I'm sorry it's over, aren't you, Mr.
+Randolph?"
+
+"Well, summer is pretty jolly, too, you know," answered Beverly,
+smiling. "I sha'n't be sorry to have vacation begin. We are going abroad
+as soon as college closes."
+
+"How nice," said Winifred, looking interested; "perhaps you'll meet the
+Bells. They expect to stay over till October. I really don't know how I
+shall manage to get on so long without Lulu."
+
+"Why don't you go, too?" Beverly asked, good-naturedly.
+
+"I should love to, but I couldn't leave Mother. Dr. Bell offered to take
+me, and Father and Mother said I might go if I liked, but I couldn't
+make up my mind to leave them. Perhaps some day we shall go ourselves,"
+finished Winifred, trying to look hopeful.
+
+"I'll let you into a little secret if you'll promise not to tell," said
+Beverly, who had a genuine liking for Winifred, despite the fact that
+she was "young for her age." "My mother is very anxious to have Marjorie
+go with us, provided her parents will consent. Miss Graham thinks they
+will, and Mother has written to ask them before speaking to Marjorie
+herself. Mind you don't tell, for it's a great secret. Even Babs doesn't
+know, for she and Marjorie are such chums she would be sure to let
+something out. Hello! what's up? Lulu is going to make a speech."
+
+There was a sudden hush as Lulu, with Elsie at her side, stepped
+forward, and rapped sharply on the table, to call the club to order.
+
+"Ladies and gentlemen," she began in what the girls called "her
+presidential tone," "I didn't expect to have any regular meeting this
+evening, but Miss Elsie Carleton has an announcement to make, and has
+asked me to tell you she would like to speak. As you all know Miss
+Carleton was your president until she resigned in favor of another, I am
+sure you will all be pleased to hear what she has to say. Go ahead,
+Elsie; everybody's listening."
+
+All eyes were turned in surprise upon Elsie, as she stood before them,
+very pale, but with a look of settled determination on her face. Twice
+she tried to speak, and stopped, and they could all see that she was
+very nervous. Then the words came, very low, but sufficiently audible to
+reach every ear in the room.
+
+"Girls," she began, looking straight before her, and clasping and
+unclasping her hands as she spoke, "girls and boys, too, for I want you
+all to hear. I have a confession to make. It's about something that
+happened at the first meeting of this Club--the night we were all
+initiated. That poem I wrote--some of you thought it was the best, and
+you made me president--it--it wasn't original; I learned it when I was a
+little girl, but I thought nobody would recognize it. I didn't mean to
+cheat at first, but I couldn't make up anything that I thought was good
+enough, and I hated to have the other poems better than mine. I haven't
+anything more to say except that I've been ashamed of myself ever since,
+and I can't have you go on thinking me cleverer than I am, any longer."
+And then, without waiting to note the effect of her startling
+announcement, Elsie turned and fled.
+
+Marjorie and Barbara found her upstairs in the dressing-room, crying as
+if her heart would break. Neither of them said a word, but Marjorie put
+her arms round her cousin's neck and hugged her.
+
+[Illustration: "IT TAKES A LOT OF PLUCK TO GET UP AND SAY A THING LIKE
+THAT."--_Page 355._]
+
+"What are they saying about me?" whispered Elsie, burying her face on
+Marjorie's shoulder. "Do they all despise me?"
+
+"Not a bit of it," declared Marjorie, reassuringly. "They're all saying
+how plucky it was of you to confess. Lulu says she never liked you so
+much before in her life. As for me, I'm so proud of you I don't know
+what to do. Oh, Elsie darling, I'm so glad you did it!"
+
+"It was you who made me do it," sobbed Elsie, clinging to her cousin.
+"You were so splendid about it all. You knew, and yet you never told any
+one, not even Papa when he was provoked with you, because you wouldn't
+explain what the trouble between us was. Your brother knew too, Babs,
+and he has never said a word, but I know how he has despised me. I've
+despised myself too--oh, how I have despised myself! I've been selfish
+and conceited all my life, and I didn't care much, but one can't help
+feeling mean and ashamed beside girls like you, and brave, wonderful
+women like Aunt Jessie. I don't believe I've got one real friend in the
+world."
+
+"You've got lots," protested Marjorie and Barbara both together.
+"Just come downstairs and see if you haven't."
+
+It was a very quiet, subdued Elsie who reentered the drawing-room,
+escorted by her two staunch friends, but the welcome she received was
+such that, before the evening was over, she found herself able to smile,
+and take a passing interest in life once more. Elsie had many faults,
+but she was not a bad girl, and she had learned a lesson that would last
+her all her life. One of the first to approach her and hold out his
+hand, was Beverly Randolph.
+
+"You're a trump, Elsie," he said, in his blunt, boyish way. "It takes a
+lot of pluck to get up and say a thing like that. Let's shake hands and
+be friends." And at that moment Elsie was happier than she had been in
+months.
+
+"I think I'll just stop a minute to say good-night to Aunt Jessie,"
+remarked Marjorie, as they were going up to their apartment in the lift.
+"I don't believe she has gone to bed yet if Dr. Randolph is spending the
+evening. Tell Aunt Julia I'll be right up, Elsie."
+
+So Marjorie stepped out of the lift with the Randolphs, while Elsie went
+up another floor to her own apartment. Mrs. Randolph had insisted that
+Miss Graham should be her guest on leaving the hospital, and one of the
+most comfortable rooms in the apartment had been assigned to her.
+
+It was Mrs. Randolph herself who opened the door for the young people;
+she was smiling, and looked as if she were pleased about something.
+
+"Has Aunt Jessie gone to bed?" Marjorie asked.
+
+"No, dear, she is in the parlor with Uncle George, and I think she wants
+to see you."
+
+Barbara hurried her mother off to her room, to tell of the events of the
+evening, and Beverly followed, at a mysterious signal from Mrs.
+Randolph, so Marjorie was the only one to enter the cozy little parlor,
+where she found her aunt and the doctor sitting on the sofa side by
+side.
+
+"I just came in for a minute to say good-night," she began. "I've had a
+lovely evening, and--and--" here Marjorie paused abruptly, struck by
+something unusual in the faces of her two listeners.
+
+"Is--is anything the matter?" she inquired anxiously.
+
+"Do we look as if there were?" inquired the doctor, and he smiled such a
+radiant smile that Marjorie's sudden anxiety melted into thin air.
+
+"No, not exactly, but Aunt Jessie looks so--so different. Oh, Aunt
+Jessie darling, I know something has happened--is it good news?"
+
+"The very best news in the world for me," said the doctor, laughing,
+while Aunt Jessie drew her niece into her arms, and hid her smiling,
+blushing face on Marjorie's shoulder. "Your aunt has promised to give me
+something that I want more than anything else. Marjorie, do you think
+you would like to have me for an uncle?"
+
+"And that was just the crowning happiness of all," said Marjorie, when
+she and Elsie were talking things over half an hour later. "I thought I
+was just as happy as any girl could be before, but when I saw that look
+on Aunt Jessie's face, and thought of all she had suffered, and how
+brave she had been, it seemed as if my heart would burst with gladness.
+It's just the most beautiful ending to a beautiful winter."
+
+"I wish I had done more to make the first part of the winter happy,"
+said Elsie, with a remorseful sigh. "I don't see why you didn't hate me,
+Marjorie; I'm sure I deserved it."
+
+"Why, I couldn't," said Marjorie, simply, "you were my own cousin, you
+know."
+
+Elsie went up to her cousin, and put her arms round her. That was such
+an unusual proceeding from cold, undemonstrative Elsie that Marjorie
+was speechless with astonishment.
+
+"I believe you are the best girl in the world, Marjorie," she said,
+unsteadily. "I'm not worthy of your friendship, but if you will really
+love me, and forgive me for all the mean, hateful things I've done, I
+will try to deserve it--I will indeed."
+
+
+THE END
+
+
+
+
+DOROTHY BROWN
+
+By NINA RHOADES
+
+
+ Illustrated by Elizabeth Withington Large 12mo
+ Cloth $1.50
+
+[Illustration]
+
+THIS is considerably longer than the other books by this favorite
+writer, and with a more elaborate plot, but it has the same winsome
+quality throughout. It introduces the heroine in New York as a little
+girl of eight, but soon passes over six years and finds her at a select
+family boarding school in Connecticut. An important part of the story
+also takes place at the Profile House in the White Mountains. The charm
+of school-girl friendship is finely brought out, and the kindness of
+heart, good sense and good taste which find constant expression in the
+books by Miss Rhoades do not lack for characters to show these best of
+qualities by their lives. Other less admirable persons of course appear
+to furnish the alluring mystery, which is not all cleared up until the
+very last.
+
+ "There will be no better book than this to put
+ into the hands of a girl in her teens and none
+ that will be better appreciated by
+ her."--_Kennebec Journal._
+
+
+
+
+
+MARION'S VACATION
+
+By NINA RHOADES
+
+
+ Illustrated by Bertha G. Davidson 12mo Cloth $1.25
+
+[Illustration]
+
+THIS book is for the older girls, Marion being thirteen. She has for ten
+years enjoyed a luxurious home in New York with the kind lady who feels
+that the time has now come for this aristocratic though lovable little
+miss to know her own nearest kindred, who are humble but most excellent
+farming people in a pretty Vermont village. Thither Marion is sent for a
+summer, which proves to be a most important one to her in all its
+lessons.
+
+ "More wholesome reading for half grown girls it
+ would be hard to find; some of the same lessons
+ that proved so helpful in that classic of the last
+ generation 'An Old Fashioned Girl' are brought
+ home to the youthful readers of this sweet and
+ sensible story."--_Milwaukee Free Press._
+
+
+
+
+Only Dollie
+
+ By NINA RHOADES Illustrated by Bertha Davidson
+ Square 12mo Cloth $1.00
+
+[Illustration]
+
+THIS is a brightly written story of a girl of twelve, who, when the
+mystery of her birth is solved, like Cinderella, passes from drudgery to
+better circumstances. There is nothing strained or unnatural at any
+point. All descriptions or portrayals of character are life-like, and
+the book has an indescribable appealing quality which wins sympathy and
+secures success.
+
+ "It is delightful reading at all times."--_Cedar
+ Rapids (Ia.) Republican._
+
+ "It is well written, the story runs smoothly, the
+ idea is good, and it is handled with
+ ability."--_Chicago Journal._
+
+
+
+
+The Little Girl Next Door
+
+ By NINA RHOADES Large 12mo Cloth Illustrated
+ by Bertha Davidson $1.00
+
+[Illustration]
+
+A DELIGHTFUL story of true and genuine friendship between an impulsive
+little girl in a fine New York home and a little blind girl in an
+apartment next door. The little girl's determination to cultivate the
+acquaintance, begun out of the window during a rainy day, triumphs over
+the barriers of caste, and the little blind girl proves to be in every
+way a worthy companion. Later a mystery of birth is cleared up, and the
+little blind girl proves to be of gentle birth as well as of gentle
+manners.
+
+
+
+
+Winifred's Neighbors
+
+
+ By NINA RHOADES Illustrated
+ by Bertha G. Davidson Large
+ 12mo Cloth $1.00
+
+[Illustration]
+
+LITTLE Winifred's efforts to find some children of whom she reads in a
+book lead to the acquaintance of a neighbor of the same name, and this
+acquaintance proves of the greatest importance to Winifred's own family.
+Through it all she is just such a little girl as other girls ought to
+know, and the story will hold the interest of all ages.
+
+ _For sale by all booksellers, or sent postpaid on receipt
+ of price by the publishers_
+
+ LOTHROP, LEE & SHEPARD CO., BOSTON
+
+
+
+
+ * * * * *
+
+
+
+
+Transcriber's note:
+
+Obvious punctuation errors were corrected.
+
+Page 104, "stiches" changed to "stitches" (aunt's stitches had)
+
+Page 200, "Glass" changed to "Grass" (Keep off the Grass)
+
+Page 219, "Luly" changed to "Lulu" (Lulu Bell, one)
+
+
+
+***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE GIRL FROM ARIZONA***
+
+
+******* This file should be named 32417.txt or 32417.zip *******
+
+
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/3/2/4/1/32417
+
+
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+http://www.gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/pglaf.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at http://www.gutenberg.org/about/contact
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
+To donate, please visit:
+http://www.gutenberg.org/fundraising/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ http://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
diff --git a/32417.zip b/32417.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f236789
--- /dev/null
+++ b/32417.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..5254b4a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #32417 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/32417)